Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    Twenty Years After 
by Alexandre Dumas 
The Shade of Cardinal Richelieu. 
In a splendid chamber of the Palais Royalformerly styled 
the Palais Cardinala man was sitting in deep reveriehis 
head supported on his handsleaning over a gilt and inlaid 
table which was covered with letters and papers. Behind this 
figure glowed a vast fireplace alive with leaping flames; 
great logs of oak blazed and crackled on the polished brass 
andirons whose flicker shone upon the superb habiliments of 
the lonely tenant of the roomwhich was illumined grandly 
by twin candelabra rich with wax-lights. 
Any one who happened at that moment to contemplate that red 
simar -- the gorgeous robe of office -- and the rich lace
or who gazed on that pale browbent in anxious meditation
mightin the solitude of that apartmentcombined with the 
silence of the ante-chambers and the measured paces of the 
guards upon the landing-placehave fancied that the shade 
of Cardinal Richelieu lingered still in his accustomed 
haunt. 
It wasalas! the ghost of former greatness. France 
enfeebledthe authority of her sovereign contemnedher 
nobles returning to their former turbulence and insolence
her enemies within her frontiers -- all proved the great 
Richelieu no longer in existence. 
In truththat the red simar which occupied the wonted place 
was his no longerwas still more strikingly obvious from 
the isolation which seemedas we have observedmore 
appropriate to a phantom than a living creature -- from the 
corridors deserted by courtiersand courts crowded with 
guards -- from that spirit of bitter ridiculewhich
arising from the streets belowpenetrated through the very 
casements of the roomwhich resounded with the murmurs of a 
whole city leagued against the minister; as well as from the 
distant and incessant sounds of guns firing -- let off
happilywithout other end or aimexcept to show to the 
guardsthe Swiss troops and the military who surrounded the 
Palais Royalthat the people were possessed of arms. 
The shade of Richelieu was Mazarin. Now Mazarin was alone 
and defencelessas he well knew. 
Foreigner!he ejaculatedItalian! that is their mean yet 
mighty byword of reproach -- the watchword with which they 
assassinated, hanged, and made away with Concini; and if I 
gave them their way they would assassinate, hang, and make 
away with me in the same manner, although they have nothing 
to complain of except a tax or two now and then. Idiots! 
ignorant of their real enemies, they do not perceive that it 
is not the Italian who speaks French badly, but those who 
can say fine things to them in the purest Parisian accent, 
who are their real foes. 
Yesyes Mazarin continued, whilst his wonted smile, full 
of subtlety, lent a strange expression to his pale lips; 
yesthese noises prove to meindeedthat the destiny of 
favorites is precarious; but ye shall know I am no ordinary 
favorite. No! The Earl of Essex'tis truewore a splendid 
ringset with diamondsgiven him by his royal mistress
whilst I -- I have nothing but a simple circlet of gold
with a cipher on it and a date; but that ring has been 
blessed in the chapel of the Palais Royal* so they will 
never ruin meas they long to doand whilst they shout
`Down with Mazarin!' Iunknownand unperceived by them
incite them to cry out`Long live the Duke de Beaufort' one 
day; another`Long live the Prince de Conde;' and again
`Long live the parliament!'" And at this word the smile on 
the cardinal's lips assumed an expression of hatredof 
which his mild countenance seemed incapable. "The 
parliament! We shall soon see how to dispose he continued, 
of the parliament! Both Orleans and Montargis are ours. It 
will be a work of timebut those who have begun by crying 
out: Down with Mazarin! will finish by shouting outDown 
with all the people I have mentionedeach in his turn. 
* It is said that Mazarinwhothough a cardinalhad not 
taken such vows as to prevent itwas secretly married to 
Anne of Austria. -- La Porte's Memoirs. 
Richelieu, whom they hated during his lifetime and whom 
they now praise after his death, was even less popular than 
I am. Often he was driven away, oftener still had he a dread 
of being sent away. The queen will never banish me, and even 
were I obliged to yield to the populace she would yield with 
me; if I fly, she will fly; and then we shall see how the 
rebels will get on without either king or queen. 
Ohwere I not a foreigner! were I but a Frenchman! were I 
but of gentle birth!" 
The position of the cardinal was indeed criticaland recent 
events had added to his difficulties. Discontent had long 
pervaded the lower ranks of society in France. Crushed and 
impoverished by taxation -- imposed by Mazarinwhose 
avarice impelled him to grind them down to the very dust -the 
peopleas the Advocate-General Talon described ithad 
nothing left to them except their souls; and as those could 
not be sold by auctionthey began to murmur. Patience had 
in vain been recommended to them by reports of brilliant 
victories gained by France; laurelshoweverwere not meat 
and drinkand the people had for some time been in a state 
of discontent. 
Had this been allit might notperhapshave greatly 
signified; for when the lower classes alone complainedthe 
court of Franceseparated as it was from the poor by the 
intervening classes of the gentry and the bourgeoisie
seldom listened to their voice; but unluckilyMazarin had 
had the imprudence to attack the magistrates and had sold no 
less than twelve appointments in the Court of Requestsat a 
high price; and as the officers of that court paid very 
dearly for their placesand as the addition of twelve new 
colleagues would necessarily lower the value of each place
the old functionaries formed a union amongst themselves
andenragedswore on the Bible not to allow of this 
addition to their numberbut to resist all the persecutions 
which might ensue; and should any one of them chance to 
forfeit his post by this resistanceto combine to indemnify 
him for his loss. 
Now the following occurrences had taken place between the 
two contending parties 
On the seventh of January between seven and eight hundred 
tradesmen had assembled in Paris to discuss a new tax which 
was to be levied on house property. They deputed ten of 
their number to wait upon the Duke of Orleanswho
according to his customaffected popularity. The duke 
received them and they informed him that they were resolved 
not to pay this taxeven if they were obliged to defend 
themselves against its collectors by force of arms. They 
were listened to with great politeness by the dukewho held 
out hopes of easier measurespromised to speak in their 
behalf to the queenand dismissed them with the ordinary 
expression of royaltyWe will see what we can do.
Two days afterward these same magistrates appeared before 
the cardinal and their spokesman addressed Mazarin with so 
much fearlessness and determination that the minister was 
astounded and sent the deputation away with the same answer 
as it had received from the Duke of Orleans -- that he would 
see what could be done; and in accordance with that 
intention a council of state was assembled and the 
superintendent of finance was summoned. 
This mannamed Emerywas the object of popular 
detestationin the first place because he was 
superintendent of financeand every superintendent of 
finance deserved to be hated; in the second placebecause 
he rather deserved the odium which he had incurred. 
He was the son of a banker at Lyons named Particelliwho
after becoming a bankruptchose to change his name to 
Emery; and Cardinal Richelieu having discovered in him great 
financial aptitudehad introduced him with a strong 
recommendation to Louis XIII. under his assumed namein 
order that he might be appointed to the post he subsequently 
held. 
You surprise me!exclaimed the monarch. "I am rejoiced to 
hear you speak of Monsieur d'Emery as calculated for a post 
which requires a man of probity. I was really afraid that 
you were going to force that villain Particelli upon me." 
Sire,replied Richelieurest assured that Particelli, 
the man to whom your majesty refers, has been hanged.
Ah; so much the better!exclaimed the king. "It is not for 
nothing that I am styled Louis the Just." and he signed 
Emery's appointment. 
This was the same Emery who became eventually superintendent 
of finance. 
He was sent for by the ministers and he came before them 
pale and tremblingdeclaring that his son had very nearly 
been assassinated the day beforenear the palace. The mob 
had insulted him on account of the ostentatious luxury of 
his wifewhose house was hung with red velvet edged with 
gold fringe. This lady was the daughter of Nicholas de 
Camuswho arrived in Paris with twenty francs in his 
pocketbecame secretary of stateand accumulated wealth 
enough to divide nine millions of francs among his children 
and to keep an income of forty thousand for himself. 
The fact was that Emery's son had run a great chance of 
being suffocatedone of the rioters having proposed to 
squeeze him until he gave up all the gold he had swallowed. 
Nothingthereforewas settled that dayas Emery's head 
was not steady enough for business after such an occurrence. 
On the next day Mathieu Molethe chief presidentwhose 
courage at this crisissays the Cardinal de Retzwas equal 
to that of the Duc de Beaufort and the Prince de Conde -- in 
other wordsof the two men who were considered the bravest 
in France -- had been attacked in his turn. The people 
threatened to hold him responsible for the evils that hung 
over them. But the chief president had replied with his 
habitual coolnesswithout betraying either disturbance or 
surprisethat should the agitators refuse obedience to the 
king's wishes he would have gallows erected in the public 
squares and proceed at once to hang the most active among 
them. To which the others had responded that they would be 
glad to see the gallows erected; they would serve for the 
hanging of those detestable judges who purchased favor at 
court at the price of the people's misery. 
Nor was this all. On the eleventh the queen in going to mass 
at Notre Dameas she always did on Saturdayswas followed 
by more than two hundred women demanding justice. These poor 
creatures had no bad intentions. They wished only to be 
allowed to fall on their knees before their sovereignand 
that they might move her to compassion; but they were 
prevented by the royal guard and the queen proceeded on her 
wayhaughtily disdainful of their entreaties. 
At length parliament was convoked; the authority of the king 
was to be maintained. 
One day -- it was the morning of the day my story begins -the 
kingLouis XIV.then ten years of agewent in state
under pretext of returning thanks for his recovery from the 
small-poxto Notre Dame. He took the opportunity of calling 
out his guardthe Swiss troops and the musketeersand he 
had planted them round the Palais Royalon the quaysand 
on the Pont Neuf. After mass the young monarch drove to the 
Parliament Housewhereupon the thronehe hastily 
confirmed not only such edicts as he had already passedbut 
issued new oneseach oneaccording to Cardinal de Retz
more ruinous than the others -- a proceeding which drew 
forth a strong remonstrance from the chief presidentMole 
-- whilst President Blancmesnil and Councillor Broussel 
raised their voices in indignation against fresh taxes. 
The king returned amidst the silence of a vast multitude to 
the Palais Royal. All minds were uneasymost were 
forebodingmany of the people used threatening language. 
At firstindeedthey were doubtful whether the king's 
visit to the parliament had been in order to lighten or 
increase their burdens; but scarcely was it known that the 
taxes were to be still further increasedwhen cries of 
Down with Mazarin!Long live Broussel!Long live 
Blancmesnil!resounded through the city. For the people had 
learned that Broussel and Blancmesnil had made speeches in 
their behalfandalthough the eloquence of these deputies 
had been without availit had none the less won for them 
the people's good-will. All attempts to disperse the groups 
collected in the streetsor silence their exclamations
were in vain. Orders had just been given to the royal guards 
and the Swiss guardsnot only to stand firmbut to send 
out patrols to the streets of Saint Denis and Saint Martin
where the people thronged and where they were the most 
vociferouswhen the mayor of Paris was announced at the 
Palais Royal. 
He was shown in directly; he came to say that if these 
offensive precautions were not discontinuedin two hours 
Paris would be under arms. 
Deliberations were being held when a lieutenant in the 
guardsnamed Commingesmade his appearancewith his 
clothes all tornhis face streaming with blood. The queen 
on seeing him uttered a cry of surprise and asked him what 
was going on. 
As the mayor had foreseenthe sight of the guards had 
exasperated the mob. The tocsin was sounded. Comminges had 
arrested one of the ringleaders and had ordered him to be 
hanged near the cross of Du Trahoir; but in attempting to 
execute this command the soldiery were attacked in the 
market-place with stones and halberds; the delinquent had 
escaped to the Rue des Lombards and rushed into a house. 
They broke open the doors and searched the dwellingbut in 
vain. Commingeswounded by a stone which had struck him on 
the foreheadhad left a picket in the street and returned 
to the Palais Royalfollowed by a menacing crowdto tell 
his story. 
This account confirmed that of the mayor. The authorities 
were not in a condition to cope with serious revolt. Mazarin 
endeavored to circulate among the people a report that 
troops had only been stationed on the quays and on the Pont 
Neufon account of the ceremonial of the dayand that they 
would soon withdraw. In factabout four o'clock they were 
all concentrated about the Palais Royalthe courts and 
ground floors of which were filled with musketeers and Swiss 
guardsand there awaited the outcome of all this 
disturbance. 
Such was the state of affairs at the very moment we 
introduced our readers to the study of Cardinal Mazarin -once 
that of Cardinal Richelieu. We have seen in what state 
of mind he listened to the murmurs from belowwhich even 
reached him in his seclusionand to the gunsthe firing of 
which resounded through that room. All at once he raised his 
head; his brow slightly contracted like that of a man who 
has formed a resolution; he fixed his eyes upon an enormous 
clock that was about to strike tenand taking up a whistle 
of silver gilt that stood upon the table near himhe 
shrilled it twice. 
A door hidden in the tapestry opened noiselessly and a man 
in black silently advanced and stood behind the chair on 
which Mazarin sat. 
Bernouin,said the cardinalnot turning roundfor having 
whistledhe knew that it was his valet-de-chambre who was 
behind him; "what musketeers are now within the palace?" 
The Black Musketeers, my lord.
What company?
Treville's company.
Is there any officer belonging to this company in the 
ante-chamber?
Lieutenant d'Artagnan.
A man on whom we can depend, I hope.
Yes, my lord.
Give me a uniform of one of these musketeers and help me to 
put it on.
The valet went out as silently as he had entered and 
appeared in a few minutes bringing the dress demanded. 
The cardinalin deep thought and in silencebegan to take 
off the robes of state he had assumed in order to be present 
at the sitting of parliamentand to attire himself in the 
military coatwhich he wore with a certain degree of easy 
graceowing to his former campaigns in Italy. When he was 
completely dressed he said: 
Send hither Monsieur d'Artagnan.
The valet went out of the roomthis time by the centre 
doorbut still as silently as before; one might have 
fancied him an apparition. 
When he was left alone the cardinal looked at himself in the 
glass with a feeling of self-satisfaction. Still young -for 
he was scarcely forty-six years of age -- he possessed 
great elegance of form and was above the middle height; his 
complexion was brilliant and beautiful; his glance full of 
expression; his nosethough largewas well proportioned; 
his forehead broad and majestic; his hairof a chestnut 
colorwas curled slightly; his beardwhich was darker than 
his hairwas turned carefully with a curling irona 
practice that greatly improved it. After a short time the 
cardinal arranged his shoulder beltthen looked with great 
complacency at his handswhich were most elegant and of 
which he took the greatest care; and throwing on one side 
the large kid gloves tried on at firstas belonging to the 
uniformhe put on others of silk only. At this instant the 
door opened. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan,said the valet-de-chambre. 
An officeras he spokeentered the apartment. He was a man 
between thirty-nine and forty years of ageof medium height 
but a very well proportioned figure; with an intellectual 
and animated physiognomy; his beard blackand his hair 
turning grayas often happens when people have found life 
either too gay or too sadmore especially when they happen 
to be of swart complexion. 
D'Artagnan advanced a few steps into the apartment. 
How perfectly he remembered his former entrance into that 
very room! Seeinghoweverno one there except a musketeer 
of his own troophe fixed his eyes upon the supposed 
soldierin whose dressneverthelesshe recognized at the 
first glance the cardinal. 
The lieutenant remained standing in a dignified but 
respectful posturesuch as became a man of good birthwho 
had in the course of his life been frequently in the society 
of the highest nobles. 
The cardinal looked at him with a cunning rather than 
serious glanceyet he examined his countenance with 
attention and after a momentary silence said: 
You are Monsieur d'Artagnan?
I am that individual,replied the officer. 
Mazarin gazed once more at a countenance full of 
intelligencethe play of which had beennevertheless
subdued by age and experience; and D'Artagnan received the 
penetrating glance like one who had formerly sustained many 
a searching lookvery differentindeedfrom those which 
were inquiringly directed on him at that instant. 
Sir,resumed the cardinalyou are to come with me, or 
rather, I am to go with you.
I am at your command, my lord,returned D'Artagnan. 
I wish to visit in person the outposts which surround the 
Palais Royal; do you suppose that there is any danger in so 
doing?
Danger, my lord!exclaimed D'Artagnan with a look of 
astonishmentwhat danger?
I am told that there is a general insurrection.
The uniform of the king's musketeers carries a certain 
respect with it, and even if that were not the case I would 
engage with four of my men to put to flight a hundred of 
these clowns.
Did you witness the injury sustained by Comminges?
Monsieur de Comminges is in the guards and not in the 
musketeers ---- 
Which means, I suppose, that the musketeers are better 
soldiers than the guards.The cardinal smiled as he spoke. 
Every one likes his own uniform best, my lord.
Myself excepted,and again Mazarin smiled; "for you 
perceive that I have left off mine and put on yours." 
Lord bless us! this is modesty indeed!cried D'Artagnan. 
Had I such a uniform as your eminence possesses, I protest 
I should be mightily content, and I would take an oath never 
to wear any other costume ---- 
Yes, but for to-night's adventure I don't suppose my dress 
would have been a very safe one. Give me my felt hat, 
Bernouin.
The valet instantly brought to his master a regimental hat 
with a wide brim. The cardinal put it on in military style. 
Your horses are ready saddled in their stables, are they 
not?he saidturning to D'Artagnan. 
Yes, my lord.
Well, let us set out.
How many men does your eminence wish to escort you?
You say that with four men you will undertake to disperse a 
hundred low fellows; as it may happen that we shall have to 
encounter two hundred, take eight ---- 
As many as my lord wishes.
I will follow you. This way -- light us downstairs Bernouin. 
The valet held a wax-light; the cardinal took a key from his 
bureau and opening the door of a secret stair descended into 
the court of the Palais Royal. 
A Nightly Patrol. 
In ten minutes Mazarin and his party were traversing the 
street Les Bons Enfants" behind the theatre built by 
Richelieu expressly for the play of "Mirame and in which 
Mazarin, who was an amateur of music, but not of literature, 
had introduced into France the first opera that was ever 
acted in that country. 
The appearance of the town denoted the greatest agitation. 
Numberless groups paraded the streets and, whatever 
D'Artagnan might think of it, it was obvious that the 
citizens had for the night laid aside their usual 
forbearance, in order to assume a warlike aspect. From time 
to time noises came in the direction of the public markets. 
The report of firearms was heard near the Rue Saint Denis 
and occasionally church bells began to ring indiscriminately 
and at the caprice of the populace. D'Artagnan, meantime, 
pursued his way with the indifference of a man upon whom 
such acts of folly made no impression. When he approached a 
group in the middle of the street he urged his horse upon it 
without a word of warning; and the members of the group, 
whether rebels or not, as if they knew with what sort of a 
man they had to deal, at once gave place to the patrol. The 
cardinal envied that composure, which he attributed to the 
habit of meeting danger; but none the less he conceived for 
the officer under whose orders he had for the moment placed 
himself, that consideration which even prudence pays to 
careless courage. On approaching an outpost near the 
Barriere des Sergens, the sentinel cried out, Who's there?" 
and D'Artagnan answered -- having first asked the word of 
the cardinal -- "Louis and Rocroy." After which he inquired 
if Lieutenant Comminges were not the commanding officer at 
the outpost. The soldier replied by pointing out to him an 
officer who was conversingon foothis hand upon the neck 
of a horse on which the individual to whom he was talking 
sat. Here was the officer D'Artagnan was seeking. 
Here is Monsieur Comminges,said D'Artagnanreturning to 
the cardinal. He instantly retiredfrom a feeling of 
respectful delicacy; it washoweverevident that the 
cardinal was recognized by both Comminges and the other 
officers on horseback. 
Well done, Guitant,cried the cardinal to the equestrian; 
I see plainly that, notwithstanding the sixty-four years 
that have passed over your head, you are still the same man, 
active and zealous. What were you saying to this youngster?
My lord,replied GuitantI was observing that we live in 
troublous times and that to-day's events are very like those 
in the days of the Ligue, of which I heard so much in my 
youth. Are you aware that the mob have even suggested 
throwing up barricades in the Rue Saint Denis and the Rue 
Saint Antoine?
And what was Comminges saying to you in reply, my good 
Guitant?
My lord,said CommingesI answered that to compose a 
Ligue only one ingredient was wanting -- in my opinion an 
essential one -- a Duc de Guise; moreover, no generation 
ever does the same thing twice.
No, but they mean to make a Fronde, as they call it,said 
Guitant. 
And what is a Fronde?inquired Mazarin. 
My lord, Fronde is the name the discontented give to their 
party.
And what is the origin of this name?
It seems that some days since Councillor Bachaumont 
remarked at the palace that rebels and agitators reminded 
him of schoolboys slinging -- qui frondent -- stones from 
the moats round Paris, young urchins who run off the moment 
the constable appears, only to return to their diversion the 
instant his back is turned. So they have picked up the word 
and the insurrectionists are called `Frondeurs,' and 
yesterday every article sold was `a la Fronde;' bread `a la 
Fronde,' hats `a la Fronde,' to say nothing of gloves, 
pocket-handkerchiefs, and fans; but listen ---- 
At that moment a window opened and a man began to sing: 
A tempest from the Fronde 
Did blow to-day: 
I think 'twill blow 
Sieur Mazarin away.
Insolent wretch!cried Guitant. 
My lord,said Commingeswhoirritated by his wounds
wished for revenge and longed to give back blow for blow
shall I fire off a ball to punish that jester, and to warn 
him not to sing so much out of tune in the future?
And as he spoke he put his hand on the holster of his 
uncle's saddle-bow. 
Certainly not! certainly not,exclaimed Mazarin. "Diavolo! 
my dear friendyou are going to spoil everything -everything 
is going on famously. I know the French as well 
as if I had made them myself. They sing -- let them pay the 
piper. During the Ligueabout which Guitant was speaking 
just nowthe people chanted nothing except the massso 
everything went to destruction. ComeGuitantcome along
and let's see if they keep watch at the Quinze-Vingts as at 
the Barriere des Sergens." 
And waving his hand to Comminges he rejoined D'Artagnanwho 
instantly put himself at the head of his troopfollowed by 
the cardinalGuitant and the rest of the escort. 
Just so,muttered Commingeslooking after Mazarin. "True
I forgot; provided he can get money out of the peoplethat 
is all he wants." 
The street of Saint Honorewhen the cardinal and his party 
passed through itwas crowded by an assemblage who
standing in groupsdiscussed the edicts of that memorable 
day. They pitied the young kingwho was unconsciously 
ruining his countryand threw all the odium of his 
proceedings on Mazarin. Addresses to the Duke of Orleans and 
to Conde were suggested. Blancmesnil and Broussel seemed in 
the highest favor. 
D'Artagnan passed through the very midst of this 
discontented mob just as if his horse and he had been made 
of iron. Mazarin and Guitant conversed together in whispers. 
The musketeerswho had already discovered who Mazarin was
followed in profound silence. In the street of Saint 
Thomas-du-Louvre they stopped at the barrier distinguished 
by the name of Quinze-Vingts. Here Guitant spoke to one of 
the subalternsasking how matters were progressing. 
Ah, captain!said the officereverything is quiet 
hereabout -- if I did not know that something is going on in 
yonder house!
And he pointed to a magnificent hotel situated on the very 
spot whereon the Vaudeville now stands. 
In that hotel? it is the Hotel Rambouillet,cried Guitant. 
I really don't know what hotel it is; all I do know is that 
I observed some suspicious looking people go in there ---- 
Nonsense!exclaimed Guitantwith a burst of laughter; 
those men must be poets.
Come, Guitant, speak, if you please, respectfully of these 
gentlemen,said Mazarin; "don't you know that I was in my 
youth a poet? I wrote verses in the style of Benserade ---" 
You, my lord?
Yes, I; shall I repeat to you some of my verses?
Just as you please, my lord. I do not understand Italian.
Yes, but you understand French,and Mazarin laid his hand 
upon Guitant's shoulder. "My goodmy brave Guitant
whatsoever command I may give you in that language -- in 
French -- whatever I may order you to dowill you not 
perform it?" 
Certainly. I have already answered that question in the 
affirmative; but that command must come from the queen 
herself.
Yes! ah yes!Mazarin bit his lips as he spoke; "I know 
your devotion to her majesty." 
I have been a captain in the queen's guards for twenty 
years,was the reply. 
En route, Monsieur d'Artagnan,said the cardinal; "all 
goes well in this direction." 
D'Artagnanin the meantimehad taken the head of his 
detachment without a word and with that ready and profound 
obedience which marks the character of an old soldier. 
He led the way toward the hill of Saint Roche. The Rue 
Richelieu and the Rue Villedot were thenowing to their 
vicinity to the rampartsless frequented than any others in 
that directionfor the town was thinly inhabited 
thereabout. 
Who is in command here?asked the cardinal. 
Villequier,said Guitant. 
Diavolo! Speak to him yourself, for ever since you were 
deputed by me to arrest the Duc de Beaufort, this officer 
and I have been on bad terms. He laid claim to that honor as 
captain of the royal guards.
I am aware of that, and I have told him a hundred times 
that he was wrong. The king could not give that order, since 
at that time he was hardly four years old.
Yes, but I could give him the order -- I, Guitant -- and I 
preferred to give it to you.
Guitantwithout replyrode forward and desired the 
sentinel to call Monsieur de Villequier. 
Ah! so you are here!cried the officerin the tone of 
ill-humor habitual to him; "what the devil are you doing 
here?" 
I wish to know -- can you tell me, pray -- is anything 
fresh occurring in this part of the town?
What do you mean? People cry out, `Long live the king! down 
with Mazarin!' That's nothing new; no, we've been used to 
those acclamations for some time.
And you sing chorus,replied Guitantlaughing. 
Faith, I've half a mind to do it. In my opinion the people 
are right; and cheerfully would I give up five years of my 
pay -- which I am never paid, by the way -- to make the king 
five years older.
Really! And pray what would come to pass, supposing the 
king were five years older than he is?
As soon as ever the king comes of age he will issue his 
commands himself, and 'tis far pleasanter to obey the 
grandson of Henry IV. than the son of Peter Mazarin. 
'Sdeath! I would die willingly for the king, but supposing I 
happened to be killed on account of Mazarin, as your nephew 
came near being to-day, there could be nothing in Paradise, 
however well placed I might be there, that could console me 
for it.
Well, well, Monsieur de Villequier,Mazarin interposedI 
shall make it my care the king hears of your loyalty. Come, 
gentlemen,addressing the trooplet us return.
Stop,exclaimed Villequierso Mazarin was here! so much 
the better. I have been waiting for a long time to tell him 
what I think of him. I am obliged to you Guitant, although 
your intention was perhaps not very favorable to me, for 
such an opportunity.
He turned away and went off to his postwhistling a tune 
then popular among the party called the "Fronde whilst 
Mazarin returned, in a pensive mood, toward the Palais 
Royal. All that he had heard from these three different men, 
Comminges, Guitant and Villequier, confirmed him in his 
conviction that in case of serious tumults there would be no 
one on his side except the queen; and then Anne of Austria 
had so often deserted her friends that her support seemed 
most precarious. During the whole of this nocturnal ride, 
during the whole time that he was endeavoring to understand 
the various characters of Comminges, Guitant and Villequier, 
Mazarin was, in truth, studying more especially one man. 
This man, who had remained immovable as bronze when menaced 
by the mob -- not a muscle of whose face was stirred, either 
at Mazarin's witticisms or by the jests of the multitude -seemed 
to the cardinal a peculiar being, who, having 
participated in past events similar to those now occurring, 
was calculated to cope with those now on the eve of taking 
place. 
The name of D'Artagnan was not altogether new to Mazarin, 
who, although he did not arrive in France before the year 
1634 or 1635, that is to say, about eight or nine years 
after the events which we have related in a preceding 
narrative,* fancied he had heard it pronounced as that of 
one who was said to be a model of courage, address and 
loyalty. 
* The Three Musketeers." 
Possessed by this ideathe cardinal resolved to know all 
about D'Artagnan immediately; of course he could not inquire 
from D'Artagnan himself who he was and what had been his 
career; he remarkedhoweverin the course of conversation 
that the lieutenant of musketeers spoke with a Gascon 
accent. Now the Italians and the Gascons are too much alike 
and know each other too well ever to trust what any one of 
them may say of himself; so in reaching the walls which 
surrounded the Palais Royalthe cardinal knocked at a 
little doorand after thanking D'Artagnan and requesting 
him to wait in the court of the Palais Royalhe made a sign 
to Guitant to follow him. 
They both dismountedconsigned their horses to the lackey 
who had opened the doorand disappeared in the garden. 
My dear friend,said the cardinalleaningas they walked 
through the gardenon his friend's armyou told me just 
now that you had been twenty years in the queen's service.
Yes, it's true. I have,returned Guitant. 
Now, my dear Guitant, I have often remarked that in 
addition to your courage, which is indisputable, and your 
fidelity, which is invincible, you possess an admirable 
memory.
You have found that out, have you, my lord? Deuce take it 
-- all the worse for me!
How?
There is no doubt but that one of the chief accomplishments 
of a courtier is to know when to forget.
But you, Guitant, are not a courtier. You are a brave 
soldier, one of the few remaining veterans of the days of 
Henry IV. Alas! how few to-day exist!
Plague on't, my lord, have you brought me here to get my 
horoscope out of me?
No; I only brought you here to ask you,returned Mazarin
smilingif you have taken any particular notice of our 
lieutenant of musketeers?
Monsieur d'Artagnan? I have had no occasion to notice him 
particularly; he's an old acquaintance. He's a Gascon. De 
Treville knows him and esteems him very highly, and De 
Treville, as you know, is one of the queen's greatest 
friends. As a soldier the man ranks well; he did his whole 
duty and even more, at the siege of Rochelle -- as at Suze 
and Perpignan.
But you know, Guitant, we poor ministers often want men 
with other qualities besides courage; we want men of talent. 
Pray, was not Monsieur d'Artagnan, in the time of the 
cardinal, mixed up in some intrigue from which he came out, 
according to report, quite cleverly?
My lord, as to the report you allude to-- Guitant 
perceived that the cardinal wished to make him speak out -"
I know nothing but what the public knows. I never meddle in 
intriguesand if I occasionally become a confidant of the 
intrigues of others I am sure your eminence will approve of 
my keeping them secret." 
Mazarin shook his head. 
Ah!he said; "some ministers are fortunate and find out 
all that they wish to know." 
My lord,replied Guitantsuch ministers do not weigh men 
in the same balance; they get their information on war from 
warriors; on intrigues, from intriguers. Consult some 
politician of the period of which you speak, and if you pay 
well for it you will certainly get to know all you want.
Eh, pardieu!said Mazarinwith a grimace which he always 
made when spoken to about money. "They will be paidif 
there is no way of getting out of it." 
Does my lord seriously wish me to name any one who was 
mixed up in the cabals of that day?
By Bacchus!rejoined Mazarinimpatientlyit's about an 
hour since I asked you for that very thing, wooden-head that 
you are.
There is one man for whom I can answer, if he will speak 
out.
That's my concern; I will make him speak.
Ah, my lord, 'tis not easy to make people say what they 
don't wish to let out.
Pooh! with patience one must succeed. Well, this man. Who 
is he?
The Comte de Rochefort.
The Comte de Rochefort!
Unfortunately he has disappeared these four or five years 
and I don't know where he is.
I know, Guitant,said Mazarin. 
Well, then, how is it that your eminence complained just 
now of want of information?
You think,resumed Mazarinthat Rochefort ---- 
He was Cardinal Richelieu's creature, my lord. I warn you, 
however, his services will cost you something. The cardinal 
was lavish to his underlings.
Yes, yes, Guitant,said Mazarin; "Richelieu was a great 
mana very great manbut he had that defect. Thanks
Guitant; I shall benefit by your advice this very evening." 
Here they separated and bidding adieu to Guitant in the 
court of the Palais RoyalMazarin approached an officer who 
was walking up and down within that inclosure. 
It was D'Artagnanwho was waiting for him. 
Cane hither,said Mazarin in his softest voice; "I have an 
order to give you." 
D'Artagnan bent low and following the cardinal up the secret 
staircasesoon found himself in the study whence they had 
first set out. 
The cardinal seated himself before his bureau and taking a 
sheet of paper wrote some lines upon itwhilst D'Artagnan 
stood imperturbablewithout showing either impatience or 
curiosity. He was like a soldierly automatonor rather
like a magnificent marionette. 
The cardinal folded and sealed his letter. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan,he saidyou are to take this 
dispatch to the Bastile and bring back here the person it 
concerns. You must take a carriage and an escort, and guard 
the prisoner with the greatest care.
D'Artagnan took the lettertouched his hat with his hand
turned round upon his heel like a drill-sergeantand a 
moment afterward was heardin his dry and monotonous tone
commanding "Four men and an escorta carriage and a horse." 
Five minutes afterward the wheels of the carriage and the 
horses' shoes were heard resounding on the pavement of the 
courtyard. 
Dead Animosities. 
D'Artagnan arrived at the Bastile just as it was striking 
half-past eight. His visit was announced to the governor
whoon hearing that he came from the cardinalwent to meet 
him and received him at the top of the great flight of steps 
outside the door. The governor of the Bastile was Monsieur 
du Tremblaythe brother of the famous CapuchinJoseph
that fearful favorite of Richelieu'swho went by the name 
of the Gray Cardinal. 
During the period that the Duc de Bassompierre passed in the 
Bastile -- where he remained for twelve long years -- when 
his companionsin their dreams of libertysaid to each 
other: "As for meI shall go out of the prison at such a 
time and another, at such and such a time, the duke used 
to answer, As for megentlemenI shall leave only when 
Monsieur du Tremblay leaves;" meaning that at the death of 
the cardinal Du Tremblay would certainly lose his place at 
the Bastile and De Bassompierre regain his at court. 
His prediction was nearly fulfilledbut in a very different 
way from that which De Bassompierre supposed; for after the 
death of Richelieu everything went oncontrary to 
expectationin the same way as before; and Bassompierre had 
little chance of leaving his prison. 
Monsieur du Tremblay received D'Artagnan with extreme 
politeness and invited him to sit down with him to supper
of which he was himself about to partake. 
I should be delighted to do so,was the reply; "but if I 
am not mistakenthe words `In haste' are written on the 
envelope of the letter which I brought." 
You are right,said Du Tremblay. "Halloomajor! tell them 
to order Number 25 to come downstairs." 
The unhappy wretch who entered the Bastile ceasedas he 
crossed the thresholdto be a man -- he became a number. 
D'Artagnan shuddered at the noise of the keys; he remained 
on horsebackfeeling no inclination to dismountand sat 
looking at the barsat the buttressed windows and the 
immense walls he had hitherto only seen from the other side 
of the moatbut by which he had for twenty years been 
awe-struck. 
A bell resounded. 
I must leave you,said Du Tremblay; "I am sent for to sign 
the release of a prisoner. I shall be happy to meet you 
againsir." 
May the devil annihilate me if I return thy wish!murmured 
D'Artagnansmiling as he pronounced the imprecation; "I 
declare I feel quite ill after only being five minutes in 
the courtyard. Go to! go to! I would rather die on straw 
than hoard up a thousand a year by being governor of the 
Bastile." 
He had scarcely finished this soliloquy before the prisoner 
arrived. On seeing him D'Artagnan could hardly suppress an 
exclamation of surprise. The prisoner got into the carriage 
without seeming to recognize the musketeer. 
Gentlemen,thus D'Artagnan addressed the four musketeers
I am ordered to exercise the greatest possible care in 
guarding the prisoner, and since there are no locks to the 
carriage, I shall sit beside him. Monsieur de Lillebonne, 
lead my horse by the bridle, if you please.As he spoke he 
dismountedgave the bridle of his horse to the musketeer 
and placing himself by the side of the prisoner saidin a 
voice perfectly composedTo the Palais Royal, at full 
trot.
The carriage drove on and D'Artagnanavailing himself of 
the darkness in the archway under which they were passing
threw himself into the arms of the prisoner. 
Rochefort!he exclaimed; "you! is it youindeed? I am not 
mistaken?" 
D'Artagnan!cried Rochefort. 
Ah! my poor friend!resumed D'Artagnannot having seen 
you for four or five years I concluded you were dead.
I'faith,said Rochefortthere's no great difference, I 
think, between a dead man and one who has been buried alive; 
now I have been buried alive, or very nearly so.
And for what crime are you imprisoned in the Bastile.
Do you wish me to speak the truth?
Yes.
Well, then, I don't know.
Have you any suspicion of me, Rochefort?
No! on the honor of a gentleman; but I cannot be imprisoned 
for the reason alleged; it is impossible.
What reason?asked D'Artagnan. 
For stealing.
For stealing! you, Rochefort! you are laughing at me.
I understand. You mean that this demands explanation, do 
you not?
I admit it.
Well, this is what actually took place: One evening after 
an orgy in Reinard's apartment at the Tuileries with the Duc 
d'Harcourt, Fontrailles, De Rieux and others, the Duc 
d'Harcourt proposed that we should go and pull cloaks on the 
Pont Neuf; that is, you know, a diversion which the Duc 
d'Orleans made quite the fashion.
Were you crazy, Rochefort? at your age!
No, I was drunk. And yet, since the amusement seemed to me 
rather tame, I proposed to Chevalier de Rieux that we should 
be spectators instead of actors, and, in order to see to 
advantage, that we should mount the bronze horse. No sooner 
said than done. Thanks to the spurs, which served as 
stirrups, in a moment we were perched upon the croupe; we 
were well placed and saw everything. Four or five cloaks had 
already been lifted, with a dexterity without parallel, and 
not one of the victims had dared to say a word, when some 
fool of a fellow, less patient than the others, took it into 
his head to cry out, `Guard!' and drew upon us a patrol of 
archers. Duc d'Harcourt, Fontrailles, and the others 
escaped; De Rieux was inclined to do likewise, but I told 
him they wouldn't look for us where we were. He wouldn't 
listen, put his foot on the spur to get down, the spur 
broke, he fell with a broken leg, and, instead of keeping 
quiet, took to crying out like a gallows-bird. I then was 
ready to dismount, but it was too late; I descended into the 
arms of the archers. They conducted me to the Chatelet, 
where I slept soundly, being very sure that on the next day 
I should go forth free. The next day came and passed, the 
day after, a week; I then wrote to the cardinal. The same 
day they came for me and took me to the Bastile. That was 
five years ago. Do you believe it was because I committed 
the sacrilege of mounting en croupe behind Henry IV.?
No; you are right, my dear Rochefort, it couldn't be for 
that; but you will probably learn the reason soon.
Ah, indeed! I forgot to ask you -- where are you taking 
me?
To the cardinal.
What does he want with me?
I do not know. I did not even know that you were the person 
I was sent to fetch.
Impossible -- you -- a favorite of the minister!
A favorite! no, indeed!cried D'Artagnan. "Ahmy poor 
friend! I am just as poor a Gascon as when I saw you at 
Meungtwenty-two years agoyou know; alas!" and he 
concluded his speech with a deep sigh. 
Nevertheless, you come as one in authority.
Because I happened to be in the ante-chamber when the 
cardinal called me, by the merest chance. I am still a 
lieutenant in the musketeers and have been so these twenty 
years.
Then no misfortune has happened to you?
And what misfortune could happen to me? To quote some Latin 
verses I have forgotten, or rather, never knew well, `the 
thunderbolt never falls on the valleys,' and I am a valley, 
dear Rochefort, -- one of the lowliest of the low.
Then Mazarin is still Mazarin?
The same as ever, my friend; it is said that he is married 
to the queen.
Married?
If not her husband, he is unquestionably her lover.
You surprise me. Rebuff Buckingham and consent to Mazarin!
Just like the women,replied D'Artagnancoolly. 
Like women, not like queens.
Egad! queens are the weakest of their sex, when it comes to 
such things as these.
And M. de Beaufort -- is he still in prison?
Yes. Why?
Oh, nothing, but that he might get me out of this, if he 
were favorably inclined to me.
You are probably nearer freedom than he is, so it will be 
your business to get him out.
And,said the prisonerwhat talk is there of war with 
Spain?
With Spain, no,answered D'Artagnan; "but Paris." 
What do you mean?cried Rochefort. 
Do you hear the guns, pray? The citizens are amusing 
themselves in the meantime.
And you -- do you really think that anything could be done 
with these bourgeois?
Yes, they might do well if they had any leader to unite 
them in one body.
How miserable not to be free!
Don't be downcast. Since Mazarin has sent for you, it is 
because he wants you. I congratulate you! Many a long year 
has passed since any one has wanted to employ me; so you see 
in what a situation I am.
Make your complaints known; that's my advice.
Listen, Rochefort; let us make a compact. We are friends, 
are we not?
Egad! I bear the traces of our friendship -- three slits or 
slashes from your sword.
Well, if you should be restored to favor, don't forget me.
On the honor of a Rochefort; but you must do the like for 
me.
There's my hand, -- I promise.
Therefore, whenever you find any opportunity of saying 
something in my behalf ---- 
I shall say it, and you?
I shall do the same.
Apropos, are we to speak of your friends also, Athos, 
Porthos, and Aramis? or have you forgotten them?
Almost.
What has become of them?
I don't know; we separated, as you know. They are alive, 
that's all that I can say about them; from time to time I 
hear of them indirectly, but in what part of the world they 
are, devil take me if I know, No, on my honor, I have not a 
friend in the world but you, Rochefort.
And the illustrious -- what's the name of the lad whom I 
made a sergeant in Piedmont's regiment?
Planchet!
The illustrious Planchet. What has become of him?
I shouldn't wonder if he were at the head of the mob at 
this very moment. He married a woman who keeps a 
confectioner's shop in the Rue des Lombards, for he's a lad 
who was always fond of sweetmeats; he's now a citizen of 
Paris. You'll see that that queer fellow will be a sheriff 
before I shall be a captain.
Come, dear D'Artagnan, look up a little! Courage! It is 
when one is lowest on the wheel of fortune that the 
merry-go-round wheels and rewards us. This evening your 
destiny begins to change.
Amen!exclaimed D'Artagnanstopping the carriage. 
What are you doing?asked Rochefort. 
We are almost there and I want no one to see me getting out 
of your carriage; we are supposed not to know each other.
You are right. Adieu.
Au revoir. Remember your promise.
In five minutes the party entered the courtyard and 
D'Artagnan led the prisoner up the great staircase and 
across the corridor and ante-chamber. 
As they stopped at the door of the cardinal's study
D'Artagnan was about to be announced when Rochefort slapped 
him on his shoulder. 
D'Artagnan, let me confess to you what I've been thinking 
about during the whole of my drive, as I looked out upon the 
parties of citizens who perpetually crossed our path and 
looked at you and your four men with fiery eyes.
Speak out,answered D'Artagnan. 
I had only to cry out `Help!' for you and for your 
companions to be cut to pieces, and then I should have been 
free.
Why didn't you do it?asked the lieutenant. 
Come, come!cried Rochefort. "Did we not swear friendship? 
Ah! had any one but you been thereI don't say ---- " 
D'Artagnan bowed. "Is it possible that Rochefort has become 
a better man than I am?" he said to himself. And he caused 
himself to be announced to the minister. 
Let M. de Rochefort enter,said Mazarineagerlyon 
hearing their names pronounced; "and beg M. d'Artagnan to 
wait; I shall have further need of him." 
These words gave great joy to D'Artagnan. As he had saidit 
had been a long time since any one had needed him; and that 
demand for his services on the part of Mazarin seemed to him 
an auspicious sign. 
Rochefortrendered suspicious and cautious by these words
entered the apartmentwhere he found Mazarin sitting at the 
tabledressed in his ordinary garb and as one of the 
prelates of the Churchhis costume being similar to that of 
the abbes in that dayexcepting that his scarf and 
stockings were violet. 
As the door was closed Rochefort cast a glance toward 
Mazarinwhich was answered by oneequally furtivefrom 
the minister. 
There was little change in the cardinal; still dressed with 
sedulous carehis hair well arranged and curledhis person 
perfumedhe lookedowing to his extreme taste in dress
only half his age. But Rochefortwho had passed five years 
in prisonhad become old in the lapse of a few years; the 
dark locks of this estimable friend of the defunct Cardinal 
Richelieu were now white; the deep bronze of his complexion 
had been succeeded by a mortal pallor which betokened 
debility. As he gazed at him Mazarin shook his head 
slightlyas much as to sayThis is a man who does not 
appear to me fit for much.
After a pausewhich appeared an age to RochefortMazarin 
took from a bundle of papers a letterand showing it to the 
counthe said: 
I find here a letter in which you sue for liberty, Monsieur 
de Rochefort. You are in prison, then?
Rochefort trembled in every limb at this question. "But I 
thought he said, that your eminence knew that 
circumstance better than any one ---- " 
I? Oh no! There is a congestion of prisoners in the 
Bastile, who were cooped up in the time of Monsieur de 
Richelieu; I don't even know their names.
Yes, but in regard to myself, my lord, it cannot be so, for 
I was removed from the Chatelet to the Bastile owing to an 
order from your eminence.
You think you were.
I am certain of it.
Ah, stay! I fancy I remember it. Did you not once refuse to 
undertake a journey to Brussels for the queen?
Ah! ah!exclaimed Rochefort. "There is the true reason! 
Idiot that I amthough I have been trying to find it out 
for five yearsI never found it out." 
But I do not say it was the cause of your imprisonment. I 
merely ask you, did you not refuse to go to Brussels for the 
queen, whilst you had consented to go there to do some 
service for the late cardinal?
That is the very reason I refused to go back to Brussels. I 
was there at a fearful moment. I was sent there to intercept 
a correspondence between Chalais and the archduke, and even 
then, when I was discovered I was nearly torn to pieces. How 
could I, then, return to Brussels? I should injure the queen 
instead of serving her.
Well, since the best motives are liable to misconstruction, 
the queen saw in your refusal nothing but a refusal -- a 
distinct refusal she had also much to complain of you during 
the lifetime of the late cardinal; yes, her majesty the 
queen ---- 
Rochefort smiled contemptuously. 
Since I was a faithful servant, my lord, to Cardinal 
Richelieu during his life, it stands to reason that now, 
after his death, I should serve you well, in defiance of the 
whole world.
With regard to myself, Monsieur de Rochefort,replied 
MazarinI am not, like Monsieur de Richelieu, 
all-powerful. I am but a minister, who wants no servants, 
being myself nothing but a servant of the queen's. Now, the 
queen is of a sensitive nature. Hearing of your refusal to 
obey her she looked upon it as a declaration of war, and as 
she considers you a man of superior talent, and consequently 
dangerous, she desired me to make sure of you; that is the 
reason of your being shut up in the Bastile. But your 
release can be managed. You are one of those men who can 
comprehend certain matters and having understood them, can 
act with energy ---- 
Such was Cardinal Richelieu's opinion, my lord.
The cardinal,interrupted Mazarinwas a great politician 
and therein shone his vast superiority over me. I am a 
straightforward, simple man; that's my great disadvantage. I 
am of a frankness of character quite French.
Rochefort bit his lips in order to prevent a smile. 
Now to the point. I want friends; I want faithful servants. 
When I say I want, I mean the queen wants them. I do nothing 
without her commands -- pray understand that; not like 
Monsieur de Richelieu, who went on just as he pleased. So I 
shall never be a great man, as he was, but to compensate for 
that, I shall be a good man, Monsieur de Rochefort, and I 
hope to prove it to you.
Rochefort knew well the tones of that soft voicein which 
sounded sometimes a sort of gentle lisplike the hissing of 
young vipers. 
I am disposed to believe your eminence,he replied; 
though I have had but little evidence of that good-nature 
of which your eminence speaks. Do not forget that I have 
been five years in the Bastile and that no medium of viewing 
things is so deceptive as the grating of a prison.
Ah, Monsieur de Rochefort! have I not told you already that 
I had nothing to do with that? The queen -- cannot you make 
allowances for the pettishness of a queen and a princess? 
But that has passed away as suddenly as it came, and is 
forgotten.
I can easily suppose, sir, that her majesty has forgotten 
it amid the fetes and the courtiers of the Palais Royal, but 
I who have passed those years in the Bastile ---- 
Ah! mon Dieu! my dear Monsieur de Rochefort! do you 
absolutely think that the Palais Royal is the abode of 
gayety? No. We have had great annoyances there. As for me, I 
play my game squarely, fairly, and above board, as I always 
do. Let us come to some conclusion. Are you one of us, 
Monsieur de Rochefort?
I am very desirous of being so, my lord, but I am totally 
in the dark about everything. In the Bastile one talks 
politics only with soldiers and jailers, and you have not an 
idea, my lord, how little is known of what is going on by 
people of that sort; I am of Monsieur de Bassompierre's 
party. Is he still one of the seventeen peers of France.
He is dead, sir; a great loss. His devotion to the queen 
was boundless; men of loyalty are scarce.
I think so, forsooth,said Rochefortand when you find 
any of them, you march them off to the Bastile. However, 
there are plenty in the world, but you don't look in the 
right direction for them, my lord.
Indeed! explain to me. Ah! my dear Monsieur de Rochefort, 
how much you must have learned during your intimacy with the 
late cardinal! Ah! he was a great man.
Will your eminence be angry if I read you a lesson?
I! never! you know you may say anything to me. I try to be 
beloved, not feared.
Well, there is on the wall of my cell, scratched with a 
nail, a proverb, which says, `Like master, like servant.'
Pray, what does that mean?
It means that Monsieur de Richelieu was able to find trusty 
servants, dozens and dozens of them.
He! the point aimed at by every poniard! Richelieu, who 
passed his life in warding off blows which were forever 
aimed at him!
But he did ward them off,said De Rochefortand the 
reason was, that though he had bitter enemies he possessed 
also true friends. I have known persons,he continued -for 
he thought he might avail himself of the opportunity of 
speaking of D'Artagnan -- "who by their sagacity and address 
have deceived the penetration of Cardinal Richelieu; who by 
their valor have got the better of his guards and spies; 
persons without moneywithout supportwithout credityet 
who have preserved to the crowned head its crown and made 
the cardinal crave pardon." 
But those men you speak of,said Mazarinsmiling inwardly 
on seeing Rochefort approach the point to which he was 
leading himthose men were not devoted to the cardinal, 
for they contended against him.
No; in that case they would have met with more fitting 
reward. They had the misfortune to be devoted to that very 
queen for whom just now you were seeking servants.
But how is it that you know so much of these matters?
I know them because the men of whom I speak were at that 
time my enemies; because they fought against me; because I 
did them all the harm I could and they returned it to the 
best of their ability; because one of them, with whom I had 
most to do, gave me a pretty sword-thrust, now about seven 
years ago, the third that I received from the same hand; it 
closed an old account.
Ah!said Mazarinwith admirable suavitycould I but 
find such men!
My lord, there has stood for six years at your very door a 
man such as I describe, and during those six years he has 
been unappreciated and unemployed by you.
Who is it?
It is Monsieur d'Artagnan.
That Gascon!cried Mazarinwith well acted surprise. 
`That Gascon' has saved a queen and made Monsieur de 
Richelieu confess that in point of talent, address and 
political skill, to him he was only a tyro.
Really?
It is as I have the honor of telling it to your 
excellency.
Tell me a little about it, my dear Monsieur de Rochefort.
That is somewhat difficult, my lord,said Rochefortwith 
a smile. 
Then he will tell it me himself.
I doubt it, my lord.
Why do you doubt it?
Because the secret does not belong to him; because, as I 
have told you, it has to do with a great queen.
And he was alone in achieving an enterprise like that?
No, my lord, he had three colleagues, three brave men, men 
such as you were wishing for just now.
And were these four men attached to each other, true in 
heart, really united?
As if they had been one man -- as if their four hearts had 
pulsated in one breast.
You pique my curiosity, dear Rochefort; pray tell me the 
whole story.
That is impossible; but I will tell you a true story, my 
lord.
Pray do so, I delight in stories,cried the cardinal. 
Listen, then,returned Rochefortas he spoke endeavoring 
to read in that subtle countenance the cardinal's motive. 
Once upon a time there lived a queen -- a powerful monarch 
-- who reigned over one of the greatest kingdoms of the 
universe; and a minister; and this minister wished much to 
injure the queen, whom once he had loved too well. (Do not 
try, my lord, you cannot guess who it is; all this happened 
long before you came into the country where this queen 
reigned.) There came to the court an ambassador so brave, so 
magnificent, so elegant, that every woman lost her heart to 
him; and the queen had even the indiscretion to give him 
certain ornaments so rare that they could never be replaced 
by any like them. 
As these ornaments were given by the king the minister 
persuaded his majesty to insist upon the queen's appearing 
in them as part of her jewels at a ball which was soon to 
take place. There is no occasion to tell youmy lordthat 
the minister knew for a fact that these ornaments had sailed 
away with the ambassadorwho was far awaybeyond seas. 
This illustrious queen had fallen low as the least of her 
subjects -- fallen from her high estate." 
Indeed!
Well, my lord, four men resolved to save her. These four 
men were not princes, neither were they dukes, neither were 
they men in power; they were not even rich. They were four 
honest soldiers, each with a good heart, a good arm and a 
sword at the service of those who wanted it. They set out. 
The minister knew of their departure and had planted people 
on the road to prevent them ever reaching their destination. 
Three of them were overwhelmed and disabled by numerous 
assailants; one of them alone arrived at the port, having 
either killed or wounded those who wished to stop him. He 
crossed the sea and brought back the set of ornaments to the 
great queen, who was able to wear them on her shoulder on 
the appointed day; and this very nearly ruined the minister. 
What do you think of that exploit, my lord?
It is magnificent!said Mazarinthoughtfully. 
Well, I know of ten such men.
Mazarin made no reply; he reflected. 
Five or six minutes elapsed. 
You have nothing more to ask of me, my lord?said 
Rochefort. 
Yes. And you say that Monsieur d'Artagnan was one of those 
four men?
He led the enterprise.
And who were the others?
I leave it to Monsieur d'Artagnan to name them, my lord. 
They were his friends and not mine. He alone would have any 
influence with them; I do not even know them under their 
true names.
You suspect me, Monsieur de Rochefort; I want him and you 
and all to aid me.
Begin with me, my lord; for after five or six years of 
imprisonment it is natural to feel some curiosity as to 
one's destination.
You, my dear Monsieur de Rochefort, shall have the post of 
confidence; you shall go to Vincennes, where Monsieur de 
Beaufort is confined; you will guard him well for me. Well, 
what is the matter?
The matter is that you have proposed to me what is 
impossible,said Rochefortshaking his head with an air of 
disappointment. 
What! impossible? And why is it impossible?
Because Monsieur de Beaufort is one of my friends, or 
rather, I am one of his. Have you forgotten, my lord, that 
it is he who answered for me to the queen?
Since then Monsieur de Beaufort has become an enemy of the 
State.
That may be, my lord; but since I am neither king nor queen 
nor minister, he is not my enemy and I cannot accept your 
offer.
This, then, is what you call devotion! I congratulate you. 
Your devotion does not commit you too far, Monsieur de 
Rochefort.
And then, my lord,continued Rochefortyou understand 
that to emerge from the Bastile in order to enter Vincennes 
is only to change one's prison.
Say at once that you are on the side of Monsieur de 
Beaufort; that will be the most sincere line of conduct,
said Mazarin. 
My lord, I have been so long shut up, that I am only of one 
party -- I am for fresh air. Employ me in any other way; 
employ me even actively, but let it be on the high roads.
My dear Monsieur de Rochefort,Mazarin replied in a tone 
of railleryyou think yourself still a young man; your 
spirit is that of the phoenix, but your strength fails you. 
Believe me, you ought now to take a rest. Here!
You decide, then, nothing about me, my lord?
On the contrary, I have come to a decision.
Bernouin came into the room. 
Call an officer of justice,he said; "and stay close to 
me he added, in a low tone. 
The officer entered. Mazarin wrote a few words, which he 
gave to this man; then he bowed. 
AdieuMonsieur de Rochefort he said. 
Rochefort bent low. 
I seemy lordI am to be taken back to the Bastile." 
You are sagacious.
I shall return thither, my lord, but it is a mistake on 
your part not to employ me.
You? the friend of my greatest foes? Don't suppose that you 
are the only person who can serve me, Monsieur de Rochefort. 
I shall find many men as able as you are.
I wish you may, my lord,replied De Rochefort. 
He was then reconducted by the little staircaseinstead of 
passing through the ante-chamber where D'Artagnan was 
waiting. In the courtyard the carriage and the four 
musketeers were readybut he looked around in vain for his 
friend. 
Ah!he muttered to himselfthis changes the situation, 
and if there is still a crowd of people in the streets we 
will try to show Mazarin that we are still, thank God, good 
for something else than keeping guard over a prisoner;and 
he jumped into the carriage with the alacrity of a man of 
five-and-twenty. 
Anne of Austria at the Age of Forty-six. 
When left alone with BernouinMazarin was for some minutes 
lost in thought. He had gained much informationbut not 
enough. Mazarin was a cheat at the card-table. This is a 
detail preserved to us by Brienne. He called it using his 
advantages. He now determined not to begin the game with 
D'Artagnan till he knew completely all his adversary's 
cards. 
My lord, have you any commands?asked Bernouin. 
Yes, yes,replied Mazarin. "Light me; I am going to the 
queen." 
Bernouin took up a candlestick and led the way. 
There was a secret communication between the cardinal's 
apartments and those of the queen; and through this 
corridor* Mazarin passed whenever he wished to visit Anne of 
Austria. 
*This secret passage is still to be seen in the Palais 
Royal. 
In the bedroom in which this passage endedBernouin 
encountered Madame de Beauvaislike himself intrusted with 
the secret of these subterranean love affairs; and Madame de 
Beauvais undertook to prepare Anne of Austriawho was in 
her oratory with the young kingLouis XIV.to receive the 
cardinal. 
Annereclining in a large easy-chairher head supported by 
her handher elbow resting on a tablewas looking at her 
sonwho was turning over the leaves of a large book filled 
with pictures. This celebrated woman fully understood the 
art of being dull with dignity. It was her practice to pass 
hours either in her oratory or in her roomwithout either 
reading or praying. 
When Madame de Beauvais appeared at the door and announced 
the cardinalthe childwho had been absorbed in the pages 
of Quintus Curtiusenlivened as they were by engravings of 
Alexander's feats of armsfrowned and looked at his mother. 
Why,he saiddoes he enter without first asking for an 
audience?
Anne colored slightly. 
The prime minister,she saidis obliged in these 
unsettled days to inform the queen of all that is happening 
from time to time, without exciting the curiosity or remarks 
of the court.
But Richelieu never came in this manner,said the 
pertinacious boy. 
How can you remember what Monsieur de Richelieu did? You 
were too young to know about such things.
I do not remember what he did, but I have inquired and I 
have been told all about it.
And who told you about it?asked Anne of Austriawith a 
movement of impatience. 
I know that I ought never to name the persons who answer my 
questions,answered the childfor if I do I shall learn 
nothing further.
At this very moment Mazarin entered. The king rose 
immediatelytook his bookclosed it and went to lay it 
down on the tablenear which he continued standingin 
order that Mazarin might be obliged to stand also. 
Mazarin contemplated these proceedings with a thoughtful 
glance. They explained what had occurred that evening. 
He bowed respectfully to the kingwho gave him a somewhat 
cavalier receptionbut a look from his mother reproved him 
for the hatred whichfrom his infancyLouis XIV. had 
entertained toward Mazarinand he endeavored to receive the 
minister's homage with civility. 
Anne of Austria sought to read in Mazarin's face the 
occasion of this unexpected visitsince the cardinal 
usually came to her apartment only after every one had 
retired. 
The minister made a slight sign with his headwhereupon the 
queen said to Madame Beauvais: 
It is time for the king to go to bed; call Laporte.
The queen had several times already told her son that he 
ought to go to bedand several times Louis had coaxingly 
insisted on staying where he was; but now he made no reply
but turned pale and bit his lips with anger. 
In a few minutes Laporte came into the room. The child went 
directly to him without kissing his mother. 
Well, Louis,said Annewhy do you not kiss me?
I thought you were angry with me, madame; you sent me 
away.
I do not send you away, but you have had the small-pox and 
I am afraid that sitting up late may tire you.
You had no fears of my being tired when you ordered me to 
go to the palace to-day to pass the odious decrees which 
have raised the people to rebellion.
Sire!interposed Laportein order to turn the subject
to whom does your majesty wish me to give the candle?
To any one, Laporte,the child said; and then added in a 
loud voiceto any one except Mancini.
Now Mancini was a nephew of Mazarin's and was as much hated 
by Louis as the cardinal himselfalthough placed near his 
person by the minister. 
And the king went out of the room without either embracing 
his mother or even bowing to the cardinal. 
Good,said MazarinI am glad to see that his majesty has 
been brought up with a hatred of dissimulation.
Why do you say that?asked the queenalmost timidly. 
Why, it seems to me that the way in which he left us needs 
no explanation. Besides, his majesty takes no pains to 
conceal how little affection he has for me. That, however, 
does not hinder me from being entirely devoted to his 
service, as I am to that of your majesty.
I ask your pardon for him, cardinal,said the queen; "he 
is a childnot yet able to understand his obligations to 
you." 
The cardinal smiled. 
But,continued the queenyou have doubtless come for 
some important purpose. What is it, then?
Mazarin sank into a chair with the deepest melancholy 
painted on his countenance. 
It is likely,he repliedthat we shall soon be obliged 
to separate, unless you love me well enough to follow me to 
Italy.
Why,cried the queen; "how is that?" 
Because, as they say in the opera of `Thisbe,' `The whole 
world conspires to break our bonds.'
You jest, sir!answered the queenendeavoring to assume 
something of her former dignity. 
Alas! I do not, madame,rejoined Mazarin. "Mark well what 
I say. The whole world conspires to break our bonds. Now as 
you are one of the whole worldI mean to say that you also 
are deserting me." 
Cardinal!
Heavens! did I not see you the other day smile on the Duke 
of Orleans? or rather at what he said?
And what was he saying?
He said this, madame: `Mazarin is a stumbling-block. Send 
him away and all will then be well.'
What do you wish me to do?
Oh, madame! you are the queen!
Queen, forsooth! when I am at the mercy of every scribbler 
in the Palais Royal who covers waste paper with nonsense, or 
of every country squire in the kingdom.
Nevertheless, you have still the power of banishing from 
your presence those whom you do not like!
That is to say, whom you do not like,returned the queen. 
I! persons whom I do not like!
Yes, indeed. Who sent away Madame de Chevreuse after she 
had been persecuted twelve years under the last reign?
A woman of intrigue, who wanted to keep up against me the 
spirit of cabal she had raised against M. de Richelieu.
Who dismissed Madame de Hautefort, that friend so loyal 
that she refused the favor of the king that she might remain 
in mine?
A prude, who told you every night, as she undressed you, 
that it was a sin to love a priest, just as if one were a 
priest because one happens to be a cardinal.
Who ordered Monsieur de Beaufort to be arrested?
An incendiary the burden of whose song was his intention to 
assassinate me.
You see, cardinal,replied the queenthat your enemies 
are mine.
That is not enough madame, it is necessary that your 
friends should be also mine.
My friends, monsieur?The queen shook her head. "AlasI 
have them no longer!" 
How is it that you have no friends in your prosperity when 
you had many in adversity?
It is because in my prosperity I forgot those old friends, 
monsieur; because I have acted like Queen Marie de Medicis, 
who, returning from her first exile, treated with contempt 
all those who had suffered for her and, being proscribed a 
second time, died at Cologne abandoned by every one, even by 
her own son.
Well, let us see,said Mazarin; "isn't there still time to 
repair the evil? Search among your friendsyour oldest 
friends." 
What do you mean, monsieur?
Nothing else than I say -- search.
Alas, I look around me in vain! I have no influence with 
any one. Monsieur is, as usual, led by his favorite; 
yesterday it was Choisy, to-day it is La Riviere, to-morrow 
it will be some one else. Monsieur le Prince is led by the 
coadjutor, who is led by Madame de Guemenee.
Therefore, madame, I ask you to look, not among your 
friends of to-day, but among those of other times.
Among my friends of other times?said the queen. 
Yes, among your friends of other times; among those who 
aided you to contend against the Duc de Richelieu and even 
to conquer him.
What is he aiming at?murmured the queenlooking uneasily 
at the cardinal. 
Yes,continued his eminence; "under certain circumstances
with that strong and shrewd mind your majesty possesses
aided by your friendsyou were able to repel the attacks of 
that adversary." 
I!said the queen. "I sufferedthat is all." 
Yes.said Mazarinas women suffer in avenging 
themselves. Come, let us come to the point. Do you know 
Monsieur de Rochefort?
One of my bitterest enemies -- the faithful friend of 
Cardinal Richelieu.
I know that, and we sent him to the Bastile,said Mazarin. 
Is he at liberty?asked the queen. 
No; still there, but I only speak of him in order that I 
may introduce the name of another man. Do you know Monsieur 
d'Artagnan?he addedlooking steadfastly at the queen. 
Anne of Austria received the blow with a beating heart. 
Has the Gascon been indiscreet?she murmured to herself
then said aloud: 
D'Artagnan! stop an instant, the name seems certainly 
familiar. D'Artagnan! there was a musketeer who was in love 
with one of my women. Poor young creature! she was poisoned 
on my account.
That's all you know of him?asked Mazarin. 
The queen looked at himsurprised. 
You seem, sir,she remarkedto be making me undergo a 
course of cross-examination.
Which you answer according to your fancy,replied Mazarin. 
Tell me your wishes and I will comply with them.
The queen spoke with some impatience. 
Well, madame,said MazarinbowingI desire that you 
give me a share in your friends, as I have shared with you 
the little industry and talent that Heaven has given me. The 
circumstances are grave and it will be necessary to act 
promptly.
Still!said the queen. "I thought that we were finally 
quit of Monsieur de Beaufort." 
Yes, you saw only the torrent that threatened to overturn 
everything and you gave no attention to the still water. 
There is, however, a proverb current in France relating to 
water which is quiet.
Continue,said the queen. 
Well, then, madame, not a day passes in which I do not 
suffer affronts from your princes and your lordly servants, 
all of them automata who do not perceive that I wind up the 
spring that makes them move, nor do they see that beneath my 
quiet demeanor lies the still scorn of an injured, irritated 
man, who has sworn to himself to master them one of these 
days. We have arrested Monsieur de Beaufort, but he is the 
least dangerous among them. There is the Prince de Conde 
---- 
The hero of Rocroy. Do you think of him?
Yes, madame, often and often, but pazienza, as we say in 
Italy; next, after Monsieur de Conde, comes the Duke of 
Orleans.
What are you saying? The first prince of the blood, the 
king's uncle!
No! not the first prince of the blood, not the king's 
uncle, but the base conspirator, the soul of every cabal, 
who pretends to lead the brave people who are weak enough to 
believe in the honor of a prince of the blood -- not the 
prince nearest to the throne, not the king's uncle, I 
repeat, but the murderer of Chalais, of Montmorency and of 
Cinq-Mars, who is playing now the same game he played long 
ago and who thinks that he will win the game because he has 
a new adversary -- instead of a man who threatened, a man 
who smiles. But he is mistaken; I shall not leave so near 
the queen that source of discord with which the deceased 
cardinal so often caused the anger of the king to rage above 
the boiling point.
Anne blushed and buried her face in her hands. 
What am I to do?she saidbowed down beneath the voice of 
her tyrant. 
Endeavor to remember the names of those faithful servants 
who crossed the Channel, in spite of Monsieur de Richelieu, 
tracking the roads along which they passed by their blood, 
to bring back to your majesty certain jewels given by you to 
Buckingham.
Anne arosefull of majestyand as if touched by a spring
and looking at the cardinal with the haughty dignity which 
in the days of her youth had made her so powerful: "You are 
insulting me!" she said. 
I wish,continued Mazarinfinishingas it werethe 
speech this sudden movement of the queen had cut; "I wish
in factthat you should now do for your husband what you 
formerly did for your lover." 
Again that accusation!cried the queen. "I thought that 
calumny was stifled or extinct; you have spared me till now
but since you speak of itonce for allI tell you ---- " 
Madame, I do not ask you to tell me,said Mazarin
astounded by this returning courage. 
I will tell you all,replied Anne. "Listen: there were in 
truthat that epochfour devoted heartsfour loyal 
spiritsfour faithful swordswho saved more than my life 
-- my honor ---- " 
Ah! you confess it!exclaimed Mazarin. 
Is it only the guilty whose honor is at the sport of 
others, sir? and cannot women be dishonored by appearances? 
Yes, appearances were against me and I was about to suffer 
dishonor. However, I swear I was not guilty, I swear it by 
---- 
The queen looked around her for some sacred object by which 
she could swearand taking out of a cupboard hidden in the 
tapestrya small coffer of rosewood set in silverand 
laying it on the altar: 
I swear,she saidby these sacred relics that Buckingham 
was not my lover.
What relics are those by which you swear?asked Mazarin
smiling. "I am incredulous." 
The queen untied from around her throat a small golden key 
which hung thereand presented it to the cardinal. 
Open, sir,she saidand look for yourself.
Mazarin opened the coffer; a knifecovered with rustand 
two lettersone of which was stained with bloodalone met 
his gaze. 
What are these things?he asked. 
What are these things?replied Annewith queen-like 
dignityextending toward the open coffer an armdespite 
the lapse of yearsstill beautiful. "These two letters are 
the only ones I ever wrote to him. This knife is the knife 
with which Felton stabbed him. Read the letters and see if I 
have lied or spoken the truth." 
But Mazarinnotwithstanding this permissioninstead of 
reading the letterstook the knife which the dying 
Buckingham had snatched out of the wound and sent by Laporte 
to the queen. The blade was redfor the blood had become 
rust; after a momentary examination during which the queen 
became as white as the cloth which covered the altar on 
which she was leaninghe put it back into the coffer with 
an involuntary shudder. 
It is well, madame, I believe your oath.
No, no, read,exclaimed the queenindignantly; "readI 
command youfor I am resolved that everything shall be 
finished to-night and never will I recur to this subject 
again. Do you think she said, with a ghastly smile, that 
I shall be inclined to reopen this coffer to answer any 
future accusations?" 
Mazarinovercome by this determinationread the two 
letters. In one the queen asked for the ornaments back 
again. This letter had been conveyed by D'Artagnan and had 
arrived in time. The other was that which Laporte had placed 
in the hands of the Duke of Buckinghamwarning him that he 
was about to be assassinated; that communication had arrived 
too late. 
It is well, madame,said Mazarin; "nothing can gainsay 
such testimony." 
Sir,replied the queenclosing the coffer and leaning her 
hand upon itif there is anything to be said, it is that I 
have always been ungrateful to the brave men who saved me -that 
I have given nothing to that gallant officer, 
D'Artagnan, you were speaking of just now, but my hand to 
kiss and this diamond.
As she spoke she extended her beautiful hand to the cardinal 
and showed him a superb diamond which sparkled on her 
finger. 
It appears,she resumedthat he sold it ---he sold it in 
order to save me another time -- to be able to send a 
messenger to the duke to warn him of his danger -- he sold 
it to Monsieur des Essarts, on whose finger I remarked it. I 
bought it from him, but it belongs to D'Artagnan. Give it 
back to him, sir, and since you have such a man in your 
service, make him useful.
Thank you, madame,said Mazarin. "I will profit by the 
advice." 
And now,added the queenher voice broken by her emotion
have you any other question to ask me?
Nothing,-- the cardinal spoke in his most conciliatory 
manner -- "except to beg of you to forgive my unworthy 
suspicions. I love you so tenderly that I cannot help being 
jealouseven of the past." 
A smilewhich was indefinablepassed over the lips of the 
queen. 
Since you have no further interrogations to make, leave me, 
I beseech you,she said. "I wishafter such a sceneto be 
alone." 
Mazarin bent low before her. 
I will retire, madame. Do you permit me to return?
Yes, to-morrow.
The cardinal took the queen's hand and pressed it with an 
air of gallantry to his lips. 
Scarcely had he left her when the queen went into her son's 
roomand inquired from Laporte if the king was in bed. 
Laporte pointed to the childwho was asleep. 
Anne ascended the steps side of the bed and softly kissed 
the placid forehead of her son; then she retired as silently 
as she had comemerely saying to Laporte: 
Try, my dear Laporte, to make the king more courteous to 
Monsieur le Cardinal, to whom both he and I are under such 
important obligations.
The Gascon and the Italian. 
Meanwhile the cardinal returned to his own room; and after 
asking Bernouinwho stood at the doorwhether anything had 
occurred during his absenceand being answered in the 
negativehe desired that he might be left alone. 
When he was alone he opened the door of the corridor and 
then that of the ante-chamber. There D'Artagnan was asleep 
upon a bench. 
The cardinal went up to him and touched his shoulder. 
D'Artagnan startedawakened himselfand as he awokestood 
up exactly like a soldier under arms. 
Here I am,said he. "Who calls me?" 
I,said Mazarinwith his most smiling expression. 
I ask pardon of your eminence,said D'Artagnanbut I was 
so fatigued ---- 
Don't ask my pardon, monsieur,said Mazarinfor you 
fatigued yourself in my service.
D'Artagnan admired Mazarin's gracious manner. "Ah said he, 
between his teeth, is there truth in the proverb that 
fortune comes while one sleeps?" 
Follow me, monsieur,said Mazarin. 
Come, come,murmured D'ArtagnanRochefort has kept his 
promise, but where in the devil is he?And he searched the 
cabinet even to the smallest recessesbut there was no sign 
of Rochefort. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan,said the cardinalsitting down on a 
fauteuilyou have always seemed to me to be a brave and 
honorable man.
Possibly,thought D'Artagnanbut he has taken a long 
time to let me know his thoughts;neverthelesshe bowed to 
the very ground in gratitude for Mazarin's compliment. 
Well,continued Mazarinthe time has come to put to use 
your talents and your valor.
There was a sudden gleam of joy in the officer's eyeswhich 
vanished immediatelyfor he knew nothing of Mazarin's 
purpose. 
Order, my lord,he said; "I am ready to obey your 
eminence." 
Monsieur d'Artagnan,continued the cardinalyou 
performed sundry superb exploits in the last reign.
Your eminence is too good to remember such trifles in my 
favor. It is true I fought with tolerable success.
I don't speak of your warlike exploits, monsieur,said 
Mazarin; "although they gained you much reputationthey 
were surpassed by others." 
D'Artagnan pretended astonishment. 
Well, you do not reply?resumed Mazarin. 
I am waiting, my lord, till you tell me of what exploits 
you speak.
I speak of the adventure -- Eh, you know well what I mean.
Alas, no, my lord!replied D'Artagnansurprised. 
You are discreet -- so much the better. I speak of that 
adventure in behalf of the queen, of the ornaments, of the 
journey you made with three of your friends.
Aha!thought the Gascon; "is this a snare or not? Let me 
be on my guard." 
And he assumed a look of stupidity which Mendori or 
Bellerosetwo of the first actors of the daymight have 
envied. 
Bravo!cried Mazarin; "they told me that you were the man 
I wanted. Comelet us see what you will do for me." 
Everything that your eminence may please to command me,
was the reply. 
You will do for me what you have done for the queen?
Certainly,D'Artagnan said to himselfhe wishes to make 
me speak out. He's not more cunning than De Richelieu was! 
Devil take him!Then he said aloud: 
The queen, my lord? I don't comprehend.
You don't comprehend that I want you and your three friends 
to be of use to me?
Which of my friends, my lord?
Your three friends -- the friends of former days.
Of former days, my lord! In former days I had not only 
three friends, I had thirty; at two-and-twenty one calls 
every man one's friend.
Well, sir,returned Mazarinprudence is a fine thing, 
but to-day you might regret having been too prudent.
My lord, Pythagoras made his disciples keep silence for 
five years that they might learn to hold their tongues.
But you have been silent for twenty years, sir. Speak, now 
the queen herself releases you from your promise.
The queen!said D'Artagnanwith an astonishment which 
this time was not pretended. 
Yes, the queen! And as a proof of what I say she commanded 
me to show you this diamond, which she thinks you know.
And so sayingMazarin extended his hand to the officerwho 
sighed as he recognized the ring so gracefully given to him 
by the queen on the night of the ball at the Hotel de Ville 
and which she had repurchased from Monsieur des Essarts. 
'Tis true. I remember well that diamond, which belonged to 
the queen.
You see, then, that I speak to you in the queen's name. 
Answer me without acting as if you were on the stage; your 
interests are concerned in your so doing.
Faith, my lord, it is very necessary for me to make my 
fortune, your eminence has so long forgotten me.
We need only a week to amend all that. Come, you are 
accounted for, you are here, but where are your friends?
I do not know, my lord. We have parted company this long 
time; all three have left the service.
Where can you find them, then?
Wherever they are, that's my business.
Well, now, what are your conditions, if I employ you?
Money, my lord, as much money as what you wish me to 
undertake will require. I remember too well how sometimes we 
were stopped for want of money, and but for that diamond, 
which I was obliged to sell, we should have remained on the 
road.
The devil he does! Money! and a large sum!said Mazarin. 
Pray, are you aware that the king has no money in his 
treasury?
Do then as I did, my lord. Sell the crown diamonds. Trust 
me, don't let us try to do things cheaply. Great 
undertakings come poorly off with paltry means.
Well,returned Mazarinwe will satisfy you.
Richelieu,thought D'Artagnanwould have given me five 
hundred pistoles in advance.
You will then be at my service?asked Mazarin. 
Yes, if my friends agree.
But if they refuse can I count on you?
I have never accomplished anything alone,said D'Artagnan
shaking his head. 
Go, then, and find them.
What shall I say to them by way of inducement to serve your 
eminence?
You know them better than I. Adapt your promises to their 
respective characters.
What shall I promise?
That if they serve me as well as they served the queen my 
gratitude shall be magnificent.
But what are we to do?
Make your mind easy; when the time for action comes you 
shall be put in full possession of what I require from you; 
wait till that time arrives and find out your friends.
My lord, perhaps they are not in Paris. It is even probable 
that I shall have to make a journey. I am only a lieutenant 
of musketeers, very poor, and journeys cost money. 
My intention said Mazarin, is not that you go with a 
great following; my plans require secrecyand would be 
jeopardized by a too extravagant equipment." 
Still, my lord, I can't travel on my pay, for it is now 
three months behind; and I can't travel on my savings, for 
in my twenty-two years of service I have accumulated nothing 
but debts.
Mazarin remained some moments in deep thoughtas if he were 
fighting with himself; thengoing to a large cupboard 
closed with a triple lockhe took from it a bag of silver
and weighing it twice in his hands before he gave it to 
D'Artagnan: 
Take this,he said with a sigh'tis merely for your 
journey.
If these are Spanish doubloons, or even gold crowns,
thought D'Artagnanwe shall yet be able to do business 
together.He saluted the cardinal and plunged the bag into 
the depths of an immense pocket. 
Well, then, all is settled; you are to set off,said the 
cardinal. 
Yes, my lord.
Apropos, what are the names of your friends?
The Count de la Fere, formerly styled Athos; Monsieur du 
Vallon, whom we used to call Porthos; the Chevalier 
d'Herblay, now the Abbe d'Herblay, whom we styled Aramis 
---- 
The cardinal smiled. 
Younger sons,he saidwho enlisted in the musketeers 
under feigned names in order not to lower their family 
names. Long swords but light purses. Was that it?
If, God willing, these swords should be devoted to the 
service of your eminence,said D'ArtagnanI shall venture 
to express a wish, which is, that in its turn the purse of 
your eminence may become light and theirs heavy -- for with 
these three men your eminence may rouse all Europe if you 
like.
These Gascons,said the cardinallaughingalmost beat 
the Italians in effrontery.
At all events,answered D'Artagnanwith a smile almost as 
crafty as the cardinal'sthey beat them when they draw 
their swords.
He then withdrewand as he passed into the courtyard he 
stopped near a lamp and dived eagerly into the bag of money. 
Crown pieces only -- silver pieces! I suspected it. Ah! 
Mazarin! Mazarin! thou hast no confidence in me! so much the 
worse for thee, for harm may come of it!
Meanwhile the cardinal was rubbing his hands in great 
satisfaction. 
A hundred pistoles! a hundred pistoles! for a hundred 
pistoles I have discovered a secret for which Richelieu 
would have paid twenty thousand crowns; without reckoning 
the value of that diamond-- he cast a complacent look at 
the ringwhich he had keptinstead of restoring to 
D'Artagnan -- "which is worthat leastten thousand 
francs." 
He returned to his roomand after depositing the ring in a 
casket filled with brilliants of every sortfor the 
cardinal was a connoisseur in precious stoneshe called to 
Bernouin to undress himregardless of the noises of 
gun-fire thatthough it was now near midnightcontinued to 
resound through Paris. 
In the meantime D'Artagnan took his way toward the Rue 
Tiquetonnewhere he lived at the Hotel de la Chevrette. 
We will explain in a few words how D'Artagnan had been led 
to choose that place of residence. 
D'Artagnan in his Fortieth Year. 
Years have elapsedmany events have happenedalas! since
in our romance of "The Three Musketeers we took leave of 
D'Artagnan at No. 12 Rue des Fossoyeurs. D'Artagnan had not 
failed in his career, but circumstances had been adverse to 
him. So long as he was surrounded by his friends he retained 
his youth and the poetry of his character. He was one of 
those fine, ingenuous natures which assimilate themselves 
easily to the dispositions of others. Athos imparted to him 
his greatness of soul, Porthos his enthusiasm, Aramis his 
elegance. Had D'Artagnan continued his intimacy with these 
three men he would have become a superior character. Athos 
was the first to leave him, in order that he might retire to 
a little property he had inherited near Blois; Porthos, the 
second, to marry an attorney's wife; and lastly, Aramis, the 
third, to take orders and become an abbe. From that day 
D'Artagnan felt lonely and powerless, without courage to 
pursue a career in which he could only distinguish himself 
on condition that each of his three companions should endow 
him with one of the gifts each had received from Heaven. 
Notwithstanding his commission in the musketeers, D'Artagnan 
felt completely solitary. For a time the delightful 
remembrance of Madame Bonancieux left on his character a 
certain poetic tinge, perishable indeed; for like all other 
recollections in this world, these impressions were, by 
degrees, effaced. A garrison life is fatal even to the most 
aristocratic organization; and imperceptibly, D'Artagnan, 
always in the camp, always on horseback, always in garrison, 
became (I know not how in the present age one would express 
it) a typical trooper. His early refinement of character was 
not only not lost, it grew even greater than ever; but it 
was now applied to the little, instead of to the great 
things of life -- to the martial condition of the soldier -comprised 
under the head of a good lodging, a rich table, a 
congenial hostess. These important advantages D'Artagnan 
found to his own taste in the Rue Tiquetonne at the sign of 
the Roe. 
From the time D'Artagnan took quarters in that hotel, the 
mistress of the house, a pretty and fresh looking Flemish 
woman, twenty-five or twenty-six years old, had been 
singularly interested in him; and after certain love 
passages, much obstructed by an inconvenient husband to whom 
a dozen times D'Artagnan had made a pretence of passing a 
sword through his body, that husband had disappeared one 
fine morning, after furtively selling certain choice lots of 
wine, carrying away with him money and jewels. He was 
thought to be dead; his wife, especially, who cherished the 
pleasing idea that she was a widow, stoutly maintained that 
death had taken him. Therefore, after the connection had 
continued three years, carefully fostered by D'Artagnan, who 
found his bed and his mistress more agreeable every year, 
each doing credit to the other, the mistress conceived the 
extraordinary desire of becoming a wife and proposed to 
D'Artagnan that he should marry her. 
Ahfie!" D'Artagnan replied. "Bigamymy dear! Come now
you don't really wish it?" 
But he is dead; I am sure of it.
He was a very contrary fellow and might come back on 
purpose to have us hanged.
All right; if he comes back you will kill him, you are so 
skillful and so brave.
Peste! my darling! another way of getting hanged.
So you refuse my request?
To be sure I do -- furiously!
The pretty landlady was desolate. She would have taken 
D'Artagnan not only as her husbandbut as her Godhe was 
so handsome and had so fierce a mustache. 
Then along toward the fourth year came the expedition of 
Franche-Comte. D'Artagnan was assigned to it and made his 
preparations to depart. There were then great griefstears 
without end and solemn promises to remain faithful -- all of 
course on the part of the hostess. D'Artagnan was too grand 
to promise anything; he purposed only to do all that he 
could to increase the glory of his name. 
As to thatwe know D'Artagnan's courage; he exposed himself 
freely to danger and while charging at the head of his 
company he received a ball through the chest which laid him 
prostrate on the field of battle. He had been seen falling 
from his horse and had not been seen to rise; every one
thereforebelieved him to be deadespecially those to whom 
his death would give promotion. One believes readily what he 
wishes to believe. Now in the armyfrom the 
division-generals who desire the: death of the 
general-in-chiefto the soldiers who desire the death of 
the corporalsall desire some one's death. 
But D'Artagnan was not a man to let himself be killed like 
that. After he had remained through the heat of the day 
unconscious on the battle-fieldthe cool freshness of the 
night brought him to himself. He gained a villageknocked 
at the door of the finest house and was received as the 
wounded are always and everywhere received in France. He was 
pettedtendedcured; and one fine morningin better 
health than ever beforehe set out for France. Once in 
France he turned his course toward Parisand reaching Paris 
went straight to Rue Tiquetonne. 
But D'Artagnan found in his chamber the personal equipment 
of a mancompleteexcept for the swordarranged along the 
wall. 
He has returned,said he. "So much the worseand so much 
the better!" 
It need not be said that D'Artagnan was still thinking of 
the husband. He made inquiries and discovered that the 
servants were new and that the mistress had gone for a walk. 
Alone?asked D'Artagnan. 
With monsieur.
Monsieur has returned, then?
Of course,naively replied the servant. 
If I had any money,said D'Artagnan to himselfI would 
go away; but I have none. I must stay and follow the advice 
of my hostess, while thwarting the conjugal designs of this 
inopportune apparition.
He had just completed this monologue -- which proves that in 
momentous circumstances nothing is more natural than the 
monologue -- when the servant-maidwatching at the door
suddenly cried out: 
Ah! see! here is madame returning with monsieur.
D'Artagnan looked out and at the corner of Rue Montmartre 
saw the hostess coming along hanging to the arm of an 
enormous Swisswho tiptoed in his walk with a magnificent 
air which pleasantly reminded him of his old friend Porthos. 
Is that monsieur?said D'Artagnan to himself. "Oh! oh! he 
has grown a good dealit seems to me." And he sat down in 
the hallchoosing a conspicuous place. 
The hostessas she enteredsaw D'Artagnan and uttered a 
little crywhereupon D'Artagnanjudging that he had been 
recognizedroseran to her and embraced her tenderly. The 
Swisswith an air of stupefactionlooked at the hostess
who turned pale. 
Ah, it is you, monsieur! What do you want of me?she 
askedin great distress. 
Is monsieur your cousin? Is monsieur your brother?said 
D'Artagnannot in the slightest degree embarrassed in the 
role he was playing. And without waiting for her reply he 
threw himself into the arms of the Helvetianwho received 
him with great coldness. 
Who is that man?he asked. 
The hostess replied only by gasps. 
Who is that Swiss?asked D'Artagnan. 
Monsieur is going to marry me,replied the hostess
between two gasps. 
Your husband, then, is at last dead?
How does that concern you?replied the Swiss. 
It concerns me much,said D'Artagnansince you cannot 
marry madame without my consent and since ---- 
And since?asked the Swiss. 
And since -- I do not give it,said the musketeer. 
The Swiss became as purple as a peony. He wore his elegant 
uniformD'Artagnan was wrapped in a sort of gray cloak; the 
Swiss was six feet highD'Artagnan was hardly more than 
five; the Swiss considered himself on his own ground and 
regarded D'Artagnan as an intruder. 
Will you go away from here?demanded the Swissstamping 
violentlylike a man who begins to be seriously angry. 
I? By no means!said D'Artagnan. 
Some one must go for help,said a ladwho could not 
comprehend that this little man should make a stand against 
that other manwho was so large. 
D'Artagnanwith a sudden accession of wrathseized the lad 
by the ear and led him apartwith the injunction: 
Stay you where you are and don't you stir, or I will pull 
this ear off. As for you, illustrious descendant of William 
Tell, you will straightway get together your clothes which 
are in my room and which annoy me, and go out quickly to 
another lodging.
The Swiss began to laugh boisterously. "I go out?" he said. 
And why?
Ah, very well!said D'Artagnan; "I see that you understand 
French. Come thenand take a turn with me and I will 
explain." 
The hostesswho knew D'Artagnan's skill with the sword
began to weep and tear her hair. D'Artagnan turned toward 
hersayingThen send him away, madame.
Pooh!said the Swisswho had needed a little time to take 
in D'Artagnan's proposalpooh! who are you, in the first 
place, to ask me to take a turn with you?
I am lieutenant in his majesty's musketeers,said 
D'Artagnanand consequently your superior in everything; 
only, as the question now is not of rank, but of quarters -you 
know the custom -- come and seek for yours; the first to 
return will recover his chamber.
D'Artagnan led away the Swiss in spite of lamentations on 
the part of the hostesswho in reality found her heart 
inclining toward her former loverthough she would not have 
been sorry to give a lesson to that haughty musketeer who 
had affronted her by the refusal of her hand. 
It was night when the two adversaries reached the field of 
battle. D'Artagnan politely begged the Swiss to yield to him 
the disputed chamber; the Swiss refused by shaking his head
and drew his sword. 
Then you will lie here,said D'Artagnan. "It is a wretched 
bedbut that is not my faultand it is you who have chosen 
it." With these words he drew in his turn and crossed swords 
with his adversary. 
He had to contend against a strong wristbut his agility 
was superior to all force. The Swiss received two wounds and 
was not aware of itby reason of the cold; but suddenly 
feeblenessoccasioned by loss of bloodobliged him to sit 
down. 
There!said: D'Artagnanwhat did I tell you? 
Fortunately, you won't be laid up more than a fortnight. 
Remain here and I will send you your clothes by the boy. 
Good-by! Oh, by the way, you'd better take lodging in the 
Rue Montorgueil at the Chat Qui Pelote. You will be well fed 
there, if the hostess remains the same. Adieu.
Thereupon he returned in a lively mood to his room and sent 
to the Swiss the things that belonged to him. The boy found 
him sitting where D'Artagnan had left himstill overwhelmed 
by the coolness of his adversary. 
The boythe hostessand all the house had the same regard 
for D'Artagnan that one would have for Hercules should he 
return to earth to repeat his twelve labors. 
But when he was alone with the hostess he said: "Nowpretty 
Madeleineyou know the difference between a Swiss and a 
gentleman. As for youyou have acted like a barmaid. So 
much the worse for youfor by such conduct you have lost my 
esteem and my patronage. I have driven away the Swiss to 
humiliate youbut I shall lodge here no longer. I will not 
sleep where I must scorn. Hothereboy! Have my valise 
carried to the Muid d'AmourRue des Bourdonnais. Adieu
madame." 
In saying these words D'Artagnan appeared at the same time 
majestic and grieved. The hostess threw herself at his feet
asked his pardon and held him back with a sweet violence. 
What more need be said? The spit turnedthe stove roared
the pretty Madeleine wept; D'Artagnan felt himself invaded 
by hungercold and love. He pardonedand having pardoned 
he remained. 
And this explains how D'Artagnan had quarters in the Rue 
Tiquetonneat the Hotel de la Chevrette. 
D'Artagnanthen returned home in thoughtful moodfinding a 
somewhat lively pleasure in carrying Mazarin's bag of money 
and thinking of that fine diamond which he had once called 
his own and which he had seen on the minister's finger that 
night. 
Should that diamond ever fall into my hands again,he 
reflectedI would turn it at once into money; I would buy 
with the proceeds certain lands around my father's chateau, 
which is a pretty place, well enough, but with no land to it 
at all, except a garden about the size of the Cemetery des 
Innocents; and I should wait in all my glory till some rich 
heiress, attracted by my good looks, rode along to marry me. 
Then I should like to have three sons; I should make the 
first a nobleman, like Athos; the second a good soldier, 
like Porthos; the third an excellent abbe, like Aramis. 
Faith! that would be a far better life than I lead now; but 
Monsieur Mazarin is a mean wretch, who won't dispossess 
himself of his diamond in my favor.
On entering the Rue Tiquetonne he heard a tremendous noise 
and found a dense crowd near the house. 
Oho!said heis the hotel on fire?On approaching the 
hotel of the Roe he foundhoweverthat it was in front of 
the next house the mob was collected. The people were 
shouting and running about with torches. By the light of one 
of these torches D'Artagnan perceived men in uniform. 
He asked what was going on. 
He was told that twenty citizensheaded by one manhad 
attacked a carriage which was escorted by a troop of the 
cardinal's bodyguard; but a reinforcement having come up
the assailants had been put to flight and the leader had 
taken refuge in the hotel next to his lodgings; the house 
was now being searched. 
In his youth D'Artagnan had often headed the bourgeoisie 
against the militarybut he was cured of all those 
hot-headed propensities; besideshe had the cardinal's 
hundred pistoles in his pocketso he went into the hotel 
without a word. There he found Madeleine alarmed for his 
safety and anxious to tell him all the events of the 
eveningbut he cut her short by ordering her to put his 
supper in his room and give him with it a bottle of good 
Burgundy. 
He took his key and candle and went upstairs to his bedroom. 
He had been contentedfor the convenience of the houseto 
lodge in the fourth story; and truth obliges us even to 
confess that his chamber was just above the gutter and below 
the roof. His first care on entering it was to lock up in an 
old bureau with a new lock his bag of moneyand then as 
soon as supper was ready he sent away the waiter who brought 
it up and sat down to table. 
Not to reflect on what had passedas one might fancy. No
D'Artagnan considered that things are never well done when 
they are not reserved to their proper time. He was hungry; 
he suppedhe went to bed. Neither was he one of those who 
think that the necessary silence of the night brings counsel 
with it. In the night he sleptbut in the morning
refreshed and calmhe was inspired with his clearest views 
of everything. It was long since he had any reason for his 
morning's inspirationbut he always slept all night long. 
At daybreak he awoke and took a turn around his room. 
In '43,he saidjust before the death of the late 
cardinal, I received a letter from Athos. Where was I then? 
Let me see. Oh! at the siege of Besancon I was in the 
trenches. He told me -- let me think -- what was it? That he 
was living on a small estate -- but where? I was just 
reading the name of the place when the wind blew my letter 
away, I suppose to the Spaniards; there's no use in thinking 
any more about Athos. Let me see: with regard to Porthos, I 
received a letter from him, too. He invited me to a hunting 
party on his property in the month of September, 1646. 
Unluckily, as I was then in Bearn, on account of my father's 
death, the letter followed me there. I had left Bearn when 
it arrived and I never received it until the month of April, 
1647; and as the invitation was for September, 1646, I 
couldn't accept it. Let me look for this letter; it must be 
with my title deeds.
D'Artagnan opened an old casket which stood in a corner of 
the roomand which was full of parchments referring to an 
estate during a period of two hundred years lost to his 
family. He uttered an exclamation of delightfor the large 
handwriting of Porthos was discernibleand underneath some 
lines traced by his worthy spouse. 
D'Artagnan eagerly searched for the heading of this letter; 
it was dated from the Chateau du Vallon. 
Porthos had forgotten that any other address was necessary; 
in his pride he fancied that every one must know the Chateau 
du Vallon. 
Devil take the vain fellow,said D'Artagnan. "HoweverI 
had better find him out firstsince he can't want money. 
Athos must have become an idiot by this time from drinking. 
Aramis must have worn himself to a shadow of his former self 
by constant genuflexion." 
He cast his eyes again on the letter. There was a 
postscript: 
I write by the same courier to our worthy friend Aramis in 
his convent.
In his convent! What convent? There are about two hundred 
in Paris and three thousand in France; and then, perhaps, on 
entering the convent he changed his name. Ah! if I were but 
learned in theology I should recollect what it was he used 
to dispute about with the curate of Montdidier and the 
superior of the Jesuits, when we were at Crevecoeur; I 
should know what doctrine he leans to and I should glean 
from that what saint he has adopted as his patron. 
Wellsuppose I go back to the cardinal and ask him for a 
passport into all the convents one can findeven into the 
nunneries? It would be a curious ideaand maybe I should 
find my friend under the name of Achilles. Butno! I should 
lose myself in the cardinal's opinion. Great people only 
thank you for doing the impossible; what's possiblethey 
saythey can effect themselvesand they are right. But let 
us wait a little and reflect. I received a letter from him
the dear fellowin which he even asked me for some small 
servicewhichin factI rendered him. Yesyes; but now 
what did I do with that letter?" 
D'Artagnan thought a moment and then went to the wardrobe in 
which hung his old clothes. He looked for his doublet of the 
year 1648 and as he had orderly habitshe found it hanging 
on its nail. He felt in the pocket and drew from it a paper; 
it was the letter of Aramis: 
Monsieur D'Artagnan: You know that I have had a quarrel 
with a certain gentleman, who has given me an appointment 
for this evening in the Place Royale. As I am of the church, 
and the affair might injure me if I should share it with any 
other than a sure friend like you, I write to beg that you 
will serve me as second. 
You will enter by the Rue Neuve Sainte Catherine; under the 
second lamp on the right you will find your adversary. I 
shall be with mine under the third. 
Wholly yours, 
Aramis." 
D'Artagnan tried to recall his remembrances. He had gone to 
the rendezvoushad encountered there the adversary 
indicatedwhose name he had never knownhad given him a 
pretty sword-stroke on the armthen had gone toward Aramis
who at the same time came to meet himhaving already 
finished his affair. "It is over Aramis had said. I think 
I have killed the insolent fellow. Butdear friendif you 
ever need me you know that I am entirely devoted to you." 
Thereupon Aramis had given him a clasp of the hand and had 
disappeared under the arcades. 
Sothenhe no more knew where Aramis was than where Athos 
and Porthos wereand the affair was becoming a matter of 
great perplexitywhen he fancied he heard a pane of glass 
break in his room window. He thought directly of his bag and 
rushed from the inner room where he was sleeping. He was not 
mistaken; as he entered his bedroom a man was getting in by 
the window. 
Ah! you scoundrel!cried D'Artagnantaking the man for a 
thief and seizing his sword. 
Sir!cried the manin the name of Heaven put your sword 
back into the sheath and don't kill me unheard. I'm no 
thief, but an honest citizen, well off in the world, with a 
house of my own. My name is -- ah! but surely you are 
Monsieur d'Artagnan?
And thou -- Planchet!cried the lieutenant. 
At your service, sir,said Planchetoverwhelmed with joy; 
if I were still capable of serving you.
Perhaps so,replied D'Artagnan. "But why the devil dost 
thou run about the tops of houses at seven o'clock of the 
morning in the month of January?" 
Sir,said Planchetyou must know; but, perhaps you ought 
not to know ---- 
Tell us what,returned D'Artagnanbut first put a napkin 
against the window and draw the curtains.
Sir,said the prudent Planchetin the first place, are 
you on good terms with Monsieur de Rochefort?
Perfectly; one of my dearest friends.
Ah! so much the better!
But what has De Rochefort to do with this manner you have 
of invading my room?
Ah, sir! I must first tell you that Monsieur de Rochefort 
is ---- 
Planchet hesitated. 
Egad, I know where he is,said D'Artagnan. "He's in the 
Bastile." 
That is to say, he was there,replied Planchet. "But in 
returning thither last nightwhen fortunately you did not 
accompany himas his carriage was crossing the Rue de la 
Ferronnerie his guards insulted the peoplewho began to 
abuse them. The prisoner thought this a good opportunity for 
escape; he called out his name and cried for help. I was 
there. I heard the name of Rochefort. I remembered him well. 
I said in a loud voice that he was a prisonera friend of 
the Duc de Beaufortwho called for help. The people were 
infuriated; they stopped the horses and cut the escort to 
pieceswhilst I opened the doors of the carriage and 
Monsieur de Rochefort jumped out and soon was lost amongst 
the crowd. At this moment a patrol passed by. I was obliged 
to sound a retreat toward the Rue Tiquetonne; I was pursued 
and took refuge in the house next to thiswhere I have been 
concealed between two mattresses. This morning I ventured to 
run along the gutters and ---- " 
Well,interrupted D'ArtagnanI am delight that De 
Rochefort is free, but as for thee, if thou shouldst fall 
into the hands of the king's servants they will hang thee 
without mercy. Nevertheless, I promise thee thou shalt be 
hidden here, though I risk by concealing thee neither more 
nor less than my lieutenancy, if it was found out that I 
gave one rebel an asylum.
Ah! sir, you know well I would risk my life for you.
Thou mayst add that thou hast risked it, Planchet. I have 
not forgotten all I owe thee. Sit down there and eat in 
security. I see thee cast expressive glances at the remains 
of my supper.
Yes, sir; for all I've had since yesterday was a slice of 
bread and butter, with preserves on it. Although I don't 
despise sweet things in proper time and place, I found the 
supper rather light.
Poor fellow!said D'Artagnan. "Wellcome; set to." 
Ah, sir, you are going to save my life a second time!
cried Planchet. 
And he seated himself at the table and ate as he did in the 
merry days of the Rue des Fossoyeurswhilst D'Artagnan 
walked to and fro and thought how he could make use of 
Planchet under present circumstances. While he turned this 
over in his mind Planchet did his best to make up for lost 
time at table. At last he uttered a sigh of satisfaction and 
pausedas if he had partially appeased his hunger. 
Come,said D'Artagnanwho thought that it was now a 
convenient time to begin his interrogationsdost thou know 
where Athos is?
No, sir,replied Planchet. 
The devil thou cost not! Dost know where Porthos is?: 
No -- not at all.
And Aramis?
Not in the least.
The devil! the devil! the devil!
But, sir,said Planchetwith a look of shrewdnessI 
know where Bazin is.
Where is he?
At Notre Dame.
What has he to do at Notre Dame?
He is beadle.
Bazin beadle at Notre Dame! He must know where his master 
is!
Without a doubt he must.
D'Artagnan thought for a momentthen took his sword and put 
on his cloak to go out. 
Sir,said Planchetin a mournful tonedo you abandon me 
thus to my fate? Think, if I am found out here, the people 
of the house, who have not seen me enter it, will take me 
for a thief.
True,said D'Artagnan. "Let's see. Canst thou speak any 
patois?" 
I can do something better than that, sir, I can speak 
Flemish.
Where the devil didst thou learn it?
In Artois, where I fought for years. Listen, sir. Goeden 
morgen, mynheer, eth teen begeeray le weeten the ge sond 
heets omstand.
Which means?
Good-day, sir! I am anxious to know the state of your 
health.
He calls that a language! But never mind, that will do 
capitally.
D'Artagnan opened the door and called out to a waiter to 
desire Madeleine to come upstairs. 
When the landlady made her appearance she expressed much 
astonishment at seeing Planchet. 
My dear landlady,said D'ArtagnanI beg to introduce to 
you your brother, who is arrived from Flanders and whom I am 
going to take into my service.
My brother?
Wish your sister good-morning, Master Peter.
Wilkom, suster,said Planchet. 
Goeden day, broder,replied the astonished landlady. 
This is the case,said D'Artagnan; "this is your brother
Madeleine; you don't know him perhapsbut I know him; he 
has arrived from Amsterdam. You must dress him up during my 
absence. When I returnwhich will be in about an houryou 
must offer him to me as a servantand upon your 
recommendationthough he doesn't speak a word of FrenchI 
take him into my service. You understand?" 
That is to say, I guess your wishes, and that is all that's 
necessary,said Madeleine. 
You are a precious creature, my pretty hostess, and I am 
much obliged to you.
The next moment D'Artagnan was on his way to Notre Dame. 
Touches upon the Strange Effects a Half-pistole may have 
upon a Beadle and a Chorister. 
D'Artagnanas he crossed the Pont Neufcongratulated 
himself on having found Planchet againfor at that time an 
intelligent servant was essential to him; nor was he sorry 
that through Planchet and the situation which he held in Rue 
des Lombardsa connection with the bourgeoisie might be 
commencedat that critical period when that class were 
preparing to make war with the court party. It was like 
having a spy in the enemy's camp. In this frame of mind
grateful for the accidental meeting with Planchetpleased 
with himselfD'Artagnan reached Notre Dame. He ran up the 
stepsentered the churchand addressing a verger who was 
sweeping the chapelasked him if he knew Monsieur Bazin. 
Monsieur Bazin, the beadle?said the verger. "Yes. There 
he isattending massin the chapel of the Virgin." 
D'Artagnan nearly jumped for joy; he had despaired of 
finding Bazinbut nowhe thoughtsince he held one end of 
the thread he would be pretty sure to reach the other end. 
He knelt down just opposite the chapel in order not to lose 
sight of his man; and as he had almost forgotten his prayers 
and had omitted to take a book with himhe made use of his 
time in gazing at Bazin. 
Bazin wore his dressit may be observedwith equal dignity 
and saintly propriety. It was not difficult to understand 
that he had gained the crown of his ambition and that the 
silver-mounted wand he brandished was in his eyes as 
honorable a distinction as the marshal's baton which Conde 
threwor did not throwinto the enemy's line of battle at 
Fribourg. His person had undergone a changeanalogous to 
the change in his dress; his figure had grown rotund andas 
it werecanonical. The striking points of his face were 
effaced; he had still a nosebut his cheeksfattened out
each took a portion of it unto themselves; his chin had 
joined his throat; his eyes were swelled up with the 
puffiness of his cheeks; his haircut straight in holy 
guisecovered his forehead as far as his eyebrows. 
The officiating priest was just finishing mass whilst 
D'Artagnan was looking at Bazin; he pronounced the words of 
the holy Sacrament and retiredgiving the benediction
which was received by the kneeling communicantsto the 
astonishment of D'Artagnanwho recognized in the priest the 
coadjutor* himselfthe famous Jean Francois Gondywho at 
that timehaving a presentiment of the part he was to play
was beginning to court popularity by almsgiving. It was to 
this end that he performed from time to time some of those 
early masses which the common peoplegenerallyalone 
attended. 
*A sacerdotal officer. 
D'Artagnan knelt as well as the restreceived his share of 
the benediction and made the sign of the cross; but when 
Bazin passed in his turnwith his eyes raised to Heaven and 
walkingin all humilitythe very lastD'Artagnan pulled 
him by the hem of his robe. 
Bazin looked down and startedas if he had seen a serpent. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan!he cried; "Vade retro Satanas!" 
So, my dear Bazin!said the officerlaughingthis is 
the way you receive an old friend.
Sir,replied Bazinthe true friends of a Christian are 
those who aid him in working out his salvation, not those 
who hinder him in doing so.
I don't understand you, Bazin; nor can I see how I can be a 
stumbling-block in the way of your salvation,said 
D'Artagnan. 
You forget, sir, that you very nearly ruined forever that 
of my master; and that it was owing to you that he was very 
nearly being damned eternally for remaining a musketeer, 
whilst all the time his true vocation was the church.
My dear Bazin, you ought to perceive,said D'Artagnan
from the place in which you find me, that I am greatly 
changed in everything. Age produces good sense, and, as I 
doubt not but that your master is on the road to salvation, 
I want you to tell me where he is, that he may help me to 
mine.
Rather say, to take him back with you into the world. 
Fortunately, I don't know where he is.
How!cried D'Artagnan; "you don't know where Aramis is?" 
Formerly,replied BazinAramis was his name of 
perdition. By Aramis is meant Simara, which is the name of a 
demon. Happily for him he has ceased to bear that name.
And therefore,said D'Artagnanresolved to be patient to 
the endit is not Aramis I seek, but the Abbe d'Herblay. 
Come, my dear Bazin, tell me where he is.
Didn't you hear me tell you, Monsieur d'Artagnan, that I 
don't know where he is?
Yes, certainly; but to that I answer that it is 
impossible.
It is, nevertheless, the truth, monsieur -- the pure truth, 
the truth of the good God.
D'Artagnan saw clearly that he would get nothing out of this 
manwho was evidently telling a falsehood in his pretended 
ignorance of the abode of Aramisbut whose lies were bold 
and decided. 
Well, Bazin,said D'Artagnansince you do not know where 
your master lives, let us speak of it no more; let us part 
good friends. Accept this half-pistole to drink to my 
health.
I do not drink-- Bazin pushed away with dignity the 
officer's hand -- "'tis good only for the laity." 
Incorruptible!murmured D'Artagnan; "I am unlucky;" and 
whilst he was lost in thought Bazin retreated toward the 
sacristyand even there he could not think himself safe 
until he had shut and locked the door behind him. 
D'Artagnan was still in deep thought when some one touched 
him on the shoulder. He turned and was about to utter an 
exclamation of surprise when the other made to him a sign of 
silence. 
You here, Rochefort?he saidin a low voice. 
Hush!returned Rochefort. "Did you know that I am at 
liberty?" 
I knew it from the fountain-head -- from Planchet. And what 
brought you here?
I came to thank God for my happy deliverance,said 
Rochefort. 
And nothing more? I suppose that is not all.
To take my orders from the coadjutor and to see if we 
cannot wake up Mazarin a little.
A bad plan; you'll be shut up again in the Bastile.
Oh, as to that, I shall take care, I assure you. The air, 
the fresh, free air is so good; besides,and Rochefort drew 
a deep breath as he spokeI am going into the country to 
make a tour.
Stop,cried D'Artagnan; "Itooam going." 
And if I may without impertinence ask -- where are you 
going?
To seek my friends.
What friends?
Those that you asked about yesterday.
Athos. Porthos and Aramis -- you are looking for them?
Yes.
On honor?
What, then, is there surprising in that?
Nothing. Queer, though. And in whose behalf are you looking 
for them?
You are in no doubt on that score.
That is true.
Unfortunately, I have no idea where they are.
And you have no way to get news of them? Wait a week and I
myself will give you some.
A week is too long. I must find them within three days.
Three days are a short time and France is large.
No matter; you know the word must; with that word great 
things are done.
And when do you set out?
I am now on my road.
Good luck to you.
And to you -- a good journey.
Perhaps we shall meet on our road.
That is not probable.
Who knows? Chance is so capricious. Adieu, till we meet 
again! Apropos, should Mazarin speak to you about me, tell 
him that I should have requested you to acquaint him that in 
a short time he will see whether I am, as he says, too old 
for action.
And Rochefort went away with one of those diabolical smiles 
which used formerly to make D'Artagnan shudderbut 
D'Artagnan could now see it without alarmand smiling in 
his turnwith an expression of melancholy which the 
recollections called up by that smile couldperhapsalone 
give to his countenancehe said: 
Go, demon, do what thou wilt! It matters little now to me. 
There's no second Constance in the world.
On his return to the cathedralD'Artagnan saw Bazinwho 
was conversing with the sacristan. Bazin was makingwith 
his spare little short armsridiculous gestures. D'Artagnan 
perceived that he was enforcing prudence with respect to 
himself. 
D'Artagnan slipped out of the cathedral and placed himself 
in ambuscade at the corner of the Rue des Canettes; it was 
impossible that Bazin should go out of the cathedral without 
his seeing him. 
In five minutes Bazin made his appearancelooking in every 
direction to see if he were observedbut he saw no one. 
Calmed by appearances he ventured to walk on through the Rue 
Notre Dame. Then D'Artagnan rushed out of his hiding place 
and arrived in time to see Bazin turn down the Rue de la 
Juiverie and enterin the Rue de la Calandrea respectable 
looking house; and this D'Artagnan felt no doubt was the 
habitation of the worthy beadle. Afraid of making any 
inquiries at this houseD'Artagnan entered a small tavern 
at the corner of the street and asked for a cup of hypocras. 
This beverage required a good half-hour to prepare. And 
D'Artagnan had timethereforeto watch Bazin unsuspected. 
He perceived in the tavern a pert boy between twelve and 
fifteen years of age whom he fancied he had seen not twenty 
minutes before under the guise of a chorister. He questioned 
himand as the boy had no interest in deceivingD'Artagnan 
learned that he exercisedfrom six o'clock in the morning 
until ninethe office of choristerand from nine o'clock 
till midnight that of a waiter in the tavern. 
Whilst he was talking to this lad a horse was brought to the 
door of Bazin's house. It was saddled and bridled. Almost 
immediately Bazin came downstairs. 
Look!said the boythere's our beadle, who is going a 
journey.
And where is he going?asked D'Artagnan. 
Forsooth, I don't know.
Half a pistole if you can find out,said D'Artagnan. 
For me?cried the boyhis eyes sparkling with joyif I 
can find out where Bazin is going? That is not difficult. 
You are not joking, are you?
No, on the honor of an officer; there is the half-pistole;
and he showed him the seductive coinbut did not give it 
him. 
I shall ask him.
Just the very way not to know. Wait till he is set out and 
then, marry, come up, ask, and find out. The half-pistole is 
ready,and he put it back again into his pocket. 
I understand,said the childwith that jeering smile 
which marks especially the "gamin de Paris." "Wellwe must 
wait." 
They had not long to wait. Five minutes afterward Bazin set 
off on a full troturging on his horse by the blows of a 
parapluiewhich he was in the habit of using instead of a 
riding whip. 
Scarcely had he turned the corner of the Rue de la Juiverie 
when the boy rushed after him like a bloodhound on full 
scent. 
Before ten minutes had elapsed the child returned. 
Well!said D'Artagnan. 
Well!answered the boythe thing is done.
Where is he gone?
The half-pistole is for me?
Doubtless, answer me.
I want to see it. Give it me, that I may see it is not 
false. 
There it is." 
The child put the piece of money into his pocket. 
And now, where is he gone?inquired D'Artagnan. 
He is gone to Noisy.
How dost thou know?
Ah, faith! there was no great cunning necessary. I knew the 
horse he rode; it belonged to the butcher, who lets it out 
now and then to M. Bazin. Now I thought that the butcher 
would not let his horse out like that without knowing where 
it was going. And he answered `that Monsieur Bazin went to 
Noisy.' 'Tis his custom. He goes two or three times a week.
Dost thou know Noisy well?
I think so, truly; my nurse lives there.
Is there a convent at Noisy?
Isn't there a great and grand one -- the convent of 
Jesuits?
What is thy name?
Friquet.
D'Artagnan wrote the child's name in his tablets. 
Please, sir,said the boydo you think I can gain any 
more half-pistoles in any way?
Perhaps,replied D'Artagnan. 
And having got out all he wantedhe paid for the hypocras
which he did not drinkand went quickly back to the Rue 
Tiquetonne. 
How D'Artagnanon going to a Distance to discover Aramis
discovers his old Friend on Horseback behind his own 
Planchet. 
On entering the hotel D'Artagnan saw a man sitting in a 
corner by the fire. It was Planchetbut so completely 
transformedthanks to the old clothes that the departing 
husband had left behindthat D'Artagnan himself could 
hardly recognize him. Madeleine introduced him in presence 
of all the servants. Planchet addressed the officer with a 
fine Flemish phrase; the officer replied in words that 
belonged to no language at alland the bargain was 
concluded; Madeleine's brother entered D'Artagnan's service. 
The plan adopted by D'Artagnan was soon perfected. He 
resolved not to reach Noisy in the dayfor fear of being 
recognized; he had therefore plenty of time before himfor 
Noisy is only three or four leagues from Parison the road 
to Meaux. 
He began his day by breakfasting substantially -- a bad 
beginning when one wants to employ the headbut an 
excellent precaution when one wants to work the body; and 
about two o'clock he had his two horses saddledand 
followed by Planchet he quitted Paris by the Barriere de la 
Villete. A most active search was still prosecuted in the 
house near the Hotel de la Chevrette for the discovery of 
Planchet. 
At about a league and a half from the cityD'Artagnan
finding that in his impatience he had set out too soon
stopped to give the horses breathing time. The inn was full 
of disreputable looking peoplewho seemed as if they were 
on the point of commencing some nightly expedition. A man
wrapped in a cloakappeared at the doorbut seeing a 
stranger he beckoned to his companionsand two men who were 
drinking in the inn went out to speak to him. 
D'Artagnanon his sidewent up to the landladypraised 
her wine -- which was a horrible production from the country 
of Montreuil -- and heard from her that there were only two 
houses of importance in the village; one of these belonged 
to the Archbishop of Parisand was at that time the abode 
of his niece the Duchess of Longueville; the other was a 
convent of Jesuits and was the property -- a by no means 
unusual circumstance -- of these worthy fathers. 
At four o'clock D'Artagnan recommenced his journey. He 
proceeded slowly and in deep reverie. Planchet also was lost 
in thoughtbut the subject of their reflections was not the 
same. 
One word which their landlady had pronounced had given a 
particular turn to D'Artagnan's deliberations; this was the 
name of Madame de Longueville. 
That name was indeed one to inspire imagination and produce 
thought. Madame de Longueville was one of the highest ladies 
in the realm; she was also one of the greatest beauties at 
court. She had formerly been suspected of an intimacy of too 
tender a nature with Colignywhofor her sakehad been 
killed in a duelin the Place Royaleby the Duc de Guise. 
She was now connected by bonds of a political nature with 
the Prince de Marsillacthe eldest son of the old Duc de 
Rochefoucauldwhom she was trying to inspire with an enmity 
toward the Duc de Condeher brother-in-lawwhom she now 
hated mortally. 
D'Artagnan thought of all these matters. He remembered how 
at the Louvre he had often seenas she passed by him in the 
full radiance of her dazzling charmsthe beautiful Madame 
de Longueville. He thought of Aramiswhowithout 
possessing any greater advantages than himselfhad formerly 
been the lover of Madame de Chevreusewho had been to a 
former court what Madame de Longueville was in that day; and 
he wondered how it was that there should be in the world 
people who succeed in every wishsome in ambitionothers 
in lovewhilst otherseither from chanceor from 
ill-luckor from some natural defect or impedimentremain 
half-way upon the road toward fulfilment of their hopes and 
expectations. 
He was confessing to himself that he belonged to the latter 
unhappy classwhen Planchet approached and said: 
I will lay a wager, your honor, that you and I are thinking 
of the same thing.
I doubt it, Planchet,replied D'Artagnanbut what are 
you thinking of?
I am thinking, sir, of those desperate looking men who were 
drinking in the inn where we rested.
Always cautious, Planchet.
'Tis instinct, your honor.
Well, what does your instinct tell you now?
Sir, my instinct told me that those people were assembled 
there for some bad purpose; and I was reflecting on what my 
instinct had told me, in the darkest corner of the stable, 
when a man wrapped in a cloak and followed by two other men, 
came in.
Ah ah!said D'ArtagnanPlanchet's recital agreeing with 
his own observations. "Well?" 
One of these two men said, `He must certainly be at Noisy, 
or be coming there this evening, for I have seen his 
servant.' 
`Art thou sure? ' said the man in the cloak. 
`Yes, my prince.'
My prince!interrupted D'Artagnan. 
Yes, `my prince;' but listen. `If he is here' -- this is 
what the other man said -- `let's see decidedly what to do 
with him.' 
`What to do with him?' answered the prince. 
`Yes, he's not a man to allow himself to be taken anyhow; 
he'll defend himself.' 
`Wellwe must try to take him alive. Have you cords to 
bind him with and a gag to stop his mouth?' 
`We have.' 
`Remember that he will most likely be disguised as a 
horseman.' 
`Yes, yes, my lord; don't be uneasy.' 
`BesidesI shall be there.' 
`You will assure us that justice ---- ' 
`Yesyes! I answer for all that' the prince said. 
`Well, then, we'll do our best.' Having said that, they 
went out of the stable.
Well, what matters all that to us?said D'Artagnan. "This 
is one of those attempts that happen every day." 
Are you sure that we are not its objects?
We? Why?
Just remember what they said. `I have seen his servant,' 
said one, and that applies very well to me.
Well?
`He must certainly be at Noisy, or be coming there this 
evening,' said the other; and that applies very well to 
you.
What else?
Then the prince said: `Take notice that in all probability 
he will be disguised as a cavalier;' which seems to me to 
leave no room for doubt, since you are dressed as a cavalier 
and not as an officer of musketeers. Now then, what do you 
say to that?
Alas! my dear Planchet,said D'Artagnansighingwe are 
unfortunately no longer in those times in which princes 
would care to assassinate me. Those were good old days; 
never fear -- these people owe us no grudge.
Is your honor sure?
I can answer for it they do not.
Well, we won't speak of it any more, then;and Planchet 
took his place in D'Artagnan's suite with that sublime 
confidence he had always had in his masterwhich even 
fifteen years of separation had not destroyed. 
They had traveled onward about half a mile when Planchet 
came close up to D'Artagnan. 
Stop, sir, look yonder,he whispered; "don't you see in 
the darkness something pass bylike shadows? I fancy I hear 
horses' feet." 
Impossible!returned D'Artagnan. "The ground is soaking 
wet; yet I fancyas thou sayestthat I see something." 
At this moment the neighing of a horse struck his ear
coming through darkness and space. 
There are men somewhere about, but that's of no consequence 
to us,said D'Artagnan; "let us ride onward." 
At about half-past eight o'clock they reached the first 
houses in Noisy; every one was in bed and not a light was to 
be seen in the village. The obscurity was broken only now 
and then by the still darker lines of the roofs of houses. 
Here and there a dog barked behind a door or an affrighted 
cat fled precipitately from the midst of the pavement to 
take refuge behind a pile of faggotsfrom which retreat her 
eyes would shine like peridores. These were the only living 
creatures that seemed to inhabit the village. 
Toward the middle of the towncommanding the principal open 
spacerose a dark massseparated from the rest of the 
world by two lanes and overshadowed in the front by enormous 
lime-trees. D'Artagnan looked attentively at the building. 
This,he said to Planchetmust be the archbishop's 
chateau, the abode of the fair Madame de Longueville; but 
the convent, where is that?
The convent, your honor, is at the other end of the 
village; I know it well.
Well, then, Planchet, gallop up to it whilst I tighten my 
horse's girth, and come back and tell me if there is a light 
in any of the Jesuits' windows.
In about five minutes Planchet returned. 
Sir,he saidthere is one window of the convent lighted 
up.
Hem! If I were a `Frondeur,'said D'ArtagnanI should 
knock here and should be sure of a good supper. If I were a 
monk I should knock yonder and should have a good supper 
there, too; whereas, 'tis very possible that between the 
castle and the convent we shall sleep on hard beds, dying 
with hunger and thirst.
Yes,added Planchetlike the famous ass of Buridan. 
Shall I knock?
Hush!replied D'Artagnan; "the light no longer burns in 
yonder window." 
Do you hear nothing?whispered Planchet. 
What is that noise?
There came a sound like a whirlwindat the same time two 
troops of horsemeneach composed of ten mensallied forth 
from each of the lanes which encompassed the house and 
surrounded D'Artagnan and Planchet. 
Heyday!cried D'Artagnandrawing his sword and taking 
refuge behind his horse; "are you not mistaken? is it really 
for us that you mean your attack?" 
Here he is! we have him!cried the horsemenrushing on 
D'Artagnan with naked swords. 
Don't let him escape!said a loud voice. 
No, my lord; be assured we shall not.
D'Artagnan thought it was now time for him to join in the 
conversation. 
Halloo, gentlemen!he called out in his Gascon accent
what do you want? what do you demand?
That thou shalt soon know,shouted a chorus of horsemen. 
Stop, stop!cried he whom they had addressed as "my lord;" 
'tis not his voice.
Ah! just so, gentlemen! pray, do people get into a passion 
at random at Noisy? Take care, for I warn you that the first 
man that comes within the length of my sword -- and my sword 
is long -- I rip him up.
The chieftain of the party drew near. 
What are you doing here?he asked in a lofty toneas that 
of one accustomed to command. 
And you -- what are you doing here?replied D'Artagnan. 
Be civil, or I shall beat you; for although one may not 
choose to proclaim oneself, one insists on respect suitable 
to one's rank.
You don't choose to discover yourself, because you are the 
leader of an ambuscade,returned D'Artagnan; "but with 
regard to myselfwho am traveling quietly with my own 
servantI have not the same reasons as you have to conceal 
my name." 
Enough! enough! what is your name?
I shall tell you my name in order that you may know where 
to find me, my lord, or my prince, as it may suit you best 
to be called,said our Gasconwho did not choose to seem 
to yield to a threat. "Do you know Monsieur d'Artagnan?" 
Lieutenant in the king's musketeers?said the voice; "you 
are Monsieur d'Artagnan?" 
I am.
Then you came here to defend him?
Him? whom?
The man we are seeking.
It seems,said D'Artagnanthat whilst I thought I was 
coming to Noisy I have entered, without suspecting it, into 
the kingdom of mysteries.
Come,replied the same lofty toneanswer! Are you 
waiting for him underneath these windows? Did you come to 
Noisy to defend him?
I am waiting for no one,replied D'Artagnanwho was 
beginning to be angry. "I propose to defend no one but 
myselfand I shall defend myself vigorouslyI give you 
warning." 
Very well,said the voice; "go away from here and leave 
the place to us." 
Go away from here!said D'Artagnanwhose purposes were in 
conflict with that orderthat is not so easy, since I am 
on the point of falling, and my horse, too, through fatigue; 
unless, indeed, you are disposed to offer me a supper and a 
bed in the neighborhood.
Rascal!
Eh! monsieur!said D'ArtagnanI beg you will have a care 
what you say; for if you utter another word like that, be 
you marquis, duke, prince or king, I will thrust it down 
your throat! do you hear?
Well, well,rejoined the leaderthere's no doubt 'tis a 
Gascon who is speaking, and therefore not the man we are 
looking for. Our blow has failed for to-night; let us 
withdraw. We shall meet again, Master d'Artagnan,continued 
the leaderraising his voice. 
Yes, but never with the same advantages,said D'Artagnan
in a tone of raillery; "for when you meet me again you will 
perhaps be alone and there will be daylight." 
Very good, very good,said the voice. "En route
gentlemen." 
And the troopgrumbling angrilydisappeared in the 
darkness and took the road to Paris. D'Artagnan and Planchet 
remained for some moments still on the defensive; thenas 
the noise of the horsemen became more and more distantthey 
sheathed their swords. 
Thou seest, simpleton,said D'Artagnan to his servant
that they wished no harm to us.
But to whom, then?
I'faith! I neither know nor care. What I do care for now, 
is to make my way into the Jesuits' convent; so to horse and 
let us knock at their door. Happen what will, the devil take 
them, they can't eat us.
And he mounted his horse. Planchet had just done the same 
when an unexpected weight fell upon the back of the horse
which sank down. 
Hey! your honor!cried PlanchetI've a man behind me.
D'Artagnan turned around and plainly saw two human forms on 
Planchet's horse. 
'Tis then the devil that pursues!he cried; drawing his 
sword and preparing to attack the new foe. 
No, no, dear D'Artagnan,said the figure'tis not the 
devil, 'tis Aramis; gallop fast, Planchet, and when you come 
to the end of the village turn swiftly to the left.
And Planchetwith Aramis behind himset off at full 
gallopfollowed by D'Artagnanwho began to think he was in 
the merry maze of some fantastic dream. 
The Abbe D'Herblay. 
At the extremity of the village Planchet turned to the left 
in obedience to the orders of Aramisand stopped underneath 
the window which had light in it. Aramis alighted and 
clapped his hands three times. Immediately the window was 
opened and a ladder of rope was let down from it. 
My friend,said Aramisif you like to ascend I shall be 
delighted to receive you.
Ah,said D'Artagnanis that the way you return to your 
apartment?
After nine at night, pardieu!said Aramisthe rule of 
the convent is very severe.
Pardon me, my dear friend,said D'ArtagnanI think you 
said `pardieu!'
Do you think so?said Aramissmiling; "it is possible. 
You have no ideamy dear fellowhow one acquires bad 
habits in these cursed conventsor what evil ways all these 
men of the church havewith whom I am obliged to live. But 
will you not go up?" 
Pass on before me, I beg of you.
As the late cardinal used to say to the late king, `only to 
show you the way, sire.'And Aramis ascended the ladder 
quickly and reached the window in an instant. 
D'Artagnan followedbut less nimblyshowing plainly that 
this mode of ascent was not one to which he was accustomed. 
I beg your pardon,said Aramisnoticing his awkwardness; 
if I had known that I was to have the honor of your visit I 
should have procured the gardener's ladder; but for me alone 
this is good enough.
Sir,said Planchet when he saw D'Artagnan on the summit of 
the ladderthis way is easy for Monsieur Aramis and even 
for you; in case of necessity I might also climb up, but my 
two horses cannot mount the ladder.
Take them to yonder shed, my friend,said Aramispointing 
to a low building on the plain; "there you will find hay and 
straw for them; then come back here and clap your hands 
three timesand we will give you wine and food. Marry
forsoothpeople don't die of hunger here.' 
And Aramisdrawing in the ladderclosed the window. 
D'Artagnan then looked around attentively. 
Never was there an apartment at the same time more warlike 
and more elegant. At each corner were arranged trophies
presenting to view swords of all sortsand on the walls 
hung four great pictures representing in their ordinary 
military costume the Cardinal de Lorrainethe Cardinal de 
Richelieuthe Cardinal de la Valetteand the Archbishop of 
Bordeaux. Exteriorlynothing in the room showed that it was 
the habitation of an abbe. The hangings were of damaskthe 
carpets from Alenconand the bedespeciallyhad more the 
look of a fine lady's couchwith its trimmings of fine lace 
and its embroidered counterpanethan that of a man who had 
made a vow that he would endeavor to gain Heaven by fasting 
and mortification. 
You are examining my den,said Aramis. "Ahmy dear 
fellowexcuse me; I am lodged like a Chartreux. But what 
are you looking for?" 
I am looking for the person who let down the ladder. I see 
no one and yet the ladder didn't come down of itself.
No, it is Bazin.
Ah! ah!said D'Artagnan. 
But,continued AramisBazin is a well trained servant, 
and seeing that I was not alone he discreetly retired. Sit 
down, my dear friend, and let us talk.And Aramis pushed 
forward a large easy-chairin which D'Artagnan stretched 
himself out. 
In the first place, you will sup with me, will you not?
asked Aramis. 
Yes, if you really wish it,said D'Artagnanand even 
with great pleasure, I confess; the journey has given me a 
devil of an appetite.
Ah, my poor friend!said Aramisyou will find meagre 
fare; you were not expected.
Am I then threatened with the omelet of Crevecoeur?
Oh, let us hope,said Aramisthat with the help of God 
and of Bazin we shall find something better than that in the 
larder of the worthy Jesuit fathers. Bazin, my friend, come 
here.
The door opened and Bazin entered; on perceiving the 
musketeer he uttered an exclamation that was almost a cry of 
despair. 
My dear Bazin,said D'ArtagnanI am delighted to see 
with what wonderful composure you can tell a lie even in 
church!
Sir,replied BazinI have been taught by the good Jesuit 
fathers that it is permitted to tell a falsehood when it is 
told in a good cause.
So far well,said Aramis; "we are dying of hunger. Serve 
us up the best supper you canand especially give us some 
good wine." 
Bazin bowed lowsighedand left the room. 
Now we are alone, dear Aramis,said D'Artagnantell me 
how the devil you managed to alight upon the back of 
Planchet's horse.
I'faith!answered Aramisas you see, from Heaven.
From Heaven,replied D'Artagnanshaking his head; "you 
have no more the appearance of coming from thence than you 
have of going there." 
My friend,said Aramiswith a look of imbecility on his 
face which D'Artagnan had never observed whilst he was in 
the musketeersif I did not come from Heaven, at least I 
was leaving Paradise, which is almost the same.
Here, then, is a puzzle for the learned,observed 
D'Artagnanuntil now they have never been able to agree as 
to the situation of Paradise; some place it on Mount Ararat, 
others between the rivers Tigris and Euphrates; it seems 
that they have been looking very far away for it, while it 
was actually very near. Paradise is at Noisy le Sec, upon 
the site of the archbishop's chateau. People do not go out 
from it by the door, but by the window; one doesn't descend 
here by the marble steps of a peristyle, but by the branches 
of a lime-tree; and the angel with a flaming sword who 
guards this elysium seems to have changed his celestial name 
of Gabriel into that of the more terrestrial one of the 
Prince de Marsillac.
Aramis burst into a fit of laughter. 
You were always a merry companion, my dear D'Artagnan,he 
saidand your witty Gascon fancy has not deserted you. 
Yes, there is something in what you say; nevertheless, do 
not believe that it is Madame de Longueville with whom I am 
in love.
A plague on't! I shall not do so. After having been so long 
in love with Madame de Chevreuse, you would hardly lay your 
heart at the feet of her mortal enemy!
Yes,replied Aramiswith an absent air; "yesthat poor 
duchess! I once loved her muchand to do her justiceshe 
was very useful to us. Eventually she was obliged to leave 
France. He was a relentless enemythat damned cardinal 
continued Aramis, glancing at the portrait of the old 
minister. He had even given orders to arrest her and would 
have cut off her head had she not escaped with her 
waiting-maid -- poor Kitty! I have heard that she met with a 
strange adventure in I don't know what villagewith I don't 
know what cureof whom she asked hospitality and who
having but one chamberand taking her for a cavalier
offered to share it with her. For she had a wonderful way of 
dressing as a manthat dear Marie; I know only one other 
woman who can do it as well. So they made this song about 
her: `Laboissieredis moi.' You know itdon't you?" 
No, sing it, please.
Aramis immediately compliedand sang the song in a very 
lively manner. 
Bravo!cried D'Artagnanyou sing charmingly, dear 
Aramis. I do not perceive that singing masses has spoiled 
your voice.
My dear D'Artagnan,replied Aramisyou understand, when 
I was a musketeer I mounted guard as seldom as I could; now 
when I am an abbe I say as few masses as I can. But to 
return to our duchess.
Which -- the Duchess de Chevreuse or the Duchess de 
Longueville?
Have I not already told you that there is nothing between 
me and the Duchess de Longueville? Little flirtations, 
perhaps, and that's all. No, I spoke of the Duchess de 
Chevreuse; did you see her after her return from Brussels, 
after the king's death?
Yes, she is still beautiful.
Yes,said AramisI saw her also at that time. I gave her 
good advice, by which she did not profit. I ventured to tell 
her that Mazarin was the lover of Anne of Austria. She 
wouldn't believe me, saying that she knew Anne of Austria, 
who was too proud to love such a worthless coxcomb. After 
that she plunged into the cabal headed by the Duke of 
Beaufort; and the `coxcomb' arrested De Beaufort and 
banished Madame de Chevreuse.
You know,resumed D'Artagnanthat she has had leave to 
return to France?
Yes she is come back and is going to commit some fresh 
folly or another.
Oh, but this time perhaps she will follow your advice.
Oh, this time,returned AramisI haven't seen her; she 
is much changed.
In that respect unlike you, my dear Aramis, for you are 
still the same; you have still your beautiful dark hair, 
still your elegant figure, still your feminine hands, which 
are admirably suited to a prelate.
Yes,replied AramisI am extremely careful of my 
appearance. Do you know that I am growing old? I am nearly 
thirty-seven.
Mind, Aramis-- D'Artagnan smiled as he spoke -- "since we 
are together againlet us agree on one point: what age 
shall we be in future?" 
How?
Formerly I was your junior by two or three years, and if I 
am not mistaken I am turned forty years old.
Indeed! Then 'tis I who am mistaken, for you have always 
been a good chronologist. By your reckoning I must be 
forty-three at least. The devil I am! Don't let it out at 
the Hotel Rambouillet; it would ruin me,replied the abbe. 
Don't be afraid,said D'Artagnan. "I never go there." 
Why, what in the world,cried Aramisis that animal 
Bazin doing? Bazin! Hurry up there, you rascal; we are mad 
with hunger and thirst!
Bazin entered at that moment carrying a bottle in each hand. 
At last,said Aramiswe are ready, are we? 
Yesmonsieurquite ready said Bazin; but it took me 
some time to bring up all the ---- " 
Because you always think you have on your shoulders your 
beadle's robe, and spend all your time reading your 
breviary. But I give you warning that if in polishing your 
chapel utensils you forget how to brighten up my sword, I 
will make a great fire of your blessed images and will see 
that you are roasted on it.
Bazinscandalizedmade a sign of the cross with the bottle 
in his hand. D'Artagnanmore surprised than ever at the 
tone and manners of the Abbe d'Herblaywhich contrasted so 
strongly with those of the Musketeer Aramisremained 
staring with wide-open eyes at the face of his friend. 
Bazin quickly covered the table with a damask cloth and 
arranged upon it so many thingsgildedperfumed
appetizingthat D'Artagnan was quite overcome. 
But you expected some one then?asked the officer. 
Oh,said AramisI always try to be prepared; and then I 
knew you were seeking me.
From whom?
From Master Bazin, to be sure; he took you for the devil, 
my dear fellow, and hastened to warn me of the danger that 
threatened my soul if I should meet again a companion so 
wicked as an officer of musketeers.
Oh, monsieur!said Bazinclasping his hands 
supplicatingly. 
Come, no hypocrisy! you know that I don't like it. You will 
do much better to open the window and let down some bread, a 
chicken and a bottle of wine to your friend Planchet, who 
has been this last hour killing himself clapping his hands.
Planchetin facthad bedded and fed his horsesand then 
coming back under the window had repeated two or three times 
the signal agreed upon. 
Bazin obeyedfastened to the end of a cord the three 
articles designated and let them down to Planchetwho then 
went satisfied to his shed. 
Now to supper,said Aramis. 
The two friends sat down and Aramis began to cut up fowls
partridges and hams with admirable skill. 
The deuce!cried D'Artagnan; "do you live in this way 
always?" 
Yes, pretty well. The coadjutor has given me dispensations 
from fasting on the jours maigres, on account of my health; 
then I have engaged as my cook the cook who lived with 
Lafollone -- you know the man I mean? -- the friend of the 
cardinal, and the famous epicure whose grace after dinner 
used to be, `Good Lord, do me the favor to cause me to 
digest what I have eaten.'
Nevertheless he died of indigestion, in spite of his 
grace,said D'Artagnan. 
What can you expect?replied Aramisin a tone of 
resignation. "Every man that's born must fulfil his 
destiny." 
If it be not an indelicate question,resumed D'Artagnan
have you grown rich?
Oh, Heaven! no. I make about twelve thousand francs a year, 
without counting a little benefice of a thousand crowns the 
prince gave me.
And how do you make your twelve thousand francs? By your 
poems?
No, I have given up poetry, except now and then to write a 
drinking song, some gay sonnet or some innocent epigram; I 
compose sermons, my friend.
What! sermons? Do you preach them?
No; I sell them to those of my cloth who wish to become 
great orators.
Ah, indeed! and you have not been tempted by the hopes of 
reputation yourself?
I should, my dear D'Artagnan, have been so, but nature said 
`No.' When I am in the pulpit, if by chance a pretty woman 
looks at me, I look at her again: if she smiles, I smile 
too. Then I speak at random; instead of preaching about the 
torments of hell I talk of the joys of Paradise. An event 
took place in the Church of St. Louis au Marais. A gentleman 
laughed in my face. I stopped short to tell him that he was 
a fool; the congregation went out to get stones to stone me 
with, but whilst they were away I found means to conciliate 
the priests who were present, so that my foe was pelted 
instead of me. 'Tis true that he came the next morning to my 
house, thinking that he had to do with an abbe -- like all 
other abbes.
And what was the end of the affair?
We met in the Place Royale -- Egad! you know about it.
Was I not your second?cried D'Artagnan. 
You were; you know how I settled the matter.
Did he die?
I don't know. But, at all events, I gave him absolution in 
articulo mortis. 'Tis enough to kill the body, without 
killing the soul.
Bazin made a despairing sign which meant that while perhaps 
he approved the moral he altogether disapproved the tone in 
which it was uttered. 
Bazin, my friend,said Aramisyou don't seem to be aware 
that I can see you in that mirror, and you forget that once 
for all I have forbidden all signs of approbation or 
disapprobation. You will do me the favor to bring us some 
Spanish wine and then to withdraw. Besides, my friend 
D'Artagnan has something to say to me privately, have you 
not, D'Artagnan?
D'Artagnan nodded his head and Bazin retiredafter placing 
on the table the Spanish wine. 
The two friendsleft aloneremained silentface to face. 
Aramis seemed to await a comfortable digestion; D'Artagnan
to be preparing his exordium. Each of themwhen the other 
was not lookinghazarded a sly glance. It was Aramis who 
broke the silence. 
What are you thinking of, D'Artagnan?he began. 
I was thinking, my dear old friend, that when you were a 
musketeer you turned your thoughts incessantly to the 
church, and now that you are an abbe you are perpetually 
longing to be once more a musketeer.
'Tis true; man, as you know,said Aramisis a strange 
animal, made up of contradictions. Since I became an abbe I 
dream of nothing but battles.
That is apparent in your surroundings; you have rapiers 
here of every form and to suit the most exacting taste. Do 
you still fence well?
I -- I fence as well as you did in the old time -- better 
still, perhaps; I do nothing else all day.
And with whom?
With an excellent master-at-arms that we have here.
What! here?
Yesherein this conventmy dear fellow. There is 
everything in a Jesuit convent." 
Then you would have killed Monsieur de Marsillac if he had 
come alone to attack you, instead of at the head of twenty 
men?
Undoubtedly,said Aramisand even at the head of his 
twenty men, if I could have drawn without being recognized.
God pardon me!said D'Artagnan to himselfI believe he 
has become more Gascon than I am!Then aloud: "Wellmy 
dear Aramisdo you ask me why I came to seek you?" 
No, I have not asked you that,said Aramiswith his 
subtle manner; "but I have expected you to tell me." 
Well, I sought you for the single purpose of offering you a 
chance to kill Monsieur de Marsillac whenever you please, 
prince though he is.
Hold on! wait!said Aramis; "that is an idea!" 
Of which I invite you to take advantage, my friend. Let us 
see; with your thousand crowns from the abbey and the twelve 
thousand francs you make by selling sermons, are you rich? 
Answer frankly.
I? I am as poor as Job, and were you to search my pockets 
and my boxes I don't believe you would find a hundred 
pistoles.
Peste! a hundred pistoles!said D'Artagnan to himself; "he 
calls that being as poor as Job! If I had them I should 
think myself as rich as Croesus." Then aloud: "Are you 
ambitious?" 
As Enceladus.
Well, my friend, I bring you the means of becoming rich, 
powerful, and free to do whatever you wish.
The shadow of a cloud passed over Aramis's face as quickly 
as that which in August passes over the field of grain; but 
quick as it wasit did not escape D'Artagnan's observation. 
Speak on,said Aramis. 
One question first. Do you take any interest in politics?
A gleam of light shone in Aramis's eyesas brief as the 
shadow that had passed over his facebut not so brief but 
that it was seen by D'Artagnan. 
No,Aramis replied. 
Then proposals from any quarter will be agreeable to you, 
since for the moment you have no master but God?
It is possible.
Have you, my dear Aramis, thought sometimes of those happy, 
happy, happy days of youth we passed laughing, drinking, and 
fighting each other for play?
Certainly, and more than once regretted them; it was indeed 
a glorious time.
Well, those splendidly wild days may chance to come again; 
I am commissioned to find out my companions and I began by 
you, who were the very soul of our society.
Aramis bowedrather with respect than pleasure at the 
compliment. 
To meddle in politics,he exclaimedin a languid voice
leaning back in his easy-chair. "Ah! dear D'Artagnan! see 
how regularly I live and how easy I am here. We have 
experienced the ingratitude of `the great' as you well 
know." 
'Tis true,replied D'Artagnan. "Yet the great sometimes 
repent of their ingratitude." 
In that case it would be quite another thing. Come! let's 
be merciful to every sinner! Besides, you are right in 
another respect, which is in thinking that if we were to 
meddle in politics there could not be a better time than the 
present.
How can you know that? You who never interest yourself in 
politics?
Ah! without caring about them myself, I live among those 
who are much occupied in them. Poet as I am, I am intimate 
with Sarazin, who is devoted to the Prince de Conti, and 
with Monsieur de Bois-Robert, who, since the death of 
Cardinal Richelieu, is of all parties or any party; so that 
political discussions have not altogether been uninteresting 
to me.
I have no doubt of it,said D'Artagnan. 
Now, my dear friend, look upon all I tell you as merely the 
statement of a monk -- of a man who resembles an echo -repeating 
simply what he hears. I understand that Mazarin is 
at this very moment extremely uneasy as to the state of 
affairs; that his orders are not respected like those of our 
former bugbear, the deceased cardinal, whose portrait as you 
see hangs yonder -- for whatever may be thought of him, it 
must be allowed that Richelieu was great.
I will not contradict you there,said D'Artagnan. 
My first impressions were favorable to the minister; I said 
to myself that a minister is never loved, but that with the 
genius this one was said to have he would eventually triumph 
over his enemies and would make himself feared, which in my 
opinion is much more to be desired than to be loved ---- 
D'Artagnan made a sign with his head which indicated that he 
entirely approved that doubtful maxim. 
This, then,continued Aramiswas my first opinion; but 
as I am very ignorant in matters of this kind and as the 
humility which I profess obliges me not to rest on my own 
judgment, but to ask the opinion of others, I have inquired 
-- Eh! -- my friend ---- 
Aramis paused. 
Well? what?asked his friend. 
Well, I must mortify myself. I must confess that I was 
mistaken. Monsieur de Mazarin is not a man of genius, as I 
thought, he is a man of no origin -- once a servant of 
Cardinal Bentivoglio, and he got on by intrigue. He is an 
upstart, a man of no name, who will only be the tool of a 
party in France. He will amass wealth, he will injure the 
king's revenue and pay to himself the pensions which 
Richelieu paid to others. He is neither a gentleman in 
manner nor in feeling, but a sort of buffoon, a punchinello, 
a pantaloon. Do you know him? I do not.
Hem!said D'Artagnanthere is some truth in what you 
say.
Ah! it fills me with pride to find that, thanks to a common 
sort of penetration with which I am endowed, I am approved 
by a man like you, fresh from the court.
But you speak of him, not of his party, his resources.
It is true -- the queen is for him.
Something in his favor.
But he will never have the king.
A mere child.
A child who will be of age in four years. Then he has 
neither the parliament nor the people with him -- they 
represent the wealth of the country; nor the nobles nor the 
princes, who are the military power of France.
D'Artagnan scratched his ear. He was forced to confess to 
himself that this reasoning was not only comprehensivebut 
just. 
You see, my poor friend, that I am sometimes bereft of my 
ordinary thoughtfulness; perhaps I am wrong in speaking thus 
to you, who have evidently a leaning to Mazarin.
I!cried D'Artagnannot in the least.
You spoke of a mission.
Did I? I was wrong then, no, I said what you say -- there 
is a crisis at hand. Well! let's fly the feather before the 
wind; let us join with that side to which the wind will 
carry it and resume our adventurous life. We were once four 
valiant knights -- four hearts fondly united; let us unite 
again, not our hearts, which have never been severed, but 
our courage and our fortunes. Here's a good opportunity for 
getting something better than a diamond.
You are right, D'Artagnan; I held a similar project, but as 
I had not nor ever shall have your fruitful, vigorous 
imagination, the idea was suggested to me. Every one 
nowadays wants auxiliaries; propositions have been made to 
me and I confess to you frankly that the coadjutor has made 
me speak out.
Monsieur de Gondy! the cardinal's enemy?
No; the king's friend,said Aramis; "the king's friend
you understand. Wellit is a question of serving the king
the gentleman's duty." 
But the king is with Mazarin.
He is, but not willingly; in appearance, not heart; and 
that is exactly the snare the king's enemies are preparing 
for the poor child.
Ah! but this is, indeed, civil war which you propose to me, 
dear Aramis.
War for the king.
Yet the king will be at the head of the army on Mazarin's 
side.
But his heart will be in the army commanded by the Duc de 
Beaufort.
Monsieur de Beaufort? He is at Vincennes.
Did I say Monsieur de Beaufort? Monsieur de Beaufort or 
another. Monsieur de Beaufort or Monsieur le Prince.
But Monsieur le Prince is to set out for the army; he is 
entirely devoted to the cardinal.
Oh oh!said Aramisthere are questions between them at 
this very moment. And besides, if it is not the prince, then 
Monsieur de Gondy ---- 
But Monsieur de Gondy is to be made a cardinal; they are 
soliciting the hat for him.
And are there no cardinals that can fight? Come now, recall 
the four cardinals that at the head of armies have equalled 
Monsieur de Guebriant and Monsieur de Gassion.
But a humpbacked general! 
Under the cuirass the hump will not be seen. Besides
remember that Alexander was lame and Hannibal had but one 
eye." 
Do you see any great advantage in adhering to this party?
asked D'Artagnan. 
I foresee in it the aid of powerful princes.
With the enmity of the government.
Counteracted by parliament and insurrections.
That may be done if they can separate the king from his 
mother.
That may be done,said Aramis. 
Never!cried D'Artagnan. "YouAramisknow Anne of 
Austria better than I do. Do you think she will ever forget 
that her son is her safeguardher shieldthe pledge for 
her dignityfor her fortune and her life? Should she 
forsake Mazarin she must join her son and go over to the 
princes' side; but you know better than I do that there are 
certain reasons why she can never abandon Mazarin." 
Perhaps you are right,said Aramisthoughtfully; 
therefore I shall not pledge myself.
To them or to us, do you mean, Aramis?
To no one. I am a priest,resumed Aramis. "What have I to 
do with politics? I am not obliged to read any breviary. I 
have a jolly little circle of witty abbes and pretty women; 
everything goes on smoothlyso certainlydear friendI 
shall not meddle in politics." 
Well, listen, my dear Aramis,said D'Artagnan; "your 
philosophy convinces meon my honor. I don't know what 
devil of an insect stung me and made me ambitious. I have a 
post by which I live; at the death of Monsieur de Treville
who is oldI may be a captainwhich is a very snug berth 
for a once penniless Gascon. Instead of running after 
adventures I shall accept an invitation from Porthos; I 
shall go and shoot on his estate. You know he has estates --
Porthos?" 
I should think so, indeed. Ten leagues of wood, of marsh 
land and valleys; he is lord of the hill and the plain and 
is now carrying on a suit for his feudal rights against the 
Bishop of Noyon!
Good,said D'Artagnan to himself. "That's what I wanted to 
know. Porthos is in Picardy." 
Then aloud: 
And he has taken his ancient name of Vallon?
To which he adds that of Bracieux, an estate which has been 
a barony, by my troth.
So that Porthos will be a baron.
I don't doubt it. The `Baroness Porthos' will sound 
particularly charming.
And the two friends began to laugh. 
So,D'Artagnan resumedyou will not become a partisan of 
Mazarin's?
Nor you of the Prince de Conde?
No, let us belong to no party, but remain friends; let us 
be neither Cardinalists nor Frondists.
Adieu, then.And D'Artagnan poured out a glass of wine. 
To old times,he said. 
Yes,returned Aramis. "Unhappilythose times are past." 
Nonsense! They will return,said D'Artagnan. "At all 
eventsif you want meremember the Rue TiquetonneHotel 
de la Chevrette." 
And I shall be at the convent of Jesuits; from six in the 
morning to eight at night come by the door. From eight in 
the evening until six in the morning come in by the window.
Adieu, dear friend.
Oh, I can't let you go so! I will go with you.And he took 
his sword and cloak. 
He wants to be sure that I go away,said D'Artagnan to 
himself. 
Aramis whistled for Bazinbut Bazin was asleep in the 
ante-chamberand Aramis was obliged to shake him by the ear 
to awake him. 
Bazin stretched his armsrubbed his eyesand tried to go 
to sleep again. 
Come, come, sleepy head; quick, the ladder!
But,said Bazinyawning portentouslythe ladder is 
still at the window.
The other one, the gardener's. Didn't you see that Monsieur 
d'Artagnan mounted with difficulty? It will be even more 
difficult to descend.
D'Artagnan was about to assure Aramis that he could descend 
easilywhen an idea came into his head which silenced him. 
Bazin uttered a profound sigh and went out to look for the 
ladder. Presently a goodsolidwooden ladder was placed 
against the window. 
Now then,said D'Artagnanthis is something like; this 
is a means of communication. A woman could go up a ladder 
like that.
Aramis's searching look seemed to seek his friend's thought 
even at the bottom of his heartbut D'Artagnan sustained 
the inquisition with an air of admirable simplicity. 
Besidesat that moment he put his foot on the first step of 
the ladder and began his descent. In a moment he was on the 
ground. Bazin remained at the window. 
Stay there,said Aramis; "I shall return immediately." 
The two friends went toward the shed. At their approach 
Planchet came out leading the two horses. 
That is good to see,said Aramis. "There is a servant 
active and vigilantnot like that lazy fellow Bazinwho is 
no longer good for anything since he became connected with 
the church. Follow usPlanchet; we shall continue our 
conversation to the end of the village." 
They traversed the width of the villagetalking of 
indifferent thingsthen as they reached the last houses: 
Go, then, dear friend,said Aramisfollow your own 
career. Fortune lavishes her smiles upon you; do not let her 
flee from your embrace. As for me, I remain in my humility 
and indolence. Adieu!
Thus 'tis quite decided,said D'Artagnanthat what I 
have to offer to you does not tempt you?
On the contrary, it would tempt me were I any other man,
rejoined Aramis; "but I repeatI am made up of 
contradictions. What I hate to-day I adore to-morrowand 
vice versa. You see that I cannotlike youfor instance
settle on any fixed plan." 
Thou liest, subtile one,said D'Artagnan to himself. "Thou 
aloneon the contraryknowest how to choose thy object and 
to gain it stealthily." 
The friends embraced. They descended into the plain by the 
ladder. Planchet met them hard by the shed. D'Artagnan 
jumped into the saddlethen the old companions in arms 
again shook hands. D'Artagnan and Planchet spurred their 
steeds and took the road to Paris. 
But after he had gone about two hundred steps D'Artagnan 
stopped shortalightedthrew the bridle of his horse over 
the arm of Planchet and took the pistols from his saddle-bow 
to fasten them to his girdle. 
What's the matter?asked Planchet. 
This is the matter: be he ever so cunning he shall never 
say I was his dupe. Stand here, don't stir, turn your back 
to the road and wait for me.
Having thus spokenD'Artagnan cleared the ditch by the 
roadside and crossed the plain so as to wind around the 
village. He had observed between the house that Madame de 
Longueville inhabited and the convent of the Jesuitsan 
open space surrounded by a hedge. 
The moon had now risen and he could see well enough to 
retrace his road. 
He reached the hedge and hid himself behind it; in passing 
by the house where the scene which we have related took 
placehe remarked that the window was again lighted up and 
he was convinced that Aramis had not yet returned to his own 
apartment and that when he did it would not be alone. 
In truthin a few minutes he heard steps approaching and 
low whispers. 
Close to the hedge the steps stopped. 
D'Artagnan knelt down near the thickest part of the hedge. 
Two mento the astonishment of D'Artagnanappeared 
shortly; soonhoweverhis surprise vanishedfor he heard 
the murmurs of a softharmonious voice; one of these two 
men was a woman disguised as a cavalier. 
Calm yourself, dear Rene,said the soft voicethe same 
thing will never happen again. I have discovered a sort of 
subterranean passage which runs beneath the street and we 
shall only have to raise one of the marble slabs before the 
door to open you an entrance and an outlet.
Oh!answered another voicewhich D'Artagnan instantly 
recognized as that of Aramis. "I swear to youprincess
that if your reputation did not depend on precautions and if 
my life alone were jeopardized ---- " 
Yes, yes! I know you are as brave and venturesome as any 
man in the world, but you do not belong to me alone; you 
belong to all our party. Be prudent! sensible!
I always obey, madame, when I am commanded by so gentle a 
voice.
He kissed her hand tenderly. 
Ah!exclaimed the cavalier with a soft voice. 
What's the matter?asked Aramis. 
Do you not see that the wind has blown off my hat?
Aramis rushed after the fugitive hat. D'Artagnan took 
advantage of the circumstance to find a place in the hedge 
not so thickwhere his glance could penetrate to the 
supposed cavalier. At that instantthe mooninquisitive
perhapslike D'Artagnancame from behind a cloud and by 
her light D'Artagnan recognized the large blue eyesthe 
golden hair and the classic head of the Duchess de 
Longueville. 
Aramis returnedlaughingone hat on his head and the other 
in his hand; and he and his companion resumed their walk 
toward the convent. 
Good!said D'Artagnanrising and brushing his knees; "now 
I have thee -- thou art a Frondeur and the lover of Madame 
de Longueville." 
Monsieur Porthos du Vallon de Bracieux de Pierrefonds. 
Thanks to what Aramis had told himD'Artagnanwho knew 
already that Porthos called himself Du Vallonwas now aware 
that he styled himselffrom his estateDe Bracieux; and 
that he wason account of this estateengaged in a lawsuit 
with the Bishop of Noyon. It wasthenin the neighborhood 
of Noyon that he must seek that estate. His itinerary was 
promptly determined: he would go to Dammartinfrom which 
place two roads divergeone toward Soissonsthe other 
toward Compiegne; there he would inquire concerning the 
Bracieux estate and go to the right or to the left according 
to the information obtained. 
Planchetwho was still a little concerned for his safety 
after his recent escapadedeclared that he would follow 
D'Artagnan even to the end of the worldeither by the road 
to the right or by that to the left; only he begged his 
former master to set out in the eveningfor greater 
security to himself. D'Artagnan suggested that he should 
send word to his wifeso that she might not be anxious 
about himbut Planchet replied with much sagacity that he 
was very sure his wife would not die of anxiety through not 
knowing where he waswhile hePlanchetremembering her 
incontinence of tonguewould die of anxiety if she did 
know. 
This reasoning seemed to D'Artagnan so satisfactory that he 
no further insisted; and about eight o'clock in the evening
the time when the vapors of night begin to thicken in the 
streetshe left the Hotel de la Chevretteand followed by 
Planchet set forth from the capital by way of the Saint 
Denis gate. 
At midnight the two travelers were at Dammartinbut it was 
then too late to make inquiries -- the host of the Cygne de 
la Croix had gone to bed. 
The next morning D'Artagnan summoned the hostone of those 
sly Normans who say neither yes nor no and fear to commit 
themselves by giving a direct answer. D'Artagnanhowever
gathered from his equivocal replies that the road to the 
right was the one he ought to takeand on that uncertain 
information he resumed his journey. At nine in the morning 
he reached Nanteuil and stopped for breakfast. His host here 
was a good fellow from Picardywho gave him all the 
information he needed. The Bracieux estate was a few leagues 
from Villars-Cotterets. 
D'Artagnan was acquainted with Villars-Cotterets having gone 
thither with the court on several occasions; for at that 
time Villars-Cotterets was a royal residence. He therefore 
shaped his course toward that place and dismounted at the 
Dauphin d'Or. There he ascertained that the Bracieux estate 
was four leagues distantbut that Porthos was not at 
Bracieux. Porthos hadin factbeen involved in a dispute 
with the Bishop of Noyon in regard to the Pierrefonds 
propertywhich adjoined his ownand weary at length of a 
legal controversy which was beyond his comprehensionhe put 
an end to it by purchasing Pierrefonds and added that name 
to his others. He now called himself Du Vallon de Bracieux 
de Pierrefondsand resided on his new estate. 
The travelers were therefore obliged to stay at the hotel 
until the next day; the horses had done ten leagues that day 
and needed rest. It is true they might have taken others
but there was a great forest to pass through and Planchet
as we have seenhad no liking for forests after dark. 
There was another thing that Planchet had no liking for and 
that was starting on a journey with a hungry stomach. 
AccordinglyD'Artagnanon awakingfound his breakfast 
waiting for him. It need not be said that Planchet in 
resuming his former functions resumed also his former 
humility and was not ashamed to make his breakfast on what 
was left by D'Artagnan. 
It was nearly eight o'clock when they set out again. Their 
course was clearly defined: they were to follow the road 
toward Compiegne and on emerging from the forest turn to the 
right. 
The morning was beautifuland in this early springtime the 
birds sang on the trees and the sunbeams shone through the 
misty gladeslike curtains of golden gauze. 
In other parts of the forest the light could scarcely 
penetrate through the foliageand the stems of two old oak 
treesthe refuge of the squirrelstartled by the 
travelerswere in deep shadow. 
There came up from all nature in the dawn of day a perfume 
of herbsflowers and leaveswhich delighted the heart. 
D'Artagnansick of the closeness of Paristhought that 
when a man had three names of his different estates joined 
one to anotherhe ought to be very happy in such a 
paradise; then he shook his headsayingIf I were Porthos 
and D'Artagnan came to make me such a proposition as I am 
going to make to him, I know what I should say to it.
As to Planchethe thought of little or nothingbut was 
happy as a hunting-hound in his old master's company. 
At the extremity of the wood D'Artagnan perceived the road 
that had been described to himand at the end of the road 
he saw the towers of an immense feudal castle. 
Oh! oh!he saidI fancied this castle belonged to the 
ancient branch of Orleans. Can Porthos have negotiated for 
it with the Duc de Longueville?
Faith!exclaimed Planchethere's land in good condition; 
if it belongs to Monsieur Porthos I wish him joy.
Zounds!cried D'Artagnandon't call him Porthos, nor 
even Vallon; call him De Bracieux or De Pierrefonds; thou 
wilt knell out damnation to my mission otherwise.
As he approached the castle which had first attracted his 
eyeD'Artagnan was convinced that it could not be there 
that his friend dwelt; the towersthough solid and as if 
built yesterdaywere open and broken. One might have 
fancied that some giant had cleaved them with blows from a 
hatchet. 
On arriving at the extremity of the castle D'Artagnan found 
himself overlooking a beautiful valleyin whichat the 
foot of a charming little lakestood several scattered 
houseswhichhumble in their aspectand coveredsome 
with tilesothers with thatchseemed to acknowledge as 
their sovereign lord a pretty chateaubuilt about the 
beginning of the reign of Henry IV.and surmounted by four 
statelygilded weather-cocks. D'Artagnan no longer doubted 
that this was Porthos's pleasant dwelling place. 
The road led straight up to the chateau whichcompared to 
its ancestor on the hillwas exactly what a fop of the 
coterie of the Duc d'Enghein would have been beside a knight 
in steel armor in the time of Charles VII. D'Artagnan 
spurred his horse on and pursued his roadfollowed by 
Planchet at the same pace. 
In ten minutes D'Artagnan reached the end of an alley 
regularly planted with fine poplars and terminating in an 
iron gatethe points and crossed bars of which were gilt. 
In the midst of this avenue was a noblemandressed in green 
and with as much gilding about him as the iron gateriding 
on a tall horse. On his right hand and his left were two 
footmenwith the seams of their dresses laced. A 
considerable number of clowns were assembled and rendered 
homage to their lord. 
Ah!said D'Artagnan to himselfcan this be the Seigneur 
du Vallon de Bracieux de Pierrefonds? Well-a-day! how he has 
shrunk since he gave up the name of Porthos!
This cannot be Monsieur Porthos,observed Planchet 
replyingas it wereto his master's thoughts. "Monsieur 
Porthos was six feet high; this man is scarcely five." 
Nevertheless,said D'Artagnanthe people are bowing very 
low to this person.
As he spokehe rode toward the tall horse -- to the man of 
importance and his valets. As he approached he seemed to 
recognize the features of this individual. 
Jesu!cried Planchetcan it be?
At this exclamation the man on horseback turned slowly and 
with a lofty airand the two travelers could seedisplayed 
in all their brilliancythe large eyesthe vermilion 
visageand the eloquent smile of -- Musqueton. 
It was indeed Musqueton -- Musquetonas fat as a pig
rolling about with rude healthpuffed out with good living
whorecognizing D'Artagnan and acting very differently from 
the hypocrite Bazinslipped off his horse and approached 
the officer with his hat offso that the homage of the 
assembled crowd was turned toward this new sunwhich 
eclipsed the former luminary. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan! Monsieur d'Artagnan!cried Musqueton
his fat cheeks swelling out and his whole frame perspiring 
with joy; "Monsieur d'Artagnan! oh! what joy for my lord and 
masterDu Vallon de Bracieux de Pierrefonds!" 
Thou good Musqueton! where is thy master?
You stand upon his property!
But how handsome thou art -- how fat! thou hast prospered 
and grown stout!and D'Artagnan could not restrain his 
astonishment at the change good fortune had produced on the 
once famished one. 
Hey, yes, thank God, I am pretty well,said Musqueton. 
But hast thou nothing to say to thy friend Planchet?
How, my friend Planchet? Planchet -- art thou there?cried 
Musquetonwith open arms and eyes full of tears. 
My very self,replied Planchet; "but I wanted first to see 
if thou wert grown proud." 
Proud toward an old friend? never, Planchet! thou wouldst 
not have thought so hadst thou known Musqueton well.
So far so well,answered Planchetalightingand 
extending his arms to Musquetonthe two servants embraced 
with an emotion which touched those who were present and 
made them suppose that Planchet was a great lord in 
disguiseso highly did they estimate the position of 
Musqueton. 
And now, sir,resumed Musquetonwhen he had rid himself 
of Planchetwho had in vain tried to clasp his hands behind 
his friend's fat backnow, sir, allow me to leave you, for 
I could not permit my master to hear of your arrival from 
any but myself; he would never forgive me for not having 
preceded you.
This dear friend,said D'Artagnancarefully avoiding to 
utter either the former name borne by Porthos or his new 
onethen he has not forgotten me?
Forgotten -- he!cried Musqueton; "there's not a daysir
that we don't expect to hear that you were made marshal 
either instead of Monsieur de Gassionor of Monsieur de 
Bassompierre." 
On D'Artagnan's lips there played one of those rare and 
melancholy smiles which seemed to emanate from the depth of 
his soul -- the last trace of youth and happiness that had 
survived life's disillusions. 
And you -- fellows,resumed Musquetonstay near Monsieur 
le Comte d'Artagnan and pay him every attention in your 
power whilst I go to prepare my lord for his visit.
And mounting his horse Musqueton rode off down the avenue on 
the grass at a hand gallop. 
Ah, there! there's something promising,said D'Artagnan. 
No mysteries, no cloak to hide one's self in, no cunning 
policy here; people laugh outright, they weep for joy here. 
I see nothing but faces a yard broad; in short, it seems to 
me that nature herself wears a holiday garb, and that the 
trees, instead of leaves and flowers, are covered with red 
and green ribbons as on gala days.
As for me,said PlanchetI seem to smell, from this 
place, even, a most delectable perfume of fine roast meat, 
and to see the scullions in a row by the hedge, hailing our 
approach. Ah! sir, what a cook must Monsieur Pierrefonds 
have, when he was so fond of eating and drinking, even 
whilst he was only called Monsieur Porthos!
Say no more!cried D'Artagnan. "If the reality corresponds 
with appearances I am lost; for a man so well off will never 
change his happy conditionand I shall fail with himas I 
have already done with Aramis." 
How D'Artagnanin discovering the Retreat of Porthos
perceives that Wealth does not necessarily produce 
Happiness. 
D'Artagnan passed through the iron gate and arrived in front 
of the chateau. He alighted as he saw a species of giant on 
the steps. Let us do justice to D'Artagnan. Independently of 
every selfish wishhis heart palpitated with joy when he 
saw that tall form and martial demeanorwhich recalled to 
him a good and brave man. 
He ran to Porthos and threw himself into his arms; the whole 
body of servantsarranged in a semi-circle at a respectful 
distancelooked on with humble curiosity. Musquetonat the 
head of themwiped his eyes. Porthos linked his arm in that 
of his friend. 
Ah! how delightful to see you again, dear friend!he 
criedin a voice which was now changed from a baritone into 
a bassyou've not then forgotten me?
Forget you! oh! dear Du Vallon, does one forget the 
happiest days of flowery youth, one's dearest friends, the 
dangers we have dared together? On the contrary, there is 
not an hour we have passed together that is not present to 
my memory.
Yes, yes,said Porthostrying to give to his mustache a 
curl which it had lost whilst he had been alone. "Yeswe 
did some fine things in our time and we gave that poor 
cardinal a few threads to unravel." 
And he heaved a sigh. 
Under any circumstances,he resumedyou are welcome, my 
dear friend; you will help me to recover my spirits; 
to-morrow we will hunt the hare on my plain, which is a 
superb tract of land, or pursue the deer in my woods, which 
are magnificent. I have four harriers which are considered 
the swiftest in the county, and a pack of hounds which are 
unequalled for twenty leagues around.
And Porthos heaved another sigh. 
But, first,interposed D'Artagnanyou must present me to 
Madame du Vallon.
A third sigh from Porthos. 
I lost Madame du Vallon two years ago,he saidand you 
find me still in affliction on that account. That was the 
reason why I left my Chateau du Vallon near Corbeil, and 
came to my estate, Bracieux. Poor Madame du Vallon! her 
temper was uncertain, but she came at last to accustom 
herself to my little ways and understand my little wishes.
So you are free now, and rich?
Alas!groaned PorthosI am a widower and have forty 
thousand francs a year. Let us go to breakfast.
I shall be happy to do so; the morning air has made me 
hungry.
Yes,said Porthos; "my air is excellent." 
They went into the chateau; there was nothing but gilding
high and low; the cornices were giltthe mouldings were 
giltthe legs and arms of the chairs were gilt. A table
ready set outawaited them. 
You see,said Porthosthis is my usual style.
Devil take me!answered D'ArtagnanI wish you joy of it. 
The king has nothing like it.
No,answered PorthosI hear it said that he is very 
badly fed by the cardinal, Monsieur de Mazarin. Taste this 
cutlet, my dear D'Artagnan; 'tis off one of my sheep.
You have very tender mutton and I wish you joy of it.said 
D'Artagnan. 
Yes, the sheep are fed in my meadows, which are excellent 
pasture.
Give me another cutlet.
No, try this hare, which I had killed yesterday in one of 
my warrens.
Zounds! what a flavor!cried D'Artagnan; "ah! they are fed 
on thyme onlyyour hares." 
And how do you like my wine?asked Porthos; "it is 
pleasantisn't it?" 
Capital!
It is nothing, however, but a wine of the country.
Really?
Yes, a small declivity to the south, yonder on my hill, 
gives me twenty hogsheads.
Quite a vineyard, hey?
Porthos sighed for the fifth time -- D'Artagnan had counted 
his sighs. He became curious to solve the problem. 
Well now,he saidit seems, my dear friend, that 
something vexes you; you are ill, perhaps? That health, 
which ---- 
Excellent, my dear friend; better than ever. I could kill 
an ox with a blow of my fist.
Well, then, family affairs, perhaps?
Family! I have, happily, only myself in the world to care 
for.
But what makes you sigh?
My dear fellow,replied Porthosto be candid with you, I 
am not happy.
You are not happy, Porthos? You who have chateau, meadows, 
mountains, woods -- you who have forty thousand francs a 
year -- you -- are -- not -- happy?
My dear friend, all those things I have, but I am a hermit 
in the midst of superfluity.
Surrounded, I suppose, only by clodhoppers, with whom you 
could not associate.
Porthos turned rather pale and drank off a large glass of 
wine. 
No; but just think, there are paltry country squires who 
have all some title or another and pretend to go back as far 
as Charlemagne, or at least to Hugh Capet. When I first came 
here; being the last comer, it was for me to make the first 
advances. I made them, but you know, my dear friend, Madame 
du Vallon ---- 
Porthosin pronouncing these wordsseemed to gulp down 
something. 
Madame du Vallon was of doubtful gentility. She had, in her 
first marriage -- I don't think, D'Artagnan, I am telling 
you anything new -- married a lawyer; they thought that 
`nauseous;' you can understand that's a word bad enough to 
make one kill thirty thousand men. I have killed two, which 
has made people hold their tongues, but has not made me 
their friend. So that I have no society; I live alone; I am 
sick of it -- my mind preys on itself.
D'Artagnan smiled. He now saw where the breastplate was 
weakand prepared the blow. 
But now,he saidthat you are a widower, your wife's 
connection cannot injure you.
Yes, but understand me; not being of a race of historic 
fame, like the De Courcys, who were content to be plain 
sirs, or the Rohans, who didn't wish to be dukes, all these 
people, who are all either vicomtes or comtes go before me 
at church in all the ceremonies, and I can say nothing to 
them. Ah! If I only were a ---- 
A baron, don't you mean?cried D'Artagnanfinishing his 
friend's sentence. 
Ah!cried Porthos; "would I were but a baron!" 
Well, my friend, I am come to give you this very title 
which you wish for so much.
Porthos gave a start that shook the room; two or three 
bottles fell and were broken. Musqueton ran thitherhearing 
the noise. 
Porthos waved his hand to Musqueton to pick up the bottles. 
I am glad to see,said D'Artagnanthat you have still 
that honest lad with you.
He is my steward,replied Porthos; "he will never leave 
me. Go away nowMouston." 
So he's called Mouston,thought D'Artagnan; "'tis too long 
a word to pronounce `Musqueton.'" 
Well,he said aloudlet us resume our conversation 
later, your people may suspect something; there may be spies 
about. You can suppose, Porthos, that what I have to say 
relates to most important matters.
Devil take them; let us walk in the park,answered 
Porthosfor the sake of digestion.
Egad,said D'Artagnanthe park is like everything else 
and there are as many fish in your pond as rabbits in your 
warren; you are a happy man, my friend since you have not 
only retained your love of the chase, but acquired that of 
fishing.
My friend,replied PorthosI leave fishing to Musqueton, 
-- it is a vulgar pleasure, -- but I shoot sometimes; that 
is to say, when I am dull, and I sit on one of those marble 
seats, have my gun brought to me, my favorite dog, and I 
shoot rabbits.
Really, how very amusing!
Yes,replied Porthoswith a sigh; it is amusing." 
D'Artagnan now no longer counted the sighs. They were 
innumerable. 
However, what had you to say to me?he resumed; "let us 
return to that subject." 
With pleasure,replied D'Artagnan; "I musthoweverfirst 
frankly tell you that you must change your mode of life." 
How?
Go into harness again, gird on your sword, run after 
adventures, and leave as in old times a little of your fat 
on the roadside.
Ah! hang it!said Porthos. 
I see you are spoiled, dear friend; you are corpulent, your 
arm has no longer that movement of which the late cardinal's 
guards have so many proofs.
Ah! my fist is strong enough I swear,cried Porthos
extending a hand like a shoulder of mutton. 
So much the better.
Are we then to go to war?
By my troth, yes.
Against whom?
Are you a politician, friend?
Not in the least.
Are you for Mazarin or for the princes?
I am for no one.
That is to say, you are for us. Well, I tell you that I 
come to you from the cardinal.
This speech was heard by Porthos in the same sense as if it 
had still been in the year 1640 and related to the true 
cardinal. 
Ho! ho! What are the wishes of his eminence?
He wishes to have you in his service.
And who spoke to him of me?
Rochefort -- you remember him?
Yes, pardieu! It was he who gave us so much trouble and 
kept us on the road so much; you gave him three sword-wounds 
in three separate engagements.
But you know he is now our friend?
No, I didn't know that. So he cherishes no resentment?
You are mistaken, Porthos,said D'Artagnan. "It is I who 
cherish no resentment." 
Porthos didn't understand any too clearly; but then we know 
that understanding was not his strong point. "You say
then he continued, that the Count de Rochefort spoke of 
me to the cardinal?" 
Yes, and the queen, too.
The queen, do you say?
To inspire us with confidence she has even placed in 
Mazarin's hands that famous diamond -- you remember all 
about it -- that I once sold to Monsieur des Essarts and of 
which, I don't know how, she has regained possession.
But it seems to me,said Porthosthat she would have 
done much better if she had given it back to you.
So I think,replied D'Artagnan; "but kings and queens are 
strange beings and have odd fancies; neverthelesssince 
they are the ones who have riches and honorswe are devoted 
to them." 
Yes, we are devoted to them,repeated Porthos; "and you -to 
whom are you devoted now?" 
To the king, the queen, and to the cardinal; moreover, I 
have answered for your devotion also.
And you say that you have made certain conditions on my 
behalf?
Magnificent, my dear fellow, magnificent! In the first 
place you have plenty of money, haven't you? forty thousand 
francs income, I think you said.
Porthos began to be suspicious. "Eh! my friend said he, 
one never has too much money. Madame du Vallon left things 
in much disorder; I am not much of a hand at figuresso 
that I live almost from hand to mouth." 
He is afraid I have come to borrow money,thought 
D'Artagnan. "Ahmy friend said he, it is all the better 
if you are in difficulties." 
How is it all the better?
Yes, for his eminence will give you all that you want -land, 
money, and titles.
Ah! ah! ah!said Porthosopening his eyes at that last 
word. 
Under the other cardinal,continued D'Artagnanwe didn't 
know enough to make our profits; this, however, doesn't 
concern you, with your forty thousand francs income, the 
happiest man in the world, it seems to me.
Porthos sighed. 
At the same time,continued D'Artagnannotwithstanding 
your forty thousand francs a year, and perhaps even for the 
very reason that you have forty thousand francs a year, it 
seems to me that a little coronet would do well on your 
carriage, hey?
Yes indeed,said Porthos. 
Well, my dear friend, win it -- it is at the point of your 
sword. We shall not interfere with each other -- your object 
is a title; mine, money. If I can get enough to rebuild 
Artagnan, which my ancestors, impoverished by the Crusades, 
allowed to fall into ruins, and to buy thirty acres of land 
about it, that is all I wish. I shall retire and die 
tranquilly -- at home.
For my part,said PorthosI desire to be made a baron.
You shall be one.
And have you not seen any of our other friends?
Yes, I have seen Aramis.
And what does he wish? To be a bishop?
Aramis,answered D'Artagnanwho did not wish to undeceive 
PorthosAramis, fancy, has become a monk and a Jesuit, and 
lives like a bear. My offers did not arouse him, -- did not 
even tempt him.
So much the worse! He was a clever man. And Athos?
I have not yet seen him. Do you know where I shall find 
him?
Near Blois. He is called Bragelonne. Only imagine, my dear 
friend. Athos, who was of as high birth as the emperor and 
who inherits one estate which gives him the title of comte, 
what is he to do with all those dignities -- the Comte de la 
Fere, Comte de Bragelonne?
And he has no children with all these titles?
Ah!said PorthosI have heard that he had adopted a 
young man who resembles him greatly.
What, Athos? Our Athos, who was as virtuous as Scipio? Have 
you seen him? 
No." 
Well, I shall see him to-morrow and tell him about you; but 
I'm afraid, entre nous, that his liking for wine has aged 
and degraded him.
Yes, he used to drink a great deal,replied Porthos. 
And then he was older than any of us,added D'Artagnan. 
Some years only. His gravity made him look older than he 
was.
Well then, if we can get Athos, all will be well. If we 
cannot, we will do without him. We two are worth a dozen.
Yes,said Porthossmiling at the remembrance of his 
former exploits; "but we fouraltogetherwould be equal to 
thirty-sixmore especially as you say the work will not be 
child's play. Will it last long?" 
By'r Lady! two or three years perhaps.
So much the better,cried Porthos. "You have no ideamy 
friendhow my bones ache since I came here. Sometimes on a 
SundayI take a ride in the fields and on the property of 
my neighboursin order to pick up a nice little quarrel
which I am really in want ofbut nothing happens. Either 
they respect or they fear mewhich is more likelybut they 
let me trample down the clover with my dogsinsult and 
obstruct every oneand I come back still more weary and 
low-spiritedthat's all. At any ratetell me: there's more 
chance of fighting in Parisis there not?" 
In that respect, my dear friend, it's delightful. No more 
edicts, no more of the cardinal's guards, no more De 
Jussacs, nor other bloodhounds. I'Gad! underneath a lamp in 
an inn, anywhere, they ask `Are you one of the Fronde?' They 
unsheathe, and that's all that is said. The Duke de Guise 
killed Monsieur de Coligny in the Place Royale and nothing 
was said of it.
Ah, things go on gaily, then,said Porthos. 
Besides which, in a short time,resumed D'ArtagnanWe 
shall have set battles, cannonades, conflagrations and there 
will be great variety.
Well, then, I decide.
I have your word, then?
Yes, 'tis given. I shall fight heart and soul for Mazarin; 
but ---- 
But?
But he must make me a baron.
Zounds!said D'Artagnanthat's settled already; I will 
be responsible for the barony.
On this promise being givenPorthoswho had never doubted 
his friend's assuranceturned back with him toward the 
castle. 
In which it is shown that if Porthos was discontented with 
his ConditionMusqueton was completely satisfied with his. 
As they returned toward the castleD'Artagnan thought of 
the miseries of poor human naturealways dissatisfied with 
what it hasever desirous of what it has not. 
In the position of PorthosD'Artagnan would have been 
perfectly happy; and to make Porthos contented there was 
wanting -- what? five letters to put before his three names
a tiny coronet to paint upon the panels of his carriage! 
I shall pass all my life,thought D'Artagnanin seeking 
for a man who is really contented with his lot.
Whilst making this reflectionchance seemedas it wereto 
give him the lie direct. When Porthos had left him to give 
some orders he saw Musqueton approaching. The face of the 
stewarddespite one slight shade of carelight as a summer 
cloudseemed a physiognomy of absolute felicity. 
Here is what I am looking for,thought D'Artagnan; "but 
alas! the poor fellow does not know the purpose for which I 
am here." 
He then made a sign for Musqueton to come to him. 
Sir,said the servantI have a favour to ask you.
Speak out, my friend.
I am afraid to do so. Perhaps you will think, sir, that 
prosperity has spoiled me?
Art thou happy, friend?asked D'Artagnan. 
As happy as possible; and yet, sir, you may make me even 
happier than I am.
Well, speak, if it depends on me.
Oh, sir! it depends on you only.
I listen -- I am waiting to hear.
Sir, the favor I have to ask of you is, not to call me 
`Musqueton' but `Mouston.' Since I have had the honor of 
being my lord's steward I have taken the last name as more 
dignified and calculated to make my inferiors respect me. 
You, sir, know how necessary subordination is in any large 
establishment of servants.
D'Artagnan smiled; Porthos wanted to lengthen out his names
Musqueton to cut his short. 
Well, my dear Mouston,he saidrest satisfied. I will 
call thee Mouston; and if it makes thee happy I will not 
`tutoyer' you any longer.
Oh!cried Musquetonreddening with joy; "if you do me
sirsuch honorI shall be grateful all my life; it is too 
much to ask." 
Alas!thought D'Artagnanit is very little to offset the 
unexpected tribulations I am bringing to this poor devil who 
has so warmly welcomed me.
Will monsieur remain long with us?asked Musquetonwith a 
serene and glowing countenance. 
I go to-morrow, my friend,replied D'Artagnan. 
Ah, monsieur,said Musquetonthen you have come here 
only to awaken our regrets.
I fear that is true,said D'Artagnanin a low tone. 
D'Artagnan was secretly touched with remorsenot at 
inducing Porthos to enter into schemes in which his life and 
fortune would be in jeopardyfor Porthosin the title of 
baronhad his object and reward; but poor Musquetonwhose 
only wish was to be called Mouston -- was it not cruel to 
snatch him from the delightful state of peace and plenty in 
which he was? 
He was thinking of these matters when Porthos summoned him 
to dinner. 
What! to dinner?said D'Artagnan. "What time is itthen?" 
Eh! why, it is after one o'clock.
Your home is a paradise, Porthos; one takes no note of 
time. I follow you, though I am not hungry.
Come, if one can't always eat, one can always drink -- a 
maxim of poor Athos, the truth of which I have discovered 
since I began to be lonely.
D'Artagnanwho as a Gasconwas inclined to sobriety
seemed not so sure as his friend of the truth of Athos's 
maximbut he did his best to keep up with his host. 
Meanwhile his misgivings in regard to Musqueton recurred to 
his mind and with greater force because Musquetonthough he 
did not himself wait on the tablewhich would have been 
beneath him in his new positionappeared at the door from 
time to time and evinced his gratitude to D'Artagnan by the 
quality of the wine he directed to be served. Therefore
whenat dessertupon a sign from D'ArtagnanPorthos had 
sent away his servants and the two friends were alone: 
Porthos,said D'Artagnanwho will attend you in your 
campaigns?
Why,replied PorthosMouston, of course.
This was a blow to D'Artagnan. He could already see the 
intendant's beaming smile change to a contortion of grief. 
But,he saidMouston is not so young as he was, my dear 
fellow; besides, he has grown fat and perhaps has lost his 
fitness for active service.
That may be true,replied Porthos; "but I am used to him
and besideshe wouldn't be willing to let me go without 
himhe loves me so much." 
Oh, blind self-love!thought D'Artagnan. 
And you,asked Porthoshaven't you still in your service 
your old lackey, that good, that brave, that intelligent 
---what, then, is his name?
Planchet -- yes, I have found him again, but he is lackey 
no longer.
What is he, then?
With his sixteen hundred francs -- you remember, the 
sixteen hundred francs he earned at the siege of La Rochelle 
by carrying a letter to Lord de Winter -- he has set up a 
little shop in the Rue des Lombards and is now a 
confectioner.
Ah, he is a confectioner in the Rue des Lombards! How does 
it happen, then, that he is in your service?
He has been guilty of certain escapades and fears he may be 
disturbed.And the musketeer narrated to his friend 
Planchet's adventure. 
Well,said Porthosif any one had told you in the old 
times that the day would come when Planchet would rescue 
Rochefort and that you would protect him in it ---- 
I should not have believed him; but men are changed by 
events.
There is nothing truer than that,said Porthos; "but what 
does not changeor changes for the betteris wine. Taste 
of this; it is a Spanish wine which our friend Athos thought 
much of." 
At that moment the steward came in to consult his master 
upon the proceedings of the next day and also with regard to 
the shooting party which had been proposed. 
Tell me, Mouston,said Porthosare my arms in good 
condition?
Your arms, my lord -- what arms?
Zounds! my weapons.
What weapons?
My military weapons.
Yes, my lord; at any rate, I think so.
Make sure of it, and if they want it, have them burnished 
up. Which is my best cavalry horse?
Vulcan.
And the best hack?
Bayard.
What horse dost thou choose for thyself?
I like Rustaud, my lord; a good animal, whose paces suit 
me.
Strong, think'sthou?" 
Half Norman, half Mecklenburger; will go night and day.
That will do for us. See to these horses. Polish up or make 
some one else polish my arms. Then take pistols with thee 
and a hunting-knife.
Are we then going to travel, my lord?asked Musqueton
rather uneasy. 
Something better still, Mouston.
An expedition, sir?asked the stewardwhose roses began 
to change into lilies. 
We are going to return to the service, Mouston,replied 
Porthosstill trying to restore his mustache to the 
military curl it had long lost. 
Into the service -- the king's service?Musqueton 
trembled; even his fatsmooth cheeks shook as he spokeand 
he looked at D'Artagnan with an air of reproach; he 
staggeredand his voice was almost choked. 
Yes and no. We shall serve in a campaign, seek out all 
sorts of adventures -- return, in short, to our former 
life.
These last words fell on Musqueton like a thunderbolt. It 
was those very terrible old days that made the present so 
excessively delightfuland the blow was so great he rushed 
outovercomeand forgot to shut the door. 
The two friends remained alone to speak of the future and to 
build castles in the air. The good wine which Musqueton had 
placed before them traced out in glowing drops to D'Artagnan 
a fine perspectiveshining with quadruples and pistoles
and showed to Porthos a blue ribbon and a ducal mantle; they 
werein factasleep on the table when the servants came to 
light them to their bed. 
Musqueton washoweversomewhat consoled by D'Artagnanwho 
the next day told him that in all probability war would 
always be carried on in the heart of Paris and within reach 
of the Chateau du Vallonwhich was near Corbeilor 
Bracieuxwhich was near Melunand of Pierrefondswhich 
was between Compiegne and Villars-Cotterets. 
But -- formerly -- it appears,began Musqueton timidly. 
Oh!said D'Artagnanwe don't now make war as we did 
formerly. To-day it's a sort of diplomatic arrangement; ask 
Planchet.
Musqueton inquiredthereforethe state of the case of his 
old friendwho confirmed the statement of D'Artagnan. 
But,he addedin this war prisoners stand a chance of 
being hung.
The deuce they do!said Musqueton; "I think I should like 
the siege of Rochelle better than this warthen!" 
Porthosmeantimeasked D'Artagnan to give him his 
instructions how to proceed on his journey. 
Four days,replied his friendare necessary to reach 
Blois; one day to rest there; three or four days to return 
to Paris. Set out, therefore, in a week, with your suite, 
and go to the Hotel de la Chevrette, Rue Tiquetonne, and 
there await me.
That's agreed,said Porthos. 
As to myself, I shall go around to see Athos; for though I 
don't think his aid worth much, one must with one's friends 
observe all due politeness,said D'Artagnan. 
The friends then took leave of each other on the very border 
of the estate of Pierrefondsto which Porthos escorted his 
friend. 
At least,D'Artagnan said to himselfas he took the road 
to Villars-Cotteretsat least I shall not be alone in my 
undertaking. That devil, Porthos, is a man of prodigious 
strength; still, if Athos joins us, well, we shall be three 
of us to laugh at Aramis, that little coxcomb with his too 
good luck.
At Villars-Cotterets he wrote to the cardinal: 
My Lord, -- I have already one man to offer to your 
eminence, and he is well worth twenty men. I am just setting 
out for Blois. The Comte de la Fere inhabits the Castle of 
Bragelonne, in the environs of that city.
Two Angelic Faces. 
The road was longbut the horses upon which D'Artagnan and 
Planchet rode had been refreshed in the well supplied 
stables of the Lord of Bracieux; the master and servant rode 
side by sideconversing as they wentfor D'Artagnan had by 
degrees thrown off the master and Planchet had entirely 
ceased to assume the manners of a servant. He had been 
raised by circumstances to the rank of a confidant to his 
master. It was many years since D'Artagnan had opened his 
heart to any one; it happenedhoweverthat these two men
on meeting againassimilated perfectly. Planchet was in 
truth no vulgar companion in these new adventures; he was a 
man of uncommonly sound sense. Without courting danger he 
never shrank from an encounter; in shorthe had been a 
soldier and arms ennoble a man; it wasthereforeon the 
footing of friends that D'Artagnan and Planchet arrived in 
the neighborhood of Blois. 
Going alongD'Artagnanshaking his headsaid: 
I know that my going to Athos is useless and absurd; but 
still I owe this courtesy to my old friend, a man who had in 
him material for the most noble and generous of characters.
Oh, Monsieur Athos was a noble gentleman,said Planchet
was he not? Scattering money round about him as Heaven 
sprinkles rain. Do you remember, sir, that duel with the 
Englishman in the inclosure des Carmes? Ah! how lofty, how 
magnificent Monsieur Athos was that day, when he said to his 
adversary: `You have insisted on knowing my name, sir; so 
much the worse for you, since I shall be obliged to kill 
you.' I was near him, those were his exact words, when he 
stabbed his foe as he said he would, and his adversary fell 
without saying, `Oh!' 'Tis a noble gentleman -- Monsieur 
Athos.
Yes, true as Gospel,said D'Artagnan; "but one single 
fault has swallowed up all these fine qualities." 
I remember well,said Planchethe was fond of drinking 
-- in truth, he drank, but not as other men drink. One 
seemed, as he raised the wine to his lips, to hear him say, 
`Come, juice of the grape, and chase away my sorrows.' And 
how he used to break the stem of a glass or the neck of a 
bottle! There was no one like him for that.
And now,replied D'Artagnanbehold the sad spectacle 
that awaits us. This noble gentleman with his lofty glance, 
this handsome cavalier, so brilliant in feats of arms that 
every one was surprised that he held in his hand a sword 
only instead of a baton of command! Alas! we shall find him 
changed into a broken down old man, with garnet nose and 
eyes that slobber; we shall find him extended on some lawn, 
whence he will look at us with a languid eye and 
peradventure will not recognize us. God knows, Planchet, 
that I should fly from a sight so sad if I did not wish to 
show my respect for the illustrious shadow of what was once 
the Comte de la Fere, whom we loved so much.
Planchet shook his head and said nothing. It was evident 
that he shared his master's apprehensions. 
And then,resumed D'Artagnanto this decrepitude is 
probably added poverty, for he must have neglected the 
little that he had, and the dirty scoundrel, Grimaud, more 
taciturn than ever and still more drunken than his master -stay, 
Planchet, it breaks my heart to merely think of it.
I fancy myself there and that I see him staggering and hear 
him stammering,said Planchetin a piteous tonebut at 
all events we shall soon know the real state of things, for 
I imagine that those lofty walls, now turning ruby in the 
setting sun, are the walls of Blois.
Probably; and those steeples, pointed and sculptured, that 
we catch a glimpse of yonder, are similar to those that I 
have heard described at Chambord.
At this moment one of those heavy wagonsdrawn by bullocks
which carry the wood cut in the fine forests of the country 
to the ports of the Loirecame out of a byroad full of ruts 
and turned on that which the two horsemen were following. A 
man carrying a long switch with a nail at the end of it
with which he urged on his slow teamwas walking with the 
cart. 
Ho! friend,cried Planchet. 
What's your pleasure, gentlemen?replied the peasantwith 
a purity of accent peculiar to the people of that district 
and which might have put to shame the cultured denizens of 
the Sorbonne and the Rue de l'Universite. 
We are looking for the house of Monsieur de la Fere,said 
D'Artagnan. 
The peasant took off his hat on hearing this revered name. 
Gentlemen,he saidthe wood that I am carting is his; I 
cut it in his copse and I am taking it to the chateau.
D'Artagnan determined not to question this man; he did not 
wish to hear from another what he had himself said to 
Planchet. 
The chateau!he said to himselfwhat chateau? Ah, I 
understand! Athos is not a man to be thwarted; he, like 
Porthos, has obliged his peasantry to call him `my lord,' 
and to dignify his pettifogging place by the name of 
chateau. He had a heavy hand -- dear old Athos -- after 
drinking.
D'Artagnanafter asking the man the right waycontinued 
his routeagitated in spite of himself at the idea of 
seeing once more that singular man whom he had so truly 
loved and who had contributed so much by advice and example 
to his education as a gentleman. He checked by degrees the 
speed of his horse and went onhis head drooping as if in 
deep thought. 
Soonas the road turnedthe Chateau de la Valliere 
appeared in view; thena quarter of a mile beyonda white 
houseencircled in sycamoreswas visible at the farther 
end of a group of treeswhich spring had powdered with a 
snow of flowers. 
On beholding this houseD'Artagnancalm as he was in 
generalfelt an unusual disturbance within his heart -- so 
powerful during the whole course of life are the 
recollections of youth. He proceededneverthelessand came 
opposite to an iron gateornamented in the taste of the 
period. 
Through the gate was seen kitchen-gardenscarefully 
attended toa spacious courtyardin which neighed several 
horses held by valets in various liveriesand a carriage
drawn by two horses of the country. 
We are mistaken,said D'Artagnan. "This cannot be the 
establishment of Athos. Good heavens! suppose he is dead and 
that this property now belongs to some one who bears his 
name. AlightPlanchetand inquirefor I confess that I 
have scarcely courage so to do." 
Planchet alighted. 
Thou must add,said D'Artagnanthat a gentleman who is 
passing by wishes to have the honor of paying his respects 
to the Comte de la Fere, and if thou art satisfied with what 
thou hearest, then mention my name!
Planchetleading his horse by the bridledrew near to the 
gate and rang the belland immediately a servant-man with 
white hair and of erect staturenotwithstanding his age
presented himself. 
Does Monsieur le Comte de la Fere live here?asked 
Planchet. 
Yes, monsieur, it is here he lives,the servant replied to 
Planchetwho was not in livery. 
A nobleman retired from service, is he not?
Yes.
And who had a lackey named Grimaud?persisted Planchet
who had prudently considered that he couldn't have too much 
information. 
Monsieur Grimaud is absent from the chateau for the time 
being,said the servitorwholittle used as he was to 
such inquiriesbegan to examine Planchet from head to foot. 
Then,cried Planchet joyouslyI see well that it is the 
same Comte de la Fere whom we seek. Be good enough to open 
to me, for I wish to announce to monsieur le comte that my 
master, one of his friends, is here, and wishes to greet 
him.
Why didn't you say so?said the servitoropening the 
gate. "But where is your master?" 
He is following me.
The servitor opened the gate and walked before Planchetwho 
made a sign to D'Artagnan. The latterhis heart palpitating 
more than everentered the courtyard without dismounting. 
Whilst Planchet was standing on the steps before the house 
he heard a voice say: 
Well, where is this gentleman and why do they not bring him 
here?
This voicethe sound of which reached D'Artagnan
reawakened in his heart a thousand sentimentsa thousand 
recollections that he had forgotten. He vaulted hastily from 
his horsewhilst Planchetwith a smile on his lips
advanced toward the master of the house. 
But I know you, my lad,said Athosappearing on the 
threshold. 
Oh, yes, monsieur le comte, you know me and I know you. I 
am Planchet -- Planchet, whom you know well.But the honest 
servant could say no moreso much was he overcome by this 
unexpected interview. 
What, Planchet, is Monsieur d'Artagnan here?
Here I am, my friend, dear Athos!cried D'Artagnanin a 
faltering voice and almost staggering from agitation. 
At these words a visible emotion was expressed on the 
beautiful countenance and calm features of Athos. He rushed 
toward D'Artagnan with eyes fixed upon him and clasped him 
in his arms. D'Artagnanequally movedpressed him also 
closely to himwhilst tears stood in his eyes. Athos then 
took him by the hand and led him into the drawing-room
where there were several people. Every one arose. 
I present to you,he saidMonsieur le Chevalier 
D'Artagnan, lieutenant of his majesty's musketeers, a 
devoted friend and one of the most excellent, brave 
gentlemen that I have ever known.
D'Artagnan received the compliments of those who were 
present in his own wayand whilst the conversation became 
general he looked earnestly at Athos. 
Strange! Athos was scarcely aged at all! His fine eyesno 
longer surrounded by that dark line which nights of 
dissipation pencil too infalliblyseemed largermore 
liquid than ever. His facea little elongatedhad gained 
in calm dignity what it had lost in feverish excitement. His 
handalways wonderfully beautiful and strongwas set off 
by a ruffle of lacelike certain hands by Titian and 
Vandyck. He was less stiff than formerly. His longdark 
hairsoftly powdered here and there with silver tendrils
fell elegantly over his shoulders in wavy curls; his voice 
was still youthfulas if belonging to a Hercules of 
twenty-fiveand his magnificent teethwhich he had 
preserved white and soundgave an indescribable charm to 
his smile. 
Meanwhile the guestsseeing that the two friends were 
longing to be aloneprepared to departwhen a noise of 
dogs barking resounded through the courtyard and many 
persons said at the same moment: 
Ah! 'tis Raoul, who is come home.
Athosas the name of Raoul was pronouncedlooked 
inquisitively at D'Artagnanin order to see if any 
curiosity was painted on his face. But D'Artagnan was still 
in confusion and turned around almost mechanically when a 
fine young man of fifteen years of agedressed simplybut 
in perfect tasteentered the roomraisingas he camehis 
hatadorned with a long plume of scarlet feathers. 
NeverthelessD'Artagnan was struck by the appearance of 
this new personage. It seemed to explain to him the change 
in Athos; a resemblance between the boy and the man 
explained the mystery of this regenerated existence. He 
remained listening and gazing. 
Here you are, home again, Raoul,said the comte. 
Yes, sir,replied the youthwith deep respectand I 
have performed the commission that you gave me.
But what's the matter, Raoul?said Athosvery anxiously. 
You are pale and agitated.
Sir,replied the young manit is on account of an 
accident which has happened to our little neighbor.
To Mademoiselle de la Valliere?asked Athosquickly. 
What is it?cried many persons present. 
She was walking with her nurse Marceline, in the place 
where the woodmen cut the wood, when, passing on horseback, 
I stopped. She saw me also and in trying to jump from the 
end of a pile of wood on which she had mounted, the poor 
child fell and was not able to rise again. I fear that she 
has badly sprained her ankle.
Oh, heavens!cried Athos. "And her motherMadame de 
Saint-Remyhave they yet told her of it?" 
No, sir, Madame de Saint-Remy is at Blois with the Duchess 
of Orleans. I am afraid that what was first done was 
unskillful, if not worse than useless. I am come, sir, to 
ask your advice.
Send directly to Blois, Raoul; or, rather, take horse and 
ride immediately yourself.
Raoul bowed. 
But where is Louise?asked the comte. 
I have brought her here, sir, and I have deposited her in 
charge of Charlotte, who, till better advice comes, has 
bathed the foot in cold well-water.
The guests now all took leave of Athosexcepting the old 
Duc de Barbewhoas an old friend of the family of La 
Vallierewent to see little Louise and offered to take her 
to Blois in his carriage. 
You are right, sir,said Athos. "She will be the sooner 
with her mother. As for youRaoulI am sure it is your 
faultsome giddiness or folly." 
No, sir, I assure you,muttered Raoulit is not.
Oh, no, no, I declare it is not!cried the young girl
while Raoul turned pale at the idea of his being perhaps the 
cause of her disaster. 
Nevertheless, Raoul, you must go to Blois and you must make 
your excuses and mine to Madame de Saint-Remy.
The youth looked pleased. He again took in his strong arms 
the little girlwhose pretty golden head and smiling face 
rested on his shoulderand placed her gently in the 
carriage; then jumping on his horse with the elegance of a 
first-rate esquireafter bowing to Athos and D'Artagnanhe 
went off close by the door of the carriageon somebody 
inside of which his eyes were riveted. 
The Castle of Bragelonne. 
Whilst this scene was going onD'Artagnan remained with 
open mouth and a confused gaze. Everything had turned out so 
differently from what he expected that he was stupefied with 
wonder. 
Athoswho had been observing him and guessing his thoughts
took his arm and led him into the garden. 
Whilst supper is being prepared,he saidsmilingyou 
will not, my friend, be sorry to have the mystery which so 
puzzles you cleared up.
True, monsieur le comte,replied D'Artagnanwho felt that 
by degrees Athos was resuming that great influence which 
aristocracy had over him. 
Athos smiled. 
First and foremost, dear D'Artagnan, we have no title such 
as count here. When I call you `chevalier,' it is in 
presenting you to my guests, that they may know who you are. 
But to you, D'Artagnan, I am, I hope, still dear Athos, your 
comrade, your friend. Do you intend to stand on ceremony 
because you are less attached to me than you were?
Oh! God forbid!
Then let us be as we used to be; let us be open with each 
other. You are surprised at what you see here?
Extremely.
But above all things, I am a marvel to you?
I confess it.
I am still young, am I not? Should you not have known me 
again, in spite of my eight-and-forty years of age?
On the contrary, I do not find you the same person at all.
I understand,cried Athoswith a gentle blush. 
Everything, D'Artagnan, even folly, has its limit.
Then your means, it appears, are improved; you have a 
capital house -- your own, I presume? You have a park, and 
horses, servants.
Athos smiled. 
Yes, I inherited this little property when I quitted the 
army, as I told you. The park is twenty acres -- twenty, 
comprising kitchen-gardens and a common. I have two horses, 
-- I do not count my servant's bobtailed nag. My sporting 
dogs consist of two pointers, two harriers and two setters. 
But then all this extravagance is not for myself,added 
Athoslaughing. 
Yes, I see, for the young man Raoul,said D'Artagnan. 
You guess aright, my friend; this youth is an orphan, 
deserted by his mother, who left him in the house of a poor 
country priest. I have brought him up. It is Raoul who has 
worked in me the change you see; I was dried up like a 
miserable tree, isolated, attached to nothing on earth; it 
was only a deep affection that could make me take root again 
and drag me back to life. This child has caused me to 
recover what I had lost. I had no longer any wish to live 
for myself, I have lived for him. I have corrected the vices 
that I had; I have assumed the virtues that I had not. 
Precept something, but example more. I may be mistaken, but 
I believe that Raoul will be as accomplished a gentleman as 
our degenerate age could display.
The remembrance of Milady recurred to D'Artagnan. 
And you are happy?he said to his friend. 
As happy as it is allowed to one of God's creatures to be 
on this earth; but say out all you think, D'Artagnan, for 
you have not yet done so.
You are too bad, Athos; one can hide nothing from you,
answered D'Artagnan. "I wished to ask you if you ever feel 
any emotions of terror resembling ---- " 
Remorse! I finish your phrase. Yes and no. I do not feel 
remorse, because that woman, I profoundly hold, deserved her 
punishment. Had she one redeeming trait? I doubt it. I do 
not feel remorse, because had we allowed her to live she 
would have persisted in her work of destruction. But I do 
not mean, my friend that we were right in what we did. 
Perhaps all blood demands some expiation. Hers had been 
accomplished; it remains, possibly, for us to accomplish 
ours.
I have sometimes thought as you do, Athos.
She had a son, that unhappy woman?
Yes.
Have you ever heard of him?
Never.
He must be about twenty-three years of age,said Athosin 
a low tone. "I often think of that young manD'Artagnan." 
Strange! for I had forgotten him,said the lieutenant. 
Athos smiled; the smile was melancholy. 
And Lord de Winter -- do you know anything about him?
I know that he is in high favor with Charles I.
The fortunes of that monarch now are at low water. He shed 
the blood of Strafford; that confirms what I said just now 
-- blood will have blood. And the queen?
What queen?
Madame Henrietta of England, daughter of Henry IV.
She is at the Louvre, as you know.
Yes, and I hear in bitter poverty. Her daughter, during the 
severest cold, was obliged for want of fire to remain in 
bed. Do you grasp that?said Athosshrugging his 
shoulders; "the daughter of Henry IV. shivering for want of 
a fagot! Why did she not ask from any one of us a home 
instead of from Mazarin? She should have wanted nothing." 
Have you ever seen the queen of England?inquired 
D'Artagnan. 
No; but my mother, as a child, saw her. Did I ever tell you 
that my mother was lady of honor to Marie de Medici 
Never. You know, Athos, you never spoke much of such 
matters.
Ah, mon Dieu, yes, you are right,Athos replied; "but then 
there must be some occasion for speaking." 
Porthos wouldn't have waited for it so patiently,said 
D'Artagnanwith a smile. 
Every one according to his nature, my dear D'Artagnan. 
Porthos, in spite of a touch of vanity, has many excellent 
qualities. Have you seen him?
I left him five days ago,said D'Artagnanand he 
portrayed with Gascon wit and sprightliness the magnificence 
of Porthos in his Chateau of Pierrefonds; nor did he neglect 
to launch a few arrows of wit at the excellent Monsieur 
Mouston. 
I sometimes wonder,replied Athossmiling at that gayety 
which recalled the good old daysthat we could form an 
association of men who would be, after twenty years of 
separation, still so closely bound together. Friendship 
throws out deep roots in honest hearts, D'Artagnan. Believe 
me, it is only the evil-minded who deny friendship; they 
cannot understand it. And Aramis?
I have seen him also,said D'Artagnan; "but he seemed to 
me cold." 
Ah, you have seen Aramis?said Athosturning on 
D'Artagnan a searching look. "Whyit is a veritable 
pilgrimagemy dear friendthat you are making to the 
Temple of Friendshipas the poets would say." 
Why, yes,replied D'Artagnanwith embarrassment. 
Aramis, you know,continued Athosis naturally cold, and 
then he is always involved in intrigues with women.
I believe he is at this moment in a very complicated one,
said D'Artagnan. 
Athos made no reply. 
He is not curious,thought D'Artagnan. 
Athos not only failed to replyhe even changed the subject 
of conversation. 
You see,said hecalling D'Artagnan's attention to the 
fact that they had come back to the chateau after an hour's 
walkwe have made a tour of my domains.
All is charming and everything savors of nobility,replied 
D'Artagnan. 
At this instant they heard the sound of horses' feet. 
'Tis Raoul who has come back,said Athos; "and we can now 
hear how the poor child is." 
In factthe young man appeared at the gatecovered with 
dustentered the courtyardleaped from his horsewhich he 
consigned to the charge of a groomand then went to greet 
the count and D'Artagnan. 
Monsieur,said Athosplacing his hand on D'Artagnan's 
shouldermonsieur is the Chevalier D'Artagnan of whom you 
have often heard me speak, Raoul.
Monsieur,said the young mansaluting again and more 
profoundlymonsieur le comte has pronounced your name 
before me as an example whenever he wished to speak of an 
intrepid and generous gentleman.
That little compliment could not fail to move D'Artagnan. He 
extended a hand to Raoul and said: 
My young friend, all the praises that are given me should 
be passed on to the count here; for he has educated me in 
everything and it is not his fault that his pupil profited 
so little from his instructions. But he will make it up in 
you I am sure. I like your manner, Raoul, and your 
politeness has touched me.
Athos was more delighted than can be told. He looked at 
D'Artagnan with an expression of gratitude and then bestowed 
on Raoul one of those strange smilesof which children are 
so proud when they receive them. 
Now,said D'Artagnan to himselfnoticing that silent play 
of countenanceI am sure of it.
I hope the accident has been of no consequence?
They don't yet know, sir, on account of the swelling; but 
the doctor is afraid some tendon has been injured.
At this moment a little boyhalf peasanthalf foot-boy
came to announce supper. 
Athos led his guest into a dining-room of moderate sizethe 
windows of which opened on one side on a gardenon the 
other on a hot-house full of magnificent flowers. 
D'Artagnan glanced at the dinner service. The plate was 
magnificentoldand appertaining to the family. D'Artagnan 
stopped to look at a sideboard on which was a superb ewer of 
silver. 
That workmanship is divine!he exclaimed. 
Yes, a chef d'oeuvre of the great Florentine sculptor, 
Benvenuto Cellini,replied Athos. 
What battle does it represent?
That of Marignan, just at the point where one of my 
forefathers is offering his sword to Francis I., who has 
broken his. It was on that occasion that my ancestor, 
Enguerrand de la Fere, was made a knight of the Order of St. 
Michael; besides which, the king, fifteen years afterward, 
gave him also this ewer and a sword which you may have seen 
formerly in my house, also a lovely specimen of workmanship. 
Men were giants in those times,said Athos; "now we are 
pigmies in comparison. Let us sit down to supper. Call 
Charles he added, addressing the boy who waited. 
My good CharlesI particularly recommend to your care 
Planchetthe laquais of Monsieur D'Artagnan. He likes good 
wine; now you have the key of the cellar. He has slept a 
long time on a hard bedso he won't object to a soft one; 
take every care of himI beg of you." Charles bowed and 
retired. 
You think of everything,said D'Artagnan; "and I thank you 
for Planchetmy dear Athos." 
Raoul stared on hearing this name and looked at the count to 
be quite sure that it was he whom the lieutenant thus 
addressed. 
That name sounds strange to you,said Athossmiling; "it 
was my nom de guerre when Monsieur D'Artagnantwo other 
gallant friends and myself performed some feats of arms at 
the siege of La Rochelleunder the deceased cardinal and 
Monsieur de Bassompierre. My friend is still so kind as to 
address me by that old and well beloved appellationwhich 
makes my heart glad when I hear it." 
'Tis an illustrious name,said the lieutenantand had 
one day triumphal honors paid to it.
What do you mean, sir?inquired Raoul. 
You have not forgotten St. Gervais, Athos, and the napkin 
which was converted into a banner?and he then related to 
Raoul the story of the bastionand Raoul fancied he was 
listening to one of those deeds of arms belonging to days of 
chivalryso gloriously recounted by Tasso and Ariosto. 
D'Artagnan does not tell you, Raoul,said Athosin his 
turnthat he was reckoned one of the finest swordsmen of 
his time -- a knuckle of iron, a wrist of steel, a sure eye 
and a glance of fire; that's what his adversary met with. He 
was eighteen, only three years older than you are, Raoul, 
when I saw him set to work, pitted against tried men.
And did Monsieur D'Artagnan come off the conqueror?asked 
the young manwith glistening eye. 
I killed one man, if I recollect rightly,replied 
D'Artagnanwith a look of inquiry directed to Athos; 
another I disarmed or wounded, I don't remember which.
Wounded!said Athos; "it was a phenomenon of skill." 
The young man would willingly have prolonged this 
conversation far into the nightbut Athos pointed out to 
him that his guest must need repose. D'Artagnan would fain 
have declared that he was not fatiguedbut Athos insisted 
on his retiring to his chamberconducted thither by Raoul. 
Athos as a Diplomatist. 
D'Artagnan retired to bed -- not to sleepbut to think over 
all he had heard that evening. Being naturally goodhearted
and having had once a liking for Athoswhich had grown into 
a sincere friendshiphe was delighted at thus meeting a man 
full of intelligence and moral strengthinstead of a 
drunkard. He admitted without annoyance the continued 
superiority of Athos over himselfdevoid as he was of that 
jealousy which might have saddened a less generous 
disposition; he was delighted also that the high qualities 
of Athos appeared to promise favorably for his mission. 
Neverthelessit seemed to him that Athos was not in all 
respects sincere and frank. Who was the youth he had adopted 
and who bore so striking a resemblance to him? What could 
explain Athos's having re-entered the world and the extreme 
sobriety he had observed at table? The absence of Grimaud
whose name had never once been uttered by Athosgave 
D'Artagnan uneasiness. It was evident either that he no 
longer possessed the confidence of his friendor that Athos 
was bound by some invisible chainor that he had been 
forewarned of the lieutenant's visit. 
He could not help thinking of M. Rochefortwhom he had seen 
in Notre Dame; could De Rochefort have forestalled him with 
Athos? Againthe moderate fortune which Athos possessed
concealed as it wasso skillfullyseemed to show a regard 
for appearances and to betray a latent ambition which might 
be easily aroused. The clear and vigorous intellect of Athos 
would render him more open to conviction than a less able 
man would be. He would enter into the minister's schemes 
with the more ardorbecause his natural activity would be 
doubled by necessity. 
Resolved to seek an explanation on all these points on the 
following dayD'Artagnanin spite of his fatigueprepared 
for an attack and determined that it should take place after 
breakfast. He determined to cultivate the good-will of the 
youth Raoul andeither whilst fencing with him or when out 
shootingto extract from his simplicity some information 
which would connect the Athos of old times with the Athos of 
the present. But D'Artagnan at the same timebeing a man of 
extreme cautionwas quite aware what injury he should do 
himselfif by any indiscretion or awkwardness he should 
betray has manoeuvering to the experienced eye of Athos. 
Besidesto tell truthwhilst D'Artagnan was quite disposed 
to adopt a subtle course against the cunning of Aramis or 
the vanity of Porthoshe was ashamed to equivocate with 
Athostrue-heartedopen Athos. It seemed to him that if 
Porthos and Aramis deemed him superior to them in the arts 
of diplomacythey would like him all the better for it; but 
that Athoson the contrarywould despise him. 
Ah! why is not Grimaud, the taciturn Grimaud, here?
thought D'Artagnanthere are so many things his silence 
would have told me; with Grimaud silence was another form of 
eloquence!
There reigned a perfect stillness in the house. D'Artagnan 
had heard the door shut and the shutters barred; the dogs 
became in their turn silent. At last a nightingalelost in 
a thicket of shrubsin the midst of its most melodious 
cadences had fluted low and lower into stillness and fallen 
asleep. Not a sound was heard in the castleexcept of a 
footstep up and downin the chamber above -- as he 
supposedthe bedroom of Athos. 
He is walking about and thinking,thought D'Artagnan; "but 
of what? It is impossible to know; everything else might be 
guessedbut not that." 
At length Athos went to bedapparentlyfor the noise 
ceased. 
Silence and fatigue together overcame D'Artagnan and sleep 
overtook him also. He was nothowevera good sleeper. 
Scarcely had dawn gilded his window curtains when he sprang 
out of bed and opened the windows. Somebodyhe perceived
was in the courtyardmoving stealthily. True to his custom 
of never passing anything over that it was within his power 
to knowD'Artagnan looked out of the window and perceived 
the close red coat and brown hair of Raoul. 
The young man was opening the door of the stable. He then
with noiseless hastetook out the horse that he had ridden 
on the previous eveningsaddled and bridled it himself and 
led the animal into the alley to the right of the 
kitchen-gardenopened a side door which conducted him to a 
bridle roadshut it after himand D'Artagnan saw him pass 
by like a dartbendingas he wentbeneath the pendent 
flowery branches of maple and acacia. The roadas 
D'Artagnan had observedwas the way to Blois. 
So!thought the Gascon "here's a young blade who has 
already his love affairwho doesn't at all agree with Athos 
in his hatred to the fair sex. He's not going to huntfor 
he has neither dogs nor arms; he's not going on a message
for he goes secretly. Why does he go in secret? Is he afraid 
of me or of his father? for I am sure the count is his 
father. By Jove! I shall know about that soonfor I shall 
soon speak out to Athos." 
Day was now advanced; all the noises that had ceased the 
night before reawakenedone after the other. The bird on 
the branchthe dog in his kennelthe sheep in the field
the boats moored in the Loireevenbecame alive and vocal. 
The latterleaving the shoreabandoned themselves gaily to 
the current. The Gascon gave a last twirl to his mustachea 
last turn to his hairbrushedfrom habitthe brim of his 
hat with the sleeve of his doubletand went downstairs. 
Scarcely had he descended the last step of the threshold 
when he saw Athos bent down toward the groundas if he were 
looking for a crown-piece in the dust. 
Good-morning, my dear host,cried D'Artagnan. 
Good-day to you; have you slept well?
Excellently, Athos, but what are you looking for? You are 
perhaps a tulip fancier?
My dear friend, if I am, you must not laugh at me for being 
so. In the country people alter; one gets to like, without 
knowing it, all those beautiful objects that God causes to 
spring from the earth, which are despised in cities. I was 
looking anxiously for some iris roots I planted here, close 
to this reservoir, and which some one has trampled upon this 
morning. These gardeners are the most careless people in the 
world; in bringing the horse out to the water they've 
allowed him to walk over the border.
D'Artagnan began to smile. 
Ah! you think so, do you?
And he took his friend along the alleywhere a number of 
tracks like those which had trampled down the flowerbeds
were visible. 
Here are the horse's hoofs again, it seems, Athos,he said 
carelessly. 
Yes, indeed, the marks are recent.
Quite so,replied the lieutenant. 
Who went out this morning?Athos askeduneasily. "Has any 
horse got loose?" 
Not likely,answered the Gascon; "these marks are 
regular." 
Where is Raoul?asked Athos; "how is it that I have not 
seen him?" 
Hush!exclaimed D'Artagnanputting his finger on his 
lips; and he related what he had seenwatching Athos all 
the while. 
Ah, he's gone to Blois; the poor boy ---- 
Wherefore?
Ah, to inquire after the little La Valliere; she has 
sprained her foot, you know.
You think he has?
I am sure of it,said Athos; "don't you see that Raoul is 
in love?" 
Indeed! with whom -- with a child seven years old?
Dear friend, at Raoul's age the heart is so expansive that 
it must encircle one object or another, fancied or real. 
Well, his love is half real, half fanciful. She is the 
prettiest little creature in the world, with flaxen hair, 
blue eyes, -- at once saucy and languishing.
But what say you to Raoul's fancy?
Nothing -- I laugh at Raoul; but this first desire of the 
heart is imperious. I remember, just at his age, how deep in 
love I was with a Grecian statue which our good king, then 
Henry IV., gave my father, insomuch that I was mad with 
grief when they told me that the story of Pygmalion was 
nothing but a fable.
It is mere want of occupation. You do not make Raoul work, 
so he takes his own way of employing himself.
Exactly; therefore I think of sending him away from here.
You will be wise to do so.
No doubt of it; but it will break his heart. So long as 
three or four years ago he used to adorn and adore his 
little idol, whom he will some day fall in love with in 
right earnest if he remains here. The parents of little La 
Valliere have for a long time perceived and been amused at 
it; now they begin to look concerned.
Nonsense! However, Raoul must be diverted from this fancy. 
Send him away or you will never make a man of him.
I think I shall send him to Paris.
So!thought D'Artagnanand it seemed to him that the 
moment for attack had arrived. 
Suppose,he saidwe roughly chalk out a career for this 
young man. I wish to consult you about some thing.
Do so.
Do you think it is time for us to enter the service?
But are you not still in the service -- you, D'Artagnan?
I mean active service. Our former life, has it still no 
attractions for you? would you not be happy to begin anew in 
my society and in that of Porthos, the exploits of our 
youth?
Do you propose to me to do so, D'Artagnan?
Decidedly and honestly.
On whose side?asked Athosfixing his clearbenevolent 
glance on the countenance of the Gascon. 
Ah, devil take it, you speak in earnest ---- 
And must have a definite answer. Listen, D'Artagnan. There 
is but one person, or rather, one cause, to whom a man like 
me can be useful -- that of the king.
Exactly,answered the musketeer. 
Yes, but let us understand each other,returned Athos
seriously. "If by the cause of the king you mean that of 
Monsieur de Mazarinwe do not understand each other." 
I don't say exactly,answered the Gasconconfused. 
Come, D'Artagnan, don't let us play a sidelong game; your 
hesitation, your evasion, tells me at once on whose side you 
are; for that party no one dares openly to recruit, and when 
people recruit for it, it is with averted eyes and humble 
voice.
Ah! my dear Athos!
You know that I am not alluding to you; you are the pearl 
of brave, bold men. I speak of that spiteful and intriguing 
Italian -- of the pedant who has tried to put on his own 
head a crown which he stole from under a pillow -- of the 
scoundrel who calls his party the party of the king -- who 
wants to send the princes of the blood to prison, not daring 
to kill them, as our great cardinal -- our cardinal did -of 
the miser, who weighs his gold pieces and keeps the 
clipped ones for fear, though he is rich, of losing them at 
play next morning -- of the impudent fellow who insults the 
queen, as they say -- so much the worse for her -- and who 
is going in three months to make war upon us, in order that 
he may retain his pensions; is that the master whom you 
propose to me? I thank you, D'Artagnan.
You are more impetuous than you were,returned D'Artagnan. 
Age has warmed, not chilled your blood. Who informed you 
this was the master I propose to you? Devil take it,he 
muttered to himselfdon't let me betray my secrets to a 
man not inclined to entertain them.
Well, then,said Athoswhat are your schemes? what do 
you propose?
Zounds! nothing more than natural. You live on your estate, 
happy in golden mediocrity. Porthos has, perhaps, sixty 
thousand francs income. Aramis has always fifty duchesses 
quarreling over the priest, as they quarreled formerly over 
the musketeer; but I -- what have I in the world? I have 
worn my cuirass these twenty years, kept down in this 
inferior rank, without going forward or backward, hardly 
half living. In fact, I am dead. Well! when there is some 
idea of being resuscitated, you say he's a scoundrel, an 
impudent fellow, a miser, a bad master! By Jove! I am of 
your opinion, but find me a better one or give me the means 
of living.
Athos was for a few moments thoughtful. 
Good! D'Artagnan is for Mazarin,he said to himself. 
From that moment he grew very guarded. 
On his side D'Artagnan became more cautious also. 
You spoke to me,Athos resumedof Porthos; have you 
persuaded him to seek his fortune? But he has wealth, I 
believe, already.
Doubtless he has. But such is man, we always want something 
more than we already have.
What does Porthos wish for?
To be a baron.
Ah, true! I forgot,said Athoslaughing. 
'Tis true!thought the Gasconwhere has he heard it? 
Does he correspond with Aramis? Ah! if I knew that he did I 
should know all.
The conversation was interrupted by the entrance of Raoul. 
Is our little neighbor worse?asked D'Artagnanseeing a 
look of vexation on the face of the youth. 
Ah, sir!replied Raoulher fall is a very serious one, 
and without any ostensible injury, the physician fears she 
will be lame for life.
This is terrible,said Athos. 
And what makes me all the more wretched, sir, is, that I 
was the cause of this misfortune.
How so?asked Athos. 
It was to run to meet me that she leaped from that pile of 
wood.
There's only one remedy, dear Raoul -- that is, to marry 
her as a compensation remarked D'Artagnan. 
Ah, sir!answered Raoulyou joke about a real 
misfortune; that is cruel, indeed.
The good understanding between the two friends was not in 
the least altered by the morning's skirmish. They 
breakfasted with a good appetitelooking now and then at 
poor Raoulwho with moist eyes and a full heartscarcely 
ate at all. 
After breakfast two letters arrived for Athoswho read them 
with profound attentionwhilst D'Artagnan could not 
restrain himself from jumping up several times on seeing him 
read these epistlesin one of whichthere being at the 
time a very strong lighthe perceived the fine writing of 
Aramis. The other was in a feminine handlongand crossed. 
Come,said D'Artagnan to Raoulseeing that Athos wished 
to be alonecome, let us take a turn in the fencing 
gallery; that will amuse you.
And they both went into a low room where there were foils
glovesmasksbreastplatesand all the accessories for a 
fencing match. 
In a quarter of an hour Athos joined them and at the same 
moment Charles brought in a letter for D'Artagnanwhich a 
messenger had just desired might be instantly delivered. 
It was now Athos's turn to take a sly look. 
D'Artagnan read the letter with apparent calmness and said
shaking his head: 
See, dear friend, what it is to belong to the army. Faith, 
you are indeed right not to return to it. Monsieur de 
Treville is ill, so my company can't do without me; there! 
my leave is at an end!
Do you return to Paris?asked Athosquickly. 
Egad! yes; but why don't you come there also?
Athos colored a little and answered: 
Should I go, I shall be delighted to see you there.
Halloo, Planchet!cried the Gascon from the doorwe must 
set out in ten minutes; give the horses some hay. 
Then turning to Athos he added: 
I seem to miss something here. I am really sorry to go away 
without having seen Grimaud." 
Grimaud!replied Athos. "I'm surprised you have never so 
much as asked after him. I have lent him to a friend ---- " 
Who will understand the signs he makes?returned 
D'Artagnan. 
I hope so.
The friends embraced cordially; D'Artagnan pressed Raoul's 
hand. 
Will you not come with me?he said; "I shall pass by 
Blois." 
Raoul turned toward Athoswho showed him by a secret sign 
that he did not wish him to go. 
No, monsieur,replied the young man; "I will remain with 
monsieur le comte." 
Adieu, then, to both, my good friends,said D'Artagnan; 
may God preserve you! as we used to say when we said 
good-bye to each other in the late cardinal's time.
Athos waved his handRaoul bowedand D'Artagnan and 
Planchet set out. 
The count followed them with his eyeshis hands resting on 
the shoulders of the youthwhose height was almost equal to 
his own; but as soon as they were out of sight he said: 
Raoul, we set out to-night for Paris.
Eh?cried the young manturning pale. 
You may go and offer your adieux and mine to Madame de 
Saint-Remy. I shall wait for you here till seven.
The young man bent lowwith an expression of sorrow and 
gratitude mingledand retired in order to saddle his horse. 
As to D'Artagnanscarcelyon his sidewas he out of sight 
when he drew from his pocket a letterwhich he read over 
again: 
Return immediately to Paris. -- J. M ---- .
The epistle is laconic,said D'Artagnan; "and if there had 
not been a postscriptprobably I should not have understood 
it; but happily there is a postscript." 
And he read that welcome postscriptwhich made him forget 
the abruptness of the letter. 
P. S. -- Go to the king's treasurer, at Blois; tell him 
your name and show him this letter; you will receive two 
hundred pistoles.
Assuredly,said D'ArtagnanI admire this piece of prose. 
The cardinal writes better than I thought. Come, Planchet, 
let us pay a visit to the king's treasurer and then set 
off.
Toward Paris, sir?
Toward Paris.
And they set out at as hard a canter as their horses could 
maintain. 
The Duc de Beaufort. 
The circumstances that had hastened the return of D'Artagnan 
to Paris were as follows: 
One eveningwhen Mazarinaccording to customwent to 
visit the queenin passing the guard-chamber he heard loud 
voices; wishing to know on what topic the soldiers were 
conversinghe approached with his wonted wolf-like step
pushed open the door and put his head close to the chink. 
There was a dispute among the guards. 
I tell you,one of them was sayingthat if Coysel 
predicted that, 'tis as good as true; I know nothing about 
it, but I have heard say that he's not only an astrologer, 
but a magician.
Deuce take it, friend, if he's one of thy friends thou wilt 
ruin him in saying so.
Why?
Because he may be tried for it.
Ah! absurd! they don't burn sorcerers nowadays.
No? 'Tis not a long time since the late cardinal burnt 
Urban Grandier, though.
My friend, Urban Grandier wasn't a sorcerer, he was a 
learned man. He didn't predict the future, he knew the past 
-- often a more dangerous thing.
Mazarin nodded an assentbut wishing to know what this 
prediction wasabout which they disputedhe remained in 
the same place. 
I don't say,resumed the guardthat Coysel is not a 
sorcerer, but I say that if his prophecy gets wind, it's a 
sure way to prevent it's coming true.
How so?
Why, in this way: if Coysel says loud enough for the 
cardinal to hear him, on such or such a day such a prisoner 
will escape, 'tis plain that the cardinal will take measures 
of precaution and that the prisoner will not escape.
Good Lord!said another guardwho might have been thought 
asleep on a benchbut who had lost not a syllable of the 
conversationdo you suppose that men can escape their 
destiny? If it is written yonder, in Heaven, that the Duc de 
Beaufort is to escape, he will escape; and all the 
precautions of the cardinal will not prevent it.
Mazarin started. He was an Italian and therefore 
superstitious. He walked straight into the midst of the 
guardswho on seeing him were silent. 
What were you saying?he asked with his flattering manner; 
that Monsieur de Beaufort had escaped, were you not?
Oh, no, my lord!said the incredulous soldier. "He's well 
guarded now; we only said he would escape." 
Who said so?
Repeat your story, Saint Laurent,replied the manturning 
to the originator of the tale. 
My lord,said the guardI have simply mentioned the 
prophecy I heard from a man named Coysel, who believes that, 
be he ever so closely watched and guarded, the Duke of 
Beaufort will escape before Whitsuntide.
Coysel is a madman!returned the cardinal. 
No,replied the soldiertenacious in his credulity; "he 
has foretold many things which have come to pass; for 
instancethat the queen would have a son; that Monsieur 
Coligny would be killed in a duel with the Duc de Guise; and 
finallythat the coadjutor would be made cardinal. Well! 
the queen has not only one sonbut two; thenMonsieur de 
Coligny was killedand ---- " 
Yes,said Mazarinbut the coadjutor is not yet made 
cardinal!
No, my lord, but he will be,answered the guard. 
Mazarin made a grimaceas if he meant to sayBut he does 
not wear the cardinal's cap;then he added: 
So, my friend, it's your opinion that Monsieur de Beaufort 
will escape?
That's my idea, my lord; and if your eminence were to offer 
to make me at this moment governor of the castle of 
Vincennes, I should refuse it. After Whitsuntide it would be 
another thing.
There is nothing so convincing as a firm conviction. It has 
its own effect upon the most incredulous; and far from being 
incredulousMazarin was superstitious. He went away 
thoughtful and anxious and returned to his own roomwhere 
he summoned Bernouin and desired him to fetch thither in the 
morning the special guard he had placed over Monsieur de 
Beaufort and to awaken him whenever he should arrive. 
The guard hadin facttouched the cardinal in the 
tenderest point. During the whole five years in which the 
Duc de Beaufort had been in prison not a day had passed in 
which the cardinal had not felt a secret dread of his 
escape. It was not possibleas he knew wellto confine for 
the whole of his life the grandson of Henry IV.especially 
when this young prince was scarcely thirty years of age. But 
however and whensoever he did escapewhat hatred he must 
cherish against him to whom he owed his long imprisonment; 
who had taken himrichbravegloriousbeloved by women
feared by mento cut off his life's besthappiest years; 
for it is not lifeit is merely existencein prison! 
MeantimeMazarin redoubled his surveillance over the duke. 
But like the miser in the fablehe could not sleep for 
thinking of his treasure. Often he awoke in the night
suddenlydreaming that he had been robbed of Monsieur de 
Beaufort. Then he inquired about him and had the vexation of 
hearing that the prisoner playeddranksangbut that 
whilst playingdrinkingsinginghe often stopped short to 
vow that Mazarin should pay dear for all the amusements he 
had forced him to enter into at Vincennes. 
So much did this one idea haunt the cardinal even in his 
sleepthat when at seven in the morning Bernouin came to 
arouse himhis first words were: "Wellwhat's the matter? 
Has Monsieur de Beaufort escaped from Vincennes?" 
I do not think so, my lord,said Bernouin; "but you will 
hear about himfor La Ramee is here and awaits the commands 
of your eminence." 
Tell him to come in,said Mazarinarranging his pillows
so that he might receive the visitor sitting up in bed. 
The officer entereda large fat manwith an open 
physiognomy. His air of perfect serenity made Mazarin 
uneasy. 
Approach, sir,said the cardinal. 
The officer obeyed. 
Do you know what they are saying here?
No, your eminence.
Well, they say that Monsieur de Beaufort is going to escape 
from Vincennes, if he has not done so already.
The officer's face expressed complete stupefaction. He 
opened at once his little eyes and his great mouthto 
inhale better the joke his eminence deigned to address to 
himand ended by a burst of laughterso violent that his 
great limbs shook in hilarity as they would have done in an 
ague. 
Escape! my lord -- escape! Your eminence does not then know 
where Monsieur de Beaufort is?
Yes, I do, sir; in the donjon of Vincennes.
Yes, sir; in a room, the walls of which are seven feet 
thick, with grated windows, each bar as thick as my arm.
Sir,replied Mazarinwith perseverance one may penetrate 
through a wall; with a watch-spring one may saw through an 
iron bar.
Then my lord does not know that there are eight guards 
about him, four in his chamber, four in the antechamber, and 
that they never leave him.
But he leaves his room, he plays at tennis at the Mall?
Sir, those amusements are allowed; but if your eminence 
wishes it, we will discontinue the permission.
No, no!cried Mazarinfearing that should his prisoner 
ever leave his prison he would be the more exasperated 
against him if he thus retrenched his amusement. He then 
asked with whom he played. 
My lord, either with the officers of the guard, with the 
other prisoners, or with me.
But does he not approach the walls while playing?
Your eminence doesn't know those walls; they are sixty feet 
high and I doubt if Monsieur de Beaufort is sufficiently 
weary of life to risk his neck by jumping off.
Hum!said the cardinalbeginning to feel more 
comfortable. "You mean to saythenmy dear Monsieur la 
Ramee ---- " 
That unless Monsieur de Beaufort can contrive to 
metamorphose himself into a little bird, I will continue 
answerable for him.
Take care! you assert a great deal,said Mazarin. 
Monsieur de Beaufort told the guards who took him to 
Vincennes that he had often thought what he should do in 
case he were put into prison, and that he had found out 
forty ways of escaping.
My lord, if among these forty there had been one good way 
he would have been out long ago.
Come, come; not such a fool as I fancied!thought Mazarin. 
Besides, my lord must remember that Monsieur de Chavigny is 
governor of Vincennes,continued La Rameeand that 
Monsieur de Chavigny is not friendly to Monsieur de 
Beaufort.
Yes, but Monsieur de Chavigny is sometimes absent.
When he is absent I am there.
But when you leave him, for instance?
Oh! when I leave him, I place in my stead a bold fellow who 
aspires to be his majesty's special guard. I promise you he 
keeps a good watch over the prisoner. During the three weeks 
that he has been with me, I have only had to reproach him 
with one thing -- being too severe with the prisoners.
And who is this Cerberus?
A certain Monsieur Grimaud, my lord.
And what was he before he went to Vincennes?
He was in the country, as I was told by the person who 
recommended him to me.
And who recommended this man to you?
The steward of the Duc de Grammont.
He is not a gossip, I hope?
Lord a mercy, my lord! I thought for a long time that he 
was dumb; he answers only by signs. It seems his former 
master accustomed him to that.
Well, dear Monsieur la Ramee,replied the cardinal "let 
him prove a true and thankful keeper and we will shut our 
eyes upon his rural misdeeds and put on his back a uniform 
to make him respectableand in the pockets of that uniform 
some pistoles to drink to the king's health." 
Mazarin was large in promises-- quite unlike the virtuous 
Monsieur Grimaud so bepraised by La Ramee; for he said 
nothing and did much. 
It was now nine o'clock. The cardinalthereforegot up
perfumed himselfdressedand went to the queen to tell her 
what had detained him. The queenwho was scarcely less 
afraid of Monsieur de Beaufort than the cardinal himself
and who was almost as superstitious as he wasmade him 
repeat word for word all La Ramee's praises of his deputy. 
Thenwhen the cardinal had ended: 
Alas, sir! why have we not a Grimaud near every prince?
Patience!replied Mazarinwith his Italian smile; "that 
may happen one day; but in the meantime ---- " 
Well, in the meantime?
I shall still take precautions.
And he wrote to D'Artagnan to hasten his return. 
Describes how the Duc de Beaufort amused his Leisure Hours 
in the Donjon of Vincennes. 
The captive who was the source of so much alarm to the 
cardinal and whose means of escape disturbed the repose of 
the whole courtwas wholly unconscious of the terror he 
caused at the Palais Royal. 
He had found himself so strictly guarded that he soon 
perceived the fruitlessness of any attempt at escape. His 
vengeancethereforeconsisted in coining curses on the 
head of Mazarin; he even tried to make some verses on him
but soon gave up the attemptfor Monsieur de Beaufort had 
not only not received from Heaven the gift of versifyinghe 
had the greatest difficulty in expressing himself in prose. 
The duke was the grandson of Henry VI. and Gabrielle 
d'Estrees -- as good-naturedas braveas proudand above 
allas Gascon as his ancestorbut less elaborately 
educated. After having been for some time after the death of 
Louis XIII. the favoritethe confidantthe first manin 
shortat the courthe had been obliged to yield his place 
to Mazarin and so became the second in influence and favor; 
and eventuallyas he was stupid enough to be vexed at this 
change of positionthe queen had had him arrested and sent 
to Vincennes in charge of Guitantwho made his appearance 
in these pages in the beginning of this history and whom we 
shall see again. It is understoodof coursethat when we 
say "the queen Mazarin is meant. 
During the five years of this seclusion, which would have 
improved and matured the intellect of any other man, M. de 
Beaufort, had he not affected to brave the cardinal, despise 
princes, and walk alone without adherents or disciples, 
would either have regained his liberty or made partisans. 
But these considerations never occurred to the duke and 
every day the cardinal received fresh accounts of him which 
were as unpleasant as possible to the minister. 
After having failed in poetry, Monsieur de Beaufort tried 
drawing. He drew portraits, with a piece of coal, of the 
cardinal; and as his talents did not enable him to produce a 
very good likeness, he wrote under the picture that there 
might be little doubt regarding the original: Portrait of 
the Illustrious CoxcombMazarin." Monsieur de Chavignythe 
governor of Vincenneswaited upon the duke to request that 
he would amuse himself in some other wayor that at all 
eventsif he drew likenesseshe would not put mottoes 
underneath them. The next day the prisoner's room was full 
of pictures and mottoes. Monsieur de Beaufortin common 
with many other prisonerswas bent upon doing things that 
were prohibited; and the only resource the governor had was
one day when the duke was playing at tennisto efface all 
these drawingsconsisting chiefly of profiles. M. de 
Beaufort did not venture to draw the cardinal's fat face. 
The duke thanked Monsieur de Chavigny for havingas he 
saidcleaned his drawing-paper for him; he then divided the 
walls of his room into compartments and dedicated each of 
these compartments to some incident in Mazarin's life. In 
one was depicted the "Illustrious Coxcomb" receiving a 
shower of blows from Cardinal Bentivogliowhose servant he 
had been; anotherthe "Illustrious Mazarin" acting the part 
of Ignatius Loyola in a tragedy of that name; a thirdthe 
Illustrious Mazarinstealing the portfolio of prime 
minister from Monsieur de Chavignywho had expected to have 
it; a fourththe "Illustrious Coxcomb Mazarin" refusing to 
give Laportethe young king's valetclean sheetsand 
saving that "it was quite enough for the king of France to 
have clean sheets every three months." 
The governorof coursethought proper to threaten his 
prisoner that if he did not give up drawing such pictures he 
should be obliged to deprive him of all the means of amusing 
himself in that manner. To this Monsieur de Beaufort replied 
that since every opportunity of distinguishing himself in 
arms was taken from himhe wished to make himself 
celebrated in the arts; since he could not be a Bayardhe 
would become a Raphael or a Michael Angelo. Nevertheless
one day when Monsieur de Beaufort was walking in the meadow 
his fire was put outhis charcoal all removedtaken away; 
and thus his means of drawing utterly destroyed. 
The poor duke sworefell into a rageyelledand declared 
that they wished to starve him to death as they had starved 
the Marechal Ornano and the Grand Prior of Vendome; but he 
refused to promise that he would not make any more drawings 
and remained without any fire in the room all the winter. 
His next act was to purchase a dog from one of his keepers. 
With this animalwhich he called Pistachehe was often 
shut up for hours alonesuperintendingas every one 
supposedits education. At lastwhen Pistache was 
sufficiently well trainedMonsieur de Beaufort invited the 
governor and officers of Vincennes to attend a 
representation which he was going to have in his apartment 
The party assembledthe room was lighted with waxlights
and the prisonerwith a bit of plaster he had taken out of 
the wall of his roomhad traced a long white line
representing a cordon the floor. Pistacheon a signal 
from his masterplaced himself on this lineraised himself 
on his hind pawsand holding in his front paws a wand with 
which clothes used to be beatenhe began to dance upon the 
line with as many contortions as a rope-dancer. Having been 
several times up and down ithe gave the wand back to his 
master and began without hesitation to perform the same 
evolutions over again. 
The intelligent creature was received with loud applause. 
The first part of the entertainment being concluded Pistache 
was desired to say what o'clock it was; he was shown 
Monsieur de Chavigny's watch; it was then half-past six; the 
dog raised and dropped his paw six times; the seventh he let 
it remain upraised. Nothing could be better done; a sun-dial 
could not have shown the hour with greater precision. 
Then the question was put to him who was the best jailer in 
all the prisons in France. 
The dog performed three evolutions around the circle and 
laid himselfwith the deepest respectat the feet of 
Monsieur de Chavignywho at first seemed inclined to like 
the joke and laughed long and loudbut a frown succeeded
and he bit his lips with vexation. 
Then the duke put to Pistache this difficult questionwho 
was the greatest thief in the world? 
Pistache went again around the circlebut stopped at no 
oneand at last went to the door and began to scratch and 
bark. 
See, gentlemen,said M. de Beaufortthis wonderful 
animal, not finding here what I ask for, seeks it out of 
doors; you shall, however, have his answer. Pistache, my 
friend, come here. Is not the greatest thief in the world, 
Monsieur (the king's secretary) Le Camus, who came to Paris 
with twenty francs in his pocket and who now possesses ten 
millions?
The dog shook his head. 
Then is it not,resumed the dukethe Superintendent 
Emery, who gave his son, when he was married, three hundred 
thousand francs and a house, compared to which the Tuileries 
are a heap of ruins and the Louvre a paltry building?
The dog again shook his head as if to say "no." 
Then,said the prisonerlet's think who it can be. Can 
it be, can it possibly be, the `Illustrious Coxcomb, Mazarin 
de Piscina,' hey?
Pistache made violent signs that it wasby raising and 
lowering his head eight or ten times successively. 
Gentlemen, you see,said the duke to those presentwho 
dared not even smilethat it is the `Illustrious Coxcomb' 
who is the greatest thief in the world; at least, according 
to Pistache.
Let us go on to another of his exercises.
Gentlemen!-- there was a profound silence in the room 
when the duke again addressed them -- "do you not remember 
that the Duc de Guise taught all the dogs in Paris to jump 
for Mademoiselle de Ponswhom he styled `the fairest of the 
fair?' Pistache is going to show you how superior he is to 
all other dogs. Monsieur de Chavignybe so good as to lend 
me your cane." 
Monsieur de Chavigny handed his cane to Monsieur de 
Beaufort. Monsieur de Beaufort placed it horizontally at the 
height of one foot. 
Now, Pistache, my good dog, jump the height of this cane 
for Madame de Montbazon.
But,interposed Monsieur de Chavignyit seems to me that 
Pistache is only doing what other dogs have done when they 
jumped for Mademoiselle de Pons.
Stop,said the dukePistache, jump for the queen.And 
he raised his cane six inches higher. 
The dog sprangand in spite of the height jumped lightly 
over it. 
And now,said the dukeraising it still six inches 
higherjump for the king.
The dog obeyed and jumped quickly over the cane. 
Now, then,said the dukeand as he spokelowered the 
cane almost level with the ground; "Pistachemy friend
jump for the `Illustrious CoxcombMazarin de Piscina.'" 
The dog turned his back to the cane. 
What,asked the dukewhat do you mean?and he gave him 
the cane againfirst making a semicircle from the head to 
the tail of Pistache. "Jump thenMonsieur Pistache." 
But Pistacheas at firstturned round on his legs and 
stood with his back to the cane. 
Monsieur de Beaufort made the experiment a third timebut 
by this time Pistache's patience was exhausted; he threw 
himself furiously upon the canewrested it from the hands 
of the prince and broke it with his teeth. 
Monsieur de Beaufort took the pieces out of his mouth and 
presented them with great formality to Monsieur de Chavigny
saying that for that evening the entertainment was ended
but in three months it should be repeatedwhen Pistache 
would have learned a few new tricks. 
Three days afterward Pistache was found dead -- poisoned. 
Then the duke said openly that his dog had been killed by a 
drug with which they meant to poison him; and one day after 
dinner he went to bedcalling out that he had pains in his 
stomach and that Mazarin had poisoned him. 
This fresh impertinence reached the ears of the cardinal and 
alarmed him greatly. The donjon of Vincennes was considered 
very unhealthy and Madame de Rambouillet had said that the 
room in which the Marechal Ornano and the Grand Prior de 
Vendome had died was worth its weight in arsenic -- a bon 
mot which had great success. So it was ordered the prisoner 
was henceforth to eat nothing that had not previously been 
tastedand La Ramee was in consequence placed near him as 
taster. 
Every kind of revenge was practiced upon the duke by the 
governor in return for the insults of the innocent Pistache. 
De Chavignywhoaccording to reportwas a son of 
Richelieu'sand had been a creature of the late cardinal's
understood tyranny. He took from the duke all the steel 
knives and silver forks and replaced them with silver knives 
and wooden forkspretending that as he had been informed 
that the duke was to pass all his life at Vincenneshe was 
afraid of his prisoner attempting suicide. A fortnight 
afterward the dukegoing to the tennis courtfound two 
rows of trees about the size of his little finger planted by 
the roadside; he asked what they were for and was told that 
they were to shade him from the sun on some future day. One 
morning the gardener went to him and told himas if to 
please himthat he was going to plant a bed of asparagus 
for his especial use. Nowsinceas every one knows
asparagus takes four years in coming to perfectionthis 
civility infuriated Monsieur de Beaufort. 
At last his patience was exhausted. He assembled his 
keepersand notwithstanding his well-known difficulty of 
utteranceaddressed them as follows: 
Gentlemen! will you permit a grandson of Henry IV. to be 
overwhelmed with insults and ignominy? 
Odds fish! as my grandfather used to sayI once reigned in 
Paris! do you know that? I had the king and Monsieur the 
whole of one day in my care. The queen at that time liked me 
and called me the most honest man in the kingdom. Gentlemen 
and citizensset me free; I shall go to the Louvre and 
strangle Mazarin. You shall be my body-guard. I will make 
you all captainswith good pensions! Odds fish! On! march 
forward!" 
But eloquent as he might bethe eloquence of the grandson 
of Henry IV. did not touch those hearts of stone; not one 
man stirredso Monsieur de Beaufort was obliged to be 
satisfied with calling them all kinds of rascals underneath 
the sun. 
Sometimeswhen Monsieur de Chavigny paid him a visitthe 
duke used to ask him what he should think if he saw an army 
of Parisiansall fully armedappear at Vincennes to 
deliver him from prison. 
My lord,answered De Chavignywith a low bowI have on 
the ramparts twenty pieces of artillery and in my casemates 
thirty thousand guns. I should bombard the troops till not 
one grain of gunpowder was unexploded.
Yes, but after you had fired off your thirty thousand guns 
they would take the donjon; the donjon being taken, I should 
be obliged to let them hang you -- at which I should be most 
unhappy, certainly.
And in his turn the duke bowed low to Monsieur de Chavigny. 
For myself, on the other hand, my lord,returned the 
governorwhen the first rebel should pass the threshold of 
my postern doors I should be obliged to kill you with my own 
hand, since you were confided peculiarly to my care and as I 
am obliged to give you up, dead or alive.
And once more he bowed low before his highness. 
These bitter-sweet pleasantries lasted ten minutes
sometimes longerbut always finished thus: 
Monsieur de Chavignyturning toward the doorused to call 
out: "Halloo! La Ramee!" 
La Ramee came into the room. 
La Ramee, I recommend Monsieur le Duc to you, particularly; 
treat him as a man of his rank and family ought to be 
treated; that is, never leave him alone an instant.
La Ramee becamethereforethe duke's dinner guest by 
compulsion -- an eternal keeperthe shadow of his person; 
but La Ramee -- gayfrankconvivialfond of playa great 
hand at tennishad one defect in the duke's eyes -- his 
incorruptibility. 
Nowalthough La Ramee appreciatedas of a certain value
the honor of being shut up with a prisoner of so great 
importancestill the pleasure of living in intimacy with 
the grandson of Henry IV. hardly compensated for the loss of 
that which he had experienced in going from time to time to 
visit his family. 
One may be a jailer or a keeper and at the same time a good 
father and husband. La Ramee adored his wife and children
whom now he could only catch a glimpse of from the top of 
the wallwhen in order to please him they used to walk on 
the opposite side of the moat. 'Twas too brief an enjoyment
and La Ramee felt that the gayety of heart he had regarded 
as the cause of health (of which it was perhaps rather the 
result) would not long survive such a mode of life. 
He acceptedthereforewith delightan offer made to him 
by his friend the steward of the Duc de Grammontto give 
him a substitute; he also spoke of it to Monsieur de 
Chavignywho promised that he would not oppose it in any 
way -- that isif he approved of the person proposed. 
We consider it useless to draw a physical or moral portrait 
of Grimaud; ifas we hopeour readers have not wholly 
forgotten the first part of this workthey must have 
preserved a clear idea of that estimable individualwho is 
wholly unchangedexcept that he is twenty years olderan 
advance in life that has made him only more silent; 
althoughsince the change that had been working in himself
Athos had given Grimaud permission to speak. 
But Grimaud had for twelve or fifteen years preserved 
habitual silenceand a habit of fifteen or twenty years' 
duration becomes second nature. 
Grimaud begins his Functions. 
Grimaud thereupon presented himself with his smooth exterior 
at the donjon of Vincennes. Now Monsieur de Chavigny piqued 
himself on his infallible penetration; for that which almost 
proved that he was the son of Richelieu was his everlasting 
pretension; he examined attentively the countenance of the 
applicant for place and fancied that the contracted 
eyebrowsthin lipshooked noseand prominent cheek-bones 
of Grimaud were favorable signs. He addressed about twelve 
words to him; Grimaud answered in four. 
Here's a promising fellow and it is I who have found out 
his merits,said Monsieur de Chavigny. "Go he added, and 
make yourself agreeable to Monsieur la Rameeand tell him 
that you suit me in all respects." 
Grimaud had every quality that could attract a man on duty 
who wishes to have a deputy. Soafter a thousand questions 
which met with only a word in replyLa Rameefascinated by 
this sobriety in speechrubbed his hands and engaged 
Grimaud. 
My orders?asked Grimaud. 
They are these; never to leave the prisoner alone; to keep 
away from him every pointed or cutting instrument, and to 
prevent his conversing any length of time with the keepers.
Those are all?asked Grimaud. 
All now,replied La Ramee. 
Good,answered Grimaud; and he went right to the prisoner. 
The duke was in the act of combing his beardwhich he had 
allowed to growas well as his hairin order to reproach 
Mazarin with his wretched appearance and condition. But 
having some days previously seen from the top of the donjon 
Madame de Montbazon pass in her carriageand still 
cherishing an affection for that beautiful womanhe did not 
wish to be to her what he wished to be to Mazarinand in 
the hope of seeing her againhad asked for a leaden comb
which was allowed him. The comb was to be a leaden one
because his beardlike that of most fair peoplewas rather 
red; he therefore dyed it thus whilst combing it. 
As Grimaud entered he saw this comb on the tea-table; he 
took it upand as he took it he made a low bow. 
The duke looked at this strange figure with surprise. The 
figure put the comb in its pocket. 
Ho! hey! what's that?cried the duke. "Who is this 
creature?" 
Grimaud did not answerbut bowed a second time. 
Art thou dumb?cried the duke. 
Grimaud made a sign that he was not. 
What art thou, then? Answer! I command thee!said the 
duke. 
A keeper,replied Grimaud. 
A keeper!reiterated the duke; "there was nothing wanting 
in my collectionexcept this gallows-bird. Halloo! La 
Ramee! some one!" 
La Ramee ran in haste to obey the call. 
Who is this wretch who takes my comb and puts it in his 
pocket?asked the duke. 
One of your guards, my prince; a man of talent and merit, 
whom you will like, as I and Monsieur de Chavigny do, I am 
sure.
Why does he take my comb?
Why do you take my lord's comb?asked La Ramee. 
Grimaud drew the comb from his pocket and passing his 
fingers over the largest teethpronounced this one word
Pointed.
True,said La Ramee. 
What does the animal say?asked the duke. 
That the king has forbidden your lordship to have any 
pointed instrument.
Are you mad, La Ramee? You yourself gave me this comb.
I was very wrong, my lord, for in giving it to you I acted 
in opposition to my orders.
The duke looked furiously at Grimaud. 
I perceive that this creature will be my particular 
aversion,he muttered. 
Grimaudneverthelesswas resolved for certain reasons not 
at once to come to a full rupture with the prisoner; he 
wanted to inspirenot a sudden repugnancebut a good
soundsteady hatred; he retiredthereforeand gave place 
to four guardswhohaving breakfastedcould attend on the 
prisoner. 
A fresh practical joke now occurred to the duke. He had 
asked for crawfish for his breakfast on the following 
morning; he intended to pass the day in making a small 
gallows and hang one of the finest of these fish in the 
middle of his room -- the red color evidently conveying an 
allusion to the cardinal -- so that he might have the 
pleasure of hanging Mazarin in effigy without being accused 
of having hung anything more significant than a crawfish. 
The day was employed in preparations for the execution. 
Every one grows childish in prisonbut the character of 
Monsieur de Beaufort was particularly disposed to become so. 
In the course of his morning's walk he collected two or 
three small branches from a tree and found a small piece of 
broken glassa discovery that quite delighted him. When he 
came home he formed his handkerchief into a loop. 
Nothing of all this escaped Grimaudbut La Ramee looked on 
with the curiosity of a father who thinks that he may 
perhaps get a cheap idea concerning a new toy for his 
children. The guards looked on it with indifference. When 
everything was readythe gallows hung in the middle of the 
roomthe loop madeand when the duke had cast a glance 
upon the plate of crawfishin order to select the finest 
specimen among themhe looked around for his piece of 
glass; it had disappeared. 
Who has taken my piece of glass?asked the dukefrowning. 
Grimaud made a sign to denote that he had done so. 
What! thou again! Why didst thou take it?
Yes -- why?asked La Ramee. 
Grimaudwho held the piece of glass in his handsaid: 
Sharp.
True, my lord!exclaimed La Ramee. "Ah! deuce take it! we 
have a precious fellow here!" 
Monsieur Grimaud!said the dukefor your sake I beg of 
you, never come within the reach of my fist!
Hush! hush!cried La Rameegive me your gibbet, my lord. 
I will shape it out for you with my knife.
And he took the gibbet and shaped it out as neatly as 
possible. 
That's it,said the dukenow make me a little hole in 
the floor whilst I go and fetch the culprit.
La Ramee knelt down and made a hole in the floor; meanwhile 
the duke hung the crawfish up by a thread. Then he placed 
the gibbet in the middle of the roombursting with 
laughter. 
La Ramee laughed also and the guards laughed in chorus; 
Grimaudhoweverdid not even smile. He approached La Ramee 
and showing him the crawfish hung up by the thread: 
Cardinal,he said. 
Hung by order of his Highness the Duc de Beaufort!cried 
the prisonerlaughing violentlyand by Master Jacques 
Chrysostom La Ramee, the king's commissioner.
La Ramee uttered a cry of horror and rushed toward the 
gibbetwhich he broke at once and threw the pieces out of 
the window. He was going to throw the crawfish out also
when Grimaud snatched it from his hands. 
Good to eat!he saidand put it in his pocket. 
This scene so enchanted the duke that at the moment he 
forgave Grimaud for his part in it; but on reflection he 
hated him more and morebeing convinced he had some evil 
motive for his conduct. 
But the story of the crab made a great noise through the 
interior of the donjon and even outside. Monsieur de 
Chavignywho at heart detested the cardinaltook pains to 
tell the story to two or three friendswho put it into 
immediate circulation. 
The prisoner happened to remark among the guards one man 
with a very good countenance; and he favored this man the 
more as Grimaud became the more and more odious to him. One 
morning he took this man on one side and had succeeded in 
speaking to himwhen Grimaud entered and seeing what was 
going on approached the duke respectfullybut took the 
guard by the arm. 
Go away,he said. 
The guard obeyed. 
You are insupportable!cried the duke; "I shall beat you." 
Grimaud bowed. 
I will break every bone in your body!cried the duke. 
Grimaud bowedbut stepped back. 
Mr. Spy,cried the dukemore and more enragedI will 
strangle you with my own hands.
And he extended his hands toward Grimaudwho merely thrust 
the guard out and shut the door behind him. At the same time 
he felt the duke's arms on his shoulders like two iron 
claws; but instead either of calling out or defending 
himselfhe placed his forefinger on his lips and said in a 
low tone: 
Hush!smiling as he uttered the word. 
A gesturea smile and a word from Grimaudall at once
were so unusual that his highness stopped shortastounded. 
Grimaud took advantage of that instant to draw from his vest 
a charming little note with an aristocratic sealand 
presented it to the duke without a word. 
The dukemore and more bewilderedlet Grimaud loose and 
took the note. 
From Madame de Montbazon?he cried. 
Grimaud nodded assent. 
The duke tore open the notepassed his hands over his eyes
for he was dazzled and confusedand read: 
My Dear Duke, -- You may entirely confide in the brave lad 
who will give you this note; he has consented to enter the 
service of your keeper and to shut himself up at Vincennes 
with you, in order to prepare and assist your escape, which 
we are contriving. The moment of your deliverance is at 
hand; have patience and courage and remember that in spite 
of time and absence all your friends continue to cherish for 
you the sentiments they have so long professed and truly 
entertained. 
Yours wholly and most affectionately 
Marie de Montbazon. 
P.S. -- I sign my full namefor I should be vain if I 
could suppose that after five years of absence you would 
remember my initials." 
The poor duke became perfectly giddy. What for five years he 
had been wanting -- a faithful servanta frienda helping 
hand -- seemed to have fallen from Heaven just when he 
expected it the least. 
Oh, dearest Marie! she thinks of me, then, after five years 
of separation! Heavens! there is constancy!Then turning to 
Grimaudhe said: 
And thou, my brave fellow, thou consentest thus to aid me?
Grimaud signified his assent. 
And you have come here with that purpose?
Grimaud repeated the sign. 
And I was ready to strangle you!cried the duke. 
Grimaud smiled. 
Wait, then,said the dukefumbling in his pocket. "Wait 
he continued, renewing his fruitless search; it shall not 
be said that such devotion to a grandson of Henry IV. went 
without recompense." 
The duke's endeavors evinced the best intention in the 
worldbut one of the precautions taken at Vincennes was 
that of allowing prisoners to keep no money. Whereupon 
Grimaudobserving the duke's disappointmentdrew from his 
pocket a purse filled with gold and handed it to him. 
Here is what you are looking for,he said. 
The duke opened the purse and wanted to empty it into 
Grimaud's handsbut Grimaud shook his head. 
Thank you, monseigneur,he saiddrawing back; "I am 
paid." 
The duke went from one surprise to another. He held out his 
hand. Grimaud drew near and kissed it respectfully. The 
grand manner of Athos had left its mark on Grimaud. 
What shall we do? and when? and how proceed?
It is now eleven,answered Grimaud. "Let my lord at two 
o'clock ask leave to make up a game at tennis with La Ramee 
and let him send two or three balls over the ramparts." 
And then?
Your highness will approach the walls and call out to a man 
who works in the moat to send them back again.
I understand,said the duke. 
Grimaud made a sign that he was going away. 
Ah!cried the dukewill you not accept any money from 
me?
I wish my lord would make me one promise.
What! speak!
'Tis this: when we escape together, that I shall go 
everywhere and be always first; for if my lord should be 
overtaken and caught, there's every chance of his being 
brought back to prison, whereas if I am caught the least 
that can befall me is to be -- hung.
True, on my honor as a gentleman it shall be as thou dost 
suggest.
Now,resumed GrimaudI've only one thing more to ask -that 
your highness will continue to detest me.
I'll try,said the duke. 
At this moment La Rameeafter the interview we have 
described with the cardinalentered the room. The duke had 
thrown himselfas he was wont to do in moments of dullness 
and vexationon his bed. La Ramee cast an inquiring look 
around him and observing the same signs of antipathy between 
the prisoner and his guardian he smiled in token of his 
inward satisfaction. Then turning to Grimaud: 
Very good, my friend, very good. You have been spoken of in 
a promising quarter and you will soon, I hope, have news 
that will be agreeable to you.
Grimaud saluted in his politest manner and withdrewas was 
his custom on the entrance of his superior. 
Well, my lord,said La Rameewith his rude laughyou 
still set yourself against this poor fellow?
So! 'tis you, La Ramee; in faith, 'tis time you came back 
again. I threw myself on the bed and turned my nose to the 
wall, that I mightn't break my promise and strangle 
Grimaud.
I doubt, however,said La Rameein sprightly allusion to 
the silence of his subordinateif he has said anything 
disagreeable to your highness.
Pardieu! you are right -- a mute from the East! I swear it 
was time for you to come back, La Ramee, and I was eager to 
see you again.
Monseigneur is too good,said La Rameeflattered by the 
compliment. 
Yes,continued the dukereally, I feel bored today 
beyond the power of description.
Then let us have a match in the tennis court,exclaimed La 
Ramee. 
If you wish it.
I am at your service, my lord.
I protest, my dear La Ramee,said the dukethat you are 
a charming fellow and that I would stay forever at Vincennes 
to have the pleasure of your society.
My lord,replied La RameeI think if it depended on the 
cardinal your wishes would be fulfilled.
What do you mean? Have you seen him lately?
He sent for me to-day.
Really! to speak to you about me?
Of what else do you imagine he would speak to me? Really, 
my lord, you are his nightmare.
The duke smiled with bitterness. 
Ah, La Ramee! if you would but accept my offers! I would 
make your fortune.
How? you would no sooner have left prison than your goods 
would be confiscated.
I shall no sooner be out of prison than I shall be master 
of Paris.
Pshaw! pshaw! I cannot hear such things said as that; this 
is a fine conversation with an officer of the king! I see, 
my lord, I shall be obliged to fetch a second Grimaud!
Very well, let us say no more about it. So you and the 
cardinal have been talking about me? La Ramee, some day when 
he sends for you, you must let me put on your clothes; I 
will go in your stead; I will strangle him, and upon my 
honor, if that is made a condition I will return to prison.
Monseigneur, I see well that I must call Grimaud.
Well, I am wrong. And what did the cuistre [pettifogger] 
say about me?
I admit the word, monseigneur, because it rhymes with 
ministre [minister]. What did he say to me? He told me to 
watch you.
And why so? why watch me?asked the duke uneasily. 
Because an astrologer had predicted that you would escape.
Ah! an astrologer predicted that?said the dukestarting 
in spite of himself. 
Oh, mon Dieu! yes! those imbeciles of magicians can only 
imagine things to torment honest people.
And what did you reply to his most illustrious eminence?
That if the astrologer in question made almanacs I would 
advise him not to buy one.
Why not?
Because before you could escape you would have to be turned 
into a bird.
Unfortunately, that is true. Let us go and have a game at 
tennis, La Ramee.
My lord -- I beg your highness's pardon -- but I must beg 
for half an hour's leave of absence.
Why?
Because Monseigneur Mazarin is a prouder man than his 
highness, though not of such high birth: he forgot to ask me 
to breakfast.
Well, shall I send for some breakfast here?
No, my lord; I must tell you that the confectioner who 
lived opposite the castle -- Daddy Marteau, as they called 
him ---- 
Well?
Well, he sold his business a week ago to a confectioner 
from Paris, an invalid, ordered country air for his health.
Well, what have I to do with that?
Why, good Lord! this man, your highness, when he saw me 
stop before his shop, where he has a display of things which 
would make your mouth water, my lord, asked me to get him 
the custom of the prisoners in the donjon. `I bought,' said 
he, `the business of my predecessor on the strength of his 
assurance that he supplied the castle; whereas, on my honor, 
Monsieur de Chavigny, though I've been here a week, has not 
ordered so much as a tartlet.' `But,' I then replied, 
`probably Monsieur de Chavigny is afraid your pastry is not 
good.' `My pastry not good! Well, Monsieur La Ramee, you 
shall judge of it yourself and at once.' `I cannot,' I 
replied; `it is absolutely necessary for me to return to the 
chateau.' `Very well,' said he, `go and attend to your 
affairs, since you seem to be in a hurry, but come back in 
half an hour.' `In half an hour?' `Yes, have you 
breakfasted?' `Faith, no.' `Well, here is a pate that will 
be ready for you, with a bottle of old Burgundy.' So, you 
see, my lord, since I am hungry, I would, with your 
highness's leave ---- And La Ramee bent low. 
Go, then, animal,said the duke; "but rememberI only 
allow you half an hour." 
May I promise your custom to the successor of Father 
Marteau, my lord?
Yes, if he does not put mushrooms in his pies; thou knowest 
that mushrooms from the wood of Vincennes are fatal to my 
family.
La Ramee went outbut in five minutes one of the officers 
of the guard entered in compliance with the strict orders of 
the cardinal that the prisoner should never be left alone a 
moment. 
But during these five minutes the duke had had time to read 
again the note from Madame de Montbazonwhich proved to the 
prisoner that his friends were concerting plans for his 
deliverancebut in what way he knew not. 
But his confidence in Grimaudwhose petty persecutions he 
now perceived were only a blindincreasedand he conceived 
the highest opinion of his intellect and resolved to trust 
entirely to his guidance. 
In which the Contents of the Pates made by the Successor of 
Father Marteau are described. 
In half an hour La Ramee returnedfull of gleelike most 
men who have eatenand more especially drank to their 
heart's content. The pates were excellentthe wine 
delicious. 
The weather was fine and the game at tennis took place in 
the open air. 
At two o'clock the tennis balls beganaccording to 
Grimaud's directionsto take the direction of the moat
much to the joy of La Rameewho marked fifteen whenever the 
duke sent a ball into the moat; and very soon balls were 
wantingso many had gone over. La Ramee then proposed to 
send some one to pick them upbut the duke remarked that it 
would be losing time; and going near the rampart himself and 
looking overhe saw a man working in one of the numerous 
little gardens cleared out by the peasants on the opposite 
side of the moat. 
Hey, friend!cried the duke. 
The man raised his head and the duke was about to utter a 
cry of surprise. The peasantthe gardenerwas Rochefort
whom he believed to be in the Bastile. 
Well? Who's up there?said the man. 
Be so good as to collect and throw us back our balls,said 
the duke. 
The gardener nodded and began to fling up the ballswhich 
were picked up by La Ramee and the guard. Onehoweverfell 
at the duke's feetand seeing that it was intended for him
he put it into his pocket. 
La Ramee was in ecstasies at having beaten a prince of the 
blood. 
The duke went indoors and retired to bedwhere he spent
indeedthe greater part of every dayas they had taken his 
books away. La Ramee carried off all his clothesin order 
to be certain that the duke would not stir. Howeverthe 
duke contrived to hide the ball under his bolster and as 
soon as the door was closed he tore off the cover of the 
ball with his teeth and found underneath the following 
letter: 
My Lord-- Your friends are watching over you and the hour 
of your deliverance is at hand. Ask day after to-morrow to 
have a pie supplied you by the new confectioner opposite the 
castleand who is no other than Noirmontyour former 
maitre d'hotel. Do not open the pie till you are alone. I 
hope you will be satisfied with its contents. 
Your highness's most devoted servant, 
In the Bastileas elsewhere
Comte de Rochefort. 
The duke, who had latterly been allowed a fire, burned the 
letter, but kept the ball, and went to bed, hiding the ball 
under his bolster. La Ramee entered; he smiled kindly on the 
prisoner, for he was an excellent man and had taken a great 
liking for the captive prince. He endeavored to cheer him up 
in his solitude. 
Ahmy friend!" cried the dukeyou are so good; if I 
could but do as you do, and eat pates and drink Burgundy at 
the house of Father Marteau's successor.
'Tis true, my lord,answered La Rameethat his pates are 
famous and his wine magnificent.
In any case,said the dukehis cellar and kitchen might 
easily excel those of Monsieur de Chavigny.
Well, my lord,said La Rameefalling into the trapwhat 
is there to prevent your trying them? Besides, I have 
promised him your patronage.
You are right,said the duke. "If I am to remain here 
permanentlyas Monsieur Mazarin has kindly given me to 
understandI must provide myself with a diversion for my 
old ageI must turn gourmand." 
My lord,said La Rameeif you will take a bit of good 
advice, don't put that off till you are old.
Good!said the Duc de Beaufort to himselfevery man in 
order that he may lose his heart and soul, must receive from 
celestial bounty one of the seven capital sins, perhaps two; 
it seems that Master La Ramee's is gluttony. Let us then 
take advantage of it.Thenaloud: 
Well, my dear La Ramee! the day after to-morrow is a 
holiday.
Yes, my lord -- Pentecost.
Will you give me a lesson the day after to-morrow?
In what?
In gastronomy?
Willingly, my lord.
But tete-a-tete. Send the guards to take their meal in the 
canteen of Monsieur de Chavigny; we'll have a supper here 
under your direction.
Hum!said La Ramee. 
The proposal was seductivebut La Ramee was an old stager
acquainted with all the traps a prisoner was likely to set. 
Monsieur de Beaufort had said that he had forty ways of 
getting out of prison. Did this proposed breakfast cover 
some stratagem? He reflectedbut he remembered that he 
himself would have charge of the food and the wine and 
therefore that no powder could be mixed with the foodno 
drug with the wine. As to getting him drunkthe duke 
couldn't hope to do thatand he laughed at the mere thought 
of it. Then an idea came to him which harmonized everything. 
The duke had followed with anxiety La Ramee's unspoken 
soliloquyreading it from point to point upon his face. But 
presently the exempt's face suddenly brightened. 
Well,he askedthat will do, will it not?
Yes, my lord, on one condition.
What?
That Grimaud shall wait on us at table.
Nothing could be more agreeable to the dukehoweverhe had 
presence of mind enough to exclaim: 
To the devil with your Grimaud! He will spoil the feast.
I will direct him to stand behind your chair, and since he 
doesn't speak, your highness will neither see nor hear him 
and with a little effort can imagine him a hundred miles 
away.
Do you know, my friend, I find one thing very evident in 
all this, you distrust me.
My lord, the day after to-morrow is Pentecost.
Well, what is Pentecost to me? Are you afraid that the Holy 
Spirit will come as a tongue of fire to open the doors of my 
prison?
No, my lord; but I have already told you what that damned 
magician predicted.
And what was it?
That the day of Pentecost would not pass without your 
highness being out of Vincennes.
You believe in sorcerers, then, you fool?
I ---I mind them no more than that ---- and he snapped 
his fingers; "but it is my Lord Giulio who cares about them; 
as an Italian he is superstitious." 
The duke shrugged his shoulders. 
Well, then,with well acted good-humorI allow Grimaud, 
but no one else; you must manage it all. Order whatever you 
like for supper -- the only thing I specify is one of those 
pies; and tell the confectioner that I will promise him my 
custom if he excels this time in his pies -- not only now, 
but when I leave my prison.
Then you think you will some day leave it?said La Ramee. 
The devil!replied the prince; "surelyat the death of 
Mazarin. I am fifteen years younger than he is. At 
Vincennes'tis trueone lives faster ---- " 
My lord,replied La Rameemy lord ---- 
Or dies sooner, for it comes to the same thing.
La Ramee was going out. He stoppedhoweverat the door for 
an instant. 
Whom does your highness wish me to send to you?
Any one, except Grimaud.
The officer of the guard, then, with his chessboard?
Yes.
Five minutes afterward the officer entered and the duke 
seemed to be immersed in the sublime combinations of chess. 
A strange thing is the mindand it is wonderful what 
revolutions may be wrought in it by a signa worda hope. 
The duke had been five years in prisonand now to him
looking back upon themthose five yearswhich had passed 
so slowlyseemed not so long a time as were the two days
the forty-eight hourswhich still parted him from the time 
fixed for his escape. Besidesthere was one thing that 
engaged his most anxious thought -- in what way was the 
escape to be effected? They had told him to hope for itbut 
had not told him what was to be hidden in the mysterious 
pate. And what friends awaited him without? He had friends
thenafter five years in prison? If that were so he was 
indeed a highly favored prince. He forgot that besides his 
friends of his own sexa womanstrange to sayhad 
remembered him. It is true that she had notperhapsbeen 
scupulously faithful to himbut she had remembered him; 
that was something. 
So the duke had more than enough to think about; accordingly 
he fared at chess as he had fared at tennis; he made blunder 
upon blunder and the officer with whom he played found him 
easy game. 
But his successive defeats did service to the duke in one 
way -- they killed time for him till eight o'clock in the 
evening; then would come nightand with nightsleep. So
at leastthe duke believed; but sleep is a capricious 
fairyand it is precisely when one invokes her presence 
that she is most likely to keep him waiting. The duke waited 
until midnightturning on his mattress like St. Laurence on 
his gridiron. Finally he slept. 
But at daybreak he awoke. Wild dreams had disturbed his 
repose. He dreamed that he was endowed with wings -- he 
wished to fly away. For a time these wings supported him
but when he reached a certain height this new aid failed 
him. His wings were broken and he seemed to sink into a 
bottomless abysswhence he awokebathed in perspiration 
and nearly as much overcome as if he had really fallen. He 
fell asleep again and another vision appeared. He was in a 
subterranean passage by which he was to leave Vincennes. 
Grimaud was walking before him with a lantern. By degrees 
the passage narrowedyet the duke continued his course. At 
last it became so narrow that the fugitive tried in vain to 
proceed. The sides of the walls seem to close ineven to 
press against him. He made fruitless efforts to go on; it 
was impossible. Neverthelesshe still saw Grimaud with his 
lantern in frontadvancing. He wished to call out to him 
but could not utter a word. Then at the other extremity he 
heard the footsteps of those who were pursuing him. These 
steps came oncame fast. He was discovered; all hope of 
flight was gone. Still the walls seemed to be closing on 
him; they appeared to be in concert with his enemies. At 
last he heard the voice of La Ramee. La Ramee took his hand 
and laughed aloud. He was captured againand conducted to 
the low and vaulted chamberin which OrnanoPuylaurens
and his uncle had died. Their three graves were there
rising above the groundand a fourth was also there
yawning for its ghastly tenant. 
The duke was obliged to make as many efforts to awake as he 
had done to go to sleep; and La Ramee found him so pale and 
fatigued that he inquired whether he was ill. 
In fact,said one of the guards who had remained in the 
chamber and had been kept awake by a toothachebrought on 
by the dampness of the atmospheremy lord has had a very 
restless night and two or three times, while dreaming, he 
called for help.
What is the matter with your highness?asked La Ramee. 
'Tis your fault, you simpleton,answered the duke. "With 
your idle nonsense yesterday about escapingyou worried me 
so that I dreamed that I was trying to escape and broke my 
neck in doing so." 
La Ramee laughed. 
Come,he said'tis a warning from Heaven. Never commit 
such an imprudence as to try to escape, except in your 
dreams.
And you are right, my dear La Ramee,said the dukewiping 
away the sweat that stood on his browwide awake though he 
was; "after this I will think of nothing but eating and 
drinking." 
Hush!said La Ramee; and one by one he sent away the 
guardson various pretexts. 
Well?asked the duke when they were alone. 
Well!replied La Rameeyour supper is ordered.
Ah! and what is it to be? Monsieur, my majordomo, will 
there be a pie?
I should think so, indeed -- almost as high as a tower.
You told him it was for me?
Yes, and he said he would do his best to please your 
highness.
Good!exclaimed the dukerubbing his hands. 
Devil take it, my lord! what a gourmand you are growing; I 
haven't seen you with so cheerful a face these five years.
The duke saw that he had not controlled himself as he ought
but at that momentas if he had listened at the door and 
comprehended the urgent need of diverting La Ramee's ideas
Grimaud entered and made a sign to La Ramee that he had 
something to say to him. 
La Ramee drew near to Grimaudwho spoke to him in a low 
voice. 
The duke meanwhile recovered his self-control. 
I have already forbidden that man,he saidto come in 
here without my permission.
You must pardon him, my lord,said La Rameefor I 
directed him to come.
And why did you so direct when you know that he displeases 
me?
My lord will remember that it was agreed between us that he 
should wait upon us at that famous supper. My lord has 
forgotten the supper.
No, but I have forgotten Monsieur Grimaud.
My lord understands that there can be no supper unless he 
is allowed to be present.
Go on, then; have it your own way.
Come here, my lad,said La Rameeand hear what I have to 
say.
Grimaud approachedwith a very sullen expression on his 
face. 
La Ramee continued: "My lord has done me the honor to invite 
me to a supper to-morrow en tete-a-tete." 
Grimaud made a sign which meant that he didn't see what that 
had to do with him. 
Yes, yes,said La Rameethe matter concerns you, for you 
will have the honor to serve us; and besides, however good 
an appetite we may have and however great our thirst, there 
will be something left on the plates and in the bottles, and 
that something will be yours.
Grimaud bowed in thanks. 
And now,said La RameeI must ask your highness's 
pardon, but it seems that Monsieur de Chavigny is to be away 
for a few days and he has sent me word that he has certain 
directions to give me before his departure.
The duke tried to exchange a glance with Grimaudbut there 
was no glance in Grimaud's eyes. 
Go, then,said the dukeand return as soon as possible.
Does your highness wish to take revenge for the game of 
tennis yesterday?
Grimaud intimated by a scarcely perceptible nod that he 
should consent. 
Yes,said the dukebut take care, my dear La Ramee, for 
I propose to beat you badly.
La Ramee went out. Grimaud looked after himand when the 
door was closed he drew out of his pocket a pencil and a 
sheet of paper. 
Write, my lord,he said. 
And what?
Grimaud dictated. 
All is ready for to-morrow evening. Keep watch from seven 
to nine. Have two riding horses ready. We shall descend by 
the first window in the gallery.
What next?
Sign your name, my lord.
The duke signed. 
Now, my lord, give me, if you have not lost it, the ball -that 
which contained the letter.
The duke took it from under his pillow and gave it to 
Grimaud. Grimaud gave a grim smile. 
Well?asked the duke. 
Well, my lord, I sew up the paper in the ball and you, in
your game of tennis, will send the ball into the ditch.
But will it not be lost?
Oh no; there will be some one at hand to pick it up.
A gardener?
Grimaud nodded.
The same as yesterday?
Another nod on the part of Grimaud.
The Count de Rochefort?
Grimaud nodded the third time.
Come, now,said the dukegive some particulars of the
plan for our escape.
That is forbidden me,said Grimauduntil the last
moment.
Who will be waiting for me beyond the ditch?
I know nothing about it, my lord.
But at least, if you don't want to see me turn crazy, tell
what that famous pate will contain.
Two poniards, a knotted rope and a poire d'angoisse.*
*This poire d'angoisse was a famous gagin the form of a 
pearwhichbeing thrust into the mouthby the aid of a 
springdilatedso as to distend the jaws to their greatest 
width. 
Yes, I understand.
My lord observes that there will be enough to go around.
We shall take to ourselves the poniards and the rope,
replied the duke.
And make La Ramee eat the pear,answered Grimaud.
My dear Grimaud, thou speakest seldom, but when thou dost,
one must do thee justice -- thy words are words of gold.
One of Marie Michon's Adventures.
Whilst these projects were being formed by the Duc de
Beaufort and Grimaudthe Comte de la Fere and the Vicomte 
de Bragelonne were entering Paris by the Rue du Faubourg 
Saint Marcel. 
They stopped at the sign of the Foxin the Rue du Vieux 
Colombiera tavern known for many years by Athosand asked 
for two bedrooms. 
You must dress yourself, Raoul,said AthosI am going to 
present you to some one.
To-day, monsieur?asked the young man. 
In half an hour.
The young man bowed. Perhapsnot being endowed with the 
endurance of Athoswho seemed to be made of ironhe would 
have preferred a bath in the river Seine of which he had 
heard so muchand afterward his bed; but the Comte de la 
Fere had spoken and he had no thought but to obey. 
By the way,said Athostake some pains with your toilet, 
Raoul; I want you to be approved.
I hope, sir,replied the youthsmilingthat there's no 
idea of a marriage for me; you know of my engagement to 
Louise?
Athosin his turnsmiled also. 
No, don't be alarmed, although it is to a lady that I am 
going to present you, and I am anxious that you should love 
her ---- 
The young man looked at the count with a certain uneasiness
but at a smile from Athos he was quickly reassured. 
How old is she?inquired the Vicomte de Bragelonne. 
My dear Raoul, learn, once for all, that that is a question 
which is never asked. When you can find out a woman's age by 
her face, it is useless to ask it; when you cannot do so, it 
is indiscreet.
Is she beautiful?
Sixteen years ago she was deemed not only the prettiest, 
but the most graceful woman in France.
This reply reassured the vicomte. A woman who had been a 
reigning beauty a year before he was born could not be the 
subject of any scheme for him. He retired to his toilet. 
When he reappearedAthos received him with the same 
paternal smile as that which he had often bestowed on 
D'Artagnanbut a more profound tenderness for Raoul was now 
visibly impressed upon his face. 
Athos cast a glance at his feethands and hair -- those 
three marks of race. The youth's dark hair was neatly parted 
and hung in curlsforming a sort of dark frame around his 
face; such was the fashion of the day. Gloves of gray kid
matching the hatwell displayed the form of a slender and 
elegant hand; whilst his bootssimilar in color to the hat 
and glovesconfined feet small as those of a boy twelve 
years old. 
Come,murmured Athosif she is not proud of him, she 
must be hard to please.
It was three o'clock in the afternoon. The two travelers 
proceeded to the Rue Saint Dominique and stopped at the door 
of a magnificent hotelsurmounted with the arms of De 
Luynes. 
'Tis here,said Athos. 
He entered the hotel and ascended the front stepsand 
addressing a footman who waited there in a grand livery
asked if the Duchess de Chevreuse was visible and if she 
could receive the Comte de la Fere? 
The servant returned with a message to saythatthough the 
duchess had not the honor of knowing Monsieur de la Fere
she would receive him. 
Athos followed the footmanwho led him through a long 
succession of apartments and paused at length before a 
closed door. Athos made a sign to the Vicomte de Bragelonne 
to remain where he was. 
The footman opened the door and announced Monsieur le Comte 
de la Fere. 
Madame de Chevreusewhose name appears so often in our 
story "The Three Musketeers without her actually having 
appeared in any scene, was still a beautiful woman. Although 
about forty-four or forty-five years old, she might have 
passed for thirty-five. She still had her rich fair hair; 
her large, animated, intelligent eyes, so often opened by 
intrigue, so often closed by the blindness of love. She had 
still her nymph-like form, so that when her back was turned 
she still was not unlike the girl who had jumped, with Anne 
of Austria, over the moat of the Tuileries in 1563. In all 
other respects she was the same mad creature who threw over 
her amours such an air of originality as to make them 
proverbial for eccentricity in her family. 
She was in a little boudoir, hung with blue damask, adorned 
by red flowers, with a foliage of gold, looking upon a 
garden; and reclined upon a sofa, her head supported on the 
rich tapestry which covered it. She held a book in her hand 
and her arm was supported by a cushion. 
At the footman's announcement she raised herself a little 
and peeped out, with some curiosity. 
Athos appeared. 
He was dressed in violet-tinted velvet, trimmed with silk of 
the same color. His shoulder-knots were of burnished silver, 
his mantle had no gold nor embroidery on it; a simple plume 
of violet feathers adorned his hat; his boots were of black 
leather, and at his girdle hung that sword with a 
magnificent hilt that Porthos had so often admired in the 
Rue Feron. Splendid lace adorned the falling collar of his 
shirt, and lace fell also over the top of his boots. 
In his whole person he bore such an impress of high degree, 
that Madame de Chevreuse half rose from her seat when she 
saw him and made him a sign to sit down near her. 
Athos bowed and obeyed. The footman was withdrawing, but 
Athos stopped him by a sign. 
Madame he said to the duchess, I have had the boldness 
to present myself at your hotel without being known to you; 
it has succeededsince you deign to receive me. I have now 
the boldness to ask you for an interview of half an hour." 
I grant it, monsieur,replied Madame de Chevreuse with her 
most gracious smile. 
But that is not all, madame. Oh, I am very presuming, I am 
aware. The interview for which I ask is of us two alone, and 
I very earnestly wish that it may not be interrupted.
I am not at home to any one,said the Duchess de Chevreuse 
to the footman. "You may go." 
The footman went out 
There ensued a brief silenceduring which these two 
personswho at first sight recognized each other so clearly 
as of noble raceexamined each other without embarrassment 
on either side. 
The duchess was the first to speak. 
Well, sir, I am waiting with impatience to hear what you 
wish to say to me.
And I, madame,replied Athosam looking with 
admiration.
Sir,said Madame de Chevreuseyou must excuse me, but I 
long to know to whom I am talking. You belong to the court, 
doubtless, yet I have never seen you at court. Have you, by 
any chance, been in the Bastile?
No, madame, I have not; but very likely I am on the road to 
it.
Ah! then tell me who you are, and get along with you upon 
your journey,replied the duchesswith the gayety which 
made her so charmingfor I am sufficiently in bad odor 
already, without compromising myself still more.
Who I am, madame? My name has been mentioned to you -- the 
Comte de la Fere; you do not know that name. I once bore 
another, which you knew, but you have certainly forgotten 
it.
Tell it me, sir.
Formerly,said the countI was Athos.
Madame de Chevreuse looked astonished. The name was not 
wholly forgottenbut mixed up and confused with ancient 
recollections. 
Athos?said she; "wait a moment." 
And she placed her hands on her browas if to force the 
fugitive ideas it contained to concentration in a moment. 
Shall I help you, madame?asked Athos. 
Yes, do,said the duchess. 
This Athos was connected with three young musketeers, named 
Porthos, D'Artagnan, and ---- 
He stopped short. 
And Aramis,said the duchessquickly. 
And Aramis; I see you have not forgotten the name.
No,she said; "poor Aramis; a charming manelegant
discreetand a writer of poetical verses. I am afraid he 
has turned out ill she added. 
He has; he is an abbe." 
Ah, what a misfortune!exclaimed the duchessplaying 
carelessly with her fan. "IndeedsirI thank you; you have 
recalled one of the most agreeable recollections of my 
youth." 
Will you permit me, then, to recall another to you?
Relating to him?
Yes and no.
Faith!said Madame de Chevreusesay on. With a man like 
you I fear nothing.
Athos bowed. "Aramis he continued, was intimate with a 
young needlewoman from Toursa cousin of hisnamed Marie 
Michon." 
Ah, I knew her!cried the duchess. "It was to her he wrote 
from the siege of Rochelleto warn her of a plot against 
the Duke of Buckingham." 
Exactly so; will you allow me to speak to you of her?
If,replied the duchesswith a meaning lookyou do not 
say too much against her.
I should be ungrateful,said Athosand I regard 
ingratitude, not as a fault or a crime, but as a vice, which 
is much worse.
You ungrateful to Marie Michon, monsieur?said Madame de 
Chevreusetrying to read in Athos's eyes. "But how can that 
be? You never knew her." 
Eh, madame, who knows?said Athos. "There is a popular 
proverb to the effect that it is only mountains that never 
meet; and popular proverbs contain sometimes a wonderful 
amount of truth." 
Oh, go on, monsieur, go on!said Madame de Chevreuse 
eagerly; "you can't imagine how much this conversation 
interests me." 
You encourage me,said AthosI will continue, then. That 
cousin of Aramis, that Marie Michon, that needlewoman, 
notwithstanding her low condition, had acquaintances in the 
highest rank; she called the grandest ladies of the court 
her friend, and the queen -- proud as she is, in her double 
character as Austrian and as Spaniard -- called her her 
sister.
Alas!said Madame de Chevreusewith a slight sigh and a 
little movement of her eyebrows that was peculiarly her own
since that time everything has changed.
And the queen had reason for her affection, for Marie was 
devoted to her -- devoted to that degree that she served her 
as medium of intercourse with her brother, the king of 
Spain.
Which,interrupted the duchessis now brought up against 
her as a great crime.
And therefore,continued Athosthe cardinal -- the true 
cardinal, the other one -- determined one fine morning to 
arrest poor Marie Michon and send her to the Chateau de 
Loches. Fortunately the affair was not managed so secretly 
but that it became known to the queen. The case had been 
provided for: if Marie Michon should be threatened with any 
danger the queen was to send her a prayer-book bound in 
green velvet.
That is true, monsieur, you are well informed.
One morning the green book was brought to her by the Prince 
de Marsillac. There was no time to lose. Happily Marie and a 
follower of hers named Kitty could disguise themselves 
admirably in men's clothes. The prince procured for Marie 
Michon the dress of a cavalier and for Kitty that of a 
lackey; he sent them two excellent horses, and the fugitives 
went out hastily from Tours, shaping their course toward 
Spain, trembling at the least noise, following unfrequented 
roads, and asking for hospitality when they found themselves 
where there was no inn.
Why, really, it was all exactly as you say!cried Madame 
de Chevreuseclapping her hands. "It would indeed be 
strange if ---- " she checked herself. 
If I should follow the two fugitives to the end of their 
journey?said Athos. "NomadameI will not thus waste 
your time. We will accompany them only to a little village 
in Limousinlying between Tulle and Angouleme -- a little 
village called Roche-l'Abeille." 
Madame de Chevreuse uttered a cry of surpriseand looked at 
Athos with an expression of astonishment that made the old 
musketeer smile. 
Wait, madame,continued Athoswhat remains for me to 
tell you is even more strange than what I have narrated.
Monsieur,said Madame de ChevreuseI believe you are a 
sorcerer; I am prepared for anything. But really -- No 
matter, go on.
The journey of that day had been long and wearing; it was a 
cold day, the eleventh of October, there was no inn or 
chateau in the village and the homes of the peasants were 
poor and unattractive. Marie Michon was a very aristocratic 
person; like her sister the queen, she had been accustomed 
to pleasing perfumes and fine linen; she resolved, 
therefore, to seek hospitality of the priest.
Athos paused. 
Oh, continue!said the duchess. "I have told you that I am 
prepared for anything." 
The two travelers knocked at the door. It was late; the 
priest, who had gone to bed, cried out to them to come in. 
They entered, for the door was not locked -- there is much 
confidence among villagers. A lamp burned in the chamber 
occupied by the priest. Marie Michon, who made the most 
charming cavalier in the world, pushed open the door, put 
her head in and asked for hospitality. `Willingly, my young 
cavalier,' said the priest, `if you will be content with the 
remains of my supper and with half my chamber.' 
The two travelers consulted for a moment. The priest heard 
a burst of laughter and then the masteror ratherthe 
mistressreplied: `Thank youmonsieur le cureI accept.' 
`Supthenand make as little noise as possible' said the 
priest`for Itoohave been on the go all day and shall 
not be sorry to sleep to-night.'" 
Madame de Chevreuse evidently went from surprise to 
astonishmentand from astonishment to stupefaction. Her 
faceas she looked at Athoshad taken on an expression 
that cannot be described. It could be seen that she had 
wished to speakbut she had remained silent through fear of 
losing one of her companion's words. 
What happened then?she asked. 
Then?said Athos. "AhI have come now to what is most 
difficult." 
Speak, speak! One can say anything to me. Besides, it 
doesn't concern me; it relates to Mademoiselle Marie 
Michon.
Ah, that is true,said Athos. "WellthenMarie Michon 
had supper with her followerand thenin accordance with 
the permission given hershe entered the chamber of her 
hostKitty meanwhile taking possession of an armchair in 
the room first enteredwhere they had taken their supper." 
Really, monsieur,said Madame de Chevreuseunless you 
are the devil in person I don't know how you could become 
acquainted with all these details.
A charming woman was that Marie Michon,resumed Athos
one of those wild creatures who are constantly conceiving 
the strangest ideas. Now, thinking that her host was a 
priest, that coquette took it into her head that it would be 
a happy souvenir for her old age, among the many happy 
souvenirs she already possessed, if she could win that of 
having damned an abbe.
Count,said the duchessupon my word, you frighten me.
Alas!continued Athosthe poor abbe was not a St. 
Ambroise, and I repeat, Marie Michon was an adorable 
creature.
Monsieur!cried the duchessseizing Athos's handstell 
me this moment how you know all these details, or I will 
send to the convent of the Vieux Augustins for a monk to 
come and exorcise you.
Athos laughed. "Nothing is easiermadame. A cavalier
charged with an important missionhad come an hour before 
your arrivalseeking hospitalityat the very moment that 
the curesummoned to the bedside of a dying personleft 
not only his house but the villagefor the entire night. 
The priest having all confidence in his guestwhobesides
was a noblemanhad left to him his househis supper and 
his chamber. And therefore Marie came seeking hospitality 
from the guest of the good abbe and not from the good abbe 
himself." 
And that cavalier, that guest, that nobleman who arrived 
before she came?
It was I, the Comte de la Fere,said Athosrising and 
bowing respectfully to the Duchess de Chevreuse. 
The duchess remained a moment stupefied; thensuddenly 
bursting into laughter: 
Ah! upon my word,said sheit is very droll, and that 
mad Marie Michon fared better than she expected. Sit down, 
dear count, and go on with your story.
At this point I have to accuse myself of a fault, madame. I 
have told you that I was traveling on an important mission. 
At daybreak I left the chamber without noise, leaving my 
charming companion asleep. In the front room the follower 
was also still asleep, her head leaning back on the chair, 
in all respects worthy of her mistress. Her pretty face 
arrested my attention; I approached and recognized that 
little Kitty whom our friend Aramis had placed with her. In 
that way I discovered that the charming traveler was ---- 
Marie Michon!said Madame de Chevreusehastily. 
Marie Michon,continued Athos. "Then I went out of the 
house; I proceeded to the stable and found my horse saddled 
and my lackey ready. We set forth on our journey." 
And have you never revisited that village?eagerly asked 
Madame de Chevreuse. 
A year after, madame.
Well?
I wanted to see the good cure again. I found him much 
preoccupied with an event that he could not at all 
comprehend. A week before he had received, in a cradle, a 
beautiful little boy three months old, with a purse filled 
with gold and a note containing these simple words: `11 
October, 1633.'
It was the date of that strange adventure,interrupted 
Madame de Chevreuse. 
Yes, but he couldn't understand what it meant, for he had 
spent that night with a dying person and Marie Michon had 
left his house before his return.
You must know, monsieur, that Marie Michon, when she 
returned to France in 1643, immediately sought for 
information about that child; as a fugitive she could not 
take care of it, but on her return she wished to have it 
near her.
And what said the abbe?asked Athos. 
That a nobleman whom he did not know had wished to take 
charge of it, had answered for its future, and had taken it 
away.
That was true.
Ah! I see! That nobleman was you; it was his father!
Hush! do not speak so loud, madame; he is there.
He is there! my son! the son of Marie Michon! But I must 
see him instantly.
Take care, madame,said Athosfor he knows neither his 
father nor his mother.
You have kept the secret! you have brought him to see me, 
thinking to make me happy. Oh, thanks! sir, thanks!cried 
Madame de Chevreuseseizing his hand and trying to put it 
to her lips; "you have a noble heart." 
I bring him to you, madame,said Athoswithdrawing his 
handhoping that in your turn you will do something for 
him; till now I have watched over his education and I have 
made him, I hope, an accomplished gentleman; but I am now 
obliged to return to the dangerous and wandering life of 
party faction. To-morrow I plunge into an adventurous affair 
in which I may be killed. Then it will devolve on you to 
push him on in that world where he is called on to occupy a 
place.
Rest assured,cried the duchessI shall do what I can. I 
have but little influence now, but all that I have shall 
most assuredly be his. As to his title and fortune ---- 
As to that, madame, I have made over to him the estate of 
Bragelonne, my inheritance, which will give him ten thousand 
francs a year and the title of vicomte.
Upon my soul, monsieur,said the duchessyou are a true 
nobleman! But I am eager to see our young vicomte. Where is 
he?
There, in the salon. I will have him come in, if you really 
wish it.
Athos moved toward the door; the duchess held him back. 
Is he handsome?she asked. 
Athos smiled. 
He resembles his mother.
So he opened the door and beckoned the young man in. 
The duchess could not restrain a cry of joy on seeing so 
handsome a young cavalierso far surpassing all that her 
maternal pride had been able to conceive. 
Vicomte, come here,said Athos; "the duchess permits you 
to kiss her hand." 
The youth approached with his charming smile and his head 
bareand kneeling downkissed the hand of the Duchess de 
Chevreuse. 
Sir,he saidturning to Athoswas it not in compassion 
to my timidity that you told me that this lady was the 
Duchess de Chevreuse, and is she not the queen?
No, vicomte,said Madame de Chevreusetaking his hand and 
making him sit near herwhile she looked at him with eyes 
sparkling with pleasure; "nounhappilyI am not the queen. 
If I were I should do for you at once the most that you 
deserve. But let us see; whatever I may be she added, 
hardly restraining herself from kissing that pure brow, let 
us see what profession you wish to follow." 
Athosstandinglooked at them both with indescribable 
pleasure. 
Madame,answered the youth in his sweet voiceit seems 
to me that there is only one career for a gentleman -- that 
of the army. I have been brought up by monsieur le comte 
with the intention, I believe, of making me a soldier; and 
he gave me reason to hope that at Paris he would present me 
to some one who would recommend me to the favor of the 
prince.
Yes, I understand it well. Personally, I am on bad terms 
with him, on account of the quarrels between Madame de 
Montbazon, my mother-in-law, and Madame de Longueville. But 
the Prince de Marsillac! Yes, indeed, that's the right 
thing. The Prince de Marsillac -- my old friend -- will 
recommend our young friend to Madame de Longueville, who 
will give him a letter to her brother, the prince, who loves 
her too tenderly not to do what she wishes immediately.
Well, that will do charmingly,said the count; "but may I 
beg that the greatest haste may be madefor I have reasons 
for wishing the vicomte not to sleep longer than to-morrow 
night in Paris!" 
Do you wish it known that you are interested about him, 
monsieur le comte?
Better for him in future that he should be supposed never 
to have seen me.
Oh, sir!cried Raoul. 
You know, Bragelonne,said AthosI never speak without 
reflection.
Well, comte, I am going instantly,interrupted the 
duchessto send for the Prince de Marsillac, who is 
happily, in Paris just now. What are you going to do this 
evening?
We intend to visit the Abbe Scarron, for whom I have a 
letter of introduction and at whose house I expect to meet 
some of my friends.
'Tis well; I will go there also, for a few minutes,said 
the duchess; "do not quit his salon until you have seen me." 
Athos bowed and prepared to leave. 
Well, monsieur le comte,said the duchesssmilingdoes 
one leave so solemnly his old friends?
Ah,murmured Athoskissing her handhad I only sooner 
known that Marie Michon was so charming a creature!And he 
withdrewsighing. 
The Abbe Scarron. 
There was once in the Rue des Tournelles a house known by 
all the sedan chairmen and footmen of Parisand yet
neverthelessthis house was neither that of a great lord 
nor of a rich man. There was neither diningnor playing at 
cardsnor dancing in that house. Neverthelessit was the 
rendezvous of the great world and all Paris went there. It 
was the abode of the little Abbe Scarron. 
In the home of the witty abbe dwelt incessant laughter; 
there all the items of the day had their source and were so 
quickly transformedmisrepresentedmetamorphosedsome 
into epigramssome into falsehoodsthat every one was 
anxious to pass an hour with little Scarronlistening to 
what he saidreporting it to others. 
The diminutive Abbe Scarronwhohoweverwas an abbe only 
because he owned an abbeyand not because he was in orders
had formerly been one of the gayest prebendaries in the town 
of Manswhich he inhabited. On a day of the carnival he had 
taken a notion to provide an unusual entertainment for that 
good townof which he was the life and soul. He had made 
his valet cover him with honey; thenopening a feather bed
he had rolled in it and had thus become the most grotesque 
fowl it is possible to imagine. He then began to visit his 
friends of both sexesin that strange costume. At first he 
had been followed through astonishmentthen with derisive 
shoutsthen the porters had insulted himthen children had 
thrown stones at himand finally he was obliged to runto 
escape the missiles. As soon as he took to flight every one 
pursued himuntilpressed on all sidesScarron found no 
way of escaping his escortexcept by throwing himself into 
the river; but the water was icy cold. Scarron was heated
the cold seized on himand when he reached the farther bank 
he found himself crippled. 
Every means had been employed in vain to restore the use of 
his limbs. He had been subjected to a severe disciplinary 
course of medicineat length he sent away all his doctors
declaring that he preferred the disease to the treatment
and came to Pariswhere the fame of his wit had preceded 
him. There he had a chair made on his own planand one day
visiting Anne of Austria in this chairshe asked him
charmed as she was with his witif he did not wish for a 
title. 
Yes, your majesty, there is a title which I covet much,
replied Scarron. 
And what is that?
That of being your invalid,answered Scarron. 
So he was called the queen's invalidwith a pension of 
fifteen hundred francs. 
From that lucky moment Scarron led a happy lifespending 
both income and principal. One dayhoweveran emissary of 
the cardinal's gave him to understand that he was wrong in 
receiving the coadjutor so often. 
And why?asked Scarron; "is he not a man of good birth?" 
Certainly.
Agreeable?
Undeniably.
Witty?
He has, unfortunately, too much wit.
Well, then, why do you wish me to give up seeing such a 
man?
Because he is an enemy.
Of whom?
Of the cardinal.
What?answered ScarronI continue to receive Monsieur 
Gilles Despreaux, who thinks ill of me, and you wish me to 
give up seeing the coadjutor, because he thinks ill of 
another man. Impossible!
The conversation had rested there and Scarronthrough sheer 
obstinacyhad seen Monsieur de Gondy only the more 
frequently. 
Nowthe very morning of which we speak was that of his 
quarter-day paymentand Scarronas usualhad sent his 
servant to get his money at the pension-officebut the man 
had returned and said that the government had no more money 
to give Monsieur Scarron. 
It was on Thursdaythe abbe's reception day; people went 
there in crowds. The cardinal's refusal to pay the pension 
was known about the town in half an hour and he was abused 
with wit and vehemence. 
In the Rue Saint Honore Athos fell in with two gentlemen 
whom he did not knowon horseback like himselffollowed by 
a lackey like himselfand going in the same direction that 
he was. One of themhat in handsaid to him: 
Would you believe it, monsieur? that contemptible Mazarin 
has stopped poor Scarron's pension.
That is unreasonable,said Athossaluting in his turn the 
two cavaliers. And they separated with courteous gestures. 
It happens well that we are going there this evening,said 
Athos to the vicomte; "we will pay our compliments to that 
poor man." 
What, then, is this Monsieur Scarron, who thus puts all 
Paris in commotion? Is he some minister out of office?
Oh, no, not at all, vicomte,Athos replied; "he is simply 
a gentleman of great genius who has fallen into disgrace 
with the cardinal through having written certain verses 
against him." 
Do gentlemen, then, make verses?asked RaoulnaivelyI 
thought it was derogatory.
So it is, my dear vicomte,said Athoslaughingto make 
bad ones; but to make good ones increases fame -- witness 
Monsieur de Rotrou. Nevertheless,he continuedin the tone 
of one who gives wholesome adviceI think it is better not 
to make them.
Then,said Raoulthis Monsieur Scarron is a poet?
Yes; you are warned, vicomte. Consider well what you do in 
that house. Talk only by gestures, or rather always listen.
Yes, monsieur,replied Raoul. 
You will see me talking with one of my friends, the Abbe 
d'Herblay, of whom you have often heard me speak.
I remember him, monsieur.
Come near to us from time to time, as if to speak; but do 
not speak, and do not listen. That little stratagem may 
serve to keep off interlopers.
Very well, monsieur; I will obey you at all points.
Athos made two visits in Paris; at seven o'clock he and 
Raoul directed their steps to the Rue des Tournelles; it was 
stopped by portershorses and footmen. Athos forced his way 
through and enteredfollowed by the young man. The first 
person that struck him on his entrance was Aramisplanted 
near a great chair on castorsvery largecovered with a 
canopy of tapestryunder which there movedenveloped in a 
quilt of brocadea little faceyoungishvery merry
somewhat pallidwhilst its eyes never ceased to express a 
sentiment at once livelyintellectualand amiable. This 
was the Abbe Scarronalways laughingjokingcomplimenting 
-- yet suffering -- and toying nervously with a small 
switch. 
Around this kind of rolling tent pressed a crowd of 
gentlemen and ladies. The room was neatlycomfortably 
furnished. Large valances of silkembroidered with flowers 
of gay colorswhich were rather fadedfell from the wide 
windows; the fittings of the room were simplebut in 
excellent taste. Two well trained servingmen were in 
attendance on the company. On perceiving AthosAramis 
advanced toward himtook him by the hand and presented him 
to Scarron. Raoul remained silentfor he was not prepared 
for the dignity of the bel esprit. 
After some minutes the door opened and a footman announced 
Mademoiselle Paulet. 
Athos touched the shoulder of the vicomte. 
Look at this lady, Raoul, she is an historic personage; it 
was to visit her King Henry IV. was going when he was 
assassinated.
Every one thronged around Mademoiselle Pauletfor she was 
always very much the fashion. She was a tall womanwith a 
slender figure and a forest of golden curlssuch as Raphael 
was fond of and Titian has painted all his Magdalens with. 
This fawn-colored hairorperhaps the sort of ascendancy 
which she had over other womengave her the name of "La 
Lionne." Mademoiselle Paulet took her accustomed seatbut 
before sitting downshe castin all her queen-like 
grandeura look around the roomand her eyes rested on 
Raoul. 
Athos smiled. 
Mademoiselle Paulet has observed you, vicomte; go and bow 
to her; don't try to appear anything but what you are, a 
true country youth; on no account speak to her of Henry IV.
When shall we two walk together?Athos then said to 
Aramis. 
Presently -- there are not a sufficient number of people 
here yet; we shall be remarked.
At this moment the door opened and in walked the coadjutor. 
At this name every one looked aroundfor his was already a 
very celebrated name. Athos did the same. He knew the Abbe 
de Gondy only by report. 
He saw a little dark manill made and awkward with his 
hands in everything -- except drawing a sword and firing a 
pistol -- with something haughty and contemptuous in his 
face. 
Scarron turned around toward him and came to meet him in his 
chair. 
Well,said the coadjutoron seeing himyou are in 
disgrace, then, abbe?
This was the orthodox phrase. It had been said that evening 
a hundred times -- and Scarron was at his hundredth bon mot 
on the subject; he was very nearly at the end of his 
humoristic tetherbut one despairing effort saved him. 
Monsieur, the Cardinal Mazarin has been so kind as to think 
of me,he said. 
But how can you continue to receive us?asked the 
coadjutor; "if your income is lessened I shall be obliged to 
make you a canon of Notre Dame." 
Oh, no!cried ScarronI should compromise you too much.
Perhaps you have resources of which we are ignorant?
I shall borrow from the queen.
But her majesty has no property,interposed Aramis. 
At this moment the door opened and Madame de Chevreuse was 
announced. Every one arose. Scarron turned his chair toward 
the doorRaoul blushedAthos made a sign to Aramiswho 
went and hid himself in the enclosure of a window. 
In the midst of all the compliments that awaited her on her 
entrancethe duchess seemed to be looking for some one; at 
last she found out Raoul and her eyes sparkled; she 
perceived Athos and became thoughtful; she saw Aramis in the 
seclusion of the window and gave a start of surprise behind 
her fan. 
Apropos,she saidas if to drive away thoughts that 
pursued her in spite of herselfhow is poor Voiture, do 
you know, Scarron?
What, is Monsieur Voiture ill?inquired a gentleman who 
had spoken to Athos in the Rue Saint Honore; "what is the 
matter with him?" 
He was acting, but forgot to take the precaution to have a 
change of linen ready after the performance,said the 
coadjutorso he took cold and is about to die.
Is he then so ill, dear Voiture?asked Aramishalf hidden 
by the window curtain. 
Die!cried Mademoiselle Pauletbitterlyhe! Why, he is 
surrounded by sultanas, like a Turk. Madame de Saintot has 
hastened to him with broth; La Renaudot warms his sheets; 
the Marquise de Rambouillet sends him his tisanes.
You don't like him, my dear Parthenie,said Scarron. 
What an injustice, my dear invalid! I hate him so little 
that I should be delighted to order masses for the repose of 
his soul.
You are not called `Lionne' for nothing,observed Madame 
de Chevreuseyour teeth are terrible.
You are unjust to a great poet, it seems to me,Raoul 
ventured to say. 
A great poet! come, one may easily see, vicomte, that you 
are lately from the provinces and have never so much as seen 
him. A great poet! he is scarcely five feet high.
Bravo bravo!cried a tall man with an enormous mustache 
and a long rapierbravo, fair Paulet, it is high time to 
put little Voiture in his right place. For my part, I always 
thought his poetry detestable, and I think I know something 
about poetry.
Who is this officer,inquired Raoul of Athoswho is 
speaking?
Monsieur de Scudery, the author of `Clelie,' and of `Le 
Grand Cyrus,' which were composed partly by him and partly 
by his sister, who is now talking to that pretty person 
yonder, near Monsieur Scarron.
Raoul turned and saw two faces just arrived. One was 
perfectly charmingdelicatepensiveshaded by beautiful 
dark hairand eyes soft as velvetlike those lovely 
flowersthe heartseasein which shine out the golden 
petals. The otherof mature ageseemed to have the former 
one under her chargeand was colddry and yellow -- the 
true type of a duenna or a devotee. 
Raoul resolved not to quit the room without having spoken to 
the beautiful girl with the soft eyeswho by a strange 
fancyalthough she bore no resemblancereminded him of his 
poor little Louisewhom he had left in the Chateau de la 
Valliere and whomin the midst of all the partyhe had 
never for one moment quite forgotten. Meantime Aramis had 
drawn near to the coadjutorwhosmiling all the while
contrived to drop some words into his ear. Aramis
notwithstanding his self-controlcould not refrain from a 
slight movement of surprise. 
Laugh, then,said Monsieur de Retz; "they are looking at 
us." And leaving Aramis he went to talk with Madame de 
Chevreusewho was in the midst of a large group. 
Aramis affected a laughto divert the attention of certain 
curious listenersand perceiving that Athos had betaken 
himself to the embrasure of a window and remained therehe 
proceeded to join himthrowing out a few words carelessly 
as he moved through the room. 
As soon as the two friends met they began a conversation 
which was emphasized by frequent gesticulation. 
Raoul then approached them as Athos had directed him to do. 
'Tis a rondeau by Monsieur Voiture that monsieur l'abbe is 
repeating to me.said Athos in a loud voiceand I confess 
I think it incomparable.
Raoul stayed only a few minutes near them and then mingled 
with the group round Madame de Chevreuse. 
Well, then?asked Athosin a low tone. 
It is to be to-morrow,said Aramis hastily. 
At what time?
Six o'clock.
Where?
At Saint Mande.
Who told you?
The Count de Rochefort.
Some one drew near. 
And then philosophic ideas are wholly wanting in Voiture's 
works, but I am of the same opinion as the coadjutor -- he 
is a poet, a true poet.Aramis spoke so as to be heard by 
everybody. 
And I, too,murmured the young lady with the velvet eyes. 
I have the misfortune also to admire his poetry 
exceedingly.
Monsieur Scarron, do me the honor,said Raoulblushing
to tell me the name of that young lady whose opinion seems 
so different from that of others of the company.
Ah! my young vicomte,replied ScarronI suppose you wish 
to propose to her an alliance offensive and defensive.
Raoul blushed again. 
You asked the name of that young lady. She is called the 
fair Indian.
Excuse me, sir,returned Raoulblushing still more 
deeplyI know no more than I did before. Alas! I am from 
the country.
Which means that you know very little about the nonsense 
which here flows down our streets. So much the better, young 
man! so much the better! Don't try to understand it -- you 
will only lose your time.
You forgive me, then, sir,said Raouland you will deign 
to tell me who is the person that you call the young 
Indian?
Certainly; one of the most charming persons that lives --
Mademoiselle Frances d'Aubigne.
Does she belong to the family of the celebrated Agrippa, 
the friend of Henry IV.?
His granddaughter. She comes from Martinique, so I call her 
the beautiful Indian.
Raoul looked surprised and his eyes met those of the young 
ladywho smiled. 
The company went on speaking of the poet Voiture. 
Monsieur,said Mademoiselle d'Aubigne to Scarronas if 
she wished to join in the conversation he was engaged in 
with Raouldo you not admire Monsieur Voiture's friends? 
Listen how they pull him to pieces even whilst they praise 
him; one takes away from him all claim to good sense, 
another robs him of his poetry, a third of his originality, 
another of his humor, another of his independence of 
character, a sixth -- but, good heavens! what will they 
leave him? as Mademoiselle de Scudery remarks.
Scarron and Raoul laughed. The fair Indianastonished at 
the sensation her observation producedlooked down and 
resumed her air of naivete. 
Athosstill within the inclosure of the windowwatched 
this scene with a smile of disdain on his lips. 
Tell the Comte de la Fere to come to me,said Madame de 
ChevreuseI want to speak to him.
And I,said the coadjutorwant it to be thought that I 
do not speak to him. I admire, I love him -- for I know his 
former adventures -- but I shall not speak to him until the 
day after to-morrow.
And why day after to-morrow?asked Madame de Chevreuse. 
You will know that to-morrow evening,said the coadjutor
smiling. 
Really, my dear Gondy,said the duchessyou remind one 
of the Apocalypse. Monsieur d'Herblay,she addedturning 
toward Aramiswill you be my servant once more this 
evening?
How can you doubt it?replied Aramis; "this evening
to-morrowalways; command me." 
I will, then. Go and look for the Comte de la Fere; I wish 
to speak with him.
Aramis found Athos and brought him. 
Monsieur le comte,said the duchessgiving him a letter
here is what I promised you; our young friend will be 
extremely well received.
Madame, he is very happy in owing any obligation to you.
You have no reason to envy him on that score, for I owe to 
you the pleasure of knowing him,replied the witty woman
with a smile which recalled Marie Michon to Aramis and to 
Athos. 
As she uttered that bon motshe arose and asked for her 
carriage. Mademoiselle Paulet had already gone; Mademoiselle 
de Scudery was going. 
Vicomte,said Athos to Raoulfollow the duchess; beg her 
to do you the favor to take your arm in going downstairs, 
and thank her as you descend.
The fair Indian approached Scarron. 
You are going already?he said. 
One of the last, as you see; if you hear anything of 
Monsieur Voiture, be so kind as to send me word to-morrow.
Oh!said Scarronhe may die now.
Why?asked the young girl with the velvet eyes. 
Certainly; his panegyric has been uttered.
They partedlaughingshe turning back to gaze at the poor 
paralytic man with interesthe looking after her with eyes 
of love. 
One by one the several groups broke up. Scarron seemed not 
to observe that certain of his guests had talked 
mysteriouslythat letters had passed from hand to hand and 
that the assembly had seemed to have a secret purpose quite 
apart from the literary discussion carried on with so much 
ostentation. What was all that to Scarron? At his house 
rebellion could be planned with impunityforas we have 
saidsince that morning he had ceased to be "the queen's 
invalid." 
As to Raoulhe had attended the duchess to her carriage
whereas she took her seatshe gave him her hand to kiss; 
thenby one of those wild caprices which made her so 
adorable and at the same time so dangerousshe had suddenly 
put her arm around his neck and kissed his foreheadsaying: 
Vicomte, may my good wishes and this kiss bring you good 
fortune!
Then she had pushed him away and directed the coachman to 
stop at the Hotel de Luynes. The carriage had started
Madame de Chevreuse had made a parting gesture to the young 
manand Raoul had returned in a state of stupefaction. 
Athos surmised what had taken place and smiled. "Come
vicomte he said, it is time for you to go to bed; you 
will start in the morning for the army of monsieur le 
prince. Sleep well your last night as citizen." 
I am to be a soldier then?said the young man. "Oh
monsieurI thank you with all my heart." 
Adieu, count,said the Abbe d'Herblay; "I return to my 
convent." 
Adieu, abbe,said the coadjutorI am to preach to-morrow 
and have twenty texts to examine this evening.
Adieu, gentlemen,said the count; "I am going to sleep 
twenty-four hours; I am just falling down with fatigue." 
The three men saluted one anotherwhilst exchanging a last 
look. 
Scarron followed their movements with a glance from the 
corner of his eye. 
Not one of them will do as he says,he murmuredwith his 
little monkey smile; "but they may do as they pleasethe 
brave gentlemen! Who knows if they will not manage to 
restore to me my pension? They can move their armsthey 
canand that is much. AlasI have only my tonguebut I 
will try to show that it is good for something. Hothere
Champenois! hereit is eleven o'clock. Come and roll me to 
bed. Reallythat Demoiselle d'Aubigne is very charming!" 
So the invalid disappeared soon afterward and went into his 
sleeping-room; and one by one the lights in the salon of the 
Rue des Tournelles were extinguished. 
Saint Denis. 
The day had begun to break when Athos arose and dressed 
himself. It was plainby a paleness still greater than 
usualand by those traces which loss of sleep leaves on the 
facethat he must have passed almost the whole of the night 
without sleeping. Contrary to the custom of a man so firm 
and decidedthere was this morning in his personal 
appearance something tardy and irresolute. 
He was occupied with the preparations for Raoul's departure 
and was seeking to gain time. In the first place he himself 
furbished a swordwhich he drew from its perfumed leather 
sheath; he examined it to see if its hilt was well guarded 
and if the blade was firmly attached to the hilt. Then he 
placed at the bottom of the valise belonging to the young 
man a small bag of louiscalled Olivainthe lackey who had 
followed him from Bloisand made him pack the valise under 
his own eyeswatchful to see that everything should be put 
in which might be useful to a young man entering on his 
first campaign. 
At lengthafter occupying about an hour in these 
preparationshe opened the door of the room in which the 
vicomte sleptand entered. 
The sunalready highpenetrated into the room through the 
windowthe curtains of which Raoul had neglected to close 
on the previous evening. He was still sleepinghis head 
gracefully reposing on his arm. 
Athos approached and hung over the youth in an attitude full 
of tender melancholy; he looked long on this young man
whose smiling mouth and half closed eyes bespoke soft dreams 
and lightest slumberas if his guardian angel watched over 
him with solicitude and affection. By degrees Athos gave 
himself up to the charms of his reverie in the proximity of 
youthso pureso fresh. His own youth seemed to reappear
bringing with it all those savoury remembranceswhich are 
like perfumes more than thoughts. Between the past and the 
present was an ineffable abyss. But imagination has the 
wings of an angel of light and travels safely through or 
over the seas where we have been almost shipwreckedthe 
darkness in which our illusions are lostthe precipice 
whence our happiness has been hurled and swallowed up. He 
remembered that all the first part of his life had been 
embittered by a woman and he thought with alarm of the 
influence love might assume over so fineand at the same 
time so vigorous an organization as that of Raoul. 
In recalling all he had been throughhe foresaw all that 
Raoul might suffer; and the expression of the deep and 
tender compassion which throbbed in his heart was pictured 
in the moist eye with which he gazed on the young man. 
At this moment Raoul awokewithout a cloud on his face 
without weariness or lassitude; his eyes were fixed on those 
of Athos and perhaps he comprehended all that passed in the 
heart of the man who was awaiting his awakening as a lover 
awaits the awakening of his mistressfor his glancein 
returnhad all the tenderness of love. 
You are there, sir?he saidrespectfully. 
Yes, Raoul,replied the count. 
And you did not awaken me?
I wished to leave you still to enjoy some moments of sleep, 
my child; you must be fatigued from yesterday.
Oh, sir, how good you are!
Athos smiled. 
How do you feel this morning?he inquired. 
Perfectly well; quite rested, sir.
You are still growing,Athos continuedwith that charming 
and paternal interest felt by a grown man for a youth. 
Oh, sir, I beg your pardon!exclaimed Raoulashamed of so 
much attention; "in an instant I shall be dressed." 
Athos then called Olivain. 
Everything,said Olivain to Athoshas been done 
according to your directions; the horses are waiting.
And I was asleep,cried Raoulwhilst you, sir, you had 
the kindness to attend to all these details. Truly, sir, you 
overwhelm me with benefits!
Therefore you love me a little, I hope,replied Athosin 
a tone of emotion. 
Oh, sir! God knows how much I love, revere you.
See that you forget nothing,said Athosappearing to look 
about himthat he might hide his emotion. 
No, indeed, sir,answered Raoul. 
The servant then approached Athos and saidhesitatingly: 
Monsieur le vicomte has no sword.
'Tis well,said AthosI will take care of that.
They went downstairsRaoul looking every now and then at 
the count to see if the moment of farewell was at handbut 
Athos was silent. When they reached the steps Raoul saw 
three horses. 
Oh, sir! then you are going with me?
I will accompany you a portion of the way,said Athos. 
Joy shone in Raoul's eyes and he leaped lightly to his 
saddle. 
Athos mounted more slowlyafter speaking in a low voice to 
the lackeywhoinstead of following them immediately
returned to their rooms. Raouldelighted at the count's 
companionshipperceivedor affected to perceive nothing of 
this byplay. 
They set outpassing over the Pont Neuf; they pursued their 
way along the quay then called L'Abreuvoir Pepinand went 
along by the walls of the Grand Chatelet. They proceeded to 
the Rue Saint Denis. 
After passing through the Porte Saint DenisAthos looked at 
Raoul's way of riding and observed: 
Take care, Raoul! I have already often told you of this; 
you must not forget it, for it is a great defect in a rider. 
See! your horse is tired already, he froths at the mouth, 
whilst mine looks as if he had only just left the stable. 
You hold the bit too tight and so make his mouth hard, so 
that you will not be able to make him manoeuvre quickly. The 
safety of a cavalier often depends on the prompt obedience 
of his horse. In a week, remember, you will no longer be 
performing your manoeuvres for practice, but on a field of 
battle.
Then suddenlyin order not to give too uncomfortable an 
importance to this observation: 
See, Raoul!he resumed; "what a fine plain for partridge 
shooting." 
The young man stored in his mind the admonition whilst he 
admired the delicate tenderness with which it was bestowed. 
I have remarked also another thing,said Athoswhich is, 
that in firing off your pistol you hold your arm too far 
outstretched. This tension lessens the accuracy of the aim. 
So in twelve times you thrice missed the mark.
Which you, sir, struck twelve times,answered Raoul
smiling. 
Because I bent my arm and rested my hand on my elbow -- so; 
do you understand what I mean?
Yes, sir. I have fired since in that manner and have been 
quite successful.
What a cold wind!resumed Athos; "a wintry blast. Apropos
if you fire -- and you will do sofor you are recommended 
to a young general who is very fond of powder -- remember 
that in single combatwhich often takes place in the 
cavalrynever to fire the first shot. He who fires the 
first shot rarely hits his manfor he fires with the 
apprehension of being disarmedbefore an armed foe; then
whilst he firesmake your horse rear; that manoeuvre has 
saved my life several times." 
I shall do so, if only in gratitude ---- 
Eh!cried Athosare not those fellows poachers they have 
arrested yonder? They are. Then another important thing, 
Raoul: should you be wounded in a battle, and fall from your 
horse, if you have any strength left, disentangle yourself 
from the line that your regiment has formed; otherwise, it 
may be driven back and you will be trampled to death by the 
horses. At all events, should you be wounded, write to me 
that very instant, or get some one at once to write to me. 
We are judges of wounds, we old soldiers,Athos added
smiling. 
Thank you, sir,answered the young manmuch moved. 
They arrived that very moment at the gate of the town
guarded by two sentinels. 
Here comes a young gentleman,said one of themwho seems 
as if he were going to join the army.
How do you make that out?inquired Athos. 
By his manner, sir, and his age; he's the second to-day.
Has a young man, such as I am, gone through this morning, 
then?asked Raoul. 
Faith, yes, with a haughty presence, a fine equipage; such 
as the son of a noble house would have.
He will be my companion on the journey, sir,cried Raoul. 
Alas! he cannot make me forget what I shall have lost!
Thus talkingthey traversed the streetsfull of people on 
account of the feteand arrived opposite the old cathedral
where first mass was going on. 
Let us alight; Raoul,said Athos. "Olivaintake care of 
our horses and give me my sword." 
The two gentlemen then went into the church. Athos gave 
Raoul some of the holy water. A love as tender as that of a 
lover for his mistress dwellsundoubtedlyin some paternal 
hearts toward a son. 
Athos said a word to one of the vergerswho bowed and 
proceeded toward the basement. 
Come, Raoul,he saidlet us follow this man.
The verger opened the iron grating that guarded the royal 
tombs and stood on the topmost stepwhilst Athos and Raoul 
descended. The sepulchral depths of the descent were dimly 
lighted by a silver lamp on the lowest step; and just below 
this lamp there was laidwrapped in a flowing mantle of 
violet velvetworked with fleurs-de-lis of golda 
catafalque resting on trestles of oak. The young man
prepared for this scene by the state of his own feelings
which were mournfuland by the majesty of the cathedral 
which he had passed throughdescended in a slow and solemn 
manner and stood with head uncovered before these mortal 
spoils of the last kingwho was not to be placed by the 
side of his forefathers until his successor should take his 
place there; and who appeared to abide on that spotthat he 
might thus address human prideso sure to be exalted by the 
glories of a throne: "Dust of the earth! Here I await thee!" 
There was profound silence. 
Then Athos raised his hand and pointing to the coffin: 
This temporary sepulture is,he saidthat of a man who 
was of feeble mind, yet one whose reign was full of great 
events; because over this king watched the spirit of another 
man, even as this lamp keeps vigil over this coffin and 
illumines it. He whose intellect was thus supreme, Raoul, 
was the actual sovereign; the other, nothing but a phantom 
to whom he lent a soul; and yet, so powerful is majesty 
amongst us, this man has not even the honor of a tomb at the 
feet of him in whose service his life was worn away. 
Remember, Raoul, this! If Richelieu made the king, by 
comparison, seem small, he made royalty great. The Palace of 
the Louvre contains two things -- the king, who must die, 
and royalty, which never dies. The minister, so feared, so 
hated by his master, has descended into the tomb, drawing 
after him the king, whom he would not leave alone on earth, 
lest his work should be destroyed. So blind were his 
contemporaries that they regarded the cardinal's death as a 
deliverance; and I, even I, opposed the designs of the great 
man who held the destinies of France within the hollow of 
his hand. Raoul, learn how to distinguish the king from 
royalty; the king is but a man; royalty is the gift of God. 
Whenever you hesitate as to whom you ought to serve, abandon 
the exterior, the material appearance for the invisible 
principle, for the invisible principle is everything. Raoul, 
I seem to read your future destiny as through a cloud. It 
will be happier, I think, than ours has been. Different in 
your fate from us, you will have a king without a minister, 
whom you may serve, love, respect. Should the king prove a 
tyrant, for power begets tyranny, serve, love, respect 
royalty, that Divine right, that celestial spark which makes 
this dust still powerful and holy, so that we -- gentlemen, 
nevertheless, of rank and condition -- are as nothing in 
comparison with the cold corpse there extended.
I shall adore God, sir,said Raoulrespect royalty and 
ever serve the king. And if death be my lot, I hope to die 
for the king, for royalty and for God. Have I, sir, 
comprehended your instructions?
Athos smiled. 
Yours is a noble nature.he said; "here is your sword." 
Raoul bent his knee to the ground. 
It was worn by my father, a loyal gentleman. I have worn it 
in my turn and it has sometimes not been disgraced when the 
hilt was in my hand and the sheath at my side. Should your 
hand still be too weak to use this sword, Raoul, so much the 
better. You will have the more time to learn to draw it only 
when it ought to be used.
Sir,replied Raoulputting the sword to his lips as he 
received it from the countI owe you everything and yet 
this sword is the most precious gift you have yet made me. I 
will wear it, I swear to you, as a grateful man should do.
'Tis well; arise, vicomte, embrace me.
Raoul arose and threw himself with emotion into the count's 
arms. 
Adieu,faltered the countwho felt his heart die away 
within him; "adieuand think of me." 
Oh! for ever and ever!cried the youth; "oh! I swear to 
yousirshould any harm befall meyour name will be the 
last name that I shall utterthe remembrance of you my last 
thought." 
Athos hastened upstairs to conceal his emotionand regained 
with hurried steps the porch where Olivain was waiting with 
the horses. 
Olivain,said Athosshowing the servant Raoul's 
shoulder-belttighten the buckle of the sword, it falls 
too low. You will accompany monsieur le vicomte till Grimaud 
rejoins you. You know, Raoul, Grimaud is an old and zealous 
servant; he will follow you.
Yes, sir,answered Raoul. 
Now to horse, that I may see you depart!
Raoul obeyed. 
Adieu, Raoul,said the count; "adieumy dearest boy!" 
Adieu, sir, adieu, my beloved protector.
Athos waved his hand -- he dared not trust himself to speak: 
and Raoul went awayhis head uncovered. Athos remained 
motionlesslooking after him until he turned the corner of 
the street. 
Then the count threw the bridle of his horse into the hands 
of a peasantremounted the stepswent into the cathedral
there to kneel down in the darkest corner and pray. 
One of the Forty Methods of Escape of the Duc de Beaufort. 
Meanwhile time was passing on for the prisoneras well as 
for those who were preparing his escape; only for him it 
passed more slowly. Unlike other menwho enter with ardor 
upon a perilous resolution and grow cold as the moment of 
execution approachesthe Duc de Beaufortwhose buoyant 
courage had become a proverbseemed to push time before him 
and sought most eagerly to hasten the hour of action. In his 
escape aloneapart from his plans for the futurewhichit 
must be admittedwere for the present sufficiently vague 
and uncertainthere was a beginning of vengeance which 
filled his heart. In the first place his escape would be a 
serious misfortune to Monsieur de Chavignywhom he hated 
for the petty persecutions he owed to him. It would be a 
still worse affair for Mazarinwhom he execrated for the 
greater offences he had committed. It may be observed that 
there was a proper proportion in his sentiments toward the 
governor of the prison and the minister -- toward the 
subordinate and the master. 
Then Monsieur de Beaufortwho was so familiar with the 
interior of the Palais Royalthough he did not know the 
relations existing between the queen and the cardinal
pictured to himselfin his prisonall that dramatic 
excitement which would ensue when the rumor should run from 
the minister's cabinet to the chamber of Anne of Austria: 
Monsieur de Beaufort has escaped!Whilst saying that to 
himselfMonsieur de Beaufort smiled pleasantly and imagined 
himself already outsidebreathing the air of the plains and 
the forestspressing a strong horse between his knees and 
crying out in a loud voiceI am free!
It is true that on coming to himself he found that he was 
still within four walls; he saw La Ramee twirling his thumbs 
ten feet from himand his guards laughing and drinking in 
the ante-chamber. The only thing that was pleasant to him in 
that odious tableau -- such is the instability of the human 
mind -- was the sullen face of Grimaudfor whom he had at 
first conceived such a hatred and who now was all his hope. 
Grimaud seemed to him an Antinous. It is needless to say 
that this transformation was visible only to the prisoner's 
feverish imagination. Grimaud was still the sameand 
therefore he retained the entire confidence of his superior
La Rameewho now relied upon him more than he did upon 
himselfforas we have saidLa Ramee felt at the bottom 
of his heart a certain weakness for Monsieur de Beaufort. 
And so the good La Ramee made a festivity of the little 
supper with his prisoner. He had but one fault -- he was a 
gourmand; he had found the pates goodthe wine excellent. 
Now the successor of Pere Marteau had promised him a pate of 
pheasant instead of a pate of fowland Chambertin wine 
instead of Macon. All thisset off by the presence of that 
excellent princewho was so good-naturedwho invented so 
droll tricks against Monsieur de Chavigny and so fine jokes 
against Mazarinmade for La Ramee the approaching Pentecost 
one of the four great feasts of the year. He therefore 
looked forward to six o'clock with as much impatience as the 
duke himself. 
Since daybreak La Ramee had been occupied with the 
preparationsand trusting no one but himselfhe had 
visited personally the successor of Pere Marteau. The latter 
had surpassed himself; he showed La Ramee a monstrous pate
ornamented with Monsieur de Beaufort's coat-of-arms. It was 
empty as yetbut a pheasant and two partridges were lying 
near it. La Ramee's mouth watered and he returned to the 
duke's chamber rubbing his hands. To crown his happiness
Monsieur de Chavigny had started on a journey that morning 
and in his absence La Ramee was deputy-governor of the 
chateau. 
As for Grimaudhe seemed more sullen than ever. 
In the course of the forenoon Monsieur de Beaufort had a 
game of tennis with La Ramee; a sign from Grimaud put him on 
the alert. Grimaudgoing in advancefollowed the course 
which they were to take in the evening. The game was played 
in an inclosure called the little court of the chateaua 
place quite deserted except when Monsieur de Beaufort was 
playing; and even then the precaution seemed superfluous
the wall was so high. 
There were three gates to open before reaching the 
inclosureeach by a different key. When they arrived 
Grimaud went carelessly and sat down by a loophole in the 
wallletting his legs dangle outside. It was evident that 
there the rope ladder was to be attached. 
This manoeuvretransparent to the Duc de Beaufortwas 
quite unintelligible to La Ramee. 
The game at tenniswhichupon a sign from Grimaud
Monsieur de Beaufort had consented to playbegan in the 
afternoon. The duke was in full strength and beat La Ramee 
completely. 
Four of the guardswho were constantly near the prisoner
assisted in picking up the tennis balls. When the game was 
overthe dukelaughing at La Ramee for his bad play
offered these men two louis d'or to go and drink his health
with their four other comrades. 
The guards asked permission of La Rameewho gave it to 
thembut not till the eveninghowever; until then he had 
business and the prisoner was not to be left alone. 
Six o'clock came andalthough they were not to sit down to 
table until seven o'clockdinner was ready and served up. 
Upon a sideboard appeared the colossal pie with the duke's 
arms on itand seemingly cooked to a turnas far as one 
could judge by the golden color which illuminated the crust. 
The rest of the dinner was to come. 
Every one was impatientLa Ramee to sit down to tablethe 
guards to go and drinkthe duke to escape. 
Grimaud alone was calm as ever. One might have fancied that 
Athos had educated him with the express forethought of such 
a great event. 
There were moments whenlooking at Grimaudthe duke asked 
himself if he was not dreaming and if that marble figure was 
really at his service and would grow animated when the 
moment came for action. 
La Ramee sent away the guardsdesiring them to drink to the 
duke's healthand as soon as they were gone shut all the 
doorsput the keys in his pocket and showed the table to 
the prince with an air that signified: 
Whenever my lord pleases.
The prince looked at GrimaudGrimaud looked at the clock; 
it was hardly a quarter-past six. The escape was fixed to 
take place at seven o'clock; there was therefore 
three-quarters of an hour to wait. 
The dukein order to pass away another quarter of an hour
pretended to be reading something that interested him and 
muttered that he wished they would allow him to finish his 
chapter. La Ramee went up to him and looked over his 
shoulder to see what sort of a book it was that had so 
singular an influence over the prisoner as to make him put 
off taking his dinner. 
It was "Caesar's Commentaries which La Ramee had lent him, 
contrary to the orders of the governor; and La Ramee 
resolved never again to disobey these injunctions. 
Meantime he uncorked the bottles and went to smell if the 
pie was good. 
At half-past six the duke arose and said very gravely: 
CertainlyCaesar was the greatest man of ancient times." 
You think so, my lord?answered La Ramee. 
Yes.
Well, as for me, I prefer Hannibal.
And why, pray, Master La Ramee?asked the duke. 
Because he left no Commentaries,replied La Rameewith 
his coarse laugh. 
The duke vouchsafed no replybut sitting down at the table 
made a sign that La Ramee should seat himself opposite. 
There is nothing so expressive as the face of an epicure who 
finds himself before a well spread tableso La Rameewhen 
receiving his plate of soup from Grimaudpresented a type 
of perfect bliss. 
The duke smiled. 
Zounds!he said; "I don't suppose there is a more 
contented man at this moment in all the kingdom than 
yourself!" 
You are right, my lord duke,answered the officer; "I 
don't know any pleasanter sight on earth than a well covered 
table; and whenadded to thathe who does the honors is 
the grandson of Henry IV.you willmy lord dukeeasily 
comprehend that the honor fairly doubles the pleasure one 
enjoys." 
The dukein his turnbowedand an imperceptible smile 
appeared on the face of Grimaudwho kept behind La Ramee. 
My dear La Ramee,said the dukeyou are the only man to 
turn such faultless compliments.
No, my lord duke,replied La Rameein the fullness of his 
heart; "I say what I think; there is no compliment in what I 
say to you ---- " 
Then you are attached to me?asked the duke. 
To own the truth, I should be inconsolable if you were to 
leave Vincennes.
A droll way of showing your affliction.The duke meant to 
say "affection." 
But, my lord,returned La Rameewhat would you do if you 
got out? Every folly you committed would embroil you with 
the court and they would put you into the Bastile, instead 
of Vincennes. Now, Monsieur de Chavigny is not amiable, I 
allow, but Monsieur du Tremblay is considerably worse.
Indeed!exclaimed the dukewho from time to time looked 
at the clockthe fingers of which seemed to move with 
sickening slowness. 
But what can you expect from the brother of a capuchin 
monk, brought up in the school of Cardinal Richelieu? Ah, my 
lord, it is a great happiness that the queen, who always 
wished you well, had a fancy to send you here, where there's 
a promenade and a tennis court, good air, and a good table.
In short,answered the dukeif I comprehend you aright, 
La Ramee, I am ungrateful for having ever thought of leaving 
this place?
Oh! my lord duke, 'tis the height of ingratitude; but your 
highness has never seriously thought of it?
Yes,returned the dukeI must confess I sometimes think 
of it.
Still by one of your forty methods, your highness?
Yes, yes, indeed.
My lord,said La Rameenow we are quite at our ease and 
enjoying ourselves, pray tell me one of those forty ways 
invented by your highness.
Willingly,answered the dukegive me the pie!
I am listening,said La Rameeleaning back in his 
armchair and raising his glass of Madeira to his lipsand 
winking his eye that he might see the sun through the rich 
liquid that he was about to taste. 
The duke glanced at the clock. In ten minutes it would 
strike seven. 
Grimaud placed the pie before the dukewho took a knife 
with a silver blade to raise the upper crust; but La Ramee
who was afraid of any harm happening to this fine work of 
artpassed his knifewhich had an iron bladeto the duke. 
Thank you, La Ramee,said the prisoner. 
Well, my lord! this famous invention of yours?
Must I tell you,replied the dukeon what I most reckon 
and what I determine to try first?
Yes, that's the thing, my lord!cried his custodian
gaily. 
Well, I should hope, in the first instance, to have for 
keeper an honest fellow like you.
And you have me, my lord. Well?
Having, then, a keeper like La Ramee, I should try also to 
have introduced to him by some friend or other a man who 
would be devoted to me, who would assist me in my flight.
Come, come,said La Rameethat's not a bad idea.
Capital, isn't it? for instance, the former servingman of 
some brave gentleman, an enemy himself to Mazarin, as every 
gentleman ought to be.
Hush! don't let us talk politics, my lord.
Then my keeper would begin to trust this man and to depend 
upon him, and I should have news from those without the 
prison walls.
Ah, yes! but how can the news be brought to you?
Nothing easier; in a game of tennis, for example.
In a game of tennis?asked La Rameegiving more serious 
attention to the duke's words. 
Yes; see, I send a ball into the moat; a man is there who 
picks it up; the ball contains a letter. Instead of 
returning the ball to me when I call for it from the top of 
the wall, he throws me another; that other ball contains a 
letter. Thus we have exchanged ideas and no one has seen us 
do it.
The devil it does! The devil it does!said La Ramee
scratching his head; "you are in the wrong to tell me that
my lord. I shall have to watch the men who pick up balls." 
The duke smiled. 
But,resumed La Rameethat is only a way of 
corresponding.
And that is a great deal, it seems to me.
But not enough.
Pardon me; for instance, I say to my friends, Be on a 
certain day, on a certain hour, at the other side of the 
moat with two horses.
Well, what then?La Ramee began to be uneasy; "unless the 
horses have wings to mount the ramparts and come and fetch 
you." 
That's not needed. I have,replied the dukea way of 
descending from the ramparts.
What?
A rope ladder.
Yes, but,answered La Rameetrying to laugha ladder of 
ropes can't be sent around a ball, like a letter.
No, but it may be sent in something else.
In something else -- in something else? In what?
In a pate, for example.
In a pate?said La Ramee. 
Yes. Let us suppose one thing,replied the duke "let us 
supposefor instancethat my maitre d'hotelNoirmonthas 
purchased the shop of Pere Marteau ---- " 
Well?said La Rameeshuddering. 
Well, La Ramee, who is a gourmand, sees his pates, thinks 
them more attractive than those of Pere Marteau and proposes 
to me that I shall try them. I consent on condition that La 
Ramee tries them with me. That we may be more at our ease, 
La Ramee removes the guards, keeping only Grimaud to wait on 
us. Grimaud is the man whom a friend has sent to second me 
in everything. The moment for my escape is fixed -- seven 
o'clock. Well, at a few minutes to seven ---- 
At a few minutes to seven?cried La Rameecold sweat upon 
his brow. 
At a few minutes to seven,returned the duke (suiting the 
action to the words)I raise the crust of the pie; I find 
in it two poniards, a ladder of rope, and a gag. I point one 
of the poniards at La Ramee's breast and I say to him, `My 
friend, I am sorry for it, but if thou stirrest, if thou 
utterest one cry, thou art a dead man!'
The dukein pronouncing these wordssuitedas we have 
saidthe action to the words. He was standing near the 
officer and he directed the point of the poniard in such a 
mannerclose to La Ramee's heartthat there could be no 
doubt in the mind of that individual as to his 
determination. MeanwhileGrimaudstill mute as everdrew 
from the pie the other poniardthe rope ladder and the gag. 
La Ramee followed all these objects with his eyeshis alarm 
every moment increasing. 
Oh, my lord,he criedwith an expression of stupefaction 
in his face; "you haven't the heart to kill me!" 
No; not if thou dost not oppose my flight.
But, my lord, if I allow you to escape I am a ruined man.
I will compensate thee for the loss of thy place.
You are determined to leave the chateau?
By Heaven and earth! This night I am determined to be 
free.
And if I defend myself, or call, or cry out?
I will kill thee, on the honor of a gentleman.
At this moment the clock struck. 
Seven o'clock!said Grimaudwho had not spoken a word. 
La Ramee made one movementin order to satisfy his 
conscience. The duke frownedthe officer felt the point of 
the poniardwhichhaving penetrated through his clothes
was close to his heart. 
Let us dispatch,said the duke. 
My lord, one last favor.
What? speak, make haste.
Bind my arms, my lord, fast.
Why bind thee?
That I may not be considered as your accomplice.
Your hands?asked Grimaud. 
Not before me, behind me.
But with what?asked the duke. 
With your belt, my lord!replied La Ramee. 
The duke undid his belt and gave it to Grimaudwho tied La 
Ramee in such a way as to satisfy him. 
Your feet, too,said Grimaud. 
La Ramee stretched out his legsGrimaud took a table-cloth
tore it into strips and tied La Ramee's feet together. 
Now, my lord,said the poor manlet me have the poire 
d'angoisse. I ask for it; without it I should be tried in a 
court of justice because I did not raise the alarm. Thrust 
it into my mouth, my lord, thrust it in.
Grimaud prepared to comply with this requestwhen the 
officer made a sign as if he had something to say. 
Speak,said the duke. 
Now, my lord, do not forget, if any harm happens to me on 
your account, that I have a wife and four children.
Rest assured; put the gag in, Grimaud.
In a second La Ramee was gagged and laid prostrate. Two or 
three chairs were thrown down as if there had been a 
struggle. Grimaud then took from the pocket of the officer 
all the keys it contained and first opened the door of the 
room in which they werethen shut it and double-locked it
and both he and the duke proceeded rapidly down the gallery 
which led to the little inclosure. At last they reached the 
tennis court. It was completely deserted. No sentinelsno 
one at any of the windows. The duke ran to the rampart and 
perceived on the other side of the ditchthree cavaliers 
with two riding horses. The duke exchanged a signal with 
them. It was indeed for him that they were there. 
Grimaudmeantimeundid the means of escape. 
This was nothowevera rope ladderbut a ball of silk 
cordwith a narrow board which was to pass between the 
legsthe ball to unwind itself by the weight of the person 
who sat astride upon the board. 
Go!said the duke. 
First, my lord?inquired Grimaud. 
Certainly. If I am caught, I risk nothing but being taken 
back again to prison. If they catch thee, thou wilt be 
hung.
True,replied Grimaud. 
And instantlyGrimaudsitting upon the board as if on 
horsebackcommenced his perilous descent. 
The duke followed him with his eyeswith involuntary 
terror. He had gone down about three-quarters of the length 
of the wall when the cord broke. Grimaud fell -precipitated 
into the moat. 
The duke uttered a crybut Grimaud did not give a single 
moan. He must have been dreadfully hurtfor he did not stir 
from the place where he fell. 
Immediately one of the men who were waiting slipped down 
into the moattied under Grimaud's shoulders the end of a 
cordand the remaining twowho held the other enddrew 
Grimaud to them. 
Descend, my lord,said the man in the moat. "There are 
only fifteen feet more from the top down hereand the grass 
is soft." 
The duke had already begun to descend. His task was the more 
difficultas there was no board to support him. He was 
obliged to let himself down by his hands and from a height 
of fifty feet. But as we have said he was activestrong
and full of presence of mind. In less than five minutes he 
arrived at the end of the cord. He was then only fifteen 
feet from the groundas the gentlemen below had told him. 
He let go the rope and fell upon his feetwithout receiving 
any injury. 
He instantly began to climb up the slope of the moaton the 
top of which he met De Rochefort. The other two gentlemen 
were unknown to him. Grimaudin a swoonwas tied securely 
to a horse. 
Gentlemen,said the dukeI will thank you later; now we 
have not a moment to lose. On, then! on! those who love me, 
follow me!
And he jumped on his horse and set off at full gallop
snuffing the fresh air in his triumph and shouting outwith 
an expression of face which it would be impossible to 
describe: 
Free! free! free!
The timely Arrival of D'Artagnan in Paris. 
At BloisD'Artagnan received the money paid to him by 
Mazarin for any future service he might render the cardinal. 
From Blois to Paris was a journey of four days for ordinary 
travelersbut D'Artagnan arrived on the third day at the 
Barriere Saint Denis. In turning the corner of the Rue 
Montmartrein order to reach the Rue Tiquetonne and the 
Hotel de la Chevrettewhere he had appointed Porthos to 
meet himhe saw at one of the windows of the hotelthat 
friend himself dressed in a sky-blue waistcoatembroidered 
with silverand gapingtill he showed every one of his 
white teeth; whilst the people passing by admiringly gazed 
at this gentlemanso handsome and so richwho seemed to 
weary of his riches and his greatness. 
D'Artagnan and Planchet had hardly turned the corner when 
Porthos recognized them. 
Eh! D'Artagnan!he cried. "Thank God you have come!" 
Eh! good-day, dear friend!replied D'Artagnan. 
Porthos came down at once to the threshold of the hotel. 
Ah, my dear friend!he criedwhat bad stabling for my 
horses here.
Indeed!said D'Artagnan; "I am most unhappy to hear iton 
account of those fine animals." 
And I, also -- I was also wretchedly off,he answered
moving backward and forward as he spoke; "and had it not 
been for the hostess he added, with his air of vulgar 
self-complacency, who is very agreeable and understands a 
jokeI should have got a lodging elsewhere." 
The pretty Madeleinewho had approached during this 
colloquystepped back and turned pale as death on hearing 
Porthos's wordsfor she thought the scene with the Swiss 
was about to be repeated. But to her great surprise 
D'Artagnan remained perfectly calmand instead of being 
angry he laughedand said to Porthos: 
Yes, I understand, the air of La Rue Tiquetonne is not like 
that of Pierrefonds; but console yourself, I will soon 
conduct you to one much better.
When will you do that?
Immediately, I hope.
Ah! so much the better!
To that exclamation of Porthos's succeeded a groaninglow 
and profoundwhich seemed to come from behind a door. 
D'Artagnanwho had just dismountedthen sawoutlined 
against the wallthe enormous stomach of Musquetonwhose 
down-drawn mouth emitted sounds of distress. 
And you, too, my poor Monsieur Mouston, are out of place in 
this poor hotel, are you not?asked D'Artagnanin that 
rallying tone which may indicate either compassion or 
mockery. 
He finds the cooking detestable,replied Porthos. 
Why, then, doesn't he attend to it himself, as at 
Chantilly?
Ah, monsieur, I have not here, as I had there, the ponds of 
monsieur le prince, where I could catch those beautiful 
carp, nor the forests of his highness to provide me with 
partridges. As for the cellar, I have searched every part 
and poor stuff I found.
Monsieur Mouston,said D'ArtagnanI should indeed 
condole with you had I not at this moment something very 
pressing to attend to.
Then taking Porthos aside: 
My dear Du Vallon,he saidhere you are in full dress 
most fortunately, for I am going to take you to the 
cardinal's.
Gracious me! really!exclaimed Porthosopening his great 
wondering eyes. 
Yes, my friend.
A presentation? indeed!
Does that alarm you?
No, but it agitates me.
Oh! don't be distressed; you have to deal with a cardinal 
of another kind. This one will not oppress you by his 
dignity.
'Tis the same thing -- you understand me, D'Artagnan -- a 
court.
There's no court now. Alas!
The queen!
I was going to say, there's no longer a queen. The queen! 
Rest assured, we shall not see her.
And you say that we are going from here to the Palais 
Royal?
Immediately. Only, that there may be no delay, I shall 
borrow one of your horses.
Certainly; all the four are at your service.
Oh, I need only one of them for the time being.
Shall we take our valets?
Yes, you may as well take Musqueton. As to Planchet, he has 
certain reasons for not going to court.
And what are they?
Oh, he doesn't stand well with his eminence.
Mouston,said Porthossaddle Vulcan and Bayard.
And for myself, monsieur, shall I saddle Rustaud?
No, take a more stylish horse, Phoebus or Superbe; we are 
going with some ceremony.
Ah,said Musquetonbreathing more freelyyou are only 
going, then, to make a visit?
Oh! yes, of course, Mouston; nothing else. But to avoid 
risk, put the pistols in the holsters. You will find mine on 
my saddle, already loaded.
Mouston breathed a sigh; he couldn't understand visits of 
ceremony made under arms. 
Indeed,said Porthoslooking complacently at his old 
lackey as he went awayyou are right, D'Artagnan; Mouston 
will do; Mouston has a very fine appearance.
D'Artagnan smiled. 
But you, my friend -- are you not going to change your 
dress?
No, I shall go as I am. This traveling dress will serve to 
show the cardinal my haste to obey his commands.
They set out on Vulcan and Bayardfollowed by Musqueton on 
Phoebusand arrived at the Palais Royal at about a quarter 
to seven. The streets were crowdedfor it was the day of 
Pentecostand the crowd looked in wonder at these two 
cavaliers; one as fresh as if he had come out of a bandbox
the other so covered with dust that he looked as if he had 
but just come off a field of battle. 
Musqueton also attracted attention; and as the romance of 
Don Quixote was then the fashionthey said that he was 
Sanchowhoafter having lost one masterhad found two. 
On reaching the palaceD'Artagnan sent to his eminence the 
letter in which he had been ordered to return without delay. 
He was soon ordered to the presence of the cardinal. 
Courage!he whispered to Porthosas they proceeded. "Do 
not be intimidated. Believe methe eye of the eagle is 
closed forever. We have only the vulture to deal with. Hold 
yourself as bolt upright as on the day of the bastion of St. 
Gervaisand do not bow too low to this Italian; that might 
give him a poor idea of you." 
Good!answered Porthos. "Good!" 
Mazarin was in his studyworking at a list of pensions and 
beneficesof which he was trying to reduce the number. He 
saw D'Artagnan and Porthos enter with internal pleasureyet 
showed no joy in his countenance. 
Ah! you, is it? Monsieur le lieutenant, you have been very 
prompt. 'Tis well. Welcome to ye.
Thanks, my lord. Here I am at your eminence's service, as 
well as Monsieur du Vallon, one of my old friends, who used 
to conceal his nobility under the name of Porthos.
Porthos bowed to the cardinal. 
A magnificent cavalier,remarked Mazarin. 
Porthos turned his head to the right and to the leftand 
drew himself up with a movement full of dignity. 
The best swordsman in the kingdom, my lord,said 
D'Artagnan. 
Porthos bowed to his friend. 
Mazarin was as fond of fine soldiers asin later times
Frederick of Prussia used to be. He admired the strong 
handsthe broad shoulders and the steady eye of Porthos. He 
seemed to see before him the salvation of his administration 
and of the kingdomsculptured in flesh and bone. He 
remembered that the old association of musketeers was 
composed of four persons. 
And your two other friends?he asked. 
Porthos opened his mouththinking it a good opportunity to 
put in a word in his turn; D'Artagnan checked him by a 
glance from the corner of his eye. 
They are prevented at this moment, but will join us later.
Mazarin coughed a little. 
And this gentleman, being disengaged, takes to the service 
willingly?he asked. 
Yes, my lord, and from pure devotion to the cause, for 
Monsieur de Bracieux is rich.
Rich!said Mazarinwhom that single word always inspired 
with a great respect. 
Fifty thousand francs a year,said Porthos. 
These were the first words he had spoken. 
From pure zeal?resumed Mazarinwith his artful smile; 
from pure zeal and devotion then?
My lord has, perhaps, no faith in those words?said 
D'Artagnan. 
Have you, Monsieur le Gascon?asked Mazarinsupporting 
his elbows on his desk and his chin on his hands. 
I,replied the GasconI believe in devotion as a word at 
one's baptism, for instance, which naturally comes before 
one's proper name; every one is naturally more or less 
devout, certainly; but there should be at the end of one's 
devotion something to gain.
And your friend, for instance; what does he expect to have 
at the end of his devotion?
Well, my lord, my friend has three magnificent estates: 
that of Vallon, at Corbeil; that of Bracieux, in the 
Soissonais; and that of Pierrefonds, in the Valois. Now, my 
lord, he would like to have one of his three estates erected 
into a barony.
Only that?said Mazarinhis eyes twinkling with joy on 
seeing that he could pay for Porthos's devotion without 
opening his purse; "only that? That can be managed." 
I shall be baron!explained Porthosstepping forward. 
I told you so,said D'Artagnanchecking him with his 
hand; "and now his eminence confirms it." 
And you, Monsieur D'Artagnan, what do you want?
My lord,said D'Artagnanit is twenty years since 
Cardinal de Richelieu made me lieutenant.
Yes, and you would be gratified if Cardinal Mazarin should 
make you captain.
D'Artagnan bowed. 
Well, that is not impossible. We will see, gentlemen, we 
will see. Now, Monsieur de Vallon,said Mazarinwhat 
service do you prefer, in the town or in the country?
Porthos opened his mouth to reply. 
My lord,said D'ArtagnanMonsieur de Vallon is like me, 
he prefers service extraordinary -- that is to say, 
enterprises that are considered mad and impossible.
That boastfulness was not displeasing to Mazarin; he fell 
into meditation. 
And yet,he saidI must admit that I sent for you to 
appoint you to quiet service; I have certain apprehensions 
-- well, what is the meaning of that?
In facta great noise was heard in the ante-chamber; at the 
same time the door of the study was burst open and a man
covered with dustrushed into itexclaiming: 
My lord the cardinal! my lord the cardinal!
Mazarin thought that some one was going to assassinate him 
and he drew backpushing his chair on the castors. 
D'Artagnan and Porthos moved so as to plant themselves 
between the person entering and the cardinal. 
Well, sir,exclaimed Mazarinwhat's the matter? and why 
do you rush in here, as if you were about to penetrate a 
crowded market-place?
My lord,replied the messengerI wish to speak to your 
eminence in secret. I am Monsieur du Poins, an officer in 
the guards, on duty at the donjon of Vincennes.
Mazarinperceiving by the paleness and agitation of the 
messenger that he had something of importance to saymade a 
sign that D'Artagnan and Porthos should give place. 
D'Artagnan and Porthos withdrew to a corner of the cabinet. 
Speak, monsieur, speak at once!said Mazarin "What is the 
matter?" 
The matter is, my lord, that the Duc de Beaufort has 
contrived to escape from the Chateau of Vincennes.
Mazarin uttered a cry and became paler than the man who had 
brought the news. He fell backalmost faintingin his 
chair. 
Escaped? Monsieur de Beaufort escaped?
My lord, I saw him run off from the top of the terrace.
And you did not fire on him?
He was out of range.
Monsieur de Chavigny -- where was he?
Absent.
And La Ramee?
Was found locked up in the prisoner's room, a gag in his 
mouth and a poniard near him.
But the man who was under him?
Was an accomplice of the duke's and escaped along with 
him.
Mazarin groaned. 
My lord,said D'Artagnanadvancing toward the cardinal
it seems to me that your eminence is losing precious time. 
It may still be possible to overtake the prisoner. France is 
large; the nearest frontier is sixty leagues distant.
And who is to pursue him?cried Mazarin. 
I, pardieu!
And you would arrest him?
Why not?
You would arrest the Duc de Beaufort, armed, in the field?
If your eminence should order me to arrest the devil, I 
would seize him by the horns and would bring him in.
So would I,said Porthos. 
So would you!said Mazarinlooking with astonishment at 
those two men. "But the duke will not yield himself without 
a furious battle." 
Very well,said D'Artagnanhis eyes aflamebattle! It 
is a long time since we have had a battle, eh, Porthos?
Battle!cried Porthos. 
And you think you can catch him?
Yes, if we are better mounted than he.
Go then, take what guards you find here, and pursue him.
You command us, my lord, to do so?
And I sign my orders,said Mazarintaking a piece of 
paper and writing some lines; "Monsieur du Vallonyour 
barony is on the back of the Duc de Beaufort's horse; you 
have nothing to do but to overtake it. As for youmy dear 
lieutenantI promise you nothing; but if you bring him back 
to medead or aliveyou may ask all you wish." 
To horse, Porthos!said D'Artagnantaking his friend by 
the hand. 
Here I am,smiled Porthoswith his sublime composure. 
They descended the great staircasetaking with them all the 
guards they found on their roadand crying outTo arms! 
To arms!and immediately put spur to horsewhich set off 
along the Rue Saint Honore with the speed of the whirlwind. 
Well, baron, I promise you some good exercise!said the 
Gascon. 
Yes, my captain.
As they wentthe citizensawakenedleft their doors and 
the street dogs followed the cavaliersbarking. At the 
corner of the Cimetiere Saint JeanD'Artagnan upset a man; 
it was too insignificant an occurrence to delay people so 
eager to get on. The troop continued its course as though 
their steeds had wings. 
Alas! there are no unimportant events in this world and we 
shall see that this apparently slight incident came near 
endangering the monarchy. 
An Adventure on the High Road. 
The musketeers rode the whole length of the Faubourg Saint 
Antoine and of the road to Vincennesand soon found 
themselves out of the townthen in a forest and then within 
sight of a village. 
The horses seemed to become more lively with each successive 
step; their nostrils reddened like glowing furnaces. 
D'Artagnanfreely applying his spurswas in advance of 
Porthos two feet at the most; Musqueton followed two lengths 
behind; the guards were scattered according to the varying 
excellence of their respective mounts. 
From the top of an eminence D'Artagnan perceived a group of 
people collected on the other side of the moatin front of 
that part of the donjon which looks toward Saint Maur. He 
rode onconvinced that in this direction he would gain 
intelligence of the fugitive. In five minutes he had arrived 
at the placewhere the guards joined himcoming up one by 
one. 
The several members of that group were much excited. They 
looked at the cordstill hanging from the loophole and 
broken at about twenty feet from the ground. Their eyes 
measured the height and they exchanged conjectures. On the 
top of the wall sentinels went and came with a frightened 
air. 
A few soldierscommanded by a sergeantdrove away idlers 
from the place where the duke had mounted his horse. 
D'Artagnan went straight to the sergeant. 
My officer,said the sergeantit is not permitted to 
stop here.
That prohibition is not for me,said D'Artagnan. "Have the 
fugitives been pursued?" 
Yes, my officer; unfortunately, they are well mounted.
How many are there?
Four, and a fifth whom they carried away wounded.
Four!said D'Artagnanlooking at Porthos. "Do you hear
baron? They are only four!" 
A joyous smile lighted Porthos's face. 
How long a start have they?
Two hours and a quarter, my officer.
Two hours and a quarter -- that is nothing; we are well 
mounted, are we not, Porthos?
Porthos breathed a sigh; he thought of what was in store for 
his poor horses. 
Very good,said D'Artagnan; "and now in what direction did 
they set out?" 
That I am forbidden to tell.
D'Artagnan drew from his pocket a paper. "Order of the 
king he said. 
Speak to the governorthen." 
And where is the governor?
In the country.
Anger mounted to D'Artagnan's face; he frowned and his 
cheeks were colored. 
Ah, you scoundrel!he said to the sergeantI believe you 
are impudent to me! Wait!
He unfolded the paperpresented it to the sergeant with one 
hand and with the other took a pistol from his holsters and 
cocked it. 
Order of the king, I tell you. Read and answer, or I will 
blow out your brains!
The sergeant saw that D'Artagnan was in earnest. "The 
Vendomois road he replied. 
And by what gate did they go out?" 
By the Saint Maur gate.
If you are deceiving me, rascal, you will be hanged 
to-morrow.
And if you catch up with them you won't come back to hang 
me,murmured the sergeant. 
D'Artagnan shrugged his shouldersmade a sign to his escort 
and started. 
This way, gentlemen, this way!he crieddirecting his 
course toward the gate that had been pointed out. 
Butnow that the duke had escapedthe concierge had seen 
fit to fasten the gate with a double lock. It was necessary 
to compel him to open itas the sergeant had been compelled 
to speakand this took another ten minutes. This last 
obstacle having been overcomethe troop pursued their 
course with their accustomed ardor; but some of the horses 
could no longer sustain this pace; three of them stopped 
after an hour's gallopand one fell down. 
D'Artagnanwho never turned his headdid not perceive it. 
Porthos told him of it in his calm manner. 
If only we two arrive,said D'Artagnanit will be 
enough, since the duke's troop are only four in number.
That is true,said Porthos 
And he spurred his courser on. 
At the end of another two hours the horses had gone twelve 
leagues without stopping; their legs began to trembleand 
the foam they shed whitened the doublets of their masters. 
Let us rest here an instant to give these poor creatures 
breathing time,said Porthos. 
Let us rather kill them! yes, kill them!cried D'Artagnan; 
I see fresh tracks; 'tis not a quarter of an hour since 
they passed this place.
In factthe road was trodden by horses' feetvisible even 
in the approaching gloom of evening. 
They set out; after a run of two leaguesMusqueton's horse 
sank. 
Gracious me!said Porthosthere's Phoebus ruined.
The cardinal will pay you a hundred pistoles.
I'm above that.
Let us set out again, at full gallop.
Yes, if we can.
But at last the lieutenant's horse refused to go on; he 
could not breathe; one last spurinstead of making him 
advancemade him fall. 
The devil!exclaimed Porthos; "there's Vulcan foundered." 
Zounds!cried D'Artagnanthen we must stop! Give me your 
horse, Porthos. What the devil are you doing?
By Jove, I am falling, or rather, Bayard is falling,
answered Porthos. 
All three then cried: "All's over." 
Hush!said D'Artagnan.
What is it?
I hear a horse.
It belongs to one of our companions, who is overtaking us.
No,said D'Artagnanit is in advance.
That is another thing,said Porthos; and he listened 
toward the quarter indicated by D'Artagnan. 
Monsieur,said Musquetonwhoabandoning his horse on the 
high roadhad come on foot to rejoin his masterPhoebus 
could no longer hold out and ---- 
Silence!said Porthos. 
In factat that moment a second neighing was borne to them 
on the night wind. 
It is five hundred feet from here, in advance,said 
D'Artagnan. 
True, monsieur,said Musqueton; "and five hundred feet 
from here is a small hunting-house." 
Musqueton, thy pistols,said D'Artagnan. 
I have them at hand, monsieur.
Porthos, take yours from your holsters.
I have them.
Good!said D'Artagnanseizing his own; "now you 
understandPorthos?" 
Not too well.
We are out on the king's service.
Well?
For the king's service we need horses.
That is true,said Porthos. 
Then not a word, but set to work!
They went on through the darknesssilent as phantoms; they 
saw a light glimmering in the midst of some trees. 
Yonder is the house, Porthos,said the Gascon; "let me do 
what I please and do you what I do." 
They glided from tree to tree till they arrived at twenty 
steps from the house unperceived and saw by means of a 
lantern suspended under a hutfour fine horses. A groom was 
rubbing them down; near them were saddles and bridles. 
D'Artagnan approached quicklymaking a sign to his two 
companions to remain a few steps behind. 
I buy those horses,he said to the groom. 
The groom turned toward him with a look of surprisebut
made no reply.
Didn't you hear, fellow?
Yes, I heard.
Why, then, didn't you reply?
Because these horses are not to be sold,was the reply.
I take them, then,said the lieutenant.
And he took hold of one within his reach; his two companions 
did the same thing. 
Sir,cried the groomthey have traversed six leagues and 
have only been unsaddled half an hour.
Half an hour's rest is enough replied the Gascon. 
The groom cried aloud for help. A kind of steward appeared
just as D'Artagnan and his companions were prepared to 
mount. The steward attempted to expostulate. 
My dear friend,cried the lieutenantif you say a word I 
will blow out your brains.
But, sir,answered the stewarddo you know that these 
horses belong to Monsieur de Montbazon?
So much the better; they must be good animals, then.
Sir, I shall call my people.
And I, mine; I've ten guards behind me, don't you hear them 
gallop? and I'm one of the king's musketeers. Come, Porthos; 
come, Musqueton.
They all mounted the horses as quickly as possible. 
Halloo! hi! hi!cried the steward; "the house servants
with the carbines!" 
On! on!cried D'Artagnan; "there'll be firing! on!" 
They all set offswift as the wind. 
Here!cried the stewardhere!whilst the groom ran to a 
neighboring building. 
Take care of your horses!cried D'Artagnan to him. 
Fire!replied the steward. 
A gleamlike a flash of lightningillumined the roadand 
with the flash was heard the whistling of ballswhich were 
fired wildly in the air. 
They fire like grooms,said Porthos. "In the time of the 
cardinal people fired better than thatdo you remember the 
road to CrevecoeurMusqueton?" 
Ah, sir! my left side still pains me!
Are you sure we are on the right track, lieutenant?
Egad, didn't you hear? these horses belong to Monsieur de 
Montbazon; well, Monsieur de Montbazon is the husband of 
Madame de Montbazon ---- 
And ---- 
And Madame de Montbazon is the mistress of the Duc de 
Beaufort.
Ah! I understand,replied Porthos; "she has ordered relays 
of horses." 
Exactly so.
And we are pursuing the duke with the very horses he has 
just left?
My dear Porthos, you are really a man of most superior 
understanding,said D'Artagnanwith a look as if he spoke 
against his conviction. 
Pooh!replied PorthosI am what I am.
They rode on for an hourtill the horses were covered with 
foam and dust. 
Zounds! what is yonder?cried D'Artagnan. 
You are very lucky if you see anything such a night as 
this,said Porthos. 
Something bright.
I, too,cried Musquetonsaw them also.
Ah! ah! have we overtaken them?
Good! a dead horse!said D'Artagnanpulling up his horse
which shied; "it seems their horsestooare breaking down
as well as ours." 
I seem to hear the noise of a troop of horsemen,exclaimed 
Porthosleaning over his horse's mane. 
Impossible.
They appear to be numerous.
Then 'tis something else.
Another horse!said Porthos. 
Dead?
No, dying.
Saddled?
Yes, saddled and bridled.
Then we are upon the fugitives.
Courage, we have them!
But if they are numerous,observed Musqueton'tis not we 
who have them, but they who have us.
Nonsense!cried D'Artagnanthey'll suppose us to be 
stronger than themselves, as we're in pursuit; they'll be 
afraid and will disperse.
Certainly,remarked Porthos. 
Ah! do you see?cried the lieutenant. 
The lights again! this time I, too, saw them,said 
Porthos. 
On! on! forward! forward!cried D'Artagnanin his 
stentorian voice; "we shall laugh over all this in five 
minutes." 
And they darted on anew. The horsesexcited by pain and 
emulationraced over the dark roadin the midst of which 
was now seen a moving massdenser and more obscure than the 
rest of the horizon. 
The Rencontre. 
They rode on in this way for ten minutes. Suddenly two dark 
forms seemed to separate from the massadvancedgrew in 
sizeand as they loomed up larger and largerassumed the 
appearance of two horsemen. 
Aha!cried D'Artagnanthey're coming toward us.
So much the worse for them,said Porthos. 
Who goes there?cried a hoarse voice. 
The three horsemen made no replystopped notand all that 
was heard was the noise of swords drawn from the scabbards 
and the cocking of the pistols with which the two phantoms 
were armed. 
Bridle in mouth!said D'Artagnan. 
Porthos understood him and he and the lieutenant each drew 
with the left hand a pistol from their bolsters and cocked 
it in their turn. 
Who goes there?was asked a second time. "Not a step 
forwardor you're dead men." 
Stuff!cried Porthosalmost choked with dust and chewing 
his bridle as a horse chews his bit. "Stuff and nonsense; we 
have seen plenty of dead men in our time." 
Hearing these wordsthe two shadows blockaded the road and 
by the light of the stars might be seen the shining of their 
arms. 
Back!shouted D'Artagnanor you are dead!
Two shots were the reply to this threat; but the assailants 
attacked their foes with such velocity that in a moment they 
were upon them; a third pistol-shot was heardaimed by 
D'Artagnanand one of his adversaries fell. As for Porthos
he assaulted the foe with such violence thatalthough his 
sword was thrust asidethe enemy was thrown off his horse 
and fell about ten steps from it. 
Finish, Mouston, finish the work!cried Porthos. And he 
darted on beside his friendwho had already begun a fresh 
pursuit. 
Well?said Porthos. 
I've broken my man's skull,cried D'Artagnan. "And you 
---- " 
I've only thrown the fellow down, but hark!
Another shot of a carbine was heard. It was Musquetonwho 
was obeying his master's command. 
On! on!cried D'Artagnan; "all goes well! we have the 
first throw." 
Ha! ha!answered Porthosbehold, other players appear.
And in facttwo other cavaliers made their appearance
detachedas it seemedfrom the principal group; they again 
disputed the road. 
This time the lieutenant did not wait for the opposite party 
to speak. 
Stand aside!he cried; "stand off the road!" 
What do you want?asked a voice. 
The duke!Porthos and D'Artagnan roared out both at once. 
A burst of laughter was the answerbut finished with a 
groan. D'Artagnan hadwith his swordcut in two the poor 
wretch who had laughed. 
At the same time Porthos and his adversary fired on each 
other and D'Artagnan turned to him. 
Bravo! you've killed him, I think.
No, wounded his horse only.
What would you have, my dear fellow? One doesn't hit the 
bull's-eye every time; it is something to hit inside the 
ring. Ho! parbleau! what is the matter with my horse?
Your horse is falling,said Porthosreining in his own. 
In truththe lieutenant's horse stumbled and fell on his 
knees; then a rattling in his throat was heard and he lay 
down to die. He had received in the chest the bullet of 
D'Artagnan's first adversary. D'Artagnan swore loud enough 
to be heard in the skies. 
Does your honor want a horse?asked Musqueton. 
Zounds! want one!cried the Gascon. 
Here's one, your honor ---- 
How the devil hast thou two horses?asked D'Artagnan
jumping on one of them. 
Their masters are dead! I thought they might be useful, so 
I took them.
Meantime Porthos had reloaded his pistols. 
Be on the qui vive!cried D'Artagnan. "Here are two other 
cavaliers." 
As he spoketwo horsemen advanced at full speed. 
Ho! your honor!cried Musquetonthe man you upset is 
getting up.
Why didn't thou do as thou didst to the first man?said 
Porthos. 
I held the horses, my hands were full, your honor.
A shot was fired that moment; Musqueton shrieked with pain. 
Ah, sir! I'm hit in the other side! exactly opposite the 
other! This hurt is just the fellow of the one I had on the 
road to Amiens.
Porthos turned around like a lionplunged on the dismounted 
cavalierwho tried to draw his sword; but before it was out 
of the scabbardPorthoswith the hilt of his had struck 
him such a terrible blow on the head that he fell like an ox 
beneath the butcher's knife. 
Musquetongroaningslipped from his horsehis wound not 
allowing him to keep the saddle. 
On perceiving the cavaliersD'Artagnan had stopped and 
charged his pistol afresh; besideshis horsehe foundhad 
a carbine on the bow of the saddle. 
Here I am!exclaimed Porthos. "Shall we waitor shall we 
charge?" 
Let us charge them,answered the Gascon. 
Charge!cried Porthos. 
They spurred on their horses; the other cavaliers were only 
twenty steps from them. 
For the king!cried D'Artagnan. 
The king has no authority here!answered a deep voice
which seemed to proceed from a cloudso enveloped was the 
cavalier in a whirlwind of dust. 
'Tis well, we will see if the king's name is not a passport 
everywhere,replied the Gascon. 
See!answered the voice. 
Two shots were fired at onceone by D'Artagnanthe other 
by the adversary of Porthos. D'Artagnan's ball took off his 
enemy's hat. The ball fired by Porthos's foe went through 
the throat of his horsewhich fellgroaning. 
For the last time, where are you going?
To the devil!answered D'Artagnan. 
Good! you may be easy, then -- you'll get there.
D'Artagnan then saw a musket-barrel leveled at him; he had 
no time to draw from his holsters. He recalled a bit of 
advice which Athos had once given himand made his horse 
rear. 
The ball struck the animal full in front. D'Artagnan felt 
his horse giving way under him and with his wonderful 
agility threw himself to one side. 
Ah! this,cried the voicethe tone of which was at once 
polished and jeeringthis is nothing but a butchery of 
horses and not a combat between men. To the sword, sir! the 
sword!
And he jumped off his horse. 
To the swords! be it so!replied D'Artagnan; "that is 
exactly what I want." 
D'Artagnanin two stepswas engaged with the foewhom
according to customhe attacked impetuouslybut he met 
this time with a skill and a strength of arm that gave him 
pause. Twice he was obliged to step back; his opponent 
stirred not one inch. D'Artagnan returned and again attacked 
him. 
Twice or thrice thrusts were attempted on both sides
without effect; sparks were emitted from the swords like 
water spouting forth. 
At last D'Artagnan thought it was time to try one of his 
favorite feints in fencing. He brought it to bear
skillfully executed it with the rapidity of lightningand 
struck the blow with a force which he fancied would prove 
irresistible. 
The blow was parried. 
'Sdeath!he criedwith his Gascon accent. 
At this exclamation his adversary bounded back andbending 
his bare headtried to distinguish in the gloom the 
features of the lieutenant. 
As to D'Artagnanafraid of some feinthe still stood on 
the defensive. 
Have a care,cried Porthos to his opponent; "I've still 
two pistols charged." 
The more reason you should fire the first!cried his foe. 
Porthos fired; the flash threw a gleam of light over the 
field of battle. 
As the light shone on them a cry was heard from the other 
two combatants. 
Athos!exclaimed D'Artagnan. 
D'Artagnan!ejaculated Athos. 
Athos raised his sword; D'Artagnan lowered his. 
Aramis!cried Athosdon't fire!
Ah! ha! is it you, Aramis?said Porthos. 
And he threw away his pistol. 
Aramis pushed his back into his saddle-bags and sheathed his 
sword. 
My son!exclaimed Athosextending his hand to D'Artagnan. 
This was the name which he gave him in former daysin their 
moments of tender intimacy. 
Athos!cried D'Artagnanwringing his hands. "So you 
defend him! And Iwho have sworn to take him dead or alive
I am dishonored -- and by you!" 
Kill me!replied Athosuncovering his breastif your 
honor requires my death.
Oh! woe is me! woe is me!cried the lieutenant; "there's 
only one man in the world who could stay my hand; by a 
fatality that very man bars my way. What shall I say to the 
cardinal?" 
You can tell him, sir,answered a voice which was the 
voice of high command in the battle-fieldthat he sent 
against me the only two men capable of getting the better of 
four men; of fighting man to man, without discomfiture, 
against the Comte de la Fere and the Chevalier d'Herblay, 
and of surrendering only to fifty men! 
The prince!" exclaimed at the same moment Athos and Aramis
unmasking as they addressed the Duc de Beaufortwhilst 
D'Artagnan and Porthos stepped backward. 
Fifty cavaliers!cried the Gascon and Porthos. 
Look around you, gentlemen, if you doubt the fact,said 
the duke. 
The two friends looked to the rightto the left; they were 
encompassed by a troop of horsemen. 
Hearing the noise of the fight,resumed the dukeI 
fancied you had about twenty men with you, so I came back 
with those around me, tired of always running away, and 
wishing to draw my sword in my own cause; but you are only 
two.
Yes, my lord; but, as you have said, two that are a match 
for twenty,said Athos. 
Come, gentlemen, your swords,said the duke. 
Our swords!cried D'Artagnanraising his head and 
regaining his self-possession. "Never!" 
Never!added Porthos. 
Some of the men moved toward them. 
One moment, my lord,whispered Athosand he said 
something in a low voice. 
As you will,replied the duke. "I am too much indebted to 
you to refuse your first request. Gentlemen he said to his 
escort, withdraw. Monsieur d'ArtagnanMonsieur du Vallon
you are free." 
The order was obeyed; D'Artagnan and Porthos then found 
themselves in the centre of a large circle. 
Now, D'Herblay,said Athosdismount and come here.
Aramis dismounted and went to Porthoswhilst Athos 
approached D'Artagnan. 
All four once more together.
Friends!said Athosdo you regret you have not shed our
blood?
No,replied D'Artagnan; "I regret to see that wehitherto 
unitedare opposed to each other. Ah! nothing will ever go 
well with us hereafter!" 
Oh, Heaven! No, all is over!said Porthos.
Well, be on our side now,resumed Aramis.
Silence, D'Herblay!cried Athos; "such proposals are not
to be made to gentlemen such as these. 'Tis a matter of
conscience with themas with us."
Meantime, here we are, enemies!said Porthos. "Gramercy!
who would ever have thought it?"
D'Artagnan only sighed.
Athos looked at them both and took their hands in his.
Gentlemen,he saidthis is a serious business and my
heart bleeds as if you had pierced it through and through. 
Yes, we are severed; there is the great, the distressing 
truth! But we have not as yet declared war; perhaps we shall 
have to make certain conditions, therefore a solemn 
conference is indispensable.
For my own part, I demand it,said Aramis.
I accept it,interposed D'Artagnanproudly.
Porthos bowedas if in assent.
Let us choose a place of rendezvous,continued Athosand
in a last interview arrange our mutual position and the
conduct we are to maintain toward each other.
Good!the other three exclaimed.
Well, then, the place?
Will the Place Royale suit you?asked D'Artagnan.
In Paris?
Yes.
Athos and Aramis looked at each other.
The Place Royale -- be it so!replied Athos.
When?
To-morrow evening, if you like!
At what hour?
At ten in the evening, if that suits you; by that time we 
shall have returned.
Good.
There,continued Athoseither peace or war will be 
decided; honor, at all events, will be maintained!
Alas!murmured D'Artagnanour honor as soldiers is lost 
to us forever!
D'Artagnan,said AthosgravelyI assure you that you do 
me wrong in dwelling so upon that. What I think of is, that 
we have crossed swords as enemies. Yes,he continuedsadly 
shaking his headYes, it is as you said, misfortune, 
indeed, has overtaken us. Come, Aramis.
And we, Porthos,said D'Artagnanwill return, carrying 
our shame to the cardinal.
And tell him,cried a voicethat I am not too old yet 
for a man of action.
D'Artagnan recognized the voice of De Rochefort. 
Can I do anything for you, gentlemen?asked the duke. 
Bear witness that we have done all that we could.
That shall be testified to, rest assured. Adieu! we shall 
meet soon, I trust, in Paris, where you shall have your 
revenge.The dukeas he spokekissed his handspurred 
his horse into a gallop and disappearedfollowed by his 
troopwho were soon lost in distance and darkness. 
D'Artagnan and Porthos were now alone with a man who held by 
the bridles two horses; they thought it was Musqueton and 
went up to him. 
What do I see?cried the lieutenant. "Grimaudis it 
thou?" 
Grimaud signified that he was not mistaken. 
And whose horses are these?cried D'Artagnan. 
Who has given them to us?said Porthos. 
The Comte de la Fere.
Athos! Athos!muttered D'Artagnan; "you think of every 
one; you are indeed a nobleman! Whither art thou going
Grimaud?" 
To join the Vicomte de Bragelonne in Flanders, your honor.
They were taking the road toward Pariswhen groanswhich 
seemed to proceed from a ditchattracted their attention. 
What is that?asked D'Artagnan. 
It is I -- Musqueton,said a mournful voicewhilst a sort 
of shadow arose out of the side of the road. 
Porthos ran to him. "Art thou dangerously woundedmy dear 
Musqueton?" he said. 
No, sir, but I am severely.
What can we do?said D'Artagnan; "we must return to 
Paris." 
I will take care of Musqueton,said Grimaud; and he gave 
his arm to his old comradewhose eyes were full of tears
nor could Grimaud tell whether the tears were caused by 
wounds or by the pleasure of seeing him again. 
D'Artagnan and Porthos went onmeantimeto Paris. They 
were passed by a sort of couriercovered with dustthe 
bearer of a letter from the duke to the cardinalgiving 
testimony to the valor of D'Artagnan and Porthos. 
Mazarin had passed a very bad night when this letter was 
brought to himannouncing that the duke was free and that 
he would henceforth raise up mortal strife against him. 
What consoles me,said the cardinal after reading the 
letteris that, at least, in this chase, D'Artagnan has 
done me one good turn -- he has destroyed Broussel. This 
Gascon is a precious fellow; even his misadventures are of 
use.
The cardinal referred to that man whom D'Artagnan upset at 
the corner of the Cimetiere Saint Jean in Parisand who was 
no other than the Councillor Broussel. 
The four old Friends prepare to meet again. 
Well,said Porthosseated in the courtyard of the Hotel 
de la Chevretteto D'Artagnanwhowith a long and 
melancholy facehad returned from the Palais Royal; "did he 
receive you ungraciouslymy dear friend?" 
I'faith, yes! a brute, that cardinal. What are you eating 
there, Porthos?
I am dipping a biscuit in a glass of Spanish wine; do the 
same.
You are right. Gimblou, a glass of wine.
Well, how has all gone off?
Zounds! you know there's only one way of saying things, so 
I went in and said, `My lord, we were not the strongest 
party.' 
`YesI know that' he said`but give me the particulars.' 
You know, Porthos, I could not give him the particulars 
without naming our friends; to name them would be to commit 
them to ruin, so I merely said they were fifty and we were 
two. 
`There was firingneverthelessI heard' he said; `and 
your swords -- they saw the light of dayI presume?' 
`That is, the night, my lord,' I answered. 
`Ah!' cried the cardinal`I thought you were a Gasconmy 
friend?' 
`I am a Gascon,' said I, `only when I succeed.' The answer 
pleased him and he laughed. 
`That will teach me' he said`to have my guards provided 
with better horses; for if they had been able to keep up 
with you and if each one of them had done as much as you and 
your friendyou would have kept your word and would have 
brought him back to me dead or alive.'" 
Well, there's nothing bad in that, it seems to me,said 
Porthos. 
Oh, mon Dieu! no, nothing at all. It was the way in which 
he spoke. It is incredible how these biscuit soak up wine! 
They are veritable sponges! Gimblou, another bottle.
The bottle was brought with a promptness which showed the 
degree of consideration D'Artagnan enjoyed in the 
establishment. He continued: 
So I was going away, but he called me back. 
`You have had three horses foundered or killed?' he asked 
me. 
`Yes, my lord.' 
`How much were they worth?'" 
Why,said Porthosthat was very good of him, it seems to 
me.
`A thousand pistoles,' I said.
A thousand pistoles!Porthos exclaimed. "Oh! oh! that is a 
large sum. If he knew anything about horses he would dispute 
the price." 
Faith! he was very much inclined to do so, the contemptible 
fellow. He made a great start and looked at me. I also 
looked at him; then he understood, and putting his hand into 
a drawer, he took from it a quantity of notes on a bank in 
Lyons.
For a thousand pistoles?
For a thousand pistoles -- just that amount, the beggar; 
not one too many.
And you have them?
They are here.
Upon my word, I think he acted very generously.
Generously! to men who had risked their lives for him, and 
besides had done him a great service?
A great service -- what was that?
Why, it seems that I crushed for him a parliament 
councillor.
What! that little man in black that you upset at the corner 
of Saint Jean Cemetery?
That's the man, my dear fellow; he was an annoyance to the 
cardinal. Unfortunately, I didn't crush him flat. It seems 
that he came to himself and that he will continue to be an 
annoyance.
See that, now!said Porthos; "and I turned my horse aside 
from going plump on to him! That will be for another time." 
He owed me for the councillor, the pettifogger!
But,said Porthosif he was not crushed completely ---
Ah! Monsieur de Richelieu would have said, `Five hundred 
crowns for the councillor.' Well, let's say no more about 
it. How much were your animals worth, Porthos?
Ah, if poor Musqueton were here he could tell you to a 
fraction.
No matter; you can tell within ten crowns.
Why, Vulcan and Bayard cost me each about two hundred 
pistoles, and putting Phoebus at a hundred and fifty, we 
should be pretty near the amount.
There will remain, then, four hundred and fifty pistoles,
said D'Artagnancontentedly. 
Yes,said Porthosbut there are the equipments.
That is very true. Well, how much for the equipments?
If we say one hundred pistoles for the three ---- 
Good for the hundred pistoles; there remains, then, three 
hundred and fifty.
Porthos made a sign of assent. 
We will give the fifty pistoles to the hostess for our 
expenses,said D'Artagnanand share the three hundred.
We will share,said Porthos. 
A paltry piece of business!murmured D'Artagnan crumpling 
his note. 
Pooh!said Porthosit is always that. But tell me ---- 
What?
Didn't he speak of me in any way?
Ah! yes, indeed!cried D'Artagnanwho was afraid of 
disheartening his friend by telling him that the cardinal 
had not breathed a word about him; "yessurelyhe said 
---- " 
He said?resumed Porthos. 
Stop, I want to remember his exact words. He said, `As to 
your friend, tell him he may sleep in peace.'
Good, very good,said Porthos; "that signified as clear as 
daylight that he still intends to make me a baron." 
At this moment nine o'clock struck. D'Artagnan started. 
Ah, yes,said Porthosthere is nine o'clock. We have a 
rendezvous, you remember, at the Place Royale.
Ah! stop! hold your peace, Porthos, don't remind me of it; 
'tis that which has made me so cross since yesterday. I 
shall not go.
Why?asked Porthos. 
Because it is a grievous thing for me to meet again those 
two men who caused the failure of our enterprise.
And yet,said Porthosneither of them had any advantage 
over us. I still had a loaded pistol and you were in full 
fight, sword in hand.
Yes,said D'Artagnan; "but what if this rendezvous had 
some hidden purpose?" 
Oh!said Porthosyou can't think that, D'Artagnan!
D'Artagnan did not believe Athos to be capable of a 
deceptionbut he sought an excuse for not going to the 
rendezvous. 
We must go,said the superb lord of Bracieuxlest they 
should say we were afraid. We who have faced fifty foes on 
the high road can well meet two in the Place Royale.
Yes, yes, but they took part with the princes without 
apprising us of it. Athos and Aramis have played a game with 
me which alarms me. We discovered yesterday the truth; what 
is the use of going to-day to learn something else?
You really have some distrust, then?said Porthos. 
Of Aramis, yes, since he has become an abbe. You can't 
imagine, my dear fellow, the sort of man he is. He sees us 
on the road which leads him to a bishopric, and perhaps will 
not be sorry to get us out of his way.
Ah, as regards Aramis, that is another thing,said 
Porthosand it wouldn't surprise me at all.
Perhaps Monsieur de Beaufort will try, in his turn, to lay 
hands on us.
Nonsense! He had us in his power and he let us go. Besides 
we can be on our guard; let us take arms, let Planchet post 
himself behind us with his carbine.
Planchet is a Frondeur,answered D'Artagnan. 
Devil take these civil wars! one can no more now reckon on 
one's friends than on one's footmen,said Porthos. "Ah! if 
Musqueton were here! there's a fellow who will never desert 
me!" 
So long as you are rich! Ah! my friend! 'tis not civil war 
that disunites us. It is that we are each of us twenty years 
older; it is that the honest emotions of youth have given 
place to suggestions of interest, whispers of ambition, 
counsels of selfishness. Yes, you are right; let us go, 
Porthos, but let us go well armed; were we not to keep the 
rendezvous, they would declare we were afraid. Halloo! 
Planchet! here! saddle our horses, take your carbine.
Whom are we going to attack, sir?
No one; a mere matter of precaution,answered the Gascon. 
You know, sir, that they wished to murder that good 
councillor, Broussel, the father of the people?
Really, did they?said D'Artagnan. 
Yes, but he has been avenged. He was carried home in the 
arms of the people. His house has been full ever since. He 
has received visits from the coadjutor, from Madame de 
Longueville, and the Prince de Conti; Madame de Chevreuse 
and Madame de Vendome have left their names at his door. And 
now, whenever he wishes ---- 
Well, whenever he wishes?
Planchet began to sing: 
Un vent de fronde 
S'est leve ce matin; 
Je crois qu'il gronde 
Contre le Mazarin. 
Un vent de fronde 
S'est leve ce matin.
It doesn't surprise me,said D'Artagnanin a low tone to 
Porthosthat Mazarin would have been much better satisfied 
had I crushed the life out of his councillor.
You understand, then, monsieur,resumed Planchetthat if 
it were for some enterprise like that undertaken against 
Monsieur Broussel that you should ask me to take my carbine 
---- 
No, don't be alarmed; but where did you get all these 
details?
From a good source, sir; I heard it from Friquet.
From Friquet? I know that name ---- 
A son of Monsieur de Broussel's servant, and a lad that, I 
promise you, in a revolt will not give away his share to the 
dogs.
Is he not a singing boy at Notre Dame?asked D'Artagnan. 
Yes, that is the very boy; he's patronized by Bazin.
Ah, yes, I know.
Of what importance is this little reptile to you?asked 
Porthos. 
Gad!replied D'Artagnan; "he has already given me good 
information and he may do the same again." 
Whilst all this was going onAthos and Aramis were entering 
Paris by the Faubourg St. Antoine. They had taken some 
refreshment on the road and hastened onthat they might not 
fail at the appointed place. Bazin was their only attendant
for Grimaud had stayed behind to take care of Musqueton. As 
they were passing onwardAthos proposed that they should 
lay aside their arms and military costumeand assume a 
dress more suited to the city. 
Oh, no, dear count!cried Aramisis it not a warlike 
encounter that we are going to?
What do you mean, Aramis?
That the Place Royale is the termination to the main road 
to Vendomois, and nothing else.
What! our friends?
Are become our most dangerous enemies, Athos. Let us be on 
our guard.
Oh! my dear D'Herblay!
Who can say whether D'Artagnan may not have betrayed us to 
the cardinal? who can tell whether Mazarin may not take 
advantage of this rendezvous to seize us?
What! Aramis, you think that D'Artagnan, that Porthos, 
would lend their hands to such an infamy?
Among friends, my dear Athos, no, you are right; but among 
enemies it would be only a stratagem.
Athos crossed his arms and bowed his noble head. 
What can you expect, Athos? Men are so made; and we are not 
always twenty years old. We have cruelly wounded, as you 
know, that personal pride by which D'Artagnan is blindly 
governed. He has been beaten. Did you not observe his 
despair on the journey? As to Porthos, his barony was 
perhaps dependent on that affair. Well, he found us on his 
road and will not be baron this time. Perhaps that famous 
barony will have something to do with our interview this 
evening. Let us take our precautions, Athos.
But suppose they come unarmed? What a disgrace to us.
Oh, never fear! besides, if they do, we can easily make an 
excuse; we came straight off a journey and are insurgents, 
too.
An excuse for us! to meet D'Artagnan with a false excuse! 
to have to make a false excuse to Porthos! Oh, Aramis!
continued Athosshaking his head mournfullyupon my soul, 
you make me the most miserable of men; you disenchant a 
heart not wholly dead to friendship. Go in whatever guise 
you choose; for my part, I shall go unarmed.
No, for I will not allow you to do so. 'Tis not one man, 
not Athos only, not the Comte de la Fere whom you will ruin 
by this amiable weakness, but a whole party to whom you 
belong and who depend upon you.
Be it so then,replied Athossorrowfully. 
And they pursued their road in mournful silence. 
Scarcely had they reached by the Rue de la Mule the iron 
gate of the Place Royalewhen they perceived three 
cavaliersD'ArtagnanPorthosand Planchetthe two former 
wrapped up in their military cloaks under which their swords 
were hiddenand Planchethis musket by his side. They were 
waiting at the entrance of the Rue Sainte Catharineand 
their horses were fastened to the rings of the arcade. 
Athosthereforecommanded Bazin to fasten up his horse and 
that of Aramis in the same manner. 
They then advanced two and twoand saluted each other 
politely. 
Now where will it be agreeable to you that we hold our 
conference?inquired Aramisperceiving that people were 
stopping to look at themsupposing that they were going to 
engage in one of those far-famed duels still extant in the 
memory of the Parisiansand especially the inhabitants of 
the Place Royale. 
The gate is shut,said Aramisbut if these gentlemen 
like a cool retreat under the trees, and perfect seclusion, 
I will get the key from the Hotel de Rohan and we shall be 
well suited.
D'Artagnan darted a look into the obscurity of the Place. 
Porthos ventured to put his head between the railingsto 
try if his glance could penetrate the gloom. 
If you prefer any other place,said Athosin his 
persuasive voicechoose for yourselves.
This place, if Monsieur d'Herblay can procure the key, is 
the best that we can have,was the answer. 
Aramis went off at oncebegging Athos not to remain alone 
within reach of D'Artagnan and Porthos; a piece of advice 
which was received with a contemptuous smile. 
Aramis returned soon with a man from the Hotel de Rohanwho 
was saying to him: 
You swear, sir, that it is not so?
Stop,and Aramis gave him a louis d'or. 
Ah! you will not swear, my master,said the concierge
shaking his head. 
Well, one can never say what may happen; at present we and 
these gentlemen are excellent friends.
Yes, certainly,added Athos and the other two. 
D'Artagnan had heard the conversation and had understood it. 
You see?he said to Porthos. 
What do I see?
That he wouldn't swear.
Swear what?
That man wanted Aramis to swear that we are not going to 
the Place Royale to fight.
And Aramis wouldn't swear?
No.
Attention, then!
Athos did not lose sight of the two speakers. Aramis opened 
the gate and faced around in order that D'Artagnan and 
Porthos might enter. In passing through the gatethe hilt 
of the lieutenant's sword was caught in the grating and he 
was obliged to pull off his cloak; in doing so he showed the 
butt end of his pistols and a ray of the moon was reflected 
on the shining metal. 
Do you see?whispered Aramis to Athostouching his 
shoulder with one hand and pointing with the other to the 
arms which the Gascon wore under his belt. 
Alas! I do!replied Athoswith a deep sigh. 
He entered thirdand Aramiswho shut the gate after him
last. The two serving-men waited without; but as if they 
likewise mistrusted each otherthey kept their respective 
distances. 
The Place Royale. 
They proceeded silently to the centre of the Placebut as 
at this very moment the moon had just emerged from behind a 
cloudthey thought they might be observed if they remained 
on that spot and therefore regained the shade of the 
lime-trees. 
There were benches here and there; the four gentlemen 
stopped near them; at a sign from AthosPorthos and 
D'Artagnan sat downthe two others stood in front of them. 
After a few minutes of silent embarrassmentAthos spoke. 
Gentlemen,he saidour presence here is the best proof 
of former friendship; not one of us has failed the others at 
this rendezvous; not one has, therefore, to reproach 
himself.
Hear me, count,replied D'Artagnan; "instead of making 
compliments to each otherlet us explain our conduct to 
each otherlike men of right and honest hearts." 
I wish for nothing more; have you any cause of complaint 
against me or Monsieur d'Herblay? If so, speak out,
answered Athos. 
I have,replied D'Artagnan. "When I saw you at your 
chateau at BragelonneI made certain proposals to you which 
you perfectly understood; instead of answering me as a 
friendyou played with me as a child; the friendship
thereforethat you boast of was not broken yesterday by the 
shock of swordsbut by your dissimulation at your castle." 
D'Artagnan!said Athosreproachfully. 
You asked for candor and you have it. You ask what I have 
against you; I tell you. And I have the same sincerity to 
show you, if you wish, Monsieur d'Herblay; I acted in a 
similar way to you and you also deceived me.
Really, monsieur, you say strange things,said Aramis. 
You came seeking me to make to me certain proposals, but 
did you make them? No, you sounded me, nothing more. Very 
well what did I say to you? that Mazarin was contemptible 
and that I wouldn't serve Mazarin. But that is all. Did I 
tell you that I wouldn't serve any other? On the contrary, I 
gave you to understand, I think, that I adhered to the 
princes. We even joked very pleasantly, if I remember 
rightly, on the very probable contingency of your being 
charged by the cardinal with my arrest. Were you a party 
man? There is no doubt of that. Well, why should not we, 
too, belong to a party? You had your secret and we had ours; 
we didn't exchange them. So much the better; it proves that 
we know how to keep our secrets.
I do not reproach you, monsieur,said D'Artagnan; "'tis 
only because Monsieur de la Fere has spoken of friendship 
that I question your conduct." 
And what do you find in it that is worthy of blame?asked 
Aramishaughtily. 
The blood mounted instantly to the temples of D'Artagnan
who aroseand replied: 
I consider it worthy conduct of a pupil of Jesuits.
On seeing D'Artagnan risePorthos rose also; these four men 
were therefore all standing at the same timewith a 
menacing aspectopposite to each other. 
Upon hearing D'Artagnan's replyAramis seemed about to draw 
his swordwhen Athos prevented him. 
D'Artagnan,he saidyou are here to-night, still 
infuriated by yesterday's adventure. I believed your heart 
noble enough to enable a friendship of twenty years to 
overcome an affront of a quarter of an hour. Come, do you 
really think you have anything to say against me? Say it 
then; if I am in fault I will avow the error.
The grave and harmonious tones of that beloved voice seemed 
to have still its ancient influencewhilst that of Aramis
which had become harsh and tuneless in his moments of 
ill-humorirritated him. He answered therefore: 
I think, monsieur le comte, that you had something to 
communicate to me at your chateau of Bragelonne, and that 
gentleman-- he pointed to Aramis -- "had also something to 
tell me when I was in his convent. At that time I was not 
concerned in the adventurein the course of which you have 
so successfully estopped me! Howeverbecause I was prudent 
you must not take me for a fool. If I had wished to widen 
the breach between those whom Monsieur d'Herblay chooses to 
receive with a rope ladder and those whom he receives with a 
wooden ladderI could have spoken out." 
What are you meddling with?cried Aramispale with anger
suspecting that D'Artagnan had acted as a spy on him and had 
seen him with Madame de Longueville. 
I never meddle save with what concerns me, and I know how 
to make believe that I haven't seen what does not concern 
me; but I hate hypocrites, and among that number I place 
musketeers who are abbes and abbes who are musketeers; and,
he addedturning to Porthos "here's a gentleman who's of 
the same opinion as myself." 
Porthoswho had not spoken one wordanswered merely by a 
word and a gesture. 
He said "yes" and he put his hand on his sword. 
Aramis started back and drew his. D'Artagnan bent forward
ready either to attack or to stand on his defense. 
Athos at that moment extended his hand with the air of 
supreme command which characterized him alonedrew out his 
sword and the scabbard at the same timebroke the blade in 
the sheath on his knee and threw the pieces to his right. 
Then turning to Aramis: 
Aramis,he saidbreak your sword.
Aramis hesitated. 
It must be done,said Athos; then in a lower and more 
gentle voicehe added. "I wish it." 
Then Aramispaler than beforebut subdued by these words
snapped the serpent blade between his handsand then 
folding his armsstood trembling with rage. 
These proceedings made D'Artagnan and Porthos draw back. 
D'Artagnan did not draw his sword; Porthos put his back into 
the sheath. 
Never!exclaimed Athosraising his right hand to Heaven
never! I swear before God, who seeth us, and who, in the 
darkness of this night heareth us, never shall my sword 
cross yours, never my eye express a glance of anger, nor my 
heart a throb of hatred, at you. We lived together, we 
loved, we hated together; we shed, we mingled our blood 
together, and too probably, I may still add, that there may 
be yet a bond between us closer even than that of 
friendship; perhaps there may be the bond of crime; for we 
four, we once did condemn, judge and slay a human being whom 
we had not any right to cut off from this world, although 
apparently fitter for hell than for this life. D'Artagnan, I 
have always loved you as my son; Porthos, we slept six years 
side by side; Aramis is your brother as well as mine, and 
Aramis has once loved you, as I love you now and as I have 
ever loved you. What can Cardinal Mazarin be to us, to four 
men who compelled such a man as Richelieu to act as we 
pleased? What is such or such a prince to us, who fixed the 
diadem upon a great queen's head? D'Artagnan, I ask your 
pardon for having yesterday crossed swords with you; Aramis 
does the same to Porthos; now hate me if you can; but for my 
own part, I shall ever, even if you do hate me, retain 
esteem and friendship for you. I repeat my words, Aramis, 
and then, if you desire it, and if they desire it, let us 
separate forever from our old friends.
There was a solemnthough momentary silencewhich was 
broken by Aramis. 
I swear,he saidwith a calm brow and kindly glancebut 
in a voice still trembling with recent emotionI swear 
that I no longer bear animosity to those who were once my 
friends. I regret that I ever crossed swords with you, 
Porthos; I swear not only that it shall never again be 
pointed at your breast, but that in the bottom of my heart 
there will never in future be the slightest hostile 
sentiment; now, Athos, come.
Athos was about to retire. 
Oh! no! no! do not go away!exclaimed D'Artagnanimpelled 
by one of those irresistible impulses which showed the 
nobility of his naturethe native brightness of his 
character; "I swear that I would give the last drop of my 
blood and the last fragment of my limbs to preserve the 
friendship of such a friend as youAthos -- of such a man 
as youAramis." And he threw himself into the arms of 
Athos. 
My son!exclaimed Athospressing him in his arms. 
And as for me,said PorthosI swear nothing, but I'm 
choked. Forsooth! If I were obliged to fight against you, I 
think I should allow myself to be pierced through and 
through, for I never loved any one but you in the wide 
world;and honest Porthos burst into tears as he embraced 
Athos. 
My friends,said Athosthis is what I expected from such 
hearts as yours. Yes, I have said it and I now repeat it: 
our destinies are irrevocably united, although we now pursue 
divergent roads. I respect your convictions, and whilst we 
fight for opposite sides, let us remain friends. Ministers, 
princes, kings, will pass away like mountain torrents; civil 
war, like a forest flame; but we -- we shall remain; I have 
a presentiment that we shall.
Yes,replied D'Artagnanlet us still be musketeers, and 
let us retain as our battle-standard that famous napkin of 
the bastion St. Gervais, on which the great cardinal had 
three fleurs-de-lis embroidered.
Be it so,cried Aramis. "Cardinalists or Frondeurswhat 
matters it? Let us meet again as capital seconds in a duel
devoted friends in businessmerry companions in our ancient 
pleasures." 
And whenever,added Athoswe meet in battle, at this 
word, `Place Royale!' let us put our swords into our left 
hands and shake hands with the right, even in the very lust 
and music of the hottest carnage.
You speak charmingly,said Porthos. 
And are the first of men!added D'Artagnan. "You excel us 
all." 
Athos smiled with ineffable pleasure. 
'Tis then all settled. Gentlemen, your hands; are we not 
pretty good Christians?
Egad!said D'Artagnanby Heaven! yes.
We should be so on this occasion, if only to be faithful to 
our oath,said Aramis. 
Ah, I'm ready to do what you will,cried Porthos; "even to 
swear by Mahomet. Devil take me if I've ever been so happy 
as at this moment." 
And he wiped his eyesstill moist. 
Has not one of you a cross?asked Athos. 
Aramis smiled and drew from his vest a cross of diamonds
which was hung around his neck by a chain of pearls. "Here 
is one he said. 
Well resumed Athos, swear on this crosswhichin spite 
of its magnificent materialis still a cross; swear to be 
united in spite of everythingand foreverand may this 
oath bind us to each otherand evenalsoour descendants! 
Does this oath satisfy you?" 
Yes,said they allwith one accord. 
Ah, traitor!muttered D'Artagnanleaning toward Aramis 
and whispering in his earyou have made us swear on the 
crucifix of a Frondeuse.
The Ferry across the Oise. 
We hope that the reader has not quite forgotten the young 
traveler whom we left on the road to Flanders. 
In losing sight of his guardianwhom he had quittedgazing 
after him in front of the royal basilicanRaoul spurred on 
his horsein order not only to escape from his own 
melancholy reflectionsbut also to hide from Olivain the 
emotion his face might betray. 
One hour's rapid progresshoweversufficed to disperse the 
gloomy fancies that had clouded the young man's bright 
anticipations; and the hitherto unfelt pleasure of freedom 
-- a pleasure which is sweet even to those who have never 
known dependence -- seemed to Raoul to gild not only Heaven 
and earthbut especially that blue but dim horizon of life 
we call the future. 
Neverthelessafter several attempts at conversation with 
Olivain he foresaw that many days passed thus would prove 
exceedingly dull; and the count's agreeable voicehis 
gentle and persuasive eloquencerecurred to his mind at the 
various towns through which they journeyed and about which 
he had no longer any one to give him those interesting 
details which he would have drawn from Athosthe most 
amusing and the best informed of guides. Another 
recollection contributed also to sadden Raoul: on their 
arrival at Sonores he had perceivedhidden behind a screen 
of poplarsa little chateau which so vividly recalled that 
of La Valliere to his mind that he halted for nearly ten 
minutes to gaze at itand resumed his journey with a sigh 
too abstracted even to reply to Olivain's respectful inquiry 
about the cause of so much fixed attention. The aspect of 
external objects is often a mysterious guide communicating 
with the fibres of memorywhich in spite of us will arouse 
them at times; this threadlike that of Ariadnewhen once 
unraveled will conduct one through a labyrinth of thought
in which one loses one's self in endeavoring to follow that 
phantom of the past which is called recollection. 
Now the sight of this chateau had taken Raoul back fifty 
leagues westward and had caused him to review his life from 
the moment when he had taken leave of little Louise to that 
in which he had seen her for the first time; and every 
branch of oakevery gilded weathercock on roof of slates
reminded him thatinstead of returning to the friends of 
his childhoodevery instant estranged him further and that 
perhaps he had even left them forever. 
With a full heart and burning head he desired Olivain to 
lead on the horses to a wayside innwhich he observed 
within gunshot rangea little in advance of the place they 
had reached. 
As for himselfhe dismounted and remained under a beautiful 
group of chestnuts in floweramidst which were murmuring a 
multitude of happy beesand bade Olivain send the host to 
him with writing paper and inkto be placed on a table 
which he found thereconveniently ready. Olivain obeyed and 
continued on his waywhilst Raoul remained sittingwith 
his elbow leaning on the tablefrom time to time gently 
shaking the flowers from his headwhich fell upon him like 
snowand gazing vaguely on the charming landscape spread 
out before himdotted over with green fields and groups of 
trees. Raoul had been there about ten minutesduring five 
of which he was lost in reveriewhen there appeared within 
the circle comprised in his rolling gaze a man with a 
rubicund facewhowith a napkin around his bodyanother 
under his armand a white cap upon his headapproached 
himholding paperpen and ink in hand. 
Ha! ha!laughed the apparitionevery gentleman seems to 
have the same fancy, for not a quarter of an hour ago a 
young lad, well mounted like you, as tall as you and of 
about your age, halted before this clump of trees and had 
this table and this chair brought here, and dined here, with 
an old gentleman who seemed to be his tutor, upon a pie, of 
which they haven't left a mouthful, and two bottles of Macon 
wine, of which they haven't left a drop, but fortunately we 
have still some of the same wine and some of the same pies 
left, and if your worship will but give your orders ---- 
No, friend replied RaoulsmilingI am obliged to you, 
but at this moment I want nothing but the things for which I 
have asked -- only I shall be very glad if the ink prove 
black and the pen good; upon these conditions I will pay for 
the pen the price of the bottle, and for the ink the price 
of the pie.
Very well, sir,said the hostI'll give the pie and the 
bottle of wine to your servant, and in this way you will 
have the pen and ink into the bargain.
Do as you like,said Raoulwho was beginning his 
apprenticeship with that particular class of societywho
when there were robbers on the highroadswere connected 
with themand whosince highwaymen no longer existhave 
advantageously and aptly filled their vacant place. 
The hosthis mind at ease about his billplaced penink 
and paper upon the table. By a lucky chance the pen was 
tolerably good and Raoul began to write. The host remained 
standing in front of himlooking with a kind of involuntary 
admiration at his handsome facecombining both gravity and 
sweetness of expression. Beauty has always been and always 
will be all-powerful. 
He's not a guest like the other one here just now,
observed mine host to Olivainwho had rejoined his master 
to see if he wanted anythingand your young master has no 
appetite.
My master had appetite enough three days ago, but what can 
one do? he lost it the day before yesterday.
And Olivain and the host took their way together toward the 
innOlivainaccording to the custom of serving-men well 
pleased with their placerelating to the tavern-keeper all 
that he could say in favor of the young gentleman; whilst 
Raoul wrote on thus: 
Sir, -- After a four hours' march I stop to write to you, 
for I miss you every moment, and I am always on the point of 
turning my head as if to reply when you speak to me. I was 
so bewildered by your departure and so overcome with grief 
at our separation, that I am sure I was able to but very 
feebly express all the affection and gratitude I feel toward 
you. You will forgive me, sir, for your heart is of such a 
generous nature that you can well understand all that has 
passed in mine. I entreat you to write to me, for you form a 
part of my existence, and, if I may venture to tell you so, 
I also feel anxious. It seemed to me as if you were yourself 
preparing for some dangerous undertaking, about which I did 
not dare to question you, since you told me nothing. I have, 
therefore, as you see, great need of hearing from you. Now 
that you are no longer beside me I am afraid every moment of 
erring. You sustained me powerfully, sir, and I protest to 
you that to-day I feel very lonely. Will you have the 
goodness, sir, should you receive news from Blois, to send 
me a few lines about my little friend Mademoiselle de la 
Valliere, about whose health, when we left, so much anxiety 
was felt? You can understand, honored and dear guardian, how 
precious and indispensable to me is the remembrance of the 
years that I have passed with you. I hope that you will 
sometimes, too, think of me, and if at certain hours you 
should miss me, if you should feel any slight regret at my 
absence, I shall be overwhelmed with joy at the thought that 
you appreciate my affection for and my devotion to yourself, 
and that I have been able to prove them to you whilst I had 
the happiness of diving with you.
After finishing this letter Raoul felt more composed; he 
looked well around him to see if Olivain and the host might 
not be watching himwhilst he impressed a kiss upon the 
papera mute and touching caresswhich the heart of Athos 
might well divine on opening the letter. 
During this time Olivain had finished his bottle and eaten 
his pie; the horses were also refreshed. Raoul motioned to 
the host to approachthrew a crown upon the tablemounted 
his horseand posted his letter at Senlis. The rest that 
had been thus afforded to men and horses enabled them to 
continue their journey at a good round pace. At Verberie
Raoul desired Olivain to make some inquiry about the young 
man who was preceding them; he had been observed to pass 
only three-quarters of an hour previouslybut he was well 
mountedas the tavern-keeper had already saidand rode at 
a rapid pace. 
Let us try and overtake this gentleman,said Raoul to 
Olivain; "like ourselves he is on his way to join the army 
and may prove agreeable company." 
It was about four o'clock in the afternoon when Raoul 
arrived at Compiegne; there he dined heartily and again 
inquired about the young gentleman who was in advance of 
them. He had stoppedlike Raoulat the Hotel of the Bell 
and Bottlethe best at Compiegne; and had started again on 
his journeysaying that he should sleep at Noyon. 
Well, let us sleep at Noyon,said Raoul. 
Sir,replied Olivainrespectfullyallow me to remark 
that we have already much fatigued the horses this morning. 
I think it would be well to sleep here and to start again 
very early to-morrow. Eighteen leagues is enough for the 
first stage.
The Comte de la Fere wished me to hasten on,replied 
Raoulthat I might rejoin the prince on the morning of the 
fourth day; let us push on, then, to Noyon; it will be a 
stage similar to those we traveled from Blois to Paris. We 
shall arrive at eight o'clock. The horses will have a long 
night's rest, and at five o'clock to-morrow morning we can 
be again on the road.
Olivain dared offer no opposition to this determination but 
he followed his mastergrumbling. 
Go on, go on,said hebetween his teethexpend your 
ardor the first day; to-morrow, instead of journeying twenty 
leagues, you will travel ten, the day after to-morrow, five, 
and in three days you will be in bed. There you must rest; 
young people are such braggarts.
It was easy to see that Olivain had not been taught in the 
school of the Planchets and the Grimauds. Raoul really felt 
tiredbut he was desirous of testing his strengthand
brought up in the principles of Athos and certain of having 
heard him speak a thousand times of stages of twenty-five 
leagueshe did not wish to fall far short of his model. 
D'Artagnanthat man of ironwho seemed to be made of nerve 
and muscle onlyhad struck him with admiration. Therefore
in spite of Olivain's remarkshe continued to urge his 
steed more and moreand following a pleasant little path
leading to a ferryand which he had been assured shortened 
the journey by the distance of one leaguehe arrived at the 
summit of a hill and perceived the river flowing before him. 
A little troop of men on horseback were waiting on the edge 
of the streamready to embark. Raoul did not doubt this was 
the gentleman and his escort; he called out to himbut they 
were too distant to be heard; thenin spite of the 
weariness of his beasthe made it gallop but the rising 
ground soon deprived him of all sight of the travelersand 
when he had again attained a new heightthe ferryboat had 
left the shore and was making for the opposite bank. Raoul
seeing that he could not arrive in time to cross the ferry 
with the travelershalted to wait for Olivain. At this 
moment a shriek was heard that seemed to come from the 
river. Raoul turned toward the side whence the cry had 
soundedand shaded his eyes from the glare of the setting 
sun with his hand. 
Olivain!he exclaimedwhat do I see below there?
A second screammore piercing than the firstnow sounded. 
Oh, sir!cried Olivainthe rope which holds the 
ferryboat has broken and the boat is drifting. But what do I 
see in the water -- something struggling?
Oh, yes,exclaimed Raoulfixing his glance on one point 
in the streamsplendidly illumined by the setting suna 
horse, a rider!
They are sinking!cried Olivain in his turn. 
It was trueand Raoul was convinced that some accident had 
happened and that a man was drowning; he gave his horse its 
headstruck his spurs into its sidesand the animalurged 
by pain and feeling that he had space open before him
bounded over a kind of paling which inclosed the landing 
placeand fell into the riverscattering to a distance 
waves of white froth. 
Ah, sir!cried Olivainwhat are you doing? Good God!
Raoul was directing his horse toward the unhappy man in 
danger. This wasin facta custom familiar to him. Having 
been brought up on the banks of the Loirehe might have 
been said to have been cradled on its waves; a hundred times 
he had crossed it on horsebacka thousand times had swum 
across. Athosforeseeing the period when he should make a 
soldier of the viscounthad inured him to all kinds of 
arduous undertakings. 
Oh, heavens!continued Olivainin despairwhat would 
the count say if he only saw you now!
The count would do as I do,replied Raoulurging his 
horse vigorously forward. 
But I -- but I,cried Olivainpale and disconsolate 
rushing about on the shorehow shall I cross?
Leap, coward!cried Raoulswimming on; then addressing 
the travelerwho was struggling twenty yards in front of 
him: "Couragesir!" said hecourage! we are coming to 
your aid.
Olivain advancedretiredthen made his horse rear -turned 
it and thenstruck to the core by shameleapedas 
Raoul had doneonly repeating: 
I am a dead man! we are lost!
In the meantimethe ferryboat had floated awaycarried 
down by the streamand the shrieks of those whom it 
contained resounded more and more. A man with gray hair had 
thrown himself from the boat into the river and was swimming 
vigorously toward the person who was drowning; but being 
obliged to go against the current he advanced but slowly. 
Raoul continued his way and was visibly gaining ground; but 
the horse and its riderof whom he did not lose sightwere 
evidently sinking. The nostrils of the horse were no longer 
above waterand the riderwho had lost the reins in 
strugglingfell with his head back and his arms extended. 
One moment longer and all would disappear. 
Courage!cried Raoulcourage!
Too late!murmured the young mantoo late!
The water closed above his head and stifled his voice. 
Raoul sprang from his horseto which he left the charge of 
its own preservationand in three or four strokes was at 
the gentleman's side; he seized the horse at once by the 
curb and raised its head above water; the animal began to 
breathe again andas if he comprehended that they had come 
to his aidredoubled his efforts. Raoul at the same time 
seized one of the young man's hands and placed it on the 
manewhich it grasped with the tenacity of a drowning man. 
Thussure that the rider would not release his holdRaoul 
now only directed his attention to the horsewhich he 
guided to the opposite bankhelping it to cut through the 
water and encouraging it with words. 
All at once the horse stumbled against a ridge and then 
placed its foot on the sand. 
Saved!exclaimed the man with gray hairwho also touched 
bottom. 
Saved!mechanically repeated the young gentleman
releasing the mane and sliding from the saddle into Raoul's 
arms; Raoul was but ten yards from the shore; there he bore 
the fainting manand laying him down upon the grass
unfastened the buttons of his collar and unhooked his 
doublet. A moment later the gray-headed man was beside him. 
Olivain managed in his turn to landafter crossing himself 
repeatedly; and the people in the ferryboat guided 
themselves as well as they were able toward the bankwith 
the aid of a pole which chanced to be in the boat. 
Thanks to the attentions of Raoul and the man who 
accompanied the young gentlemanthe color gradually 
returned to the pale cheeks of the dying manwho opened his 
eyesat first entirely bewilderedbut who soon fixed his 
gaze upon the person who had saved him. 
Ah, sir,he exclaimedit was you! Without you I was a 
dead man -- thrice dead.
But one recovers, sir, as you perceive,replied Raoul
and we have but had a little bath.
Oh! sir, what gratitude I feel!exclaimed the man with 
gray hair. 
Ah, there you are, my good D'Arminges; I have given you a 
great fright, have I not? but it is your own fault. You were 
my tutor, why did you not teach me to swim?
Oh, monsieur le comte,replied the old manhad any 
misfortune happened to you, I should never have dared to 
show myself to the marshal again.
But how did the accident happen?asked Raoul. 
Oh, sir, in the most natural way possible,replied he to 
whom they had given the title of count. "We were about a 
third of the way across the river when the cord of the 
ferryboat broke. Alarmed by the cries and gestures of the 
boatmenmy horse sprang into the water. I cannot swimand 
dared not throw myself into the river. Instead of aiding the 
movements of my horseI paralyzed them; and I was just 
going to drown myself with the best grace in the worldwhen 
you arrived just in time to pull me out of the water; 
thereforesirif you will agreehenceforward we are 
friends until death." 
Sir,replied RaoulbowingI am entirely at your 
service, I assure you.
I am called the Count de Guiche,continued the young man; 
my father is the Marechal de Grammont; and now that you 
know who I am, do me the honor to inform me who you are.
I am the Viscount de Bragelonne,answered Raoulblushing 
at being unable to name his fatheras the Count de Guiche 
had done. 
Viscount, your countenance, your goodness and your courage 
incline me toward you; my gratitude is already due. Shake 
hands -- I crave your friendship.
Sir,said Raoulreturning the count's pressure of the 
handI like you already, from my heart; pray regard me as 
a devoted friend, I beseech you.
And nowwhere are you goingviscount?" inquired De Guiche. 
To join the army, under the prince, count.
And I, too!exclaimed the young manin a transport of 
joy. "Ohso much the betterwe will fire the first shot 
together." 
It is well; be friends,said the tutor; "young as you both 
areyou were perhaps born under the same star and were 
destined to meet. And now continued he, you must change 
your clothes; your servantsto whom I gave directions the 
moment they had left the ferryboatought to be already at 
the inn. Linen and wine are both being warmed; come." 
The young men had no objection to this proposition; on the 
contrarythey thought it very timely. 
They mounted again at oncewhilst looks of admiration 
passed between them. They were indeed two elegant horsemen
with figures slight and uprightnoble facesbright and 
proud looksloyal and intelligent smiles. 
De Guiche might have been about eighteen years of agebut 
he was scarcely taller than Raoulwho was only fifteen. 
Skirmishing. 
The halt at Noyon was but briefevery one there being 
wrapped in profound sleep. Raoul had desired to be awakened 
should Grimaud arrivebut Grimaud did not arrive. 
Doubtlesstoothe horses on their part appreciated the 
eight hours of repose and the abundant stabling which was 
granted them. The Count de Guiche was awakened at five 
o'clock in the morning by Raoulwho came to wish him 
good-day. They breakfasted in hasteand at six o'clock had 
already gone ten miles. 
The young count's conversation was most interesting to 
Raoultherefore he listened muchwhilst the count talked 
well and long. Brought up in Pariswhere Raoul had been but 
once; at the courtwhich Raoul had never seen; his follies 
as page; two duelswhich he had already found the means of 
fightingin spite of the edicts against them andmore 
especiallyin spite of his tutor's vigilance -- these 
things excited the greatest curiosity in Raoul. Raoul had 
only been at M. Scarron's house; he named to Guiche the 
people whom he had seen there. Guiche knew everybody -Madame 
de NeuillanMademoiselle d'AubigneMademoiselle de 
ScuderyMademoiselle PauletMadame de Chevreuse. He 
criticised everybody humorously. Raoul trembledlest he 
should laugh among the rest at Madame de Chevreusefor whom 
he entertained deep and genuine sympathybut either 
instinctivelyor from affection for the duchesshe said 
everything in her favor. His praises increased Raoul's 
friendship twofold. Then came the question of gallantry and 
love affairs. Under this headalsoBragelonne had much 
more to hear than to tell. He listened attentively and 
fancied that he discovered through three or four rather 
frivolous adventuresthat the countlike himselfhad a 
secret to hide in the depths of his heart. 
De Guicheas we have said beforehad been educated at the 
courtand the intrigues of this court were not unknown to 
him. It was the same court of which Raoul had so often heard 
the Comte de la Fere speakexcept that its aspect had much 
changed since the period when Athos had himself been part of 
it; therefore everything which the Count de Guiche related 
was new to his traveling companion. The young countwitty 
and causticpassed all the world in review; the queen 
herself was not sparedand Cardinal Mazarin came in for his 
share of ridicule. 
The day passed away as rapidly as an hour. The count's 
tutora man of the world and a bon vivantup to his eyes 
in learningas his pupil described himoften recalled the 
profound eruditionthe witty and caustic satire of Athos to 
Raoul; but as regarded gracedelicacyand nobility of 
external appearanceno one in these points was to be 
compared to the Comte de la Fere. 
The horseswhich were more kindly used than on the previous 
daystopped at Arras at four o'clock in the evening. They 
were approaching the scene of war; and as bands of Spaniards 
sometimes took advantage of the night to make expeditions 
even as far as the neighborhood of Arrasthey determined to 
remain in the town until the morrow. The French army held 
all between Pont-a-Marc as far as Valenciennesfalling back 
upon Douai. The prince was said to be in person at Bethune. 
The enemy's army extended from Cassel to Courtray; and as 
there was no species of violence or pillage it did not 
committhe poor people on the frontier quitted their 
isolated dwellings and fled for refuge into the strong 
cities which held out a shelter to them. Arras was 
encumbered with fugitives. An approaching battle was much 
spoken ofthe prince having manoeuvreduntil that 
movementonly in order to await a reinforcement that had 
just reached him. 
The young men congratulated themselves on having arrived so 
opportunely. The evening was employed in discussing the war; 
the grooms polished their arms; the young men loaded the 
pistols in case of a skirmishand they awoke in despair
having both dreamed that they had arrived too late to 
participate in the battle. In the morning it was rumored 
that Prince de Conde had evacuated Bethune and fallen back 
on Carvinleavinghowevera strong garrison in the former 
city. 
But as there was nothing positively certain in this report
the young warriors decided to continue their way toward 
Bethunefree on the road to diverge to the right and march 
to Carvin if necessary. 
The count's tutor was well acquainted with the country; he 
consequently proposed to take a crossroadwhich lay between 
that of Lens and that of Bethune. They obtained information 
at Ablainand a statement of their route was left for 
Grimaud. About seven o'clock in the morning they set out. De 
Guichewho was young and impulsivesaid to RaoulHere we 
are, three masters and three servants. Our valets are well 
armed and yours seems to be tough enough.
I have never seen him put to the test,replied Raoulbut 
he is a Breton, which promises something.
Yes, yes,resumed De Guiche; "I am sure he can fire a 
musket when required. On my side I have two sure menwho 
have been in action with my father. We therefore represent 
six fighting men; if we should meet a little troop of 
enemiesequal or even superior in number to our ownshall 
we charge themRaoul?" 
Certainly, sir,replied the viscount. 
Holloa! young people -- stop there!said the tutor
joining in the conversation. "Zounds! how you manoeuvre my 
instructionscount! You seem to forget the orders I 
received to conduct you safe and sound to his highness the 
prince! Once with the army you may be killed at your good 
pleasure; but until that timeI warn you that in my 
capacity of general of the army I shall order a retreat and 
turn my back on the first red coat we come across." De 
Guiche and Raoul glanced at each othersmiling. 
They arrived at Ablain without accident. There they inquired 
and learned that the prince had in reality quitted Bethune 
and stationed himself between Cambria and La Venthie. 
Thereforeleaving directions at every place for Grimaud
they took a crossroad which conducted the little troop by 
the bank of a small stream flowing into the Lys. The country 
was beautifulintersected by valleys as green as the 
emerald. Here and there they passed little copses crossing 
the path which they were following. In anticipation of some 
ambuscade in each of these little woods the tutor placed his 
two servants at the head of the bandthus forming the 
advance guard. Himself and the two young men represented the 
body of the armywhilst Olivainwith his rifle upon his 
knee and his eyes upon the watchprotected the rear. 
They had observed for some time before themon the horizon
a rather thick wood; and when they had arrived at a distance 
of a hundred steps from itMonsieur d'Arminges took his 
usual precautions and sent on in advance the count's two 
grooms. The servants had just disappeared under the trees
followed by the tutorand the young men were laughing and 
talking about a hundred yards off. Olivain was at the same 
distance in the rearwhen suddenly there resounded five or 
six musket-shots. The tutor cried halt; the young men 
obeyedpulling up their steedsand at the same moment the 
two valets were seen returning at a gallop. 
The young menimpatient to learn the cause of the firing
spurred on toward the servants. The tutor followed them. 
Were you stopped?eagerly inquired the two youths. 
No,replied the servantsit is even probable that we 
have not been seen; the shots were fired about a hundred 
paces in advance of us, in the thickest part of the wood, 
and we returned to ask your advice.
My advice is this,said Monsieur d'Armingesand if needs 
be, my will, that we beat a retreat. There may be an 
ambuscade concealed in this wood.
Did you see nothing there?asked the count. 
I thought I saw,said one of the servantshorsemen 
dressed in yellow, creeping along the bed of the stream. 
That's it said the tutor. We have fallen in with a party 
of Spaniards. Come backsirsback." 
The two youths looked at each otherand at this moment a 
pistol-shot and cries for help were heard. Another glance 
between the young men convinced them both that neither had 
any wish to go backand as the tutor had already turned his 
horse's headthey both spurred forwardRaoul crying: 
Follow me, Olivain!and the Count de Guiche: "Follow
Urban and Planchet!" And before the tutor could recover from 
his surprise they had both disappeared into the forest. 
Whilst they spurred their steeds they held their pistols 
ready also. In five minutes they arrived at the spot whence 
the noise had proceededand then restraining their horses
they advanced cautiously. 
Hush,whispered De Guichethese are cavaliers.
Yes, three on horseback and three who have dismounted.
Can you see what they are doing?
Yes, they appear to be searching a wounded or dead man.
It is some cowardly assassination,said De Guiche. 
They are soldiers, though,resumed De Bragelonne. 
Yes, skirmishers; that is to say, highway robbers.
At them!cried Raoul. "At them!" echoed De Guiche. 
Oh! gentlemen! gentlemen! in the name of Heaven!cried the 
poor tutor. 
But he was not listened toand his cries only served to 
arouse the attention of the Spaniards. 
The men on horseback at once rushed at the two youths
leaving the three others to complete the plunder of the dead 
or wounded travelers; for on approaching nearerinstead of 
one extended figurethe young men discovered two. De Guiche 
fired the first shot at ten paces and missed his man; and 
the Spaniardwho had advanced to meet Raoulaimed in his 
turnand Raoul felt a pain in the left armsimilar to that 
of a blow from a whip. He let off his fire at but four 
paces. Struck in the breast and extending his armsthe 
Spaniard fell back on the crupperand the terrified horse
turning aroundcarried him off. 
Raoul at this moment perceived the muzzle of a gun pointed 
at himand remembering the recommendation of Athoshe
with the rapidity of lightningmade his horse rear as the 
shot was fired. His horse bounded to one sidelosing its 
footingand fellentangling Raoul's leg under its body. 
The Spaniard sprang forward and seized the gun by its 
muzzlein order to strike Raoul on the head with the butt. 
In the position in which Raoul layunfortunatelyhe could 
neither draw his sword from the scabbardnor his pistols 
from their holsters. The butt end of the musket hovered over 
his headand he could scarcely restrain himself from 
closing his eyeswhen with one bound Guiche reached the 
Spaniard and placed a pistol at his throat. "Yield!" he 
criedor you are a dead man!The musket fell from the 
soldier's handswho yielded on the instant. Guiche summoned 
one of his groomsand delivering the prisoner into his 
chargewith orders to shoot him through the head if he 
attempted to escapehe leaped from his horse and approached 
Raoul. 
Faith, sir,said Raoulsmilingalthough his pallor 
betrayed the excitement consequent on a first affairyou 
are in a great hurry to pay your debts and have not been 
long under any obligation to me. Without your aid,
continued herepeating the count's words "I should have 
been a dead man -- thrice dead." 
My antagonist took flight,replied De Guiche "and left me 
at liberty to come to your assistance. But are you seriously 
wounded? I see you are covered with blood!" 
I believe,said Raoulthat I have got something like a 
scratch on the arm. If you will help me to drag myself from 
under my horse I hope nothing need prevent us continuing our 
journey.
Monsieur d'Arminges and Olivain had already dismounted and 
were attempting to raise the struggling horse. At last Raoul 
succeeded in drawing his foot from the stirrup and his leg 
from under the animaland in a second he was on his feet 
again. 
Nothing broken?asked De Guiche. 
Faith, no, thank Heaven!replied Raoul; "but what has 
become of the poor wretches whom these scoundrels were 
murdering?" 
I fear we arrived too late. They have killed them, I think, 
and taken flight, carrying off their booty. My servants are 
examining the bodies.
Let us go and see whether they are quite dead, or if they 
can still be helped,suggested Raoul. "Olivainwe have 
come into possession of two horsesbut I have lost my own. 
Take for yourself the better of the two and give me yours." 
They approached the spot where the unfortunate victims lay. 
The Monk. 
Two men lay prone upon the groundone bathed in blood and 
motionlesswith his face toward the earth; this one was 
dead. The other leaned against a treesupported there by 
the two valetsand was praying ferventlywith clasped 
hands and eyes raised to Heaven. He had received a ball in 
his thighwhich had broken the bone. The young men first 
approached the dead man. 
He is a priest,said Bragelonnehe has worn the tonsure. 
Oh, the scoundrels! to lift their hands against a minister 
of God.
Come here, sir,said Urbanan old soldier who had served 
under the cardinal duke in all his campaigns; "come here
there is nothing to be done with himwhilst we may perhaps 
be able to save the other." 
The wounded man smiled sadly. "Save me! Ohno!" said he
but help me to die, if you can.
Are you a priest?asked Raoul. 
No sir.
I ask, as your unfortunate companion appeared to me to 
belong to the church.
He is the curate of Bethune, sir, and was carrying the holy 
vessels belonging to his church, and the treasure of the 
chapter, to a safe place, the prince having abandoned our 
town yesterday; and as it was known that bands of the enemy 
were prowling about the country, no one dared to accompany 
the good man, so I offered to do so. 
Andsir continued the wounded man, I suffer much and 
would likeif possibleto be carried to some house." 
Where you can be relieved?asked De Guiche. 
No, where I can confess.
But perhaps you are not so dangerously wounded as you 
think,said Raoul. 
Sir,replied the wounded manbelieve me, there is no 
time to lose; the ball has broken the thigh bone and entered 
the intestines.
Are you a surgeon?asked De Guiche. 
No, but I know a little about wounds, and mine, I know, is 
mortal. Try, therefore, either to carry me to some place 
where I may see a priest or take the trouble to send one to 
me here. It is my soul that must be saved; as for my body, 
it is lost.
To die whilst doing a good deed! It is impossible. God will 
help you.
Gentlemen, in the name of Heaven!said the wounded man
collecting all his forcesas if to get uplet us not lose 
time in useless words. Either help me to gain the nearest 
village or swear to me on your salvation that you will send 
me the first monk, the first cure, the first priest you may 
meet. But,he added in a despairing toneperhaps no one 
will dare to come for it is known that the Spaniards are 
ranging through the country, and I shall die without 
absolution. My God! my God! Good God! good God!added the 
wounded manin an accent of terror which made the young men 
shudder; "you will not allow that? that would be too 
terrible!" 
Calm yourself, sir,replied De Guiche. "I swear to you
you shall receive the consolation that you ask. Only tell us 
where we shall find a house at which we can demand aid and a 
village from which we can fetch a priest." 
Thank you, and God reward you! About half a mile from this, 
on the same road, there is an inn, and about a mile further 
on, after leaving the inn, you will reach the village of 
Greney. There you must find the curate, or if he is not at 
home, go to the convent of the Augustines, which is the last 
house on the right, and bring me one of the brothers. Monk 
or priest, it matters not, provided only that he has 
received from holy church the power of absolving in articulo 
mortis.
Monsieur d'Arminges,said De Guicheremain beside this 
unfortunate man and see that he is removed as gently as 
possible. The vicomte and myself will go and find a priest.
Go, sir,replied the tutor; "but in Heaven's name do not 
expose yourself to danger!" 
Do not fear. Besides, we are safe for to-day; you know the 
axiom, `Non bis in idem.'
Courage, sir,said Raoul to the wounded man. "We are going 
to execute your wishes." 
May Heaven prosper you!replied the dying manwith an 
accent of gratitude impossible to describe. 
The two young men galloped off in the direction mentioned 
and in ten minutes reached the inn. Raoulwithout 
dismountingcalled to the host and announced that a wounded 
man was about to be brought to his house and begged him in 
the meantime to prepare everything needful. He desired him 
alsoshould he know in the neighborhood any doctor or 
chirurgeonto fetch himtaking on himself the payment of 
the messenger. 
The hostwho saw two young noblemenrichly cladpromised 
everything they requiredand our two cavaliersafter 
seeing that preparations for the reception were actually 
begunstarted off again and proceeded rapidly toward 
Greney. 
They had gone rather more than a league and had begun to 
descry the first houses of the villagethe red-tiled roofs 
of which stood out from the green trees which surrounded 
themwhencoming toward them mounted on a mulethey 
perceived a poor monkwhose large hat and gray worsted 
dress made them take him for an Augustine brother. Chance 
for once seemed to favor them in sending what they were so 
assiduously seeking. He was a man about twenty-two or 
twenty-three years oldbut who appeared much older from 
ascetic exercises. His complexion was palenot of that 
deadly pallor which is a kind of neutral beautybut of a 
biliousyellow hue; his colorless hair was short and 
scarcely extended beyond the circle formed by the hat around 
his headand his light blue eyes seemed destitute of any 
expression. 
Sir,began Raoulwith his usual politenessare you an 
ecclesiastic?
Why do you ask me that?replied the strangerwith a 
coolness which was barely civil. 
Because we want to know,said De Guichehaughtily. 
The stranger touched his mule with his heel and continued 
his way. 
In a second De Guiche had sprung before him and barred his 
passage. "Answersir exclaimed he; you have been asked 
politelyand every question is worth an answer." 
I suppose I am free to say or not to say who I am to two 
strangers who take a fancy to ask me.
It was with difficulty that De Guiche restrained the intense 
desire he had of breaking the monk's bones. 
In the first place,he saidmaking an effort to control 
himselfwe are not people who may be treated anyhow; my 
friend there is the Viscount of Bragelonne and I am the 
Count de Guiche. Nor was it from caprice we asked the 
question, for there is a wounded and dying man who demands 
the succor of the church. If you be a priest, I conjure you 
in the name of humanity to follow me to aid this man; if you 
be not, it is a different matter, and I warn you in the name 
of courtesy, of which you appear profoundly ignorant, that I 
shall chastise you for your insolence.
The pale face of the monk became so livid and his smile so 
strangethat Raoulwhose eyes were still fixed upon him
felt as if this smile had struck to his heart like an 
insult. 
He is some Spanish or Flemish spy,said heputting his 
hand to his pistol. A glancethreatening and transient as 
lightningreplied to Raoul. 
Well, sir,said De Guicheare you going to reply?
I am a priest,said the young man. 
Then, father,said Raoulforcing himself to convey a 
respect by speech that did not come from his heartif you 
are a priest you have an opportunity, as my friend has told 
you, of exercising your vocation. At the next inn you will 
find a wounded man, now being attended by our servants, who 
has asked the assistance of a minister of God.
I will go,said the monk. 
And he touched his mule. 
If you do not go, sir,said De Guicheremember that we 
have two steeds able to catch your mule and the power of 
having you seized wherever you may be; and then I swear your 
trial will be summary; one can always find a tree and a 
cord.
The monk's eye again flashedbut that was all; he merely 
repeated his phraseI will go,-- and he went. 
Let us follow him,said De Guiche; "it will be the surest 
plan." 
I was about to propose so doing,answered De Bragelonne. 
In the space of five minutes the monk turned around to 
ascertain whether he was followed or not. 
You see,said Raoulwe have done wisely.
What a horrible face that monk has,said De Guiche. 
Horrible!replied Raoulespecially in expression.
Yes, yes,said De Guichea strange face; but these monks 
are subject to such degrading practices; their fasts make 
them pale, the blows of the discipline make them hypocrites, 
and their eyes become inflamed through weeping for the good 
things of this life we common folk enjoy, but they have 
lost.
Well,said Raoulthe poor man will get his priest, but, 
by Heaven, the penitent appears to me to have a better 
conscience than the confessor. I confess I am accustomed to 
priests of a very different appearance.
Ah!exclaimed De Guicheyou must understand that this is 
one of those wandering brothers, who go begging on the high 
road until some day a benefice falls down from Heaven on 
them; they are mostly foreigners -- Scotch, Irish or Danish. 
I have seen them before.
As ugly?
No, but reasonably hideous.
What a misfortune for the wounded man to die under the 
hands of such a friar!
Pshaw!said De Guiche. "Absolution comes not from him who 
administers itbut from God. Howeverfor my partI would 
rather die unshriven than have anything to say to such a 
confessor. You are of my opinionare you notviscount? and 
I see you playing with the pommel of your swordas if you 
had a great inclination to break the holy father's head." 
Yes, count, it is a strange thing and one which might 
astonish you, but I feel an indescribable horror at the 
sight of yonder man. Have you ever seen a snake rise up on 
your path?
Never,answered De Guiche. 
Well, it has happened to me to do so in our Blaisois 
forests, and I remember that the first time I encountered 
one with its eyes fixed upon me, curled up, swinging its 
head and pointing its tongue, I remained fixed, pale and as 
though fascinated, until the moment when the Comte de la 
Fere ---- 
Your father?asked De Guiche. 
No, my guardian,replied Raoulblushing. 
Very well ---- 
Until the moment when the Comte de la Fere,resumed Raoul
said, `Come, Bragelonne, draw your sword;' then only I 
rushed upon the reptile and cut it in two, just at the 
moment when it was rising on its tail and hissing, ere it 
sprang upon me. Well, I vow I felt exactly the same 
sensation at sight of that man when he said, `Why do you ask 
me that?' and looked so strangely at me.
Then you regret that you did not cut your serpent in two 
morsels?
Faith, yes, almost,said Raoul. 
They had now arrived within sight of the little inn and 
could see on the opposite side the procession bearing the 
wounded man and guided by Monsieur d'Arminges. The youths 
spurred on. 
There is the wounded man,said De Guichepassing close to 
the Augustine brother. "Be good enough to hurry yourself a 
littlemonsieur monk." 
As for Raoulhe avoided the monk by the whole width of the 
road and passed himturning his head away in repulsion. 
The young men rode up to the wounded man to announce that 
they were followed by the priest. He raised himself to 
glance in the direction which they pointed outsaw the 
monkand fell back upon the litterhis face illumined by 
joy. 
And now,said the youthswe have done all we can for 
you; and as we are in haste to rejoin the prince's army we 
must continue our journey. You will excuse us, sir, but we 
are told that a battle is expected and we do not wish to 
arrive the day after it.
Go, my young sirs,said the sick manand may you both be 
blessed for your piety. You have done for me, as you 
promised, all that you could do. As for me I can only 
repeat, may God protect you and all dear to you!
Sir,said De Guiche to his tutorwe will precede you, 
and you can rejoin us on the road to Cambrin.
The host was at his door and everything was prepared -- bed
bandagesand lint; and a groom had gone to Lensthe 
nearest villagefor a doctor. 
Everything,said he to Raoulshall be done as you 
desire; but you will not stop to have your wound dressed?
Oh, my wound -- mine -- 'tis nothing,replied the 
viscount; "it will be time to think about it when we next 
halt; only have the goodnessshould you see a cavalier who 
makes inquiries about a young man on a chestnut horse 
followed by a servantto tell himin factthat you have 
seen mebut that I have continued my journey and intend to 
dine at Mazingarbe and to stop at Cambrin. This cavalier is 
my attendant." 
Would it not be safer and more certain if I should ask him 
his name and tell him yours?demanded the host. 
There is no harm in over-precaution. I am the Viscount de 
Bragelonne and he is called Grimaud.
At this moment the wounded man arrived from one direction 
and the monk from the otherthe latter dismounting from his 
mule and desiring that it should be taken to the stables 
without being unharnessed. 
Sir monk,said De Guicheconfess well that brave man; 
and be not concerned for your expenses or for those of your 
mule; all is paid.
Thanks, monsieur,said the monkwith one of those smiles 
that made Bragelonne shudder. 
Come, count,said Raoulwho seemed instinctively to 
dislike the vicinity of the Augustine; "comeI feel ill 
here and the two young men spurred on. 
The litter, borne by two servants, now entered the house. 
The host and his wife were standing on the steps, whilst the 
unhappy man seemed to suffer dreadful pain and yet to be 
concerned only to know if he was followed by the monk. At 
sight of this pale, bleeding man, the wife grasped her 
husband's arm. 
Wellwhat's the matter?" asked the latterare you going 
to be ill just now?
No, but look,replied the hostesspointing to the wounded 
man; "I ask you if you recognize him?" 
That man -- wait a bit.
Ah! I see you know him,exclaimed the wife; "for you have 
become pale in your turn." 
Truly,cried the hostmisfortune is coming on our house; 
it is the former executioner of Bethune.
The former executioner of Bethune!murmured the young 
monkshrinking back and showing on his countenance the 
feeling of repugnance which his penitent inspired. 
Monsieur d'Armingeswho was at the doorperceived his 
hesitation. 
Sir monk,said hewhether he is now or has been an 
executioner, this unfortunate being is none the less a man. 
Render to him, then, the last service he can by any 
possibility ask of you, and your work will be all the more 
meritorious.
The monk made no replybut silently wended his way to the 
room where the two valets had deposited the dying man on a 
bed. D'Arminges and Olivain and the two grooms then mounted 
their horsesand all four started off at a quick trot to 
rejoin Raoul and his companion. Just as the tutor and his 
escort disappeared in their turna new traveler stopped on 
the threshold of the inn. 
What does your worship want?demanded the hostpale and 
trembling from the discovery he had just made. 
The traveler made a sign as if he wished to drinkand then 
pointed to his horse and gesticulated like a man who is 
brushing something. 
Ah, diable!said the host to himself; "this man seems 
dumb. And where will your worship drink?" 
There,answered the travelerpointing to the table. 
I was mistaken,said the hosthe's not quite dumb. And 
what else does your worship wish for?
To know if you have seen a young man pass, fifteen years of 
age, mounted on a chestnut horse and followed by a groom?
The Viscount de Bragelonne? 
Just so." 
Then you are called Monsieur Grimaud?
The traveler made a sign of assent. 
Well, then,said the hostyour young master was here a 
quarter of an hour ago; he will dine at Mazingarbe and sleep 
at Cambrin.
How far is Mazingarbe?
Two miles and a half.
Thank you.
Grimaud was drinking his wine silently and had just placed 
his glass on the table to be filled a second timewhen a 
terrific scream resounded from the room occupied by the monk 
and the dying man. Grimaud sprang up. 
What is that?said he; "whence comes that cry?" 
From the wounded man's room,replied the host. 
What wounded man?
The former executioner of Bethune, who has just been 
brought in here, assassinated by Spaniards, and who is now 
being confessed by an Augustine friar.
The old executioner of Bethune,muttered Grimaud; "a man 
between fifty-five and sixtytallstrongswarthyblack 
hair and beard?" 
That is he, except that his beard has turned gray and his 
hair is white; do you know him?asked the host. 
I have seen him once,replied Grimauda cloud darkening 
his countenance at the picture so suddenly summoned to the 
bar of recollection. 
At this instant a second cryless piercing than the first
but followed by prolonged groaningwas heard. 
The three listeners looked at one another in alarm. 
We must see what it is,said Grimaud. 
It sounds like the cry of one who is being murdered,
murmured the host. 
Mon Dieu!said the womancrossing herself. 
If Grimaud was slow in speakingwe know that he was quick 
to act; he sprang to the door and shook it violentlybut it 
was bolted on the other side. 
Open the door!cried the host; "open it instantlysir 
monk!" 
No reply. 
Unfasten it, or I will break it in!said Grimaud. 
The same silenceand thenere the host could oppose his 
designGrimaud seized a pair of pincers he perceived in a 
corner and forced the bolt. The room was inundated with 
blooddripping from the mattresses upon which lay the 
wounded manspeechless; the monk had disappeared. 
The monk!cried the host; "where is the monk?" 
Grimaud sprang toward an open window which looked into the 
courtyard. 
He has escaped by this means,exclaimed he. 
Do you think so?said the hostbewildered; "boysee if 
the mule belonging to the monk is still in the stable." 
There is no mule,cried he to whom this question was 
addressed. 
The host clasped his hands and looked around him 
suspiciouslywhilst Grimaud knit his brows and approached 
the wounded manwhose wornhard features awoke in his mind 
such awful recollections of the past. 
There can be no longer any doubt but that it is himself,
said he. 
Does he still live?inquired the innkeeper. 
Making no replyGrimaud opened the poor man's jacket to 
feel if the heart beatwhilst the host approached in his 
turn; but in a moment they both fell backthe host uttering 
a cry of horror and Grimaud becoming pallid. The blade of a 
dagger was buried up to the hilt in the left side of the 
executioner. 
Run! run for help!cried Grimaudand I will remain 
beside him here.
The host quitted the room in agitationand as for his wife
she had fled at the sound of her husband's cries. 
The Absolution. 
This is what had taken place: We have seen that it was not 
of his own free willbuton the contraryvery 
reluctantlythat the monk attended the wounded man who had 
been recommended to him in so strange a manner. Perhaps he 
would have sought to escape by flight had he seen any 
possibility of doing so. He was restrained by the threats of 
the two gentlemen and by the presence of their attendants
who doubtless had received their instructions. And besides
he considered it most expedientwithout exhibiting too much 
ill-willto follow to the end his role as confessor. 
The monk entered the chamber and approached the bed of the 
wounded man. The executioner searched his face with the 
quick glance peculiar to those who are about to die and have 
no time to lose. He made a movement of surprise and said: 
Father, you are very young.
Men who bear my robe have no, age,replied the monk
dryly. 
Alas, speak to me more gently, father; in my last moments I 
need a friend.
Do you suffer much?asked the monk. 
Yes, but in my soul much more than in my body.
We will save your soul,said the young man; "but are you 
really the executioner of Bethuneas these people say?" 
That is to say,eagerly replied the wounded manwho 
doubtless feared that the name of executioner would take 
from him the last help that he could claim -- "that is to 
sayI wasbut am no longer; it is fifteen years since I 
gave up the office. I still assist at executionsbut no 
longer strike the blow myself -- noindeed." 
You have, then, a repugnance to your profession?
So long as I struck in the name of the law and of justice 
my profession allowed me to sleep quietly, sheltered as I 
was by justice and law; but since that terrible night when I 
became an instrument of private vengeance and when with 
personal hatred I raised the sword over one of God's 
creatures -- since that day ---- 
The executioner paused and shook his head with an expression 
of despair. 
Tell me about it,said the monkwhositting on the foot 
of the bedbegan to be interested in a story so strangely 
introduced. 
Ah!cried the dying manwith all the effusiveness of a 
grief declared after long suppressionah! I have sought to 
stifle remorse by twenty years of good deeds; I have 
assuaged the natural ferocity of those who shed blood; on 
every occasion I have exposed my life to save those who were 
in danger, and I have preserved lives in exchange for that I 
took away. That is not all; the money gained in the exercise 
of my profession I have distributed to the poor; I have been 
assiduous in attending church and those who formerly fled 
from me have become accustomed to seeing me. All have 
forgiven me, some have even loved me; but I think that God 
has not pardoned me, for the memory of that execution 
pursues me constantly and every night I see that woman's 
ghost rising before me.
A woman! You have assassinated a woman, then?cried the 
monk. 
You also!exclaimed the executioneryou use that word 
which sounds ever in my ears -- `assassinated!' I have 
assassinated, then, and not executed! I am an assassin, 
then, and not an officer of justice!and he closed his eyes 
with a groan. 
The monk doubtless feared that he would die without saying 
morefor he exclaimed eagerly: 
Go on, I know nothing, as yet; when you have finished your 
story, God and I will judge.
Oh, father,continued the executionerwithout opening his 
eyesas if he feared on opening them to see some frightful 
objectit is especially when night comes on and when I 
have to cross a river, that this terror which I have been 
unable to conquer comes upon me; it then seems as if my hand 
grew heavy, as if the cutlass was still in its grasp, as if 
the water had the color of blood, and all the voices of 
nature -- the whispering of the trees, the murmur of the 
wind, the lapping of the wave -- united in a voice tearful, 
despairing, terrible, crying to me, `Place for the justice 
of God!'
Delirium!murmured the monkshaking his head. 
The executioner opened his eyesturned toward the young man 
and grasped his arm. 
`Delirium,'he repeated; "`delirium' do you say? Ohno! 
I remember too well. It was evening; I had thrown the body 
into the river and those words which my remorse repeats to 
me are those which I in my pride pronounced. After being the 
instrument of human justice I aspired to be that of the 
justice of God." 
But let me see, how was it done? Speak,said the monk. 
It was at night. A man came to me and showed me an order 
and I followed him. Four other noblemen awaited me. They led 
me away masked. I reserved the right of refusing if the 
office they required of me should seem unjust. We traveled 
five or six leagues, serious, silent, and almost without 
speaking. At length, through the window of a little hut, 
they showed me a woman sitting, leaning on a table, and 
said, `there is the person to be executed.'
Horrible!said the monk. "And you obeyed?" 
Father, that woman was a monster. It was said that she had 
poisoned her second husband; she had tried to assassinate 
her brother-in-law; she had just poisoned a young woman who 
was her rival, and before leaving England she had, it was 
believed, caused the favorite of the king to be murdered.
Buckingham?cried the monk. 
Yes, Buckingham.
The woman was English, then?
No, she was French, but she had married in England.
The monk turned palewiped his brow and went and bolted the 
door. The executioner thought that he had abandoned him and 
fell backgroaningupon his bed. 
No, no; I am here,said the monkquickly coming back to 
him. "Go on; who were those men?" 
One of them was a foreigner, English, I think. The four 
others were French and wore the uniform of musketeers.
Their names?asked the monk. 
I don't know them, but the four other noblemen called the 
Englishman `my lord.'
Was the woman handsome?
Young and beautiful. Oh, yes, especially beautiful. I see 
her now, as on her knees at my feet, with her head thrown 
back, she begged for life. I have never understood how I 
could have laid low a head so beautiful, with a face so 
pale.
The monk seemed agitated by a strange emotion; he trembled 
all over; he seemed eager to put a question which yet he 
dared not ask. At lengthwith a violent effort at 
self-control: 
The name of that woman?he said. 
I don't know what it was. As I have said, she was twice
married, once in France, the second time in England.
She was young, you say?
Twenty-five years old.
Beautiful?
Ravishingly.
Blond?
Yes.
Abundance of hair -- falling over her shoulders?
Yes.
Eyes of an admirable expression?
When she chose. Oh, yes, it is she!
A voice of strange sweetness?
How do you know it?
The executioner raised himself on his elbow and gazed with a
frightened air at the monkwho became livid.
And you killed her?the monk exclaimed. "You were the tool 
of those cowards who dared not kill her themselves? You had 
no pity for that youthfulnessthat beautythat weakness? 
you killed that woman?" 
Alas! I have already told you, father, that woman, under 
that angelic appearance, had an infernal soul, and when I 
saw her, when I recalled all the evil she had done to me 
---- 
To you? What could she have done to you? Come, tell me!
She had seduced and ruined my brother, a priest. She had
fled with him from her convent.
With your brother?
Yes, my brother was her first lover, and she caused his
death. Oh, father, do not look in that way at me! Oh, I am
guilty, then; you will not pardon me?
The monk recovered his usual expression.
Yes, yes,he saidI will pardon you if you tell me all.
Oh!cried the executionerall! all! all!
Answer, then. If she seduced your brother -- you said she
seduced him, did you not?
Yes.
If she caused his death -- you said that she caused his
death?
Yes,repeated the executioner. 
Then you must know what her name was as a young girl.
Oh, mon Dieu!cried the executionerI think I am dying. 
Absolution, father! absolution.
Tell me her name and I will give it.
Her name was ---- My God, have pity on me!murmured the 
executioner; and he fell back on the bedpaletrembling
and apparently about to die. 
Her name!repeated the monkbending over him as if to 
tear from him the name if he would not utter it; "her name! 
Speakor no absolution!" 
The dying man collected all his forces. 
The monk's eyes glittered. 
Anne de Bueil,murmured the wounded man. 
Anne de Bueil!cried the monkstanding up and lifting his 
hands to Heaven. "Anne de Bueil! You said Anne de Bueildid 
you not?" 
Yes, yes, that was her name; and now absolve me, for I am 
dying.
I, absolve you!cried the priestwith a laugh which made 
the dying man's hair stand on end; "Iabsolve you? I am not 
a priest." 
You are not a priest!cried the executioner. "Whatthen
are you?" 
I am about to tell you, wretched man.
Oh, mon Dieu!
I am John Francis de Winter.
I do not know you,said the executioner. 
Wait, wait; you are going to know me. I am John Francis de 
Winter,he repeatedand that woman ---- 
Well, that woman?
Was my mother!
The executioner uttered the first crythat terrible cry 
which had been first heard. 
Oh, pardon me, pardon me!he murmured; "if not in the name 
of Godat least in your own name; if not as priestthen as 
son." 
Pardon you!cried the pretended monkpardon you! Perhaps 
God will pardon you, but I, never!
For pity's sake,said the executionerextending his arms. 
No pity for him who had no pity! Die, impenitent, die in 
despair, die and be damned!And drawing a poniard from 
beneath his robe he thrust it into the breast of the wounded 
mansayingHere is my absolution!
Then was heard that second crynot so loud as the first and 
followed by a long groan. 
The executionerwho had lifted himself upfell back upon 
his bed. As to the monkwithout withdrawing the poniard 
from the woundhe ran to the windowopened itleaped out 
into the flowers of a small gardenglided onward to the 
stabletook out his mulewent out by a back gateran to a 
neighbouring thicketthrew off his monkish garbtook from 
his valise the complete habiliment of a cavalierclothed 
himself in itwent on foot to the first postsecured there 
a horse and continued with a loose rein his journey to 
Paris. 
Grimaud Speaks. 
Grimaud was left alone with the executionerwho in a few 
moments opened his eyes. 
Help, help,he murmured; "ohGod! have I not a single 
friend in the world who will aid me either to live or to 
die?" 
Take courage,said Grimaud; "they are gone to find 
assistance." 
Who are you?asked the wounded manfixing his half opened 
eyes on Grimaud. 
An old acquaintance,replied Grimaud. 
You?and the wounded man sought to recall the features of 
the person now before him. 
Under what circumstances did we meet?he asked again. 
One night, twenty years ago, my master fetched you from 
Bethune and conducted you to Armentieres.
I know you well now,said the executioner; "you were one 
of the four grooms." 
Just so.
Where do you come from now?
I was passing by and drew up at this inn to rest my horse. 
They told me the executioner of Bethune was here and 
wounded, when you uttered two piercing cries. At the first 
we ran to the door and at the second forced it open.
And the monk?exclaimed the executionerdid you see the 
monk?
What monk?
The monk that was shut in with me.
No, he was no longer here; he appears to have fled by the
window. Was he the man that stabbed you?
Yes,said the executioner.
Grimaud moved as if to leave the room.
What are you going to do?asked the wounded man.
He must be apprehended.
Do not attempt it; he has revenged himself and has done 
well. Now I may hope that God will forgive me, since my 
crime is expiated.
Explain yourself.said Grimaud. 
The woman whom you and your masters commanded me to kill 
---- 
Milady?
Yes, Milady; it is true you called her thus.
What has the monk to do with this Milady?
She was his mother.
Grimaud trembled and stared at the dying man in a dull and
leaden manner.
His mother!he repeated.
Yes, his mother.
But does he know this secret, then?
I mistook him for a monk and revealed it to him in 
confession.
Unhappy man!cried Grimaudwhose face was covered with 
sweat at the bare idea of the evil results such a revelation 
might cause; "unhappy manyou named no oneI hope?" 
I pronounced no name, for I knew none, except his mother's, 
as a young girl, and it was by this name that he recognized 
her, but he knows that his uncle was among her judges.
Thus speakinghe fell back exhausted. Grimaudwishing to 
relieve himadvanced his hand toward the hilt of the 
dagger. 
Touch me not!said the executioner; "if this dagger is 
withdrawn I shall die." 
Grimaud remained with his hand extended; thenstriking his 
foreheadhe exclaimed: 
Oh! if this man should ever discover the names of the 
others, my master is lost.
Haste! haste to him and warn him,cried the wounded man
if he still lives; warn his friends, too. My death, believe 
me, will not be the end of this atrocious misadventure.
Where was the monk going?asked Grimaud. 
Toward Paris.
Who stopped him?
Two young gentlemen, who were on their way to join the army 
and the name of one of whom I heard his companion mention -the 
Viscount de Bragelonne.
And it was this young man who brought the monk to you? Then 
it was the will of God that it should be so and this it is 
which makes it all so awful,continued Grimaud. "And yet 
that woman deserved her fate; do you not think so?" 
On one's death-bed the crimes of others appear very small 
in comparison with one's own,said the executioner; and 
falling back exhausted he closed his eyes. 
Grimaud was reluctant to leave the man alone and yet he 
perceived the necessity of starting at once to bear these 
tidings to the Comte de la Fere. Whilst he thus hesitated 
the host re-entered the roomfollowed not only by a 
surgeonbut by many other personswhom curiosity had 
attracted to the spot. The surgeon approached the dying man
who seemed to have fainted. 
We must first extract the steel from the side,said he
shaking his head in a significant manner. 
The prophecy which the wounded man had just uttered recurred 
to Grimaudwho turned away his head. The weaponas we have 
already statedwas plunged into the body to the hiltand 
as the surgeontaking it by the enddrew it forththe 
wounded man opened his eyes and fixed them on him in a 
manner truly frightful. When at last the blade had been 
entirely withdrawna red froth issued from the mouth of the 
wounded man and a stream of blood spouted afresh from the 
wound when he at length drew breath; thenfixing his eyes 
upon Grimaud with a singular expressionthe dying man 
uttered the last death-rattle and expired. 
Then Grimaudlifting the dagger from the pool of blood 
which was gliding along the roomto the horror of all 
presentmade a sign to the host to follow himpaid him 
with a generosity worthy of his master and again mounted his 
horse. Grimaud's first intention had been to return to 
Parisbut he remembered the anxiety which his prolonged 
absence might occasion Raouland reflecting that there were 
now only two miles between the vicomte and himself and a 
quarter of an hour's riding would unite themand that the 
goingreturning and explanation would not occupy an hour
he put spurs to his horse and a few minutes after had 
reached the only inn of Mazingarbe. 
Raoul was seated at table with the Count de Guiche and his 
tutorwhen all at once the door opened and Grimaud 
presented himselftravel-staineddirtyand sprinkled with 
the blood of the unhappy executioner. 
Grimaud, my good Grimaud!exclaimed Raoul "here you are at 
last! Excuse mesirsthis is not a servantbut a friend. 
How did you leave the count?" continued he. "Does he regret 
me a little? Have you seen him since I left him? Answerfor 
I have many things to tell youtoo; indeedthe last three 
days some odd adventures have happened -- but what is the 
matter? how pale you are! and bloodtoo! What is this?" 
It is the blood of the unfortunate man whom you left at the 
inn and who died in my arms.
In your arms? -- that man! but know you who he was?
He used to be the headsman of Bethune.
You knew him? and he is dead?
Yes.
Well, sir,said D'Armingesit is the common lot; even an 
executioner is not exempted. I had a bad opinion of him the 
moment I saw his wound, and since he asked for a monk you 
know that it was his opinion, too, that death would follow.
At the mention of the monkGrimaud became pale. 
Come, come,continued D'Armingesto dinner;for like 
most men of his age and generation he did not allow 
sentiment or sensibility to interfere with a repast. 
You are right, sir,said Raoul. "ComeGrimaudorder 
dinner for yourself and when you have rested a little we can 
talk." 
No, sir, no,said Grimaud. "I cannot stop a moment; I must 
start for Paris again immediately." 
What? You start for Paris? You are mistaken; it is Olivain 
who leaves me; you are to remain.
On the contrary, Olivain is to stay and I am to go. I have 
come for nothing else but to tell you so.
But what is the meaning of this change?
I cannot tell you.
Explain yourself.
I cannot explain myself.
Come, tell me, what is the joke?
Monsieur le vicomte knows that I never joke.
Yes, but I know also that Monsieur le Comte de la Fere 
arranged that you were to remain with me and that Olivain 
should return to Paris. I shall follow the count's 
directions.
Not under present circumstances, monsieur.
Perhaps you mean to disobey me?
Yes, monsieur, I must.
You persist, then?
Yes, I am going; may you be happy, monsieur,and Grimaud 
saluted and turned toward the door to go out. 
Raoulangry and at the same time uneasyran after him and 
seized him by the arm. "Grimaud!" he cried; "remain; I wish 
it." 
Then,replied Grimaudyou wish me to allow monsieur le 
comte to be killed.He saluted and made a movement to 
depart. 
Grimaud, my friend,said the viscountwill you leave me 
thus, in such anxiety? Speak, speak, in Heaven's name!And 
Raoul fell back trembling upon his chair. 
I can tell you but one thing, sir, for the secret you wish 
to know is not my own. You met a monk, did you not?
Yes.
The young men looked at each other with an expression of 
fear. 
You conducted him to the wounded man and you had time to 
observe him, and perhaps you would know him again were you 
to meet him.
Yes, yes!cried both young men. 
Very well; if ever you meet him again, wherever it may be, 
whether on the high road or in the street or in a church, 
anywhere that he or you may be, put your foot on his neck 
and crush him without pity, without mercy, as you would 
crush a viper or a scorpion! destroy him utterly and quit 
him not until he is dead; the lives of five men are not 
safe, in my opinion, as long as he is on the earth.
And without adding another wordGrimaudprofiting by the 
astonishment and terror into which he had thrown his 
auditorsrushed from the room. Two minutes later the 
thunder of a horse's hoofs was heard upon the road; it was 
Grimaudon his way to Paris. When once in the saddle 
Grimaud reflected on two things; firstthat at the pace he 
was going his horse would not carry him ten milesand 
secondlythat he had no money. But Grimaud's ingenuity was 
more prolific than his speechand therefore at the first 
halt he sold his steed and with the money obtained from the 
purchase took post horses. 
On the Eve of Battle. 
Raoul was aroused from his sombre reflections by his host
who rushed into the apartment crying outThe Spaniards! 
the Spaniards!
That cry was of such importance as to overcome all 
preoccupation. The young men made inquiries and ascertained 
that the enemy was advancing by way of Houdin and Bethune. 
While Monsieur d'Arminges gave orders for the horses to be 
made ready for departurethe two young men ascended to the 
upper windows of the house and saw in the direction of 
Marsin and of Lens a large body of infantry and cavalry. 
This time it was not a wandering troop of partisans; it was 
an entire army. There was therefore nothing for them to do 
but to follow the prudent advice of Monsieur d'Arminges and 
beat a retreat. They quickly went downstairs. Monsieur 
d'Arminges was already mounted. Olivain had ready the horses 
of the young menand the lackeys of the Count de Guiche 
guarded carefully between them the Spanish prisonermounted 
on a pony which had been bought for his use. As a further 
precaution they had bound his hands. 
The little company started off at a trot on the road to 
Cambrinwhere they expected to find the prince. But he was 
no longer therehaving withdrawn on the previous evening to 
La Basseemisled by false intelligence of the enemy's 
movements. Deceived by this intelligence he had concentrated 
his forces between Vieille-Chapelle and La Venthie; and 
after a reconnoissance along the entire linein company 
with Marshal de Grammonthe had returned and seated himself 
before a tablewith his officers around him. He questioned 
them as to the news they had each been charged to obtain
but nothing positive had been learned. The hostile army had 
disappeared two days before and seemed to have gone out of 
existence. 
Now an enemy is never so near and consequently so 
threateningas when he has completely disappeared. The 
prince wasthereforecontrary to his customgloomy and 
anxiouswhen an officer entered and announced to Marshal de 
Grammont that some one wished to see him. 
The Duc de Grammont received permission from the prince by a 
glance and went out. The prince followed him with his eyes 
and continued looking at the door; no one ventured to speak
for fear of disturbing him. 
Suddenly a dull and heavy noise was heard. The prince leaped 
to his feetextending his hand in the direction whence came 
the soundthere was no mistaking it -- it was the noise of 
cannon. Every one stood up. 
At that moment the door opened. 
Monseigneur,said Marshal de Grammontwith a radiant 
facewill your highness permit my son, Count de Guiche, 
and his traveling companion, Viscount de Bragelonne, to come 
in and give news of the enemy, whom they have found while we 
were looking for him?
What!eagerly replied the princewill I permit? I not 
only permit, I desire; let them come in.
The marshal introduced the two young men and placed them 
face to face with the prince. 
Speak, gentlemen,said the princesaluting them; "first 
speak; we shall have time afterward for the usual 
compliments. The most urgent thing now is to learn where the 
enemy is and what he is doing." 
It fell naturally to the Count de Guiche to make reply; not 
only was he the elderbut he had been presented to the 
prince by his father. Besideshe had long known the prince
whilst Raoul now saw him for the first time. He therefore 
narrated to the prince what they had seen from the inn at 
Mazingarbe. 
Meanwhile Raoul closely observed the young generalalready 
made so famous by the battles of RocroyFribourgand 
Nordlingen. 
Louis de BourbonPrince de Condewhosince the death of 
his fatherHenri de Bourbonwas calledin accordance with 
the custom of that periodMonsieur le Princewas a young 
mannot more than twenty-six or twenty-seven years old
with the eye of an eagle -- agl' occhi grifanias Dante 
says -- aquiline noselongwaving hairof medium height
well formedpossessed of all the qualities essential to the 
successful soldier -- that is to saythe rapid glance
quick decisionfabulous courage. At the same time he was a 
man of elegant manners and strong mindso that in addition 
to the revolution he had made in warby his new 
contributions to its methodshe had also made a revolution 
at Parisamong the young noblemen of the courtwhose 
natural chief he was and whoin distinction from the social 
leaders of the ancient courtmodeled after Bassompierre
Bellegarde and the Duke d'Angoulemewere called the 
petits-maitres. 
At the first words of the Count de Guichethe prince
having in mind the direction whence came the sound of 
cannonhad understood everything. The enemy was marching 
upon Lenswith the intentiondoubtlessof securing 
possession of that town and separating from France the army 
of France. But in what force was the enemy? Was it a corps 
sent out to make a diversion? Was it an entire army? To this 
question De Guiche could not respond. 
Nowas these questions involved matters of gravest 
consequenceit was these to which the prince had especially 
desired an answerexactprecisepositive. 
Raoul conquered the very natural feeling of timidity he 
experienced and approaching the prince: 
My lord,he saidwill you permit me to hazard a few 
words on that subject, which will perhaps relieve you of 
your uncertainty?
The prince turned and seemed to cover the young man with a 
single glance; he smiled on perceiving that he was a child 
hardly fifteen years old. 
Certainly, monsieur, speak,he saidsoftening his stern
accented tonesas if he were speaking to a woman. 
My lord,said Raoulblushingmight examine the Spanish 
prisoner.
Have you a Spanish prisoner?cried the prince. 
Yes, my lord.
Ah, that is true,said De Guiche; "I had forgotten it." 
That is easily understood; it was you who took him, count,
said Raoulsmiling. 
The old marshal turned toward the viscountgrateful for 
that praise of his sonwhilst the prince exclaimed: 
The young man is right; let the prisoner be brought in.
Meanwhile the prince took De Guiche aside and asked him how 
the prisoner had been taken and who this young man was. 
Monsieur,said the princeturning toward RaoulI know 
that you have a letter from my sister, Madame de 
Longueville; but I see that you have preferred commending 
yourself to me by giving me good counsel.
My lord,said Raoulcoloring upI did not wish to 
interrupt your highness in a conversation so important as 
that in which you were engaged with the count. But here is 
the letter.
Very well,said the prince; "give it to me later. Here is 
the prisoner; let us attend to what is most pressing." 
The prisoner was one of those military adventurers who sold 
their blood to whoever would buyand grew old in stratagems 
and spoils. Since he had been taken he had not uttered a 
wordso that it was not known to what country he belonged. 
The prince looked at him with unspeakable distrust. 
Of what country are you?asked the prince. 
The prisoner muttered a few words in a foreign tongue. 
Ah! ah! it seems that he is a Spaniard. Do you speak 
Spanish, Grammont?
Faith, my lord, but indifferently.
And I not at all,said the princelaughing. "Gentlemen 
he said, turning to those who were near him can any one of 
you speak Spanish and serve me as interpreter?" 
I can, my lord,said Raoul. 
Ah, you speak Spanish?
Enough, I think, to fulfill your highness's wishes on this 
occasion.
Meanwhile the prisoner had remained impassive and as if he 
had no understanding of what was taking place. 
My lord asks of what country you are,said the young man
in the purest Castilian. 
Ich bin ein Deutscher,replied the prisoner. 
What in the devil does he say?asked the prince. "What new 
gibberish is that?" 
He says he is German, my lord,replied Raoul; "but I doubt 
itfor his accent is bad and his pronunciation defective." 
Then you speak German, also?asked the prince. 
Yes, my lord.
Well enough to question him in that language?
Yes, my lord.
Question him, then.
Raoul began the examinationbut the result justified his 
opinion. The prisoner did not understandor seemed not to 
understandwhat Raoul said to him; and Raoul could hardly 
understand his repliescontaining a mixture of Flemish and 
Alsatian. Howeveramidst all the prisoner's efforts to 
elude a systematic examinationRaoul had recognized his 
natural accent. 
Non siete Spagnuolo,he said; "non siete Tedesco; siete 
Italiano." 
The prisoner started and bit his lips. 
Ah, that,said the princeI understand that language 
thoroughly; and since he is Italian I will myself continue 
the examination. Thank you, viscount,continued the prince
laughingand I appoint you from this moment my 
interpreter.
But the prisoner was not less unwilling to respond in 
Italian than in the other languages; his aim was to elude 
the examination. Thereforehe knew nothing either of the 
enemy's numbersor of those in commandor of the purpose 
of the army. 
Very good,said the princeunderstanding the reason of 
that ignorance; "the man was caught in the act of 
assassination and robbery; he might have purchased his life 
by speaking; he doesn't wish to speak. Take him out and 
shoot him." 
The prisoner turned pale. The two soldiers who had brought 
him in took himeach by one armand led him toward the 
doorwhilst the princeturning to Marshal de Grammont
seemed to have already forgotten the order he had given. 
When he reached the threshold of the door the prisoner 
stopped. The soldierswho knew only their ordersattempted 
to force him along. 
One moment,said the prisonerin French. "I am ready to 
speakmy lord." 
Ah! ah!said the princelaughingI thought we should 
come to that. I have a sure method of limbering tongues. 
Young men, take advantage of it against the time when you 
may be in command.
But on condition,continued the prisonerthat your 
highness will swear that my life shall be safe.
Upon my honor,said the prince. 
Question, then, my lord.
Where did the army cross the Lys?
Between Saint-Venant and Aire.
By whom is it commanded?
By Count de Fuonsaldagna, General Beck and the archduke.
Of how many does it consist?
Eighteen thousand men and thirty-six cannon.
And its aim is?
Lens.
You see; gentlemen!said the princeturning with a 
triumphant air toward Marshal de Grammont and the other 
officers. 
Yes, my lord,said the marshalyou have divined all that 
was possible to human genius.
Recall Le Plessis, Bellievre, Villequier and D'Erlac,said 
the princerecall all the troops that are on this side of 
the Lys. Let them hold themselves in readiness to march 
to-night. To-morrow, according to all probability, we shall 
attack the enemy.
But, my lord,said Marshal de Grammontconsider that 
when we have collected all our forces we shall have hardly 
thirteen thousand men.
Monsieur le marechal,said the princewith that wonderful 
glance that was peculiar to himit is with small armies 
that great battles are won.
Then turning toward the prisonerTake away that man,he 
saidand keep him carefully in sight. His life is 
dependent on the information he has given us; if it is true, 
he shall be free; if false, let him be shot.
The prisoner was led away. 
Count de Guiche,said the princeit is a long time since 
you saw your father, remain here with him. Monsieur,he 
continuedaddressing Raoulif you are not too tired, 
follow me.
To the end of the world, my lord!cried Raoulfeeling an 
unknown enthusiasm for that young generalwho seemed to him 
so worthy of his renown. 
The prince smiled; he despised flatterersbut he 
appreciated enthusiasts. 
Come, monsieur,he saidyou are good in council, as we 
have already discovered; to-morrow we shall know if you are 
good in action.
And I,said the marshalwhat am I to do?
Wait here to receive the troops. I shall either return for 
them myself or shall send a courier directing you to bring 
them to me. Twenty guards, well mounted, are all that I 
shall need for my escort.
That is very few,said the marshal. 
It is enough,replied the prince. "Have you a good horse
Monsieur de Bragelonne?" 
My horse was killed this morning, my lord, and I am mounted 
provisionally on my lackey's.
Choose for yourself in my stables the horse you like best. 
No false modesty; take the best horse you can find. You will 
need it this evening, perhaps; you will certainly need it 
to-morrow.
Raoul didn't wait to be told twice; he knew that with 
superiorsespecially when those superiors are princesthe 
highest politeness is to obey without delay or argument; he 
went down to the stablespicked out a pie-bald Andalusian 
horsesaddled and bridled it himselffor Athos had advised 
him to trust no one with those important offices at a time 
of dangerand went to rejoin the princewho at that moment 
mounted his horse. 
Now, monsieur,he said to Raoulwill you give me the 
letter you have brought?
Raoul handed the letter to the prince. 
Keep near me,said the latter. 
The prince threw his bridle over the pommel of the saddle
as he was wont to do when he wished to have both hands free
unsealed the letter of Madame de Longueville and started at 
a gallop on the road to Lensattended by Raoul and his 
small escortwhilst messengers sent to recall the troops 
set out with a loose rein in other directions. The prince 
read as he hastened on. 
Monsieur,he saidafter a momentthey tell me great 
things of you. I have only to say, after the little that I 
have seen and heard, that I think even better of you than I 
have been told.' 
Raoul bowed. 
Meanwhile, as the little troop drew nearer to Lens, the 
noise of the cannon sounded louder. The prince kept his gaze 
fixed in the direction of the sound with the steadfastness 
of a bird of prey. One would have said that his gaze could 
pierce the branches of trees which limited his horizon. From 
time to time his nostrils dilated as if eager for the smell 
of powder, and he panted like a horse. 
At length they heard the cannon so near that it was evident 
they were within a league of the field of battle, and at a 
turn of the road they perceived the little village of Aunay. 
The peasants were in great commotion. The report of Spanish 
cruelty had gone out and every one was frightened. The women 
had already fled, taking refuge in Vitry; only a few men 
remained. On seeing the prince they hastened to meet him. 
One of them recognized him. 
Ahmy lord he said, have you come to drive away those 
rascal Spaniards and those Lorraine robbers?" 
Yes,said the princeif you will serve me as guide.
Willingly, my lord. Where does your highness wish to go?
To some elevated spot whence I can look down on Lens and 
the surrounding country ---- 
In that case, I'm your man.
I can trust you -- you are a true Frenchman?
I am an old soldier of Rocroy, my lord.
Here,said the princehanding him a pursehere is for 
Rocroy. Now, do you want a horse, or will you go afoot?
Afoot, my lord; I have served always in the infantry. 
Besides, I expect to lead your highness into places where 
you will have to walk.
Come, then,said the prince; "let us lose no time." 
The peasant started offrunning before the prince's horse; 
thena hundred steps from the villagehe took a narrow 
road hidden at the bottom of the valley. For a half league 
they proceeded thusthe cannon-shot sounding so near that 
they expected at each discharge to hear the hum of the 
balls. At length they entered a path whichgoing out from 
the roadskirted the mountainside. The prince dismounted
ordered one of his aids and Raoul to follow his exampleand 
directed the others to await his orderskeeping themselves 
meanwhile on the alert. He then began to ascend the path. 
In about ten minutes they reached the ruins of an old 
chateau; those ruins crowned the summit of a hill which 
overlooked the surrounding country. At a distance of hardly 
a quarter of a league they looked down on Lensat bayand 
before Lens the enemy's entire army. 
With a single glance the prince took in the extent of 
country that lay before himfrom Lens as far as Vimy. In a 
moment the plan of the battle which on the following day was 
to save France the second time from invasion was unrolled in 
his mind. He took a penciltore a page from his tablets and 
wrote: 
My Dear Marshal-- In an hour Lens will be in the enemy's 
possession. Come and rejoin me; bring with you the whole 
army. I shall be at Vendin to place it in position. 
To-morrow we shall retake Lens and beat the enemy." 
Thenturning toward Raoul: "Gomonsieur he said; ride 
fast and give this letter to Monsieur de Grammont." 
Raoul bowedtook the letterwent hastily down the 
mountainleaped on his horse and set out at a gallop. A 
quarter of an hour later he was with the marshal. 
A portion of the troops had already arrived and the 
remainder was expected from moment to moment. Marshal de 
Grammont put himself at the head of all the available 
cavalry and infantry and took the road to Vendinleaving 
the Duc de Chatillon to await and bring on the rest. All the 
artillery was ready to moveand started off at a moment's 
notice. 
It was seven o'clock in the evening when the marshal arrived 
at the appointed place. The prince awaited him there. As he 
had foreseenLens had fallen into the hands of the enemy 
immediately after Raoul's departure. The event was announced 
by the cessation of the firing. 
As the shadows of night deepened the troops summoned by the 
prince arrived in successive detachments. Orders were given 
that no drum should be beatenno trumpet sounded. 
At nine o'clock the night had fully come. Still a last ray 
of twilight lighted the plain. The army marched silently
the prince at the head of the column. Presently the army 
came in sight of Lens; two or three houses were in flames 
and a dull noise was heard which indicated what suffering 
was endured by a town taken by assault. 
The prince assigned to every one his post. Marshal de 
Grammont was to hold the extreme leftresting on Mericourt. 
The Duc de Chatillon commanded the centre. Finallythe 
prince led the right wingresting on Aunay. The order of 
battle on the morrow was to be that of the positions taken 
in the evening. Each oneon awakingwould find himself on 
the field of battle. 
The movement was executed in silence and with precision. At 
ten o'clock every one was in his appointed position; at 
half-past ten the prince visited the posts and gave his 
final orders for the following day. 
Three things were especially urged upon the officerswho 
were to see that the soldiers observed them scrupulously: 
the firstthat the different corps should so march that 
cavalry and infantry should be on the same line and that 
each body should protect its gaps; the secondto go to the 
charge no faster than a walk; the thirdto let the enemy 
fire first. 
The prince assigned the Count de Guiche to his father and 
kept Bragelonne near his own person; but the two young men 
sought the privilege of passing the night together and it 
was accorded them. A tent was erected for them near that of 
the marshal. 
Although the day had been fatiguingneither of them was 
inclined to sleep. And besideseven for old soldiers the 
evening before a battle is a serious time; it was so with 
greater reason to two young men who were about to witness 
for the first time that terrible spectacle. On the evening 
before a battle one thinks of a thousand things forgotten 
till then; those who are indifferent to one another become 
friends and those who are friends become brothers. It need 
not be said that if in the depths of the heart there is a 
sentiment more tenderit reaches thenquite naturallythe 
highest exaltation of which it is capable. Some sentiment of 
this kind must have been cherished by each one of these two 
friendsfor each of them almost immediately sat down by 
himself at an end of the tent and began to write. 
The letters were long -- the four pages were covered with 
closely written words. The writers sometimes looked up at 
each other and smiled; they understood without speaking
their organizations were so delicate and sympathetic. The 
letters being finishedeach put his own into two envelopes
so that no onewithout tearing the first envelopecould 
discover to whom the second was addressed; then they drew 
near to each other and smilingly exchanged their letters. 
In case any evil should happen to me,said Bragelonne. 
In case I should be killed,said De Guiche. 
They then embraced each other like two brothersand each 
wrapping himself in his cloak they soon passed into that 
kindly sleep of youth which is the prerogative of birds
flowers and infants. 
A Dinner in the Old Style. 
The second interview between the former musketeers was not 
so formal and threatening as the first. Athoswith his 
superior understandingwisely deemed that the supper table 
would be the most complete and satisfactory point of 
reunionand at the moment when his friendsin deference to 
his deportment and sobrietydared scarcely speak of some of 
their former good dinnershe was the first to propose that 
they should all assemble around some well spread table and 
abandon themselves unreservedly to their own natural 
character and manners -- a freedom which had formerly 
contributed so much to that good understanding between them 
which gave them the name of the inseparables. For different 
reasons this was an agreeable proposition to them alland 
it was therefore agreed that each should leave a very exact 
address and that upon the request of any of the associates a 
meeting should be convoked at a famous eating house in the 
Rue de la Monnaieof the sign of the Hermitage. The first 
rendezvous was fixed for the following Wednesdayat eight 
o'clock in the evening precisely. 
On that dayin factthe four friends arrived punctually at 
the houreach from his own abode or occupation. Porthos had 
been trying a new horse; D'Artagnan was on guard at the 
Louvre; Aramis had been to visit one of his penitents in the 
neighborhood; and Athoswhose domicile was established in 
the Rue Guenegaudfound himself close at hand. They were
thereforesomewhat surprised to meet altogether at the door 
of the HermitageAthos starting out from the Pont Neuf
Porthos by the Rue de la RouleD'Artagnan by the Rue des 
Fosse Saint Germain l'Auxerroisand Aramis by the Rue de 
Bethisy. 
The first words exchanged between the four friendson 
account of the ceremony which each of them mingled with 
their demonstrationwere somewhat forced and even the 
repast began with a kind of stiffness. Athos perceived this 
embarrassmentand by way of supplying an effectual remedy
called for four bottles of champagne. 
At this ordergiven in Athos's habitually calm mannerthe 
face of the Gascon relaxed and Porthos's brow grew smooth. 
Aramis was astonished. He knew that Athos not only never 
drankbut morethat he had a kind of repugnance to wine. 
This astonishment was doubled when Aramis saw Athos fill a 
bumper and toss it off with all his former enthusiasm. His 
companions followed his example. In a very few minutes the 
four bottles were empty and this excellent specific 
succeeded in dissipating even the slightest cloud that might 
have rested on their spirits. Now the four friends began to 
speak loudscarcely waiting till one had finished before 
another beganand each assumed his favorite attitude on or 
at the table. Soon -- strange fact -- Aramis undid two 
buttons of his doubletseeing whichPorthos unfastened his 
entirely. 
Battleslong journeysblows given and receivedsufficed 
for the first themes of conversationwhich turned upon the 
silent struggles sustained against him who was now called 
the great cardinal. 
Faith,said Aramislaughingwe have praised the dead 
enough, let us revile the living a little; I should like to 
say something evil of Mazarin; is it permissible?
Go on, go on,replied D'Artagnanlaughing heartily; 
relate your story and I will applaud it if it is a good 
one.
A great prince,said Aramiswith whom Mazarin sought an 
alliance, was invited by him to send him a list of the 
conditions on which he would do him the honor to negotiate 
with him. The prince, who had a great repugnance to treat 
with such an ill-bred fellow, made out a list, against the 
grain, and sent it. In this list there were three conditions 
which displeased Mazarin and he offered the prince ten 
thousand crowns to renounce them.
Ah, ha, ha!laughed the three friendsnot a bad bargain; 
and there was no fear of being taken at his word; what did 
the prince do then?
The prince immediately sent fifty thousand francs to 
Mazarin, begging him never to write to him again, and 
offered twenty thousand francs more, on condition that he 
would never speak to him. What did Mazarin do?
Stormed!suggested Athos. 
Beat the messenger!cried Porthos. 
Accepted the money!said D'Artagnan. 
You have guessed it,answered Aramis; and they all laughed 
so heartily that the host appeared in order to inquire 
whether the gentlemen wanted anything; he thought they were 
fighting. 
At last their hilarity calmed down and: 
Faith!exclaimed D'Artagnan to the two friendsyou may 
well wish ill to Mazarin; for I assure you, on his side he 
wishes you no good.
Pooh! really?asked Athos. "If I thought the fellow knew 
me by my name I would be rebaptizedfor fear it might be 
thought I knew him." 
He knows you better by your actions than your name; he is 
quite aware that there are two gentlemen who greatly aided 
the escape of Monsieur de Beaufort, and he has instigated an 
active search for them, I can answer for it.
By whom?
By me; and this morning he sent for me to ask me if I had 
obtained any information.
And what did you reply?
That I had none as yet; but that I was to dine to-day with 
two gentlemen, who would be able to give me some.
You told him that?said Porthosa broad smile spreading 
over his honest face. "Bravo! and you are not afraid of 
thatAthos?" 
No,replied Athosit is not the search of Mazarin that I 
fear.
Now,said Aramistell me a little what you do fear.
Nothing for the present; at least, nothing in good 
earnest.
And with regard to the past?asked Porthos. 
Oh! the past is another thing,said Athossighing; "the 
past and the future." 
Are you afraid for your young Raoul?asked Aramis. 
Well,said D'Artagnanone is never killed in a first 
engagement.
Nor in the second,said Aramis 
Nor in the third,returned Porthos; "and even when one is 
killedone rises againthe proof of which isthat here we 
are!" 
No,said Athosit is not Raoul about whom I am anxious, 
for I trust he will conduct himself like a gentleman; and if 
he is killed -- well, he will die bravely; but hold -should 
such a misfortune happen -- well -- Athos passed 
his hand across his pale brow. 
Well?asked Aramis. 
Well, I shall look upon it as an expiation.
Ah!said D'Artagnan; "I know what you mean." 
And I, too,added Aramis; "but you must not think of that
Athos; what is pastis past." 
I don't understand,said Porthos. 
The affair at Armentieres,whispered D'Artagnan. 
The affair at Armentieres?asked he again. 
Milady.
Oh, yes!said Porthos; "trueI had forgotten it!" 
Athos looked at him intently. 
You have forgotten it, Porthos?said he. 
Faith! yes, it is so long ago,answered Porthos. 
This affair does not, then, weigh upon your conscience?
Faith, no.
And you, D'Artagnan?
I -- I own that when my mind returns to that terrible 
period I have no recollection of anything but the rigid 
corpse of poor Madame Bonancieux. Yes, yes,murmured heI 
have often felt regret for the victim, but never the very 
slightest remorse for the assassin.
Athos shook his dead doubtfully. 
Consider,said Aramisif you admit divine justice and 
its participation in the things of this world, that woman 
was punished by the will of heaven. We were but the 
instruments, that is all.
But as to free will, Aramis?
How acts the judge? He has a free will, yet he fearlessly 
condemns. What does the executioner? He is master of his 
arm, yet he strikes without remorse.
The executioner!muttered Athosas if arrested by some 
recollection. 
I know that it is terrible,said D'Artagnan; "but when I 
reflect that we have killed EnglishRochellaisSpaniards
nayeven Frenchwho never did us any other harm but to aim 
at and to miss uswhose only fault was to cross swords with 
us and to be unable to ward off our blows -- I canon my 
honorfind an excuse for my share in the murder of that 
woman." 
As for me,said Porthosnow that you have reminded me of 
it, Athos, I have the scene again before me, as if I now 
were there. Milady was there, as it were, where you sit.
(Athos changed color.) "I -- I was where D'Artagnan stands. 
I wore a long sword which cut like a Damascus -- you 
remember itAramis for you always called it Balizarde. 
WellI swear to youall threethat had the executioner of 
Bethune -- was he not of Bethune? -- yesegad! of Bethune! 
-- not been thereI would have cut off the head of that 
infamous being without thinking of itor even after 
thinking of it. She was a most atrocious woman." 
And then,said Aramiswith the tone of philosophical 
indifference which he had assumed since he had belonged to 
the church and in which there was more atheism than 
confidence in Godwhat is the use of thinking of it all? 
At the last hour we must confess this action and God knows 
better than we can whether it is a crime, a fault, or a 
meritorious deed. I repent of it? Egad! no. Upon my honor 
and by the holy cross; I only regret it because she was a 
woman.
The most satisfactory part of the matter,said D'Artagnan
is that there remains no trace of it.
She had a son,observed Athos. 
Oh! yes, I know that,said D'Artagnanand you mentioned 
it to me; but who knows what has become of him? If the 
serpent be dead, why not its brood? Do you think his uncle 
De Winter would have brought up that young viper? De Winter 
probably condemned the son as he had done the mother.
Then,said Athoswoe to De Winter, for the child had 
done no harm.
May the devil take me, if the child be not dead,said 
Porthos. "There is so much fog in that detestable country
at least so D'Artagnan declares." 
Just as the quaint conclusion reached by Porthos was about 
to bring back hilarity to faces now more or less clouded
hasty footsteps were heard upon the stair and some one 
knocked at the door. 
Come in,cried Athos. 
Please your honors,said the hosta person in a great 
hurry wishes to speak to one of you.
To which of us?asked all the four friends. 
To him who is called the Comte de la Fere.
It is I,said Athosand what is the name of the person?
Grimaud.
Ah!exclaimed Athosturning pale. "Back already! What can 
have happenedthento Bragelonne?" 
Let him enter,cried D'Artagnan; "let him come up." 
But Grimaud had already mounted the staircase and was 
waiting on the last step; so springing into the room he 
motioned the host to leave it. The door being closedthe 
four friends waited in expectation. Grimaud's agitationhis 
pallorthe sweat which covered his facethe dust which 
soiled his clothesall indicated that he was the messenger 
of some important and terrible news. 
Your honors,said hethat woman had a child; that child 
has become a man; the tigress had a little one, the tiger 
has roused himself; he is ready to spring upon you -beware!
Athos glanced around at his friends with a melancholy smile. 
Porthos turned to look at his swordwhich was hanging on 
the wall; Aramis seized his knife; D'Artagnan arose. 
What do you mean, Grimaud?he exclaimed. 
That Milady's son has left England, that he is in France, 
on his road to Paris, if he be not here already.
The devil he is!said Porthos. "Are you sure of it?" 
Certain,replied Grimaud. 
This announcement was received in silence. Grimaud was so 
breathlessso exhaustedthat he had fallen back upon a 
chair. Athos filled a beaker with champagne and gave it to 
him. 
Well, after all,said D'Artagnansupposing that he 
lives, that he comes to Paris; we have seen many other such. 
Let him come.
Yes,echoed Porthosglancing affectionately at his sword
still hanging on the wall; "we can wait for him; let him 
come." 
Moreover, he is but a child,said Aramis. 
Grimaud rose. 
A child!he exclaimed. "Do you know what he has donethis 
child? Disguised as a monk he discovered the whole history 
in confession from the executioner of Bethuneand having 
confessed himafter having learned everything from himhe 
gave him absolution by planting this dagger into his heart. 
Seeit is on fire yet with his hot bloodfor it is not 
thirty hours since it was drawn from the wound." 
And Grimaud threw the dagger on the table. 
D'ArtagnanPorthos and Aramis rose and in one spontaneous 
motion rushed to their swords. Athos alone remained seated
calm and thoughtful. 
And you say he is dressed as a monk, Grimaud?
Yes, as an Augustine monk.
What sized man is he?
About my height; thin, pale, with light blue eyes and tawny 
flaxen hair.
And he did not see Raoul?asked Athos. 
Yes, on the contrary, they met, and it was the viscount 
himself who conducted him to the bed of the dying man.
Athosin his turnrising without speakingwent and 
unhooked his sword. 
Heigh, sir,said D'Artagnantrying to laughdo you know 
we look very much like a flock of silly, mouse-evading 
women! How is it that we, four men who have faced armies 
without blinking, begin to tremble at the mention of a 
child?
It is true,said Athosbut this child comes in the name 
of Heaven.
And very soon they left the inn. 
A Letter from Charles the First. 
The reader must now cross the Seine with us and follow us to 
the door of the Carmelite Convent in the Rue Saint Jacques. 
It is eleven o'clock in the morning and the pious sisters 
have just finished saying mass for the success of the armies 
of King Charles I. Leaving the churcha woman and a young 
girl dressed in blackthe one as a widow and the other as 
an orphanhave re-entered their cell. 
The woman kneels on a prie-dieu of painted wood and at a 
short distance from her stands the young girlleaning 
against a chairweeping. 
The woman must have once been handsomebut traces of sorrow 
have aged her. The young girl is lovely and her tears only 
embellish her; the lady appears to be about forty years of 
agethe girl about fourteen. 
Oh, God!prayed the kneeling suppliantprotect my 
husband, guard my son, and take my wretched life instead!
Oh, God!murmured the girlleave me my mother!
Your mother can be of no use to you in this world, 
Henrietta,said the ladyturning around. "Your mother has 
no longer either throne or husband; she has neither son
money nor friends; the whole worldmy poor childhas 
abandoned your mother!" And she fell backweepinginto her 
daughter's arms. 
Courage, take courage, my dear mother!said the girl. 
Ah! 'tis an unfortunate year for kings,said the mother. 
And no one thinks of us in this country, for each must 
think about his own affairs. As long as your brother was 
with me he kept me up; but he is gone and can no longer send 
us news of himself, either to me or to your father. I have 
pledged my last jewels, sold your clothes and my own to pay 
his servants, who refused to accompany him unless I made 
this sacrifice. We are now reduced to live at the expense of 
these daughters of Heaven; we are the poor, succored by 
God.
But why not address yourself to your sister, the queen?
asked the girl. 
Alas! the queen, my sister, is no longer queen, my child. 
Another reigns in her name. One day you will be able to 
understand how all this is.
Well, then, to the king, your nephew. Shall I speak to him? 
You know how much he loves me, my mother. 
Alas! my nephew is not yet kingand you know Laporte has 
told us twenty times that he himself is in need of almost 
everything." 
Then let us pray to Heaven,said the girl. 
The two women who thus knelt in united prayer were the 
daughter and grand-daughter of Henry IV.the wife and 
daughter of Charles I. 
They had just finished their double prayerwhen a nun 
softly tapped at the door of the cell. 
Enter, my sister,said the queen. 
I trust your majesty will pardon this intrusion on her 
meditations, but a foreign lord has arrived from England and 
waits in the parlor, demanding the honor of presenting a 
letter to your majesty.
Oh, a letter! a letter from the king, perhaps. News from 
your father, do you hear, Henrietta? And the name of this 
lord?
Lord de Winter.
Lord de Winter!exclaimed the queenthe friend of my 
husband. Oh, bid him enter!
And the queen advanced to meet the messengerwhose hand she 
seized affectionatelywhilst he knelt down and presented a 
letter to hercontained in a case of gold. 
Ah! my lord!said the queenyou bring us three things 
which we have not seen for a long time. Gold, a devoted 
friend, and a letter from the king, our husband and master.
De Winter bowed againunable to reply from excess of 
emotion. 
On their side the mother and daughter retired into the 
embrasure of a window to read eagerly the following letter: 
Dear Wife-- We have now reached the moment of decision. I 
have concentrated here at Naseby camp all the resources 
Heaven has left meand I write to you in haste from thence. 
Here I await the army of my rebellious subjects. I am about 
to struggle for the last time with them. If victoriousI 
shall continue the struggle; if beatenI am lost. I shall 
tryin the latter case (alas! in our positionone must 
provide for everything)I shall try to gain the coast of 
France. But can theywill they receive an unhappy kingwho 
will bring such a sad story into a country already agitated 
by civil discord? Your wisdom and your affection must serve 
me as guides. The bearer of this letter will tell you
madamewhat I dare not trust to pen and paper and the risks 
of transit. He will explain to you the steps that I expect 
you to pursue. I charge him also with my blessing for my 
children and with the sentiments of my soul for yourselfmy 
dearest sweetheart." 
The letter bore the signaturenot of "CharlesKing but 
of Charles -- still king." 
And let him be no longer king,cried the queen. "Let him 
be conqueredexiledproscribedprovided he still lives. 
Alas! in these days the throne is too dangerous a place for 
me to wish him to retain it. But my lordtell me she 
continued, hide nothing from me -- what isin truththe 
king's position? Is it as hopeless as he thinks?" 
Alas! madame, more hopeless than he thinks. His majesty has 
so good a heart that he cannot understand hatred; is so 
loyal that he does not suspect treason! England is torn in 
twain by a spirit of disturbance which, I greatly fear, 
blood alone can exorcise.
But Lord Montrose,replied the queenI have heard of his 
great and rapid successes of battles gained. I heard it said 
that he was marching to the frontier to join the king.
Yes, madame; but on the frontier he was met by Lesly; he 
had tried victory by means of superhuman undertakings. Now 
victory has abandoned him. Montrose, beaten at Philiphaugh, 
was obliged to disperse the remains of his army and to fly, 
disguised as a servant. He is at Bergen, in Norway.
Heaven preserve him!said the queen. "It is at least a 
consolation to know that some who have so often risked their 
lives for us are safe. And nowmy lordthat I see how 
hopeless the position of the king istell me with what you 
are charged on the part of my royal husband." 
Well, then, madame,said De Winterthe king wishes you 
to try and discover the dispositions of the king and queen 
toward him.
Alas! you know that even now the king is but a child and 
the queen a woman weak enough. Here, Monsieur Mazarin is 
everything.
Does he desire to play the part in France that Cromwell 
plays in England?
Oh, no! He is a subtle, conscienceless Italian, who though 
he very likely dreams of crime, dares not commit it; and 
unlike Cromwell, who disposes of both Houses, Mazarin has 
had the queen to support him in his struggle with the 
parliament.
More reason, then, he should protect a king pursued by 
parliament.
The queen shook her head despairingly. 
If I judge for myself, my lord,she saidthe cardinal 
will do nothing, and will even, perhaps, act against us. The 
presence of my daughter and myself in France is already 
irksome to him; much more so would be that of the king. My 
lord,added Henriettawith a melancholy smileit is sad 
and almost shameful to be obliged to say that we have passed 
the winter in the Louvre without money, without linen, 
almost without bread, and often not rising from bed because 
we wanted fire.
Horrible!cried De Winter; "the daughter of Henry IV.and 
the wife of King Charles! Wherefore did you not applythen
madameto the first person you saw from us?" 
Such is the hospitality shown to a queen by the minister 
from whom a king demands it.
But I heard that a marriage between the Prince of Wales and 
Mademoiselle d'Orleans was spoken of,said De Winter. 
Yes, for an instant I hoped it was so. The young people 
felt a mutual esteem; but the queen, who at first sanctioned 
their affection, changed her mind, and Monsieur, the Duc 
d'Orleans, who had encouraged the familiarity between them, 
has forbidden his daughter to think any more about the 
union. Oh, my lord!continued the queenwithout 
restraining her tearsit is better to fight as the king 
has done, and to die, as perhaps he will, than live in 
beggary like me.
Courage, madame! courage! Do not despair! The interests of 
the French crown, endangered at this moment, are to 
discountenance rebellion in a neighboring nation. Mazarin, 
as a statesman, will understand the politic necessity.
Are you sure,said the queen doubtfullythat you have 
not been forestalled?
By whom?
By the Joices, the Prinns, the Cromwells?
By a tailor, a coachmaker, a brewer! Ah! I hope, madame, 
that the cardinal will not enter into negotiations with such 
men!
Ah! what is he himself?asked Madame Henrietta. 
But for the honor of the king -- of the queen.
Well, let us hope he will do something for the sake of 
their honor,said the queen. "A true friend's eloquence is 
so powerfulmy lordthat you have reassured me. Give me 
your hand and let us go to the minister; and yet she 
added, suppose he should refuse and that the king loses the 
battle?" 
His majesty will then take refuge in Holland, where I hear 
his highness the Prince of Wales now is.
And can his majesty count upon many such subjects as 
yourself for his flight?
Alas! no, madame,answered De Winter; "but the case is 
provided for and I am come to France to seek allies." 
Allies!said the queenshaking her head. 
Madame,replied De Winterprovided I can find some of my 
good old friends of former times I will answer for 
anything.
Come then, my lord,said the queenwith the painful doubt 
that is felt by those who have suffered much; "comeand may 
Heaven hear you." 
Cromwell's Letter. 
At the very moment when the queen quitted the convent to go 
to the Palais Royala young man dismounted at the gate of 
this royal abode and announced to the guards that he had 
something of importance to communicate to Cardinal Mazarin. 
Although the cardinal was often tormented by fearhe was 
more often in need of counsel and informationand he was 
therefore sufficiently accessible. The true difficulty of 
being admitted was not to be found at the first doorand 
even the second was passed easily enough; but at the third 
watchedbesides the guard and the doorkeepersthe faithful 
Bernouina Cerberus whom no speech could softenno wand
even of goldcould charm. 
It was therefore at the third door that those who solicited 
or were bidden to an audience underwent their formal 
interrogatory. 
The young man having left his horse tied to the gate in the 
courtmounted the great staircase and addressed the guard 
in the first chamber. 
Cardinal Mazarin?said he. 
Pass on,replied the guard. 
The cavalier entered the second hallwhich was guarded by 
the musketeers and doorkeepers. 
Have you a letter of audience?asked a porteradvancing 
to the new arrival. 
I have one, but not one from Cardinal Mazarin.
Enter, and ask for Monsieur Bernouin,said the porter
opening the door of the third room. Whether he only held his 
usual post or whether it was by accidentMonsieur Bernouin 
was found standing behind the door and must have heard all 
that had passed. 
You seek me, sir,said he. "From whom may the letter be 
you bear to his eminence?" 
From General Oliver Cromwell,said the new comer. "Be so 
good as to mention this name to his eminence and to bring me 
word whether he will receive me -- yes or no." 
Saying whichhe resumed the proud and sombre bearing 
peculiar at that time to Puritans. Bernouin cast an 
inquisitorial glance at the person of the young man and 
entered the cabinet of the cardinalto whom he transmitted 
the messenger's words. 
A man bringing a letter from Oliver Cromwell?said 
Mazarin. "And what kind of a man?" 
A genuine Englishman, your eminence. Hair sandy-red -- more 
red than sandy; gray-blue eyes -- more gray than blue; and 
for the rest, stiff and proud.
Let him give in his letter.
His eminence asks for the letter,said Bernouinpassing 
back into the ante-chamber. 
His eminence cannot see the letter without the bearer of 
it,replied the young man; "but to convince you that I am 
really the bearer of a letterseehere it is; and kindly 
add continued he, that I am not a simple messengerbut 
an envoy extraordinary." 
Bernouin re-entered the cabinetreturning in a few seconds. 
Enter, sir,said he. 
The young man appeared on the threshold of the minister's 
closetin one hand holding his hatin the other the 
letter. Mazarin rose. "Have yousir asked he, a letter 
accrediting you to me?" 
There it is, my lord,said the young man. 
Mazarin took the letter and read it thus: 
Mr. Mordaunt, one of my secretaries, will remit this letter 
of introduction to His Eminence, the Cardinal Mazarin, in 
Paris. He is also the bearer of a second confidential 
epistle for his eminence. 
Oliver Cromwell. 
Very well, Monsieur Mordaunt,said Mazaringive me this 
second letter and sit down.
The young man drew from his pocket a second letter
presented it to the cardinaland took his seat. The 
cardinalhoweverdid not unseal the letter at oncebut 
continued to turn it again and again in his hand; thenin 
accordance with his usual custom and judging from experience 
that few people could hide anything from him when he began 
to question themfixing his eyes upon them at the same 
timehe thus addressed the messenger: 
You are very young, Monsieur Mordaunt, for this difficult 
task of ambassador, in which the oldest diplomatists often 
fail.
My lord, I am twenty-three years of age; but your eminence 
is mistaken in saying that I am young. I am older than your 
eminence, although I possess not your wisdom. Years of 
suffering, in my opinion, count double, and I have suffered 
for twenty years.
Ah, yes, I understand,said Mazarin; "want of fortune
perhaps. You are poorare you not?" Then he added to 
himself: "These English Revolutionists are all beggars and 
ill-bred." 
My lord, I ought to have a fortune of six millions, but it 
has been taken from me.
You are not, then, a man of the people?said Mazarin
astonished. 
If I bore my proper title I should be a lord. If I bore my 
name you would have heard one of the most illustrious names 
of England.
What is your name, then?asked Mazarin. 
My name is Mordaunt,replied the young manbowing. 
Mazarin now understood that Cromwell's envoy desired to 
retain his incognito. He was silent for an instantand 
during that time he scanned the young man even more 
attentively than he had done at first. The messenger was 
unmoved. 
Devil take these Puritans,said Mazarin aside; "they are 
carved from granite." Then he added aloudBut you have 
relations left you?
I have one remaining. Three times I presented myself to ask 
his support and three times he ordered his servants to turn 
me away.
Oh, mon Dieu! my dear Mr. Mordaunt,said Mazarinhoping 
by a display of affected pity to catch the young man in a 
snarehow extremely your history interests me! You know 
not, then, anything of your birth -- you have never seen 
your mother?
Yes, my lord; she came three times, whilst I was a child, 
to my nurse's house; I remember the last time she came as 
well as if it were to-day.
You have a good memory,said Mazarin. 
Oh! yes, my lord,said the young manwith such peculiar 
emphasis that the cardinal felt a shudder run through every 
vein. 
And who brought you up?he asked again. 
A French nurse, who sent me away when I was five years old 
because no one paid her for me, telling me the name of a 
relation of whom she had heard my mother often speak.
What became of you?
As I was weeping and begging on the high road, a minister 
from Kingston took me in, instructed me in the Calvinistic 
faith, taught me all he knew himself and aided me in my 
researches after my family.
And these researches?
Were fruitless; chance did everything.
You discovered what had become of your mother?
I learned that she had been assassinated by my relation, 
aided by four friends, but I was already aware that I had 
been robbed of my wealth and degraded from my nobility by 
King Charles I.
Oh! I now understand why you are in the service of 
Cromwell; you hate the king.
Yes, my lord, I hate him!said the young man. 
Mazarin marked with surprise the diabolical expression with 
which the young man uttered these words. Just as
ordinarilyfaces are colored by bloodhis face seemed dyed 
by hatred and became livid. 
Your history is a terrible one, Mr. Mordaunt, and touches 
me keenly; but happily for you, you serve an all-powerful 
master; he ought to aid you in your search; we have so many 
means of gaining information.
My lord, to a well-bred dog it is only necessary to show 
one end of a track; he is certain to reach the other.
But this relation you mentioned -- do you wish me to speak 
to him?said Mazarinwho was anxious to make a friend 
about Cromwell's person. 
Thanks, my lord, I will speak to him myself. He will treat 
me better the next time I see him.
You have the means, then, of touching him?
I have the means of making myself feared.
Mazarin looked at the young manbut at the fire which shot 
from his glance he bent his head; thenembarrassed how to 
continue such a conversationhe opened Cromwell's letter. 
The young man's eyes gradually resumed their dull and glassy 
appearance and he fell into a profound reverie. After 
reading the first lines of the letter Mazarin gave a side 
glance at him to see if he was watching the expression of 
his face as he read. Observing his indifferencehe shrugged 
his shoulderssaying: 
Send on your business those who do theirs at the same time! 
Let us see what this letter contains.
We here present the letter verbatim: 
To his Eminence, Monseigneur le Cardinal Mazarini: 
I have wishedmonseigneurto learn your intentions 
relating to the existing state of affairs in England. The 
two kingdoms are so near that France must be interested in 
our situationas we are interested in that of France. The 
English are almost of one mind in contending against the 
tyranny of Charles and his adherents. Placed by popular 
confidence at the head of that movementI can appreciate 
better than any other its significance and its probable 
results. I am at present in the midst of warand am about 
to deliver a decisive battle against King Charles. I shall 
gain itfor the hope of the nation and the Spirit of the 
Lord are with me. This battle won by methe king will have 
no further resources in England or in Scotland; and if he is 
not captured or killedhe will endeavor to pass over into 
France to recruit soldiers and to refurnish himself with 
arms and money. France has already received Queen Henrietta
andunintentionallydoubtlesshas maintained a centre of 
inextinguishable civil war in my country. But Madame 
Henrietta is a daughter of France and was entitled to the 
hospitality of France. As to King Charlesthe question must 
be viewed differently; in receiving and aiding himFrance 
will censure the acts of the English nationand thus so 
essentially harm Englandand especially the well-being of 
the governmentthat such a proceeding will be equivalent to 
pronounced hostilities." 
At this moment Mazarin became very uneasy at the turn which 
the letter was taking and paused to glance under his eyes at 
the young man. The latter continued in thought. Mazarin 
resumed his reading: 
It is important, therefore, monseigneur, that I should be 
informed as to the intentions of France. The interests of 
that kingdom and those of England, though taking now diverse 
directions, are very nearly the same. England needs 
tranquillity at home, in order to consummate the expulsion 
of her king; France needs tranquillity to establish on solid 
foundations the throne of her young monarch. You need, as 
much as we do, that interior condition of repose which, 
thanks to the energy of our government, we are about to 
attain. 
Your quarrels with the parliamentyour noisy dissensions 
with the princeswho fight for you to-day and to-morrow 
will fight against youthe popular following directed by 
the coadjutorPresident Blancmesniland Councillor 
Broussel -- all that disorderin shortwhich pervades the 
several departments of the statemust lead you to view with 
uneasiness the possibility of a foreign war; for in that 
event Englandexalted by the enthusiasm of new ideaswill 
ally herself with Spainalready seeking that alliance. I 
have therefore believedmonseigneurknowing your prudence 
and your personal relation to the events of the present 
timethat you will choose to hold your forces concentrated 
in the interior of the French kingdom and leave to her own 
the new government of England. That neutrality consists 
simply in excluding King Charles from the territory of 
France and in refraining from helping him -- a stranger to 
your country -- with armswith money or with troops. 
My letter is private and confidential, and for that reason 
I send it to you by a man who shares my most intimate 
counsels. It anticipates, through a sentiment which your 
eminence will appreciate, measures to be taken after the 
events. Oliver Cromwell considered it more expedient to 
declare himself to a mind as intelligent as Mazarin's than 
to a queen admirable for firmness, without doubt, but too 
much guided by vain prejudices of birth and of divine right. 
Farewellmonseigneur; should I not receive a reply in the 
space of fifteen daysI shall presume my letter will have 
miscarried. 
Oliver Cromwell.
Mr. Mordaunt,said the cardinalraising his voiceas if 
to arouse the dreamermy reply to this letter will be more 
satisfactory to General Cromwell if I am convinced that all 
are ignorant of my having given one; go, therefore, and 
await it at Boulogne-sur-Mer, and promise me to set out 
to-morrow morning.
I promise, my lord,replied Mordaunt; "but how many days 
does your eminence expect me to await your reply?" 
If you do not receive it in ten days you can leave.
Mordaunt bowed. 
That is not all, sir,continued Mazarin; "your private 
adventures have touched me to the quick; besidesthe letter 
from Mr. Cromwell makes you an important person as 
ambassador; cometell mewhat can I do for you?" 
Mordaunt reflected a moment andafter some hesitationwas 
about to speakwhen Bernouin entered hastily and bending 
down to the ear of the cardinalwhispered: 
My lord, the Queen Henrietta Maria, accompanied by an 
English noble, is entering the Palais Royal at this moment.
Mazarin made a bound from his chairwhich did not escape 
the attention of the young man and suppressed the confidence 
he was about to make. 
Sir,said the cardinalyou have heard me? I fix on 
Boulogne because I presume that every town in France is 
indifferent to you; if you prefer another, name it; but you 
can easily conceive that, surrounded as I am by influences I 
can only muzzle by discretion, I desire your presence in 
Paris to be unknown.
I go, sir,said Mordauntadvancing a few steps to the 
door by which he had entered. 
No, not that way, I beg, sir,quickly exclaimed the 
cardinalbe so good as to pass by yonder gallery, by which 
you can regain the hall. I do not wish you to be seen 
leaving; our interview must be kept secret.
Mordaunt followed Bernouinwho led him through the adjacent 
chamber and left him with a doorkeepershowing him the way 
out. 
Henrietta Maria and Mazarin. 
The cardinal roseand advanced in haste to receive the 
queen of England. He showed the more respect to this queen
deprived of every mark of pomp and stripped of followersas 
he felt some self-reproach for his own want of heart and his 
avarice. But supplicants for favor know how to accommodate 
the expression of their featuresand the daughter of Henry 
IV. smiled as she advanced to meet a man she hated and 
despised. 
Ah!said Mazarin to himselfwhat a sweet face; does she 
come to borrow money of me?
And he threw an uneasy glance at his strong box; he even 
turned inside the bevel of the magnificent diamond ringthe 
brilliancy of which drew every eye upon his handwhich 
indeed was white and handsome. 
Your eminence,said the august visitorit was my first 
intention to speak of the matters that have brought me here 
to the queen, my sister, but I have reflected that political 
affairs are more especially the concern of men.
Madame,said Mazarinyour majesty overwhelms me with 
flattering distinction.
He is very gracious,thought the queen; "can he have 
guessed my errand?" 
Give,continued the cardinalyour commands to the most 
respectful of your servants.
Alas, sir,replied the queenI have lost the habit of 
commanding and have adopted instead that of making 
petitions. I am here to petition you, too happy should my 
prayer be favorably heard.
I am listening, madame, with the greatest interest,said 
Mazarin. 
Your eminence, it concerns the war which the king, my 
husband, is now sustaining against his rebellious subjects. 
You are perhaps ignorant that they are fighting in England,
added shewith a melancholy smileand that in a short 
time they will fight in a much more decided fashion than 
they have done hitherto.
I am completely ignorant of it, madame,said the cardinal
accompanying his words with a slight shrug of the shoulders; 
alas, our own wars quite absorb the time and the mind of a 
poor, incapable, infirm old minister like me.
Well, then, your eminence,said the queenI must inform 
you that Charles I., my husband, is on the eve of a decisive 
engagement. In case of a check(Mazarin made a slight 
movement)one must foresee everything; in the case of a 
check, he desires to retire into France and to live here as 
a private individual. What do you say to this project?
The cardinal had listened without permitting a single fibre 
of his face to betray what he feltand his smile remained 
as it ever was -- false and flattering; and when the queen 
finished speakinghe said: 
Do you think, madame, that France, agitated and disturbed 
as it is, would be a safe retreat for a dethroned king? How 
will the crown, which is scarce firmly set on the head of 
Louis XIV., support a double weight?
The weight was not so heavy when I was in peril,
interrupted the queenwith a sad smileand I ask no more 
for my husband than has been done for me; you see that we 
are very humble monarchs, sir.
Oh, you, madame,the cardinal hastened to sayin order to 
cut short the explanation he foresaw was comingwith 
regard to you, that is another thing. A daughter of Henry 
IV., of that great, that sublime sovereign ---- 
All which does not prevent you refusing hospitality to his 
son-in-law, sir! Nevertheless, you ought to remember that 
that great, that sublime monarch, when proscribed at one 
time, as my husband may be, demanded aid from England and 
England accorded it to him; and it is but just to say that 
Queen Elizabeth was not his niece.
Peccato!said Mazarinwrithing beneath this simple 
eloquenceyour majesty does not understand me; you judge 
my intentions wrongly, and that is partly because, 
doubtless, I explain myself in French.
Speak Italian, sir. Ere the cardinal, your predecessor, 
sent our mother, Marie de Medicis, to die in exile, she 
taught us that language. If anything yet remains of that 
great, that sublime king, Henry, of whom you have just 
spoken, he would be much surprised at so little pity for his 
family being united to such a profound admiration of 
himself.
The perspiration stood in large drops on Mazarin's brow. 
That admiration is, on the contrary, so great, so real, 
madame,returned Mazarinwithout noticing the change of 
language offered to him by the queenthat if the king, 
Charles I. -- whom Heaven protect from evil! -- came into 
France, I would offer him my house -- my own house; but, 
alas! it would be but an unsafe retreat. Some day the people 
will burn that house, as they burned that of the Marechal 
d'Ancre. Poor Concino Concini! And yet he but desired the 
good of the people.
Yes, my lord, like yourself!said the queenironically. 
Mazarin pretended not to understand the double meaning of 
his own sentencebut continued to compassionate the fate of 
Concino Concini. 
Well then, your eminence,said the queenbecoming 
impatientwhat is your answer?
Madame,cried Mazarinmore and more movedwill your 
majesty permit me to give you counsel?
Speak, sir,replied the queen; "the counsels of so prudent 
a man as yourself ought certainly to be available." 
Madame, believe me, the king ought to defend himself to the 
last.
He has done so, sir, and this last battle, which he 
encounters with resources much inferior to those of the 
enemy, proves that he will not yield without a struggle; but 
in case he is beaten?
Well, madame, in that case, my advice -- I know that I am 
very bold to offer advice to your majesty -- my advice is 
that the king should not leave his kingdom. Absent kings are 
very soon forgotten; if he passes over into France his cause 
is lost.
But,persisted the queenif such be your advice and you 
have his interest at heart, send him help of men and money, 
for I can do nothing for him; I have sold even to my last 
diamond to aid him. If I had had a single ornament left, I 
should have bought wood this winter to make a fire for my 
daughter and myself.
Oh, madame,said Mazarinyour majesty knows not what you 
ask. On the day when foreign succor follows in the train of 
a king to replace him on his throne, it is an avowal that he 
no longer possesses the help and love of his own subjects.
To the point, sir,said the queento the point, and 
answer me, yes or no; if the king persists in remaining in 
England will you send him succor? If he comes to France will 
you accord him hospitality? What do you intend to do? 
Speak.
Madame,said the cardinalaffecting an effusive frankness 
of speechI shall convince your majesty, I trust, of my 
devotion to you and my desire to terminate an affair which 
you have so much at heart. After which your majesty will, I 
think, no longer doubt my zeal in your behalf.
The queen bit her lips and moved impatiently on her chair. 
Well, what do you propose to do?shesaid at length; 
come, speak.
I will go this instant and consult the queen, and we will 
refer the affair at once to parliament.
With which you are at war -- is it not so? You will charge 
Broussel to report it. Enough, sir, enough. I understand you 
or rather, I am wrong. Go to the parliament, for it was from 
this parliament, the enemy of monarchs, that the daughter of 
the great, the sublime Henry IV., whom you so much admire, 
received the only relief this winter which prevented her 
from dying of hunger and cold!
And with these words Henrietta rose in majestic indignation
whilst the cardinalraising his hands clasped toward her
exclaimedAh, madame, madame, how little you know me, mon 
Dieu!
But Queen Henriettawithout even turning toward him who 
made these hypocritical pretensionscrossed the cabinet
opened the door for herself and passing through the midst of 
the cardinal's numerous guardscourtiers eager to pay 
homagethe luxurious show of a competing royaltyshe went 
and took the hand of De Winterwho stood apart in 
isolation. Poor queenalready fallen! Though all bowed 
before heras etiquette requiredshe had now but a single 
arm on which she could lean. 
It signifies little,said Mazarinwhen he was alone. "It 
gave me pain and it was an ungracious part to playbut I 
have said nothing either to the one or to the other. 
Bernouin!" 
Bernouin entered. 
See if the young man with the black doublet and the short 
hair, who was with me just now, is still in the palace.
Bernouin went out and soon returned with Commingeswho was 
on guard. 
Your eminence,said Commingesas I was re-conducting the 
young man for whom you have asked, he approached the glass 
door of the gallery, and gazed intently upon some object, 
doubtless the picture by Raphael, which is opposite the 
door. He reflected for a second and then descended the 
stairs. I believe I saw him mount a gray horse and leave the 
palace court. But is not your eminence going to the queen?
For what purpose?
Monsieur de Guitant, my uncle, has just told me that her 
majesty had received news of the army.
It is well; I will go.
Comminges had seen rightlyand Mordaunt had really acted as 
he had related. In crossing the gallery parallel to the 
large glass galleryhe perceived De Winterwho was waiting 
until the queen had finished her negotiation. 
At this sight the young man stopped shortnot in admiration 
of Raphael's picturebut as if fascinated at the sight of 
some terrible object. His eyes dilated and a shudder ran 
through his body. One would have said that he longed to 
break through the wall of glass which separated him from his 
enemy; for if Comminges had seen with what an expression of 
hatred the eyes of this young man were fixed upon De Winter
he would not have doubted for an instant that the Englishman 
was his eternal foe. 
But he stoppeddoubtless to reflect; for instead of 
allowing his first impulsewhich had been to go straight to 
Lord de Winterto carry him awayhe leisurely descended 
the staircaseleft the palace with his head downmounted 
his horsewhich he reined in at the corner of the Rue 
Richelieuand with his eyes fixed on the gatewaited until 
the queen's carriage had left the court. 
He had not long to waitfor the queen scarcely remained a 
quarter of an hour with Mazarinbut this quarter of an hour 
of expectation appeared a century to him. At last the heavy 
machinewhich was called a chariot in those dayscame out
rumbling against the gatesand De Winterstill on 
horsebackbent again to the door to converse with her 
majesty. 
The horses started on a trot and took the road to the 
Louvrewhich they entered. Before leaving the convent of 
the CarmelitesHenrietta had desired her daughter to attend 
her at the palacewhich she had inhabited for a long time 
and which she had only left because their poverty seemed to 
them more difficult to bear in gilded chambers. 
Mordaunt followed the carriageand when he had watched it 
drive beneath the sombre arches he went and stationed 
himself under a wall over which the shadow was extendedand 
remained motionlessamidst the moldings of Jean Goujon
like a bas-relievorepresenting an equestrian statue. 
Howsometimesthe Unhappy mistake Chance for Providence. 
Well, madame,said De Winterwhen the queen had dismissed 
her attendants. 
Well, my lord, what I foresaw has come to pass.
What? does the cardinal refuse to receive the king? France 
refuse hospitality to an unfortunate prince? Ay, but it is 
for the first time, madame!
I did not say France, my lord; I said the cardinal, and the 
cardinal is not even a Frenchman.
But did you see the queen?
It is useless,replied Henriettathe queen will not say 
yes when the cardinal says no. Are you not aware that this 
Italian directs everything, both indoors and out? And 
moreover, I should not be surprised had we been forestalled 
by Cromwell. He was embarrassed whilst speaking to me and 
yet quite firm in his determination to refuse. Then did you 
not observe the agitation in the Palais Royal, the passing 
to and fro of busy people? Can they have received any news, 
my lord?
Not from England, madame. I made such haste that I am 
certain of not having been forestalled. I set out three days 
ago, passing miraculously through the Puritan army, and I 
took post horses with my servant Tony; the horses upon which 
we were mounted were bought in Paris. Besides, the king, I 
am certain, awaits your majesty's reply before risking 
anything.
You will tell him, my lord,resumed the queen
despairinglythat I can do nothing; that I have suffered 
as much as himself -- more than he has -- obliged as I am to 
eat the bread of exile and to ask hospitality from false 
friends who smile at my tears; and as regards his royal 
person, he must sacrifice it generously and die like a king. 
I shall go and die by his side.
Madame, madame,exclaimed De Winteryour majesty 
abandons yourself to despair; and yet, perhaps, there still 
remains some hope.
No friends left, my lord; no other friends left in the wide 
world but yourself! Oh, God!exclaimed the poor queen
raising her eyes to Heavenhave You indeed taken back all 
the generous hearts that once existed in the world?
I hope not, madame,replied De Winterthoughtfully; "I 
once spoke to you of four men." 
What can be done with four?
Four devoted, resolute men can do much? assure yourself, 
madame; and those of whom I speak performed great things at 
one time.
And where are these four men?
Ah, that is what I do not know. It is twenty years since I 
saw them, and yet whenever I have seen the king in danger I 
have thought of them.
And these men were your friends?
One of them held my life in his hands and gave it to me. I 
know not whether he is still my friend, but since that time 
I have remained his.
And these men are in France, my lord?
I believe so.
Tell me their names; perhaps I may have heard them 
mentioned and might be able to aid you in finding them.
One of them was called the Chevalier d'Artagnan.
Ah, my lord, if I mistake not, the Chevalier d'Artagnan is 
lieutenant of royal guards; but take care, for I fear that 
this man is entirely devoted to the cardinal.
That would be a misfortune,said De Winterand I shall 
begin to think that we are really doomed.
But the others,said the queenwho clung to this last 
hope as a shipwrecked man clings to the hull of his vessel. 
The others, my lord!
The second -- I heard his name by chance; for before 
fighting us, these four gentlemen told us their names; the 
second was called the Comte de la Fere. As for the two 
others, I had so much the habit of calling them by nicknames 
that I have forgotten their real ones.
Oh, mon Dieu, it is a matter of the greatest urgency to 
find them out,said the queensince you think these 
worthy gentlemen might be so useful to the king.
Oh, yes,said De Winterfor they are the same men. 
Listen, madame, and recall your remembrances. Have you never 
heard that Queen Anne of Austria was once saved from the 
greatest danger ever incurred by a queen?
Yes, at the time of her relations with Monsieur de 
Buckingham; it had to do in some way with certain studs and 
diamonds.
Well, it was that affair, madame; these men are the ones 
who saved her; and I smile with pity when I reflect that if 
the names of those gentlemen are unknown to you it is 
because the queen has forgotten them, who ought to have made 
them the first noblemen of the realm.
Well, then, my lord, they must be found; but what can four 
men, or rather three men do -- for I tell you, you must not 
count on Monsieur d'Artagnan.
It will be one valiant sword the less, but there will 
remain still three, without reckoning my own; now four 
devoted men around the king to protect him from his enemies, 
to be at his side in battle, to aid him with counsel, to 
escort him in flight, are sufficient, not to make the king a 
conqueror, but to save him if conquered; and whatever 
Mazarin may say, once on the shores of France your royal 
husband may find as many retreats and asylums as the seabird 
finds in a storm.
Seek, then, my lord, seek these gentlemen; and if they will 
consent to go with you to England, I will give to each a 
duchy the day that we reascend the throne, besides as much 
gold as would pave Whitehall. Seek them, my lord, and find 
them, I conjure you.
I will search for them, madame,said De Winter "and 
doubtless I shall find them; but time fails me. Has your 
majesty forgotten that the king expects your reply and 
awaits it in agony?" 
Then indeed we are lost!cried the queenin the fullness 
of a broken heart. 
At this moment the door opened and the young Henrietta 
appeared; then the queenwith that wonderful strength which 
is the privilege of parentsrepressed her tears and 
motioned to De Winter to change the subject. 
But that act of self-controleffective as it wasdid not 
escape the eyes of the young princess. She stopped on the 
thresholdbreathed a sighand addressing the queen: 
Why, then, do you always weep, mother, when I am away from 
you?she said. 
The queen smiledbut instead of answering: 
See, De Winter,she saidI have at least gained one 
thing in being only half a queen; and that is that my 
children call me `mother' instead of `madame.'
Then turning toward her daughter: 
What do you want, Henrietta?she demanded. 
My mother,replied the young princessa cavalier has 
just entered the Louvre and wishes to present his respects 
to your majesty; he arrives from the army and has, he says, 
a letter to remit to you, on the part of the Marechal de 
Grammont, I think.
Ah!said the queen to De Winterhe is one of my faithful 
adherents; but do you not observe, my dear lord, that we are 
so poorly served that it is left to my daughter to fill the 
office of doorkeeper?
Madame, have pity on me,exclaimed De Winter; "you wring 
my heart!" 
And who is this cavalier, Henrietta?asked the queen. 
I saw him from the window, madame; he is a young man that 
appears scarce sixteen years of age, and is called the 
Viscount de Bragelonne.
The queensmilingmade a sign with her head; the young 
princess opened the door and Raoul appeared on the 
threshold. 
Advancing a few steps toward the queenhe knelt down. 
Madame,said heI bear to your majesty a letter from my 
friend the Count de Guiche, who told me he had the honor of 
being your servant; this letter contains important news and 
the expression of his respect.
At the name of the Count de Guiche a blush spread over the 
cheeks of the young princess and the queen glanced at her 
with some degree of severity. 
You told me that the letter was from the Marechal de 
Grammont, Henrietta!said the queen. 
I thought so, madame,stammered the young girl. 
It is my fault, madame,said Raoul. "I did announce 
myselfin truthas coming on the part of the Marechal de 
Grammont; but being wounded in the right arm he was unable 
to write and therefore the Count de Guiche acted as his 
secretary." 
There has been fighting, then?asked the queenmotioning 
to Raoul to rise. 
Yes, madame,said the young man. 
At this announcement of a battle having taken placethe 
princess opened her mouth as though to ask a question of 
interest; but her lips closed again without articulating a 
wordwhile the color gradually faded from her cheeks. 
The queen saw thisand doubtless her maternal heart 
translated the emotionfor addressing Raoul again: 
And no evil has happened to the young Count de Guiche?she 
asked; "for not only is he our servantas you saysirbut 
more -- he is one of our friends." 
No, madame,replied Raoul; "on the contraryhe gained 
great glory and had the honor of being embraced by his 
highnessthe princeon the field of battle." 
The young princess clapped her hands; and thenashamed of 
having been betrayed into such a demonstration of joyshe 
half turned away and bent over a vase of rosesas if to 
inhale their odor. 
Let us see,said the queenwhat the count says.And she 
opened the letter and read: 
Madame, -- Being unable to have the honor of writing to you 
myself, by reason of a wound I have received in my right 
hand, I have commanded my son, the Count de Guiche, who, 
with his father, is equally your humble servant, to write to 
tell you that we have just gained the battle of Lens, and 
that this victory cannot fail to give great power to 
Cardinal Mazarin and to the queen over the affairs of 
Europe. If her majesty will have faith in my counsels she 
ought to profit by this event to address at this moment, in 
favor of her august husband, the court of France. The 
Vicomte de Bragelonne, who will have the honor of remitting 
this letter to your majesty, is the friend of my son, who 
owes to him his life; he is a gentleman in whom your majesty 
may confide entirely, in case your majesty may have some 
verbal or written order to remit to me. 
I have the honor to bewith respectetc.
Marechal de Grammont.
At the moment mention occurred of his having rendered a 
service to the countRaoul could not help turning his 
glance toward the young princessand then he saw in her 
eyes an expression of infinite gratitude to the young man; 
he no longer doubted that the daughter of King Charles I. 
loved his friend. 
The battle of Lens gained!said the queen; "they are lucky 
here indeed; they can gain battles! Yesthe Marechal de 
Grammont is right; this will change the aspect of French 
affairsbut I much fear it will do nothing for English
even if it does not harm them. This is recent newssir 
continued she, and I thank you for having made such haste 
to bring it to me; without this letter I should not have 
heard till to-morrowperhaps after to-morrow -- the last of 
all Paris." 
Madame,said Raoulthe Louvre is but the second palace 
this news has reached; it is as yet unknown to all, and I 
had sworn to the Count de Guiche to remit this letter to 
your majesty before even I should embrace my guardian.
Your guardian! is he, too, a Bragelonne?asked Lord de 
Winter. "I once knew a Bragelonne -- is he still alive?" 
No, sir, he is dead; and I believe it is from him my 
guardian, whose near relation he was, inherited the estate 
from which I take my name.
And your guardian, sir,asked the queenwho could not 
help feeling some interest in the handsome young man before 
herwhat is his name?
The Comte de la Fere, madame,replied the young man
bowing. 
De Winter made a gesture of surprise and the queen turned to 
him with a start of joy. 
The Comte de la Fere!she cried. "Have you not mentioned 
that name to me?" 
As for De Winter he could scarcely believe that he had heard 
aright. "The Comte de la Fere!" he cried in his turn. "Oh
sirreplyI entreat you -- is not the Comte de la Fere a 
noble whom I rememberhandsome and bravea musketeer under 
Louis XIII.who must be now about forty-seven or 
forty-eight years of age?" 
Yes, sir, you are right in every particular!
And who served under an assumed name?
Under the name of Athos. Latterly I heard his friend, 
Monsieur d'Artagnan, give him that name.
That is it, madame, that is the same. God be praised! And 
he is in Paris?continued headdressing Raoul; then 
turning to the queen: "We may still hope. Providence has 
declared for ussince I have found this brave man again in 
so miraculous a manner. Andsirwhere does he reside
pray?" 
The Comte de la Fere lodges in the Rue Guenegaud, Hotel du 
Grand Roi Charlemagne.
Thanks, sir. Inform this dear friend that he may remain 
within, that I shall go and see him immediately.
Sir, I obey with pleasure, if her majesty will permit me to 
depart.
Go, Monsieur de Bragelonne,said the queenand rest 
assured of our affection.
Raoul bent respectfully before the two princessesand 
bowing to De Winterdeparted. 
The queen and De Winter continued to converse for some time 
in low voicesin order that the young princess should not 
overhear them; but the precaution was needless: she was in 
deep converse with her own thoughts. 
Thenwhen De Winter rose to take leave: 
Listen, my lord,said the queen; "I have preserved this 
diamond cross which came from my motherand this order of 
St. Michael which came from my husband. They are worth about 
fifty thousand pounds. I had sworn to die of hunger rather 
than part with these precious pledges; but now that this 
ornament may be useful to him or his defenderseverything 
must be sacrificed. Take themand if you need money for 
your expeditionsell them fearlesslymy lord. But should 
you find the means of retaining themremembermy lord
that I shall esteem you as having rendered the greatest 
service that a gentleman can render to a queen; and in the 
day of my prosperity he who brings me this order and this 
cross shall be blessed by me and my children." 
Madame,replied De Winteryour majesty will be served by 
a man devoted to you. I hasten to deposit these two objects 
in a safe place, nor should I accept them if the resources 
of our ancient fortune were left to us, but our estates are 
confiscated, our ready money is exhausted, and we are 
reduced to turn to service everything we possess. In an hour 
hence I shall be with the Comte de la Fere, and to-morrow 
your majesty shall have a definite reply.
The queen tendered her hand to Lord de Winterwhokissing 
it respectfullywent out and traversed alone and 
unconducted those largedark and deserted apartments
brushing away tears whichblase as he was by fifty years 
spent as a courtierhe could not withhold at the spectacle 
of royal distress so dignifiedyet so intense. 
Uncle and Nephew. 
The horse and servant belonging to De Winter were waiting 
for him at the door; he proceeded toward his abode very 
thoughtfullylooking behind him from time to him to 
contemplate the dark and silent frontage of the Louvre. It 
was then that he saw a horsemanas it weredetach himself 
from the wall and follow him at a little distance. In 
leaving the Palais Royal he remembered to have observed a 
similar shadow. 
Tony,he saidmotioning to his groom to approach. 
Here I am, my lord.
Did you remark that man who is following us?
Yes, my lord.
Who is he?
I do not know, only he has followed your grace from the 
Palais Royal, stopped at the Louvre to wait for you, and now 
leaves the Louvre with you.
Some spy of the cardinal,said De Winter to himaside. 
Let us pretend not to notice that he is watching us.
And spurring on he plunged into the labyrinth of streets 
which led to his hotelsituated near the Maraisfor having 
for so long a time lived near the Place RoyaleLord de 
Winter naturally returned to lodge near his ancient 
dwelling. 
The unknown spurred his horse to a gallop. 
De Winter dismounted at his hotel and went up into his 
apartmentintending to watch the spy; but as he was about 
to place his gloves and hat on a tablehe saw reflected in 
a glass opposite to him a figure which stood on the 
threshold of the room. He turned around and Mordaunt stood 
before him. 
There was a moment of frozen silence between these two. 
Sir,said De WinterI thought I had already made you 
aware that I am weary of this persecution; withdraw, then, 
or I shall call and have you turned out as you were in 
London. I am not your uncle, I know you not.
My uncle,replied Mordauntwith his harsh and bantering 
toneyou are mistaken; you will not have me turned out 
this time as you did in London -- you dare not. As for 
denying that I am your nephew, you will think twice about 
it, now that I have learned some things of which I was 
ignorant a year ago.
And how does it concern me what you have learned?said De 
Winter. 
Oh, it concerns you very closely, my uncle, I am sure, and 
you will soon be of my opinion,added hewith a smile 
which sent a shudder through the veins of him he thus 
addressed. "When I presented myself before you for the first 
time in Londonit was to ask you what had become of my 
fortune; the second time it was to demand who had sullied my 
name; and this time I come before you to ask a question far 
more terrible than any otherto say to you as God said to 
the first murderer: `Cainwhat hast thou done to thy 
brother Abel?' My lordwhat have you done with your sister 
-- your sisterwho was my mother?" 
De Winter shrank back from the fire of those scorching eyes. 
Your mother?he said. 
Yes, my lord, my mother,replied the young manadvancing 
into the room until he was face to face with Lord de Winter
and crossing his arms. "I have asked the headsman of 
Bethune he said, his voice hoarse and his face livid with 
passion and grief. And the headsman of Bethune gave me a 
reply." 
De Winter fell back in a chair as though struck by a 
thunderbolt and in vain attempted a reply. 
Yes,continued the young man; "all is now explained; with 
this key I open the abyss. My mother inherited an estate 
from her husbandyou have assassinated her; my name would 
have secured me the paternal estateyou have deprived me of 
it; you have despoiled me of my fortune. I am no longer 
astonished that you knew me not. I am not surprised that you 
refused to recognize me. When a man is a robber it is hard 
to call him nephew whom he has impoverished; when one is a 
murdererto recognize the man whom one has made an orphan." 
These words produced a contrary effect to that which 
Mordaunt had anticipated. De Winter remembered the monster 
that Milady had been; he rosedignified and calm
restraining by the severity of his look the wild glance of 
the young man. 
You desire to fathom this horrible secret?said De Winter; 
well, then, so be it. Know, then, what manner of woman it 
was for whom to-day you call me to account. That woman had, 
in all probability, poisoned my brother, and in order to 
inherit from me she was about to assassinate me in my turn. 
I have proof of it. What say you to that?
I say that she was my mother.
She caused the unfortunate Duke of Buckingham to be stabbed 
by a man who was, ere that, honest, good and pure. What say 
you to that crime, of which I have the proof?
She was my mother.
On our return to France she had a young woman who was 
attached to one of her opponents poisoned in the convent of 
the Augustines at Bethune. Will this crime persuade you of 
the justice of her punishment -- for of all this I have the 
proofs?
She was my mother!cried the young manwho uttered these 
three successive exclamations with constantly increasing 
force. 
At last, charged with murders, with debauchery, hated by 
every one and yet threatening still, like a panther 
thirsting for blood, she fell under the blows of men whom 
she had rendered desperate, though they had never done her 
the least injury; she met with judges whom her hideous 
crimes had evoked; and that executioner you saw -- that 
executioner who you say told you everything -- that 
executioner, if he told you everything, told you that he 
leaped with joy in avenging on her his brother's shame and 
suicide. Depraved as a girl, adulterous as a wife, an 
unnatural sister, homicide, poisoner, execrated by all who 
knew her, by every nation that had been visited by her, she 
died accursed by Heaven and earth.
A sob which Mordaunt could not repress burst from his throat 
and his livid face became suffused with blood; he clenched 
his fistssweat covered his facehis hairlike Hamlet's
stood on endand racked with fury he cried out: 
Silence, sir! she was my mother! Her crimes, I know them 
not; her disorders, I know them not; her vices, I know them 
not. But this I know, that I had a mother, that five men 
leagued against one woman, murdered her clandestinely by 
night -- silently -- like cowards. I know that you were one 
of them, my uncle, and that you cried louder than the 
others: `She must die.' Therefore I warn you, and listen 
well to my words, that they may be engraved upon your 
memory, never to be forgotten: this murder, which has robbed 
me of everything -- this murder, which has deprived me of my 
name -- this murder, which has impoverished me -- this 
murder, which has made me corrupt, wicked, implacable -- I 
shall summon you to account for it first and then those who 
were your accomplices, when I discover them!
With hatred in his eyesfoaming at his mouthand his fist 
extendedMordaunt had advanced one more stepa 
threateningterrible steptoward De Winter. The latter put 
his hand to his swordand saidwith the smile of a man who 
for thirty years has jested with death: 
Would you assassinate me, sir? Then I shall recognize you 
as my nephew, for you would be a worthy son of such a 
mother.
No,replied Mordauntforcing his features and the muscles 
of his body to resume their usual places and be calm; "noI 
shall not kill you; at least not at this momentfor without 
you I could not discover the others. But when I have found 
themthen tremblesir. I stabbed to the heart the headsman 
of Bethunewithout mercy or pityand he was the least 
guilty of you all." 
With these words the young man went out and descended the 
stairs with sufficient calmness to pass unobserved; then 
upon the lowest landing place he passed Tonyleaning over 
the balustradewaiting only for a call from his master to 
mount to his room. 
But De Winter did not call; crushedenfeebledhe remained 
standing and with listening ear; then only when he had heard 
the step of the horse going away he fell back on a chair
saying: 
My God, I thank Thee that he knows me only.
Paternal Affection. 
Whilst this terrible scene was passing at Lord de Winter's
Athosseated near his windowhis elbow on the table and 
his head supported on his handwas listening intently to 
Raoul's account of the adventures he met with on his journey 
and the details of the battle. 
Listening to the relation of those emotions so fresh and 
purethe finenoble face of Athos betrayed indescribable 
pleasure; he inhaled the tones of that young voiceas 
harmonious music. He forgot all that was dark in the past 
and that was cloudy in the future. It almost seemed as if 
the return of this much loved boy had changed his fears to 
hopes. Athos was happy -- happy as he had never been before. 
And you assisted and took part in this great battle, 
Bragelonne!cried the former musketeer. 
Yes, sir.
And it was a fierce one?
His highness the prince charged eleven times in person.
He is a great commander, Bragelonne.
He is a hero, sir. I did not lose sight of him for an 
instant. Oh! how fine it is to be called Conde and to be so 
worthy of such a name!
He was calm and radiant, was he not?
As calm as at parade, radiant as at a fete. When we went up 
to the enemy it was slowly; we were forbidden to draw first 
and we were marching toward the Spaniards, who were on a 
height with lowered muskets. When we arrived about thirty 
paces from them the prince turned around to the soldiers: 
`Comrades,' he said, `you are about to suffer a furious 
discharge; but after that you will make short work with 
those fellows.' There was such dead silence that friends and 
enemies could have heard these words; then raising his 
sword, `Sound trumpets!' he cried.
Well, very good; you will do as much when the opportunity 
occurs, will you, Raoul?
I know not, sir, but I thought it really very fine and 
grand!
Were you afraid, Raoul?asked the count. 
Yes, sir,replied the young man naively; "I felt a great 
chill at my heartand at the word `fire' which resounded 
in Spanish from the enemy's ranksI closed my eyes and 
thought of you." 
In honest truth, Raoul?said Athospressing his hand. 
Yes, sir; at that instant there was such a rataplan of 
musketry that one might have imagined the infernal regions 
had opened. Those who were not killed felt the heat of the 
flames. I opened my eyes, astonished to find myself alive 
and even unhurt; a third of the squadron were lying on the 
ground, wounded, dead or dying. At that moment I encountered 
the eye of the prince. I had but one thought and that was 
that he was observing me. I spurred on and found myself in 
the enemy's ranks.
And the prince was pleased with you?
He told me so, at least, sir, when he desired me to return 
to Paris with Monsieur de Chatillon, who was charged to 
carry the news to the queen and to bring the colors we had 
taken. `Go,' said he; `the enemy will not rally for fifteen 
days and until that time I have no need of your service. Go 
and see those whom you love and who love you, and tell my 
sister De Longueville that I thank her for the present that 
she made me of you.' And I came, sir,added Raoulgazing 
at the count with a smile of real affectionfor I thought 
you would be glad to see me again.
Athos drew the young man toward him and pressed his lips to 
his browas he would have done to a young daughter. 
And now, Raoul,said heyou are launched; you have dukes 
for friends, a marshal of France for godfather, a prince of 
the blood as commander, and on the day of your return you 
have been received by two queens; it is not so bad for a 
novice.
Oh sir,said Raoulsuddenlyyou recall something, 
which, in my haste to relate my exploits, I had forgotten; 
it is that there was with Her Majesty the Queen of England, 
a gentleman who, when I pronounced your name, uttered a cry 
of surprise and joy; he said he was a friend of yours, asked 
your address, and is coming to see you.
What is his name?
I did not venture to ask, sir; he spoke elegantly, although 
I thought from his accent he was an Englishman.
Ah!said Athosleaning down his head as if to remember 
who it could be. Thenwhen he raised it againhe was 
struck by the presence of a man who was standing at the open 
door and was gazing at him with a compassionate air. 
Lord de Winter!exclaimed the count. 
Athos, my friend!
And the two gentlemen were for an instant locked in each 
other's arms; then Athoslooking into his friend's face and 
taking him by both handssaid: 
What ails you, my lord? you appear as unhappy as I am the 
reverse.
Yes, truly, dear friend; and I may even say the sight of 
you increases my dismay.
And De Winter glancing around himRaoul quickly understood 
that the two friends wished to be alone and he therefore 
left the room unaffectedly. 
Come, now that we are alone,said Athoslet us talk of 
yourself.
Whilst we are alone let us speak of ourselves,replied De 
Winter. "He is here." 
Who?
Milady's son.
Athosagain struck by this namewhich seemed to pursue him 
like an echohesitated for a momentthen slightly knitting 
his browshe calmly said: 
I know it, Grimaud met him between Bethune and Arras and 
then came here to warn me of his presence.
Does Grimaud know him, then?
No; but he was present at the deathbed of a man who knew 
him.
The headsman of Bethune?exclaimed De Winter. 
You know about that?cried Athosastonished. 
He has just left me,replied De Winterafter telling me 
all. Ah! my friend! what a horrible scene! Why did we not 
destroy the child with the mother?
What need you fear?said Athosrecovering from the 
instinctive fear he had at first experiencedby the aid of 
reason; "are we not men accustomed to defend ourselves? Is 
this young man an assassin by profession -- a murderer in 
cold blood? He has killed the executioner of Bethune in an 
access of passionbut now his fury is assuaged." 
De Winter smiled sorrowfully and shook his head. 
Do you not know the race?said he. 
Pooh!said Athostrying to smile in his turn. "It must 
have lost its ferocity in the second generation. Besidesmy 
friendProvidence has warned usthat we may be on our 
guard. All we can now do is to wait. Let us wait; andas I 
said beforelet us speak of yourself. What brings you to 
Paris?" 
Affairs of importance which you shall know later. But what 
is this that I hear from Her Majesty the Queen of England? 
Monsieur d'Artagnan sides with Mazarin! Pardon my frankness, 
dear friend. I neither hate nor blame the cardinal, and your 
opinions will be held ever sacred by me. But do you happen 
to belong to him?
Monsieur d'Artagnan,replied Athosis in the service; he 
is a soldier and obeys all constitutional authority. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan is not rich and has need of his position 
as lieutenant to enable him to live. Millionaires like 
yourself, my lord, are rare in France.
Alas!said De WinterI am at this moment as poor as he 
is, if not poorer. But to return to our subject.
Well, then, you wish to know if I am of Mazarin's party? 
No. Pardon my frankness, too, my lord.
I am obliged to you, count, for this pleasing intelligence! 
You make me young and happy again by it. Ah! so you are not 
a Mazarinist? Delightful! Indeed, you could not belong to 
him. But pardon me, are you free? I mean to ask if you are 
married?
Ah! as to that, no,replied Athoslaughing. 
Because that young man, so handsome, so elegant, so 
polished ---- 
Is a child I have adopted and who does not even know who 
was his father.
Very well; you are always the same, Athos, great and 
generous. Are you still friends with Monsieur Porthos and 
Monsieur Aramis?
Add Monsieur d'Artagnan, my lord. We still remain four 
friends devoted to each other; but when it becomes a 
question of serving the cardinal or of fighting him, of 
being Mazarinists or Frondists, then we are only two.
Is Monsieur Aramis with D'Artagnan?asked Lord de Winter. 
No,said Athos; "Monsieur Aramis does me the honor to 
share my opinions." 
Could you put me in communication with your witty and 
agreeable friend? Is he much changed?
He has become an abbe, that is all.
You alarm me; his profession must have made him renounce 
any great undertakings.
On the contrary,said Athossmilinghe has never been 
so much a musketeer as since he became an abbe, and you will 
find him a veritable soldier.
Could you engage to bring him to me to-morrow morning at 
ten o'clock, on the Pont du Louvre?
Oh, oh!exclaimed Athossmilingyou have a duel in 
prospect.
Yes, count, and a splendid duel, too; a duel in which I 
hope you will take your part.
Where are we to go, my lord?
To Her Majesty the Queen of England, who has desired me to 
present you to her.
This is an enigma,said Athosbut it matters not; since 
you know the solution of it I ask no further. Will your 
lordship do me the honor to sup with me?
Thanks, count, no,replied De Winter. "I own to you that 
that young man's visit has subdued my appetite and probably 
will rob me of my sleep. What undertaking can have brought 
him to Paris? It was not to meet me that he camefor he was 
ignorant of my journey. This young man terrifies memy 
lord; there lies in him a sanguinary predisposition." 
What occupies him in England?
He is one of Cromwell's most enthusiastic disciples.
But what attached him to the cause? His father and mother 
were Catholics, I believe?
His hatred of the king, who deprived him of his estates and 
forbade him to bear the name of De Winter.
And what name does he now bear?
Mordaunt.
A Puritan, yet disguised as a monk he travels alone in 
France.
Do you say as a monk?
It was thus, and by mere accident -- may God pardon me if I 
blaspheme -- that he heard the confession of the executioner 
of Bethune.
Then I understand it all! he has been sent by Cromwell to 
Mazarin, and the queen guessed rightly; we have been 
forestalled. Everything is clear to me now. Adieu, count, 
till to-morrow.
But the night is dark,said Athosperceiving that Lord de 
Winter seemed more uneasy than he wished to appear; "and you 
have no servant." 
I have Tony, a safe if simple youth.
Halloo, there, Grimaud, Olivain, and Blaisois! call the 
viscount and take the musket with you.
Blaisois was the tall youthhalf groomhalf peasantwhom 
we saw at the Chateau de Bragelonnewhom Athos had 
christened by the name of his province. 
Viscount,said Athos to Raoulas he enteredyou will 
conduct my lord as far as his hotel and permit no one to 
approach him.
Oh! count,said De Winterfor whom do you take me?
For a stranger who does not know Paris,said Athosand 
to whom the viscount will show the way.
De Winter shook him by the hand. 
Grimaud,said Athosput yourself at the head of the 
troop and beware of the monk.
Grimaud shudderedand noddingawaited the departure
regarding the butt of his musket with silent eloquence. Then 
obeying the orders given him by Athoshe headed the small 
processionbearing the torch in one hand and the musket in 
the otheruntil it reached De Winter's innwhen pounding 
on the portal with his fisthe bowed to my lord and faced 
about without a word. 
The same order was followed in returningnor did Grimaud's 
searching glance discover anything of a suspicious 
appearancesave a dark shadowas it werein ambuscadeat 
the corner of the Rue Guenegaud and of the Quai. He fancied
alsothat in going he had already observed the street 
watcher who had attracted his attention. He pushed on toward 
himbut before he could reach it the shadow had disappeared 
into an alleyinto which Grimaud deemed it scarcely prudent 
to pursue it. 
The next dayon awakingthe count perceived Raoul by his 
bedside. The young man was already dressed and was reading a 
new book by M. Chapelain. 
Already up, Raoul?exclaimed the count. 
Yes, sir,replied Raoulwith slight hesitation; "I did 
not sleep well." 
You, Raoul, not sleep well! then you must have something on 
your mind!said Athos. 
Sir, you will perhaps think that I am in a great hurry to 
leave you when I have only just arrived, but ---- 
Have you only two days of leave, Raoul?
On the contrary, sir, I have ten; nor is it to the camp I 
wish to go.
Where, then?said Athossmilingif it be not a secret. 
You are now almost a man, since you have made your first 
passage of arms, and have acquired the right to go where you 
will without consulting me.
Never, sir,said Raoulas long as I possess the 
happiness of having you for a protector, shall I deem I have 
the right of freeing myself from a guardianship so valuable 
to me. I have, however, a wish to go and pass a day at 
Blois. You look at me and you are going to laugh at me.
No, on the contrary, I am not inclined to laugh,said 
Athossuppressing a sigh. "You wish to see Blois again; it 
is but natural." 
Then you permit me to go, you are not angry in your heart?
exclaimed Raouljoyously. 
Certainly; and why should I regret what gives you 
pleasure?
Oh! how kind you are,exclaimed the young manpressing 
his guardian's hand; "and I can set out immediately?" 
When you like, Raoul.
Sir,said Raoulas he turned to leave the roomI have 
thought of one thing, and that is about the Duchess of 
Chevreuse, who was so kind to me and to whom I owe my 
introduction to the prince.
And you ought to thank her, Raoul. Well, try the Hotel de 
Luynes, Raoul, and ask if the duchess can receive you. I am 
glad to see you pay attention to the usages of the world. 
You must take Grimaud and Olivain.
Both, sir?asked Raoulastonished. 
Both.
Raoul went outand when Athos heard his youngjoyous voice 
calling to Grimaud and Olivainhe sighed. 
It is very soon to leave me,he thoughtbut he follows 
the common custom. Nature has made us thus; she makes the 
young look ever forward, not behind. He certainly likes the 
child, but will he love me less as his affection grows for 
her?
And Athos confessed to himself thathe was unprepared for 
so prompt a departure; but Raoul was so happy that this 
reflection effaced everything else from the consideration of 
his guardian. 
Everything was ready at ten o'clock for the departureand 
as Athos was watching Raoul mounta groom rode up from the 
Duchess de Chevreuse. He was charged to tell the Comte de la 
Ferethat she had learned of the return of her youthful 
protegeand also the manner he had conducted himself on the 
fieldand she added that she should be very glad to offer 
him her congratulations. 
Tell her grace,replied Athosthat the viscount has just 
mounted his horse to proceed to the Hotel de Luynes.
Thenwith renewed instructions to GrimaudAthos signified 
to Raoul that he could set outand ended by reflecting that 
it was perhaps better that Raoul should be away from Paris 
at that moment. 
Another Queen in Want of Help. 
Athos had not failed to send early to Aramis and had given 
his letter to Blaisoisthe only serving-man whom he had 
left. Blaisois found Bazin donning his beadle's gownhis 
services being required that day at Notre Dame. 
Athos had desired Blaisois to try to speak to Aramis 
himself. Blaisoisa tallsimple youthwho understood 
nothing but what he was expressly toldaskedtherefore for 
the Abbe d'Herblayand in spite of Bazin's assurances that 
his master was not at homehe persisted in such a manner as 
to put Bazin into a passion. Blaisois seeing Bazin in 
clerical guisewas a little discomposed at his denials and 
wanted to pass at all risksbelieving toothat the man 
with whom he had to do was endowed with the virtues of his 
clothnamelypatience and Christian charity. 
But Bazinstill the servant of a musketeerwhen once the 
blood mounted to his fat cheeksseized a broomstick and 
began belaboring Blaisoissaying: 
You have insulted the church, my friend, you have insulted 
the church!
At this moment Aramisaroused by this unusual disturbance
cautiously opened the door of his room; and Blaisois
looking reproachfully at the Cerberusdrew the letter from 
his pocket and presented it to Aramis. 
From the Comte de la Fere,said Aramis. "All right." And 
he retired into his room without even asking the cause of so 
much noise. 
Blaisois returned disconsolate to the Hotel of the Grand Roi 
Charlemagne and when Athos inquired if his commission was 
executedhe related his adventure. 
You foolish fellow!said Athoslaughing. "And you did not 
tell him that you came from me?" 
No, sir.
At ten o'clock Athoswith his habitual exactitudewas 
waiting on the Pont du Louvre and was almost immediately 
joined by Lord de Winter. 
They waited ten minutes and then his lordship began to fear 
Aramis was not coming to join them. 
Patience,said Athoswhose eyes were fixed in the 
direction of the Rue du Bacpatience; I see an abbe 
cuffing a man, then bowing to a woman; it must be Aramis.
It was indeed Aramis. Having run against a young shopkeeper 
who was gaping at the crows and who had splashed himAramis 
with one blow of his fist had distanced him ten paces. 
At this moment one of his penitents passedand as she was 
young and pretty Aramis took off his cap to her with his 
most gracious smile. 
A most affectionate greetingas one can well believe took 
place between him and Lord de Winter. 
Where are we going?inquired Aramis; "are we going to 
fightperchance? I carry no sword this morning and cannot 
return home to procure one." 
No,said Lord de Winterwe are going to pay a visit to 
Her Majesty the Queen of England.
Oh, very well,replied Aramis; then bending his face down 
to Athos's earwhat is the object of this visit?
continued he. 
Nay, I know not; some evidence required from us, perhaps.
May it not be about that cursed affair?asked Aramisin 
which case I do not greatly care to go, for it will be to 
pocket a lecture; and since it is my function to give them 
to others I am rather averse to receiving them myself.
If it were so,answered Athoswe should not be taken 
there by Lord de Winter, for he would come in for his share; 
he was one of us.
You're right; yes, let us go.
On arriving at the Louvre Lord de Winter entered first; 
indeedthere was but one porter there to receive them at 
the gate. 
It was impossible in daylight for the impoverished state of 
the habitation grudging charity had conceded to an 
unfortunate queen to pass unnoticed by AthosAramisand 
even the Englishman. Large roomscompletely stripped of 
furniturebare walls upon whichhere and thereshone the 
old gold moldings which had resisted time and neglect
windows with broken panes (impossible to close)no carpets
neither guards nor servants: this is what first met the eyes 
of Athosto which hetouching his companion's elbow
directed his attention by his glances. 
Mazarin is better lodged,said Aramis. 
Mazarin is almost king,answered Athos; "Madame Henrietta 
is almost no longer queen." 
If you would condescend to be clever, Athos,observed 
AramisI really do think you would be wittier than poor 
Monsieur de Voiture.
Athos smiled. 
The queen appeared to be impatiently expecting themfor at 
the first slight noise she heard in the hall leading to her 
room she came herself to the door to receive these courtiers 
in the corridors of Misfortune. 
Enter. You are welcome, gentlemen,she said. 
The gentlemen entered and remained standingbut at a motion 
from the queen they seated themselves. Athos was calm and 
gravebut Aramis was furious; the sight of such royal 
misery exasperated him and his eyes examined every new trace 
of poverty that presented itself. 
You are examining the luxury I enjoy,said the queen
glancing sadly around her. 
Madame,replied AramisI must ask your pardon, but I 
know not how to hide my indignation at seeing how a daughter 
of Henry IV. is treated at the court of France.
Monsieur Aramis is not an officer?asked the queen of Lord 
de Winter. 
That gentleman is the Abbe d'Herblay,replied he. 
Aramis blushed. "Madame he said, I am an abbeit is 
truebut I am so against my will. I never had a vocation 
for the bands; my cassock is fastened by one button only
and I am always ready to become a musketeer once more. This 
morningbeing ignorant that I should have the honor of 
seeing your majestyI encumbered myself with this dress
but you will find me none the less a man devoted to your 
majesty's servicein whatever way you may see fit to use 
me." 
The Abbe d'Herblay,resumed De Winteris one of those 
gallant musketeers formerly belonging to His Majesty King 
Louis XIII., of whom I have spoken to you, madame.Then 
turning to Athoshe continuedAnd this gentleman is that 
noble Comte de la Fere, whose high reputation is so well 
known to your majesty.
Gentlemen,said the queena few years ago I had around 
me ushers, treasures, armies; and by the lifting of a finger 
all these were busied in my service. To-day, look around 
you, and it may astonish you, that in order to accomplish a 
plan which is dearer to me than life I have only Lord de 
Winter, the friend of twenty years, and you, gentlemen, whom 
I see for the first time and whom I know but as my 
countrymen.
It is enough,said Athosbowing lowif the lives of 
three men can purchase yours, madame.
I thank you, gentlemen. But hear me,continued she. "I am 
not only the most miserable of queensbut the most unhappy 
of mothersthe most wretched of wives. My childrentwo of 
themat leastthe Duke of York and the Princess Elizabeth
are far away from meexposed to the blows of the ambitious 
and our foes; my husbandthe kingis leading in England so 
wretched an existence that it is no exaggeration to aver 
that he seeks death as a thing to be desired. Hold! 
gentlemenhere is the letter conveyed to me by Lord de 
Winter. Read it." 
Obeying the queenAthos read aloud the letter which we have 
already seenin which King Charles demanded to know whether 
the hospitality of France would be accorded him. 
Well?asked Athoswhen he had closed the letter. 
Well,said the queenit has been refused.
The two friends exchanged a smile of contempt. 
And now,said Athoswhat is to be done? I have the honor 
to inquire from your majesty what you desire Monsieur 
d'Herblay and myself to do in your service. We are ready.
Ah, sir, you have a noble heart!exclaimed the queenwith 
a burst of gratitude; whilst Lord de Winter turned to her 
with a glance which saidDid I not answer for them?
But you, sir?said the queen to Aramis. 
I, madame,replied hefollow Monsieur de la Fere 
wherever he leads, even were it on to death, without 
demanding wherefore; but when it concerns your majesty's 
service, then,added helooking at the queen with all the 
grace of former daysI precede the count.
Well, then, gentlemen,said the queensince it is thus, 
and since you are willing to devote yourselves to the 
service of a poor princess whom the whole world has 
abandoned, this is what is required to be done for me. The 
king is alone with a few gentlemen, whom he fears to lose 
every day; surrounded by the Scotch, whom he distrusts, 
although he be himself a Scotchman. Since Lord de Winter 
left him I am distracted, sirs. I ask much, too much, 
perhaps, for I have no title to request it. Go to England, 
join the king, be his friends, protectors, march to battle 
at his side, and be near him in his house, where 
conspiracies, more dangerous than the perils of war, are 
hatching every day. And in exchange for the sacrifice that 
you make, gentlemen, I promise -- not to reward you, I 
believe that word would offend you -- but to love you as a 
sister, to prefer you, next to my husband and my children, 
to every one. I swear it before Heaven.
And the queen raised her eyes solemnly upward. 
Madame,said Athoswhen must we set out?
You consent then?exclaimed the queenjoyfully. 
Yes, madame; only it seems to me that your majesty goes too 
far in engaging to load us with a friendship so far above 
our merit. We render service to God, madame in serving a 
prince so unfortunate, a queen so virtuous. Madame, we are 
yours, body and soul.
Oh, sirs,said the queenmoved even to tearsthis is 
the first time for five years I have felt the least approach 
to joy or hope. God, who can read my heart, all the 
gratitude I feel, will reward you! Save my husband! Save the 
king, and although you care not for the price that is placed 
upon a good action in this world, leave me the hope that we 
shall meet again, when I may be able to thank you myself. In 
the meantime, I remain here. Have you anything to ask of me? 
From this moment I become your friend, and since you are 
engaged in my affairs I ought to occupy myself in yours.
Madame,replied AthosI have only to ask your majesty's 
prayers.
And I,said AramisI am alone in the world and have only 
your majesty to serve.
The queen held out her handwhich they kissedand she said 
in a low tone to De Winter: 
If you need money, my lord, separate the jewels I have 
given you; detach the diamonds and sell them to some Jew. 
You will receive for them fifty or sixty thousand francs; 
spend them if necessary, but let these gentlemen be treated 
as they deserve, that is to say, like kings.
The queen had two letters readyone written by herselfthe 
other by her daughterthe Princess Henrietta. Both were 
addressed to King Charles. She gave the first to Athos and 
the other to Aramisso that should they be separated by 
chance they might make themselves known to the king; after 
which they withdrew. 
At the foot of the staircase De Winter stopped. 
Not to arouse suspicions, gentlemen,said hego your way 
and I will go mine, and this evening at nine o'clock we will 
assemble again at the Gate Saint Denis. We will travel on 
horseback as far as our horses can go and afterward we can 
take the post. Once more, let me thank you, my good friends, 
both in my own name and the queen's.
The three gentlemen then shook handsLord de Winter taking 
the Rue Saint Honoreand Athos and Aramis remaining 
together. 
Well,said Aramiswhen they were alonewhat do you 
think of this business, my dear count?
Bad,replied Athosvery bad.
But you received it with enthusiasm.
As I shall ever receive the defense of a great principle, 
my dear D'Herblay. Monarchs are only strong by the 
assistance of the aristocracy, but aristocracy cannot 
survive without the countenance of monarchs. Let us, then, 
support monarchy, in order to support ourselves. 
We shall be murdered there said Aramis. I hate the 
English -- they are coarselike every nation that swills 
beer." 
Would it be better to remain here,said Athosand take a 
turn in the Bastile or the dungeon of Vincennes for having 
favored the escape of Monsieur de Beaufort? I'faith, Aramis, 
believe me, there is little left to regret. We avoid 
imprisonment and we play the part of heroes; the choice is 
easy.
It is true; but in everything, friend, one must always 
return to the same question -- a stupid one, I admit, but 
very necessary -- have you any money?
Something like a hundred pistoles, that my farmer sent to 
me the day before I left Bragelonne; but out of that sum I 
ought to leave fifty for Raoul -- a young man must live 
respectably. I have then about fifty pistoles. And you?
As for me, I am quite sure that after turning out all my 
pockets and emptying my drawers I shall not find ten louis 
at home. Fortunately Lord de Winter is rich.
Lord de Winter is ruined for the moment; Oliver Cromwell 
has annexed his income resources.
Now is the time when Baron Porthos would be useful.
Now it is that I regret D'Artagnan.
Let us entice them away.
This secret, Aramis, does not belong to us; take my advice, 
then, and let no one into our confidence. And moreover, in 
taking such a step we should appear to be doubtful of 
ourselves. Let us regret their absence to ourselves for our 
own sakes, but not speak of it.
You are right; but what are you going to do until this 
evening? I have two things to postpone.
And what are they?
First, a thrust with the coadjutor, whom I met last night 
at Madame de Rambouillet's and whom I found particular in 
his remarks respecting me.
Oh, fie -- a quarrel between priests, a duel between 
allies!
What can I do, friend? he is a bully and so am I; his 
cassock is a burden to him and I imagine I have had enough 
of mine; in fact, there is so much resemblance between us 
that I sometimes believe he is Aramis and I am the 
coadjutor. This kind of life fatigues and oppresses me; 
besides, he is a turbulent fellow, who will ruin our party. 
I am convinced that if I gave him a box on the ear, such as 
I gave this morning to the little citizen who splashed me, 
it would change the appearance of things.
And I, my dear Aramis,quietly replied AthosI think it 
would only change Monsieur de Retz's appearance. Take my 
advice, leave things just as they are; besides, you are 
neither of you now your own masters; he belongs to the 
Fronde and you to the queen of England. So, if the second 
matter which you regret being unable to attend to is not 
more important than the first ---- 
Oh! that is of the first importance.
Attend to it, then, at once.
Unfortunately, it is a thing that I can't perform at any 
time I choose. It was arranged for the evening and no other 
time will serve.
I understand,said Athos smilingmidnight.
About that time.
But, my dear fellow, those are things that bear 
postponement and you must put it off, especially with so 
good an excuse to give on your return ---- 
Yes, if I return.
If you do not return, how does it concern you? Be 
reasonable. Come, you are no longer twenty years old.
To my great regret, mordieu! Ah, if I were but twenty years 
old!
Yes,said Athosdoubtless you would commit great 
follies! But now we must part. I have one or two visits to 
make and a letter yet to write. Call for me at eight o'clock 
or shall I wait supper for you at seven?
That will do very well,said Aramis. "I have twenty visits 
to make and as many letters to write." 
They then separated. Athos went to pay a visit to Madame de 
Vendomeleft his name at Madame de Chevreuse's and wrote 
the following letter to D'Artagnan: 
Dear Friend, -- I am about to set off with Aramis on 
important business. I wished to make my adieux to you, but 
time does not permit. Remember that I write to you now to 
repeat how much affection for you I still cherish. 
Raoul is gone to Blois and is ignorant of my departure; 
watch over him in my absence as much as you possibly can; 
and if by chance you receive no news of me three months 
hencetell him to open a packet which he will find 
addressed to him in my bronze casket at Bloisof which I 
send you now the key. 
Embrace Porthos from Aramis and myself. Adieu, perhaps 
farewell.
At the hour agreed upon Aramis arrived; he was dressed as an 
officer and had the old sword at his side which he had drawn 
so often and which he was more than ever ready to draw. 
By-the-bye,he saidI think that we are decidedly wrong 
to depart thus, without leaving a line for Porthos and 
D'Artagnan.
The thing is done, dear friend,said Athos; "I foresaw 
that and have embraced them both from you and myself." 
You are a wonderful man, my dear count,said Aramis; "you 
think of everything." 
Well, have you made up your mind to this journey?
Quite; and now that I reflect about it, I am glad to leave 
Paris at this moment.
And so am I,replied Athos; "my only regret is not having 
seen D'Artagnan; but the rascal is so cunninghe might have 
guessed our project." 
When supper was over Blaisois entered. "Sir said he, here 
is Monsieur d'Artagnan's answer." 
But I did not tell you there would be an answer, stupid!
said Athos. 
And I set off without waiting for one, but he called me 
back and gave me this;and he presented a little leather 
bagplump and giving out a golden jingle. 
Athos opened it and began by drawing forth a little note
written in these terms: 
My dear Count, -- When one travels, and especially for 
three months, one never has a superfluity of money. Now, 
recalling former times of mutual distress, I send you half 
my purse; it is money to obtain which I made Mazarin sweat. 
Don't make a bad use of it, I entreat you. 
As to what you say about not seeing you againI believe 
not a word of it; with such a heart as yours -- and such a 
sword -- one passes through the valley of the shadow of 
death a dozen timesunscathed and unalarmed. Au revoirnot 
farewell. 
It is unnecessary to say that from the day I saw Raoul I 
loved him; nevertheless, believe that I heartily pray that I 
may not become to him a father, however much I might be 
proud of such a son. 
Your 
D'Artagnan. 
P.S. -- Be it well understood that the fifty louis which I 
send are equally for Aramis as for you -- for you as 
Aramis." 
Athos smiledand his fine eye was dimmed by a tear. 
D'Artagnanwho had loved him so tenderlyloved him still
although a Mazarinist. 
There are the fifty louis, i'faith,said Aramisemptying 
the purse on the tableall bearing the effigy of Louis 
XIII. "Wellwhat shall you do with this moneycount? Shall 
you keep it or send it back?" 
I shall keep it, Aramis, and even though I had no need of 
it I still should keep it. What is offered from a generous 
heart should be accepted generously. Take twenty-five of 
them, Aramis, and give me the remaining twenty-five.
All right; I am glad to see you are of my opinion. There 
now, shall we start?
When you like; but have you no groom?
No; that idiot Bazin had the folly to make himself verger, 
as you know, and therefore cannot leave Notre Dame. 
Very welltake Blaisoiswith whom I know not what to do
since I already have Grimaud." 
Willingly,said Aramis. 
At this moment Grimaud appeared at the door. "Ready said 
he, with his usual curtness. 
Let us gothen said Athos. 
The two friends mounted, as did their servants. At the 
corner of the Quai they encountered Bazin, who was running 
breathlessly. 
Ohsir!" exclaimed hethank Heaven I have arrived in 
time. Monsieur Porthos has just been to your house and has 
left this for you, saying that the letter was important and 
must be given to you before you left.
Good,said Aramistaking a purse which Bazin presented to 
him. "What is this?" 
Wait, your reverence, there is a letter.
You know I have already told you that if you ever call me 
anything but chevalier I will break every bone in your body. 
Give me the letter.
How can you read?asked Athosit is as dark as a cold 
oven.
Wait,said Bazinstriking a flintand setting afire a 
twisted wax-lightwith which he started the church candles. 
Thus illuminedAramis read the following epistle: 
My dear D'Herblay-- I learned from D'Artagnan who has 
embraced me on the part of the Comte de la Fere and 
yourselfthat you are setting out on a journey which may 
perhaps last two or three months; as I know that you do not 
like to ask money of your friends I offer you some of my own 
accord. Here are two hundred pistoleswhich you can dispose 
of as you wish and return to me when opportunity occurs. Do 
not fear that you put me to inconvenience; if I want money I 
can send for some to any of my chateaux; at Bracieux alone
I have twenty thousand francs in gold. Soif I do not send 
you more it is because I fear you would not accept a larger 
sum. 
I address you, because you know, that although I esteem him 
from my heart I am a little awed by the Comte de la Fere; 
but it is understood that what I offer you I offer him at 
the same time. 
I amas I trust you do not doubtyour devoted 
Du Vallon de Bracieux de Pierrefonds. 
Well said Aramis, what do you say to that?" 
I say, my dear D'Herblay, that it is almost sacrilege to 
distrust Providence when one has such friends, and therefore 
we will divide the pistoles from Porthos, as we divided the 
louis sent by D'Artagnan.
The division being made by the light of Bazin's taperthe 
two friends continued their road and a quarter of an hour 
later they had joined De Winter at the Porte Saint Denis. 
In which it is proved that first Impulses are oftentimes the 
best. 
The three gentlemen took the road to Picardya road so well 
known to them and which recalled to Athos and Aramis some of 
the most picturesque adventures of their youth. 
If Musqueton were with us,observed Athoson reaching the 
spot where they had had a dispute with the paviershow he 
would tremble at passing this! Do you remember, Aramis, that 
it was here he received that famous bullet wound?
By my faith, 'twould be excusable in him to tremble,
replied Aramisfor even I feel a shudder at the 
recollection; hold, just above that tree is the little spot 
where I thought I was killed.
It was soon time for Grimaud to recall the past. Arriving 
before the inn at which his master and himself had made such 
an enormous repasthe approached Athos and saidshowing 
him the airhole of the cellar: 
Sausages!
Athos began to laughfor this juvenile escapade of his 
appeared to be as amusing as if some one had related it of 
another person. 
At lastafter traveling two days and a nightthey arrived 
at Boulogne toward the eveningfavored by magnificent 
weather. Boulogne was a strong positionthen almost a 
deserted townbuilt entirely on the heights; what is now 
called the lower town did not then exist. 
Gentlemen,said De Winteron reaching the gate of the 
townlet us do here as at Paris -- let us separate to 
avoid suspicion. I know an inn, little frequented, but of 
which the host is entirely devoted to me. I will go there, 
where I expect to find letters, and you go to the first 
tavern in the town, to L'Epee du Grand Henri for instance, 
refresh yourselves, and in two hours be upon the jetty; our 
boat is waiting for us there.
The matter being thus decidedthe two friends foundabout 
two hundred paces furtherthe tavern indicated. Their 
horses were fedbut not unsaddled; the grooms suppedfor 
it was already lateand their two mastersimpatient to 
returnappointed a place of meeting with them on the jetty 
and desired them on no account to exchange a word with any 
one. It is needless to say that this caution concerned 
Blaisois alone -- long enough since it had been a useless 
one to Grimaud. 
Athos and Aramis walked down toward the port. From their 
dresscovered with dustand from a certain easy manner by 
means of which a man accustomed to travel is always 
recognizablethe two friends excited the attention of a few 
promenaders. There was more especially one upon whom their 
arrival had produced a decided impression. This manwhom 
they had noticed from the first for the same reason they had 
themselves been remarked by otherswas walking in a 
listless way up and down the jetty. From the moment he 
perceived them he did not cease to look at them and seemed 
to burn with the wish to speak to them. 
On reaching the jetty Athos and Aramis stopped to look at a 
little boat made fast to a pile and ready rigged as if 
waiting to start. 
That is doubtless our boat,said Athos. 
Yes,replied Aramisand the sloop out there making ready 
to sail must be that which is to take us to our destination; 
now,continued heif only De Winter does not keep us 
waiting. It is not at all amusing here; there is not a 
single woman passing.
Hush!said Athoswe are overheard.
In truththe walkerwhoduring the observations of the 
two friendshad passed and repassed behind them several 
timesstopped at the name of De Winter; but as his face 
betrayed no emotion at mention of this nameit might have 
been by chance he stood so still. 
Gentlemen,said the manwho was young and palebowing 
with ease and courtesypardon my curiosity, but I see you 
come from Paris, or at least that you are strangers at 
Boulogne.
We come from Paris, yes,replied Athoswith the same 
courtesy; "what is there we can do for you?" 
Sir,said the young manwill you be so good as to tell 
me if it be true that Cardinal Mazarin is no longer 
minister?
That is a strange question,said Aramis. 
He is and he is not,replied Athos; "that is to sayhe is 
dismissed by one-half of Francebut by intrigues and 
promises he makes the other half sustain him; you will 
perceive that this may last a long time." 
However, sir,said the strangerhe has neither fled nor 
is in prison?
No, sir, not at this moment at least.
Sirs, accept my thanks for your politeness,said the young 
manretreating. 
What do you think of that interrogator?asked Aramis. 
I think he is either a dull provincial person or a spy in 
search of information.
And you replied to him with that notion?
Nothing warranted me to answer him otherwise; he was polite 
to me and I was so to him.
But if he be a spy ---- 
What do you think a spy would be about here? We are not 
living in the time of Cardinal Richelieu, who would have 
closed the ports on bare suspicion.
It matters not; you were wrong to reply to him as you did,
continued Aramisfollowing with his eyes the young mannow 
vanishing behind the cliffs. 
And you,said Athosyou forget that you committed a very 
different kind of imprudence in pronouncing Lord de Winter's 
name. Did you not see that at that name the young man 
stopped?
More reason, then, when he spoke to you, for sending him 
about his business.
A quarrel?asked Athos. 
And since when have you become afraid of a quarrel?
I am always afraid of a quarrel when I am expected at any 
place and when such a quarrel might possibly prevent my 
reaching it. Besides, let me own something to you. I am 
anxious to see that young man nearer.
And wherefore?
Aramis, you will certainly laugh at me, you will say that I 
am always repeating the same thing, you will call me the 
most timorous of visionaries; but to whom do you see a 
resemblance in that young man?
In beauty or on the contrary?asked Aramislaughing. 
In ugliness, in so far as a man can resemble a woman.
Ah! Egad!cried Aramisyou set me thinking. No, in truth 
you are no visionary, my dear friend, and now I think of it 
-- you -- yes, i'faith, you're right -- those delicate, yet 
firm-set lips, those eyes which seem always at the command 
of the intellect and never of the heart! Yes, it is one of 
Milady's bastards!
You laugh Aramis.
From habit, that is all. I swear to you, I like no better 
than yourself to meet that viper in my path.
Ah! here is De Winter coming,said Athos. 
Good! one thing now is only awanting and that is, that our 
grooms should not keep us waiting.
No,said Athos. "I see them about twenty paces behind my 
lord. I recognize Grimaud by his long legs and his 
determined slouch. Tony carries our muskets." 
Then we set sail to-night?asked Aramisglancing toward 
the westwhere the sun had left a single golden cloud
whichdipping into the oceanappeared by degrees to be 
extinguished. 
Probably,said Athos. 
Diable!resumed AramisI have little fancy for the sea 
by day, still less at night; the sounds of wind and wave, 
the frightful movements of the vessel; I confess I prefer 
the convent of Noisy.
Athos smiled sadlyfor it was evident that he was thinking 
of other things as he listened to his friend and moved 
toward De Winter. 
What ails our friend?said Aramishe resembles one of 
Dante's damned, whose neck Apollyon has dislocated and who 
are ever looking at their heels. What the devil makes him 
glower thus behind him?
When De Winter perceived themin his turn he advanced 
toward them with surprising rapidity. 
What is the matter, my lord?said Athosand what puts 
you out of breath thus?
Nothing,replied De Winter; "nothing; and yet in passing 
the heights it seemed to me ---- " and he again turned 
round. 
Athos glanced at Aramis. 
But let us go,continued De Winter; "let us be off; the 
boat must be waiting for us and there is our sloop at anchor 
-- do you see it there? I wish I were on board already and 
he looked back again. 
He has seen him said Athos, in a low tone, to Aramis. 
They had reached the ladder which led to the boat. De Winter 
made the grooms who carried the arms and the porters with 
the luggage descend first and was about to follow them. 
At this moment Athos perceived a man walking on the seashore 
parallel to the jetty, and hastening his steps, as if to 
reach the other side of the port, scarcely twenty steps from 
the place of embarking. He fancied in the darkness that he 
recognized the young man who had questioned him. Athos now 
descended the ladder in his turn, without losing sight of 
the young man. The latter, to make a short cut, had appeared 
on a sluice. 
He certainly bodes us no good said Athos; but let us 
embark; once out at sealet him come." 
And Athos sprang into the boatwhich was immediately pushed 
off and which soon sped seawards under the efforts of four 
stalwart rowers. 
But the young man had begun to followor rather to advance 
before the boat. She was obliged to pass between the point 
of the jettysurmounted by a beacon just lightedand a 
rock which jutted out. They saw him in the distance climbing 
the rock in order to look down upon the boat as it passed. 
Ay, but,said Aramisthat young fellow is decidedly a 
spy.
Which is the young man?asked De Winterturning around. 
He who followed us and spoke to us awaits us there; 
behold!
De Winter turned and followed the direction of Aramis's 
finger. The beacon bathed with light the little strait 
through which they were about to pass and the rock where the 
young man stood with bare head and crossed arms. 
It is he!exclaimed De Winterseizing the arm of Athos; 
it is he! I thought I recognized him and I was not 
mistaken.
Whom do you mean?asked Aramis. 
Milady's son,replied Athos. 
The monk!exclaimed Grimaud. 
The young man heard these words and bent so forward over the 
rock that one might have supposed he was about to 
precipitate himself from it. 
Yes, it is I, my uncle -- I, the son of Milady -- I, the 
monk -- I, the secretary and friend of Cromwell -- I know 
you now, both you and your companions.
In that boat sat three menunquestionably bravewhose 
courage no man would have dared dispute; neverthelessat 
that voicethat accent and those gesturesthey felt a 
chill access of terror cramp their veins. As for Grimaud
his hair stood on end and drops of sweat ran down his brow. 
Ah!exclaimed Aramisthat is the nephew, the monk, and 
the son of Milady, as he says himself.
Alas, yes,murmured De Winter. 
Then wait,said Aramis; and with the terrible coolness 
which on important occasions he showedhe took one of the 
muskets from Tonyshouldered and aimed it at the young man
who stoodlike the accusing angelupon the rock. 
Fire!cried Grimaudunconsciously. 
Athos threw himself on the muzzle of the gun and arrested 
the shot which was about to be fired. 
The devil take you,said Aramis. "I had him so well at the 
point of my gun I should have sent a ball into his breast." 
It is enough to have killed the mother,said Athos
hoarsely. 
The mother was a wretch, who struck at us all and at those 
dear to us.
Yes, but the son has done us no harm.
Grimaudwho had risen to watch the effect of the shotfell 
back hopelesswringing his hands. 
The young man burst into a laugh. 
Ah, it is certainly you!he cried. "I know you even better 
now." 
His mocking laugh and threatening words passed over their 
headscarried by the breezeuntil lost in the depths of 
the horizon. Aramis shuddered. 
Be calm,exclaimed Athosfor Heaven's sake! have we 
ceased to be men?
No,said Aramisbut that fellow is a fiend; and ask the 
uncle whether I was wrong to rid him of his dear nephew.
De Winter only replied by a groan. 
It was all up with him,continued Aramis; "ah I much fear 
that with all your wisdom such mercy yet will prove supernal 
folly." 
Athos took Lord de Winter's hand and tried to turn the 
conversation. 
When shall we land in England?he asked; but De Winter 
seemed not to hear his words and made no reply. 
Hold, Athos,said Aramisperhaps there is yet time. See 
if he is still in the same place.
Athos turned around with an effort; the sight of the young 
man was evidently painful to himand there he still wasin 
facton the rockthe beacon shedding around himas it 
werea doubtful aureole. 
Decidedly, Aramis,said AthosI think I was wrong not to 
let you fire.
Hold your tongue,replied Aramis; "you would make me weep
if such a thing were possible." 
At this moment they were hailed by a voice from the sloop 
and a few seconds later menservants and baggage were 
aboard. The captain was only waiting for his passengers; 
hardly had they put foot on deck ere her head was turned 
towards Hastingswhere they were to disembark. At this 
instant the three friends turnedin spite of themselvesa 
last look on the rockupon the menacing figure which 
pursued them and now stood out with a distinctness still. 
Then a voice reached them once moresending this threat: 
To our next meeting, sirs, in England.
Te Deum for the Victory of Lens. 
The bustle which had been observed by Henrietta Maria and 
for which she had vainly sought to discover a reasonwas 
occasioned by the battle of Lensannounced by the prince's 
messengerthe Duc de Chatillonwho had taken such a noble 
part in the engagement; he wasbesidescharged to hang 
five and twenty flagstaken from the Lorraine partyas 
well as from the Spaniardsupon the arches of Notre Dame. 
Such news was decisive; it destroyedin favor of the court
the struggle commenced with parliament. The motive given for 
all the taxes summarily imposed and to which the parliament 
had made oppositionwas the necessity of sustaining the 
honor of France and the uncertain hope of beating the enemy. 
Nowsince the affair of Nordlingenthey had experienced 
nothing but reverses; the parliament had a plea for calling 
Mazarin to account for imaginary victoriesalways promised
ever deferred; but this time there really had been fighting
a triumph and a complete one. And this all knew so well that 
it was a double victory for the courta victory at home and 
abroad; so that even when the young king learned the news he 
exclaimedAh, gentlemen of the parliament, we shall see 
what you will say now!Upon which the queen had pressed the 
royal child to her heartwhose haughty and unruly 
sentiments were in such harmony with her own. A council was 
called on the same eveningbut nothing transpired of what 
had been decided on. It was only known that on the following 
Sunday a Te Deum would be sung at Notre Dame in honor of the 
victory of Lens. 
The following Sundaythenthe Parisians arose with joy; at 
that period a Te Deum was a grand affair; this kind of 
ceremony had not then been abused and it produced a great 
effect. The shops were desertedhouses closed; every one 
wished to see the young king with his motherand the famous 
Cardinal Mazarin whom they hated so much that no one wished 
to be deprived of his presence. Moreovergreat liberty 
prevailed throughout the immense crowd; every opinion was 
openly expressed and chorusedso to speakof coming 
insurrectionas the thousand bells of all the Paris 
churches rang out the Te Deum. The police belonging to the 
city being formed by the city itselfnothing threatening 
presented itself to disturb this concert of universal hatred 
or freeze the frequent scoffs of slanderous lips. 
Neverthelessat eight o'clock in the morning the regiment 
of the queen's guardscommanded by Guitantunder whom was 
his nephew Commingesmarched publiclypreceded by drums 
and trumpetsfiling off from the Palais Royal as far as 
Notre Damea manoeuvre which the Parisians witnessed 
tranquillydelighted as they were with military music and 
brilliant uniforms. 
Friquet had put on his Sunday clothesunder the pretext of 
having a swollen face which he had managed to simulate by 
introducing a handful of cherry kernels into one side of his 
mouthand had procured a whole holiday from Bazin. On 
leaving BazinFriquet started off to the Palais Royal
where he arrived at the moment of the turning out of the 
regiment of guards; and as he had only gone there for the 
enjoyment of seeing it and hearing the musiche took his 
place at their headbeating the drum on two pieces of slate 
and passing from that exercise to that of the trumpetwhich 
he counterfeited quite naturally with his mouth in a manner 
which had more than once called forth the praises of 
amateurs of imitative harmony. 
This amusement lasted from the Barriere des Sergens to the 
place of Notre Dameand Friquet found in it very real 
enjoyment; but when at last the regiment separated
penetrated the heart of the city and placed itself at the 
extremity of the Rue Saint Christophenear the Rue 
Cocatrixin which Broussel livedthen Friquet remembered 
that he had not had breakfast; and after thinking in which 
direction he had better turn his steps in order to 
accomplish this important act of the dayhe reflected 
deeply and decided that Councillor Broussel should bear the 
cost of this repast. 
In consequence he took to his heelsarrived breathlessly at 
the councillor's doorand knocked violently. 
His motherthe councillor's old servantopened it. 
What doest thou here, good-for-nothing?she saidand why 
art thou not at Notre Dame?
I have been there, mother,said Friquetbut I saw things 
happen of which Master Broussel ought to be warned, and so 
with Monsieur Bazin's permission -- you know, mother, 
Monsieur Bazin, the verger -- I came to speak to Monsieur 
Broussel.
And what hast thou to say, boy, to Monsieur Broussel?
I wish to tell him,replied Friquetscreaming with all 
his mightthat there is a whole regiment of guards coming 
this way. And as I hear everywhere that at the court they 
are ill-disposed to him, I wish to warn him, that he may be 
on his guard.
Broussel heard the scream of the young oddityand
enchanted with this excess of zealcame down to the first 
floorfor he wasin truthworking in his room on the 
second. 
Well,said hefriend, what matters the regiment of 
guards to us, and art thou not mad to make such a 
disturbance? Knowest thou not that it is the custom of these 
soldiers to act thus and that it is usual for the regiment 
to form themselves into two solid walls when the king goes 
by?
Friquet counterfeited surpriseand twisting his new cap 
around in his fingerssaid: 
It is not astonishing for you to know it, Monsieur 
Broussel, who knows everything; but as for me, by holy 
truth, I did not know it and I thought I would give you good 
advice; you must not be angry with me for that, Monsieur 
Broussel.
On the contrary, my boy, on the contrary, I am pleased with 
your zeal. Dame Nanette, look for those apricots which 
Madame de Longueville sent to us yesterday from Noisy and 
give half a dozen of them to your son, with a crust of new 
bread.
Oh, thank you, sir, thank you, Monsieur Broussel,said 
Friquet; "I am so fond of apricots!" 
Broussel then proceeded to his wife's room and asked for 
breakfast; it was nine o'clock. The councillor placed 
himself at the window; the street was completely deserted
but in the distance was heardlike the noise of the tide 
rushing inthe deep hum of the populous waves increasing 
now around Notre Dame. 
This noise redoubled when D'Artagnanwith a company of 
musketeersplaced himself at the gates of Notre Dame to 
secure the service of the church. He had instructed Porthos 
to profit by this opportunity to see the ceremony; and 
Porthosin full dressmounted his finest horsetaking the 
part of supernumerary musketeeras D'Artagnan had so often 
done formerly. The sergeant of this companya veteran of 
the Spanish warshad recognized Porthoshis old companion
and very soon all those who served under him were placed in 
possession of startling facts concerning the honor of the 
ancient musketeers of Treville. Porthos had not only been 
well received by the companybut he was moreover looked on 
with great admiration. 
At ten o'clock the guns of the Louvre announced the 
departure of the kingand then a movementsimilar to that 
of trees in a stormy wind that bend and writhe with agitated 
topsran though the multitudewhich was compressed behind 
the immovable muskets of the guard. At last the king 
appeared with the queen in a gilded chariot. Ten other 
carriages followedcontaining the ladies of honorthe 
officers of the royal householdand the court. 
God save the king!was the cry in every direction; the 
young monarch gravely put his head out of the windowlooked 
sufficiently grateful and even bowed; at which the cries of 
the multitude were renewed. 
Just as the court was settling down in the cathedrala 
carriagebearing the arms of Commingesquitted the line of 
the court carriages and proceeded slowly to the end of the 
Rue Saint Christophenow entirely deserted. When it arrived 
therefour guards and a police officerwho accompanied it
mounted into the heavy machine and closed the shutters; then 
through an opening cautiously madethe policeman began to 
watch the length of the Rue Cocatrixas if he was waiting 
for some one. 
All the world was occupied with the ceremonyso that 
neither the chariot nor the precautions taken by those who 
were within it had been observed. Friquetwhose eyeever 
on the alertcould alone have discovered themhad gone to 
devour his apricots upon the entablature of a house in the 
square of Notre Dame. Thence he saw the kingthe queen and 
Monsieur Mazarinand heard the mass as well as if he had 
been on duty. 
Toward the end of the servicethe queenseeing Comminges 
standing near herwaiting for a confirmation of the order 
she had given him before quitting the Louvresaid in a 
whisper: 
Go, Comminges, and may God aid you!
Comminges immediately left the church and entered the Rue 
Saint Christophe. Friquetseeing this fine officer thus 
walk awayfollowed by two guardsamused himself by 
pursuing them and did this so much the more gladly as the 
ceremony ended at that instant and the king remounted his 
carriage. 
Hardly had the police officer observed Comminges at the end 
of the Rue Cocatrix when he said one word to the coachman
who at once put his vehicle into motion and drove up before 
Broussel's door. Comminges knocked at the door at the same 
momentand Friquet was waiting behind Comminges until the 
door should be opened. 
What dost thou there, rascal?asked Comminges. 
I want to go into Master Broussel's house, captain,
replied Friquetin that wheedling way the "gamins" of Paris 
know so well how to assume when necessary. 
And on what floor does he live?asked Comminges. 
In the whole house,said Friquet; "the house belongs to 
him; he occupies the second floor when he works and descends 
to the first to take his meals; he must be at dinner now; it 
is noon." 
Good,said Comminges. 
At this moment the door was openedand having questioned 
the servant the officer learned that Master Broussel was at 
home and at dinner. 
Broussel was seated at the table with his familyhaving his 
wife opposite to himhis two daughters by his sideand his 
sonLouviereswhom we have already seen when the accident 
happened to the councillor -- an accident from which he had 
quite recovered -- at the bottom of the table. The worthy 
manrestored to perfect healthwas tasting the fine fruit 
which Madame de Longueville had sent to him. 
At sight of the officer Broussel was somewhat movedbut 
seeing him bow politely he rose and bowed also. Stillin 
spite of this reciprocal politenessthe countenances of the 
women betrayed a certain amount of uneasiness; Louvieres 
became very pale and waited impatiently for the officer to 
explain himself. 
Sir,said CommingesI am the bearer of an order from the 
king.
Very well, sir,replied Brousselwhat is this order?
And he held out his hand. 
I am commissioned to seize your person, sir,said 
Commingesin the same tone and with the same politeness; 
and if you will believe me you had better spare yourself 
the trouble of reading that long letter and follow me.
A thunderbolt falling in the midst of these good peopleso 
peacefully assembled therewould not have produced a more 
appalling effect. It was a horrible thing at that period to 
be imprisoned by the enmity of the king. Louvieres sprang 
forward to snatch his swordwhich stood against a chair in 
a corner of the room; but a glance from the worthy Broussel
who in the midst of It all did not lose his presence of 
mindchecked this foolhardy action of despair. Madame 
Brousselseparated by the width of the table from her 
husbandburst into tearsand the young girls clung to 
their father's arms. 
Come, sir,said Commingesmake haste; you must obey the 
king.
Sir,said BrousselI am in bad health and cannot give 
myself up a prisoner in this state; I must have time.
It is impossible,said Comminges; "the order is strict and 
must be put into execution this instant." 
Impossible!said Louvieres; "sirbeware of driving us to 
despair." 
Impossible!cried a shrill voice from the end of the room. 
Comminges turned and saw Dame Nanetteher eyes flashing 
with anger and a broom in her hand. 
My good Nanette, be quiet, I beseech you,said Broussel. 
Me! keep quiet while my master is being arrested! he, the 
support, the liberator, the father of the people! Ah! well, 
yes; you have to know me yet. Are you going?added she to 
Comminges. 
The latter smiled. 
Come, sir,said headdressing Brousselsilence that 
woman and follow me.
Silence me! me! me!said Nanette. "Ah! yet one wants some 
one besides you for thatmy fine king's cockatoo! You shall 
see." And Dame Nanette sprang to the windowthrew it open
and in such a piercing voice that it might have been heard 
in the square of Notre Dame: 
Help!she screamedmy master is being arrested; the 
Councillor Broussel is being arrested! Help!
Sir,said Commingesdeclare yourself at once; will you 
obey or do you intend to rebel against the king?
I obey, I obey, sir!cried Brousseltrying to disengage 
himself from the grasp of his two daughters and by a look 
restrain his sonwho seemed determined to dispute 
authority. 
In that case,commanded Commingessilence that old 
woman.
Ah! old woman!screamed Nanette. 
And she began to shriek more loudlyclinging to the bars of 
the window: 
Help! help! for Master Broussel, who is arrested because he 
has defended the people! Help!
Comminges seized the servant around the waist and would have 
dragged her from her post; but at that instant a treble 
voiceproceeding from a kind of entresolwas heard 
screeching: 
Murder! fire! assassins! Master Broussel is being killed! 
Master Broussel is being strangled.
It was Friquet's voice; and Dame Nanettefeeling herself 
supportedrecommenced with all her strength to sound her 
shrilly squawk. 
Many curious faces had already appeared at the windows and 
the people attracted to the end of the street began to run
first menthen groupsand then a crowd of people; hearing 
cries and seeing a chariot they could not understand it; but 
Friquet sprang from the entresol on to the top of the 
carriage. 
They want to arrest Master Broussel!he cried; "the guards 
are in the carriage and the officer is upstairs!" 
The crowd began to murmur and approached the house. The two 
guards who had remained in the lane mounted to the aid of 
Comminges; those who were in the chariot opened the doors 
and presented arms. 
Don't you see them?cried Friquetdon't you see? there 
they are!
The coachman turning aroundgave Friquet a slash with his 
whip which made him scream with pain. 
Ah! devil's coachman!cried Friquetyou're meddling too! 
Wait!
And regaining his entresol he overwhelmed the coachman with 
every projectile he could lay hands on. 
The tumult now began to increase; the street was not able to 
contain the spectators who assembled from every direction; 
the crowd invaded the space which the dreaded pikes of the 
guards had till then kept clear between them and the 
carriage. The soldierspushed back by these living walls
were in danger of being crushed against the spokes of the 
wheels and the panels of the carriages. The cries which the 
police officer repeated twenty times: "In the king's name 
were powerless against this formidable multitude -- seemed, 
on the contrary, to exasperate it still more; when, at the 
shout, In the name of the king an officer ran up, and 
seeing the uniforms ill-treated, he sprang into the scuffle 
sword in hand, and brought unexpected help to the guards. 
This gentleman was a young man, scarcely sixteen years of 
age, now white with anger. He leaped from his charger, 
placed his back against the shaft of the carriage, making a 
rampart of his horse, drew his pistols from their holsters 
and fastened them to his belt, and began to fight with the 
back sword, like a man accustomed to the handling of his 
weapon. 
During ten minutes he alone kept the crowd at bay; at last 
Comminges appeared, pushing Broussel before him. 
Let us break the carriage!" cried the people. 
In the king's name!cried Comminges. 
The first who advances is a dead man!cried Raoulfor it 
was in fact hewhofeeling himself pressed and almost 
crushed by a gigantic citizenpricked him with the point of 
his sword and sent him howling back. 
Commingesso to speakthrew Broussel into the carriage and 
sprang in after him. At this moment a shot was fired and a 
ball passed through the hat of Comminges and broke the arm 
of one of the guards. Comminges looked up and saw amidst the 
smoke the threatening face of Louvieres appearing at the 
window of the second floor. 
Very well, sir,said Commingesyou shall hear of this 
anon.
And you of me, sir,said Louvieres; "and we shall see then 
who can speak the loudest." 
Friquet and Nanette continued to shout; the criesthe noise 
of the shot and the intoxicating smell of powder produced 
their usual maddening effects. 
Down with the officer! down with him!was the cry. 
One step nearer,said Commingesputting down the sashes
that the interior of the carriage might be well seenand 
placing his sword on his prisoner's breastone step 
nearer, and I kill the prisoner; my orders were to carry him 
off alive or dead. I will take him dead, that's all.
A terrible cry was heardand the wife and daughters of 
Broussel held up their hands in supplication to the people; 
the latter knew that this officerwho was so palebut who 
appeared so determinedwould keep his word; they continued 
to threatenbut they began to disperse. 
Drive to the palace,said Comminges to the coachmanwho 
was by then more dead than alive. 
The man whipped his animalswhich cleared a way through the 
crowd; but on arriving on the Quai they were obliged to 
stop; the carriage was upsetthe horses carried off
stifledmangled by the crowd. Raoulon footfor he had 
not time to mount his horse againtiredlike the guards
of distributing blows with the flat of his swordhad 
recourse to its point. But this last and dreaded resource 
served only to exasperate the multitude. From time to time a 
shot from a musket or the blade of a rapier flashed among 
the crowd; projectiles continued to hail down from the 
windows and some shots were heardthe echo of whichthough 
they were probably fired in the airmade all hearts 
vibrate. Voicesunheard except on days of revolutionwere 
distinguished; faces were seen that only appeared on days of 
bloodshed. Cries of "Death! death to the guards! to the 
Seine with the officer!" were heard above all the noise
deafening as it was. Raoulhis hat in ribbonshis face 
bleedingfelt not only his strength but also his reason 
going; a red mist covered his sightand through this mist 
he saw a hundred threatening arms stretched over himready 
to seize upon him when he fell. The guards were unable to 
help any one -- each one was occupied with his 
self-preservation. All was over; carriageshorsesguards
and perhaps even the prisoner were about to be torn to 
shredswhen all at once a voice well known to Raoul was 
heardand suddenly a great sword glittered in the air; at 
the same time the crowd openedupsettrodden downand an 
officer of the musketeersstriking and cutting right and 
leftrushed up to Raoul and took him in his arms just as he 
was about to fall. 
God's blood!cried the officerhave they killed him? Woe 
to them if it be so!
And he turned aroundso stern with angerstrength and 
threatthat the most excited rebels hustled back on one 
anotherin order to escapeand some of them even rolled 
into the Seine. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan!murmured Raoul. 
Yes, 'sdeath! in person, and fortunately it seems for you, 
my young friend. Come on, here, you others,he continued
rising in his stirrupsraising his swordand addressing 
those musketeers who had not been able to follow his rapid 
onslaught. "Comesweep away all that for me! Shoulder 
muskets! Present arms! Aim ---- " 
At this command the mountain of populace thinned so suddenly 
that D'Artagnan could not repress a burst of Homeric 
laughter. 
Thank you, D'Artagnan,said Commingesshowing half of his 
body through the window of the broken vehiclethanks, my 
young friend; your name -- that I may mention it to the 
queen.
Raoul was about to reply when D'Artagnan bent down to his 
ear. 
Hold your tongue,said heand let me answer. Do not lose 
time, Comminges,he continued; "get out of the carriage if 
you can and make another draw up; be quickor in five 
minutes the mob will be on us again with swords and muskets 
and you will be killed. Hold! there's a carriage coming over 
yonder." 
Then bending again to Raoulhe whispered: "Above all things 
do not divulge your name." 
That's right. I will go,said Comminges; "and if they come 
backfire!" 
Not at all -- not at all,replied D'Artagnan; "let no one 
move. On the contraryone shot at this moment would be paid 
for dearly to-morrow." 
Comminges took his four guards and as many musketeers and 
ran to the carriagefrom which he made the people inside 
dismountand brought them to the vehicle which had upset. 
But when it was necessary to convey the prisoner from one 
carriage to the otherthe peoplecatching sight of him 
whom they called their liberatoruttered every imaginable 
cry and knotted themselves once more around the vehicle. 
Start, start!said D'Artagnan. "There are ten men to 
accompany you. I will keep twenty to hold in check the mob; 
goand lose not a moment. Ten men for Monsieur de 
Comminges." 
As the carriage started off the cries were redoubled and 
more than ten thousand people thronged the Quai and 
overflowed the Pont Neuf and adjacent streets. A few shots 
were fired and one musketeer was wounded. 
Forward!cried D'Artagnandriven to extremitiesbiting 
his moustache; and then he charged with his twenty men and 
dispersed them in fear. One man alone remained in his place
gun in hand. 
Ah!he exclaimedit is thou who wouldst have him 
assassinated? Wait an instant.And he pointed his gun at 
D'Artagnanwho was riding toward him at full speed. 
D'Artagnan bent down to his horse's neck the young man 
firedand the ball severed the feathers from the hat. The 
horse startedbrushed against the imprudent manwho 
thought by his strength alone to stay the tempestand he 
fell against the wall. D'Artagnan pulled up his horseand 
whilst his musketeers continued to chargehe returned and 
bent with drawn sword over the man he had knocked down. 
Oh, sir!exclaimed Raoulrecognizing the young man as 
having seen him in the Rue Cocatrixspare him! it is his 
son!
D'Artagnan's arm dropped to his side. "Ahyou are his son!" 
he said; "that is a different thing." 
Sir, I surrender,said Louvierespresenting his unloaded 
musket to the officer. 
Eh, no! do not surrender, egad! On the contrary, be off, 
and quickly. If I take you, you will be hung!
The young man did not wait to be told twicebut passing 
under the horse's head disappeared at the corner of the Rue 
Guenegaud. 
I'faith!said D'Artagnan to Raoulyou were just in time 
to stay my hand. He was a dead man; and on my honor, if I 
had discovered that it was his son, I should have regretted 
having killed him.
Ah! sir!said Raoulallow me, after thanking you for 
that poor fellow's life, to thank you on my own account. I 
too, sir, was almost dead when you arrived.
Wait, wait, young man; do not fatigue yourself with 
speaking. We can talk of it afterward.
Then seeing that the musketeers had cleared the Quai from 
the Pont Neuf to the Quai Saint Michaelhe raised his sword 
for them to double their speed. The musketeers trotted up
and at the same time the ten men whom D'Artagnan had given 
to Comminges appeared. 
Halloo!cried D'Artagnan; "has something fresh happened?" 
Eh, sir!replied the sergeanttheir vehicle has broken 
down a second time; it really must be doomed.
They are bad managers,said D'Artagnanshrugging his 
shoulders. "When a carriage is chosenit ought to be 
strong. The carriage in which a Broussel is to be arrested 
ought to be able to bear ten thousand men." 
What are your commands, lieutenant?
Take the detachment and conduct him to his place.
But you will be left alone?
Certainly. So you suppose I have need of an escort? Go.
The musketeers set off and D'Artagnan was left alone with 
Raoul. 
Now,he saidare you in pain?
Yes; my head is not only swimming but burning.
What's the matter with this head?said D'Artagnanraising 
the battered hat. "Ah! ah! a bruise." 
Yes, I think I received a flower-pot upon my head.
Brutes!said D'Artagnan. "But were you not on horseback? 
you have spurs." 
Yes, but I got down to defend Monsieur de Comminges and my 
horse was taken away. Here it is, I see.
At this very moment Friquet passedmounted on Raoul's 
horsewaving his parti-colored cap and cryingBroussel! 
Broussel!
Halloo! stop, rascal!cried D'Artagnan. "Bring hither that 
horse." 
Friquet heard perfectlybut he pretended not to do so and 
tried to continue his road. D'Artagnan felt inclined for an 
instant to pursue Master Friquetbut not wishing to leave 
Raoul alone he contented himself with taking a pistol from 
the holster and cocking it. 
Friquet had a quick eye and a fine ear. He saw D'Artagnan's 
movementheard the sound of the clickand stopped at once. 
Ah! it is you, your honor,he saidadvancing toward 
D'Artagnan; "and I am truly pleased to meet you." 
D'Artagnan looked attentively at Friquet and recognized the 
little chorister of the Rue de la Calandre. 
Ah! 'tis thou, rascal!said hecome here: so thou hast 
changed thy trade; thou art no longer a choir boy nor a 
tavern boy; thou hast become a horse stealer?
Ah, your honor, how can you say so?exclaimed Friquet. "I 
was seeking the gentleman to whom this horse belongs -- an 
officerbrave and handsome as a youthful Caesar; "then
pretending to see Raoul for the first time: 
Ah! but if I mistake not,continued hehere he is; you 
won't forget the boy, sir.
Raoul put his hand in his pocket. 
What are you about?asked D'Artagnan. 
To give ten francs to this honest fellow,replied Raoul
taking a pistole from his pocket. 
Ten kicks on his back!said D'Artagnan; "be offyou 
little villainand forget not that I have your address." 
Friquetwho did not expect to be let off so cheaply
bounded off like a gazelle up the Quai a la Rue Dauphine
and disappeared. Raoul mounted his horseand both leisurely 
took their way to the Rue Tiquetonne. 
D'Artagnan watched over the youth as if he had been his own 
son. 
They arrived without accident at the Hotel de la Chevrette. 
The handsome Madeleine announced to D'Artagnan that Planchet 
had returnedbringing Musqueton with himwho had 
heroically borne the extraction of the ball and was as well 
as his state would permit. 
D'Artagnan desired Planchet to be summonedbut he had 
disappeared. 
Then bring some wine,said D'Artagnan. "You are much 
pleased with yourself said he to Raoul when they were 
alone, are you not?" 
Well, yes,replied Raoul. "It seems to me I did my duty. I 
defended the king." 
And who told you to defend the king?
The Comte de la Fere himself.
Yes, the king; but to-day you have not fought for the king, 
you have fought for Mazarin; which is not quite the same 
thing.
But you yourself?
Oh, for me; that is another matter. I obey my captain's 
orders. As for you, your captain is the prince, understand 
that rightly; you have no other. But has one ever seen such 
a wild fellow,continued hemaking himself a Mazarinist 
and helping to arrest Broussel! Breathe not a word of that, 
or the Comte de la Fere will be furious.
You think the count will be angry with me?
Think it? I'm certain of it; were it not for that, I should 
thank you, for you have worked for us. However, I scold you 
instead of him, and in his place; the storm will blow over 
more easily, believe me. And moreover, my dear child,
continued D'ArtagnanI am making use of the privilege 
conceded to me by your guardian.
I do not understand you, sir,said Raoul. 
D'Artagnan roseand taking a letter from his writing-desk
presented it to Raoul. The face of the latter became serious 
when he had cast his eyes upon the paper. 
Oh, mon Dieu!he saidraising his fine eyes to 
D'Artagnanmoist with tearsthe count has left Paris 
without seeing me?
He left four days ago,said D'Artagnan. 
But this letter seems to intimate that he is about to incur 
danger, perhaps death.
He -- he -- incur danger of death! No, be not anxious; he 
is traveling on business and will return ere long. I hope 
you have no repugnance to accept me as your guardian in the 
interim.
Oh, no, Monsieur d'Artagnan,said Raoulyou are such a 
brave gentleman and the Comte de la Fere has so much 
affection for you!
Eh! Egad! love me too; I will not torment you much, but 
only on condition that you become a Frondist, my young 
friend, and a hearty Frondist, too.
But can I continue to visit Madame de Chevreuse?
I should say you could! and the coadjutor and Madame de 
Longueville; and if the worthy Broussel were there, whom you 
so stupidly helped arrest, I should tell you to excuse 
yourself to him at once and kiss him on both cheeks.
Well, sir, I will obey you, although I do not understand 
you. 
It is unnecessary for you to understand. Hold continued 
D'Artagnan, turning toward the door, which had just opened, 
here is Monsieur du Vallonwho comes with his coat torn." 
Yes, but in exchange,said Porthoscovered with 
perspiration and soiled by dustin exchange, I have torn 
many skins. Those wretches wanted to take away my sword! 
Deuce take 'em, what a popular commotion!continued the 
giantin his quiet manner; "but I knocked down more than 
twenty with the hilt of Balizarde. A draught of wine
D'Artagnan." 
OhI'll aswer for you said the Gascon, filling Porthos's 
glass to the brim; but when you have drunkgive me your 
opinion." 
Upon what?asked Porthos. 
Look here,resumed D'Artagnan; "here is Monsieur de 
Bragelonnewho determined at all risks to aid the arrest of 
Broussel and whom I had great difficulty to prevent 
defending Monsieur de Comminges." 
The devil!said Porthos; "and his guardianwhat would he 
have said to that?" 
Do you hear?interrupted D'Artagnan; "become a Frondist
my friendbelong to the Frondeand remember that I fill 
the count's place in everything;" and he jingled his money. 
Will you come?said he to Porthos. 
Where?asked Porthosfilling a second glass of wine. 
To present our respects to the cardinal.
Porthos swallowed the second glass with the same grace with 
which he had imbibed the firsttook his beaver and followed 
D'Artagnan. As for Raoulhe remained bewildered with what 
he had seenhaving been forbidden by D'Artagnan to leave 
the room until the tumult was over. 
The Beggar of St. Eustache. 
D'Artagnan had calculated that in not going at once to the 
Palais Royal he would give Comminges time to arrive before 
himand consequently to make the cardinal acquainted with 
the eminent services which heD'Artagnanand his friend 
had rendered to the queen's party in the morning. 
They were indeed admirably received by Mazarinwho paid 
them numerous complimentsand announced that they were more 
than half on their way to obtain what they desirednamely
D'Artagnan his captaincyPorthos his barony. 
D'Artagnan would have preferred money in hand to all that 
fine talkfor he knew well that to Mazarin it was easy to 
promise and hard to perform. Butthough he held the 
cardinal's promises as of little worthhe affected to be 
completely satisfiedfor he was unwilling to discourage 
Porthos. 
Whilst the two friends were with the cardinalthe queen 
sent for him. Mazarinthinking that it would be the means 
of increasing the zeal of his two defenders if he procured 
them personal thanks from the queenmotioned them to follow 
him. D'Artagnan and Porthos pointed to their dusty and torn 
dressesbut the cardinal shook his head. 
Those costumes,he saidare of more worth than most of 
those which you will see on the backs of the queen's 
courtiers; they are costumes of battle.
D'Artagnan and Porthos obeyed. The court of Anne of Austria 
was full of gayety and animation; forafter having gained a 
victory over the Spaniardit had just gained another over 
the people. Broussel had been conducted out of Paris without 
further resistanceand was at this time in the prison of 
Saint Germain; while Blancmesnilwho was arrested at the 
same timebut whose arrest had been made without difficulty 
or noisewas safe in the Castle of Vincennes. 
Comminges was near the queenwho was questioning him upon 
the details of his expeditionand every one was listening 
to his accountwhen D'Artagnan and Porthos were perceived 
at the doorbehind the cardinal. 
Ah, madame,said Commingeshastening to D'Artagnanhere 
is one who can tell you better than myself, for he was my 
protector. Without him I should probably at this moment be a 
dead fish in the nets at Saint Cloud, for it was a question 
of nothing less than throwing me into the river. Speak, 
D'Artagnan, speak.
D'Artagnan had been a hundred times in the same room with 
the queen since he had become lieutenant of the musketeers
but her majesty had never once spoken to him. 
Well, sir,at last said Anne of Austriayou are silent, 
after rendering such a service?
Madame,replied D'ArtagnanI have nought to say, save 
that my life is ever at your majesty's service, and that I 
shall only be happy the day I lose it for you. 
I know thatsir; I have known that said the queen, a 
long time; therefore I am delighted to be able thus publicly 
to mark my gratitude and my esteem." 
Permit me, madame,said D'Artagnanto reserve a portion 
for my friend; like myself(he laid an emphasis on these 
words) "an ancient musketeer of the company of Treville; he 
has done wonders." 
His name?asked the queen. 
In the regiment,said D'Artagnanhe is called Porthos
(the queen started)but his true name is the Chevalier du 
Vallon.
De Bracieux de Pierrefonds,added Porthos. 
These names are too numerous for me to remember them all, 
and I will content myself with the first,said the queen
graciously. Porthos bowed. At this moment the coadjutor was 
announced; a cry of surprise ran through the royal 
assemblage. Although the coadjutor had preached that same 
morning it was well known that he leaned much to the side of 
the Fronde; and Mazarinin requesting the archbishop of 
Paris to make his nephew preachhad evidently had the 
intention of administering to Monsieur de Retz one of those 
Italian kicks he so much enjoyed giving. 
The fact wasin leaving Notre Dame the coadjutor had 
learned the event of the day. Although almost engaged to the 
leaders of the Fronde he had not gone so far but that 
retreat was possible should the court offer him the 
advantages for which he was ambitious and to which the 
coadjutorship was but a stepping-stone. Monsieur de Retz 
wished to become archbishop in his uncle's placeand 
cardinallike Mazarin; and the popular party could with 
difficulty accord him favors so entirely royal. He therefore 
hastened to the palace to congratulate the queen on the 
battle of Lensdetermined beforehand to act with or against 
the courtas his congratulations were well or ill received. 
The coadjutor possessedperhapsas much wit as all those 
put together who were assembled at the court to laugh at 
him. His speechthereforewas so well turnedthat in 
spite of the great wish felt by the courtiers to laughthey 
could find no point on which to vent their ridicule. He 
concluded by saying that he placed his feeble influence at 
her majesty's command. 
During the whole time he was speakingthe queen appeared to 
be well pleased with the coadjutor's harangue; but 
terminating as it did with such a phrasethe only one which 
could be caught at by the jokersAnne turned around and 
directed a glance toward her favoriteswhich announced that 
she delivered up the coadjutor to their tender mercies. 
Immediately the wits of the court plunged into satire. 
Nogent-Beautinthe fool of the courtexclaimed that "the 
queen was very happy to have the succor of religion at such 
a moment." This caused a universal burst of laughter. The 
Count de Villeroy said that "he did not know how any fear 
could be entertained for a momentwhen the court hadto 
defend itself against the parliament and the citizens of 
Parishis holiness the coadjutorwho by a signal could 
raise an army of curateschurch porters and vergers." 
The Marechal de la Meilleraie added that in case the 
coadjutor should appear on the field of battle it would be a 
pity that he should not be distinguished in the melee by 
wearing a red hatas Henry IV. had been distinguished by 
his white plume at the battle of Ivry. 
During this stormGondywho had it in his power to make it 
most unpleasant for the jestersremained calm and stern. 
The queen at last asked him if he had anything to add to the 
fine discourse he had just made to her. 
Yes, madame,replied the coadjutor; "I have to beg you to 
reflect twice ere you cause a civil war in the kingdom." 
The queen turned her back and the laughing recommenced. 
The coadjutor bowed and left the palacecasting upon the 
cardinal such a glance as is best understood by mortal foes. 
That glance was so sharp that it penetrated the heart of 
Mazarinwhoreading in it a declaration of warseized 
D'Artagnan by the arm and said: 
If occasion requires, monsieur, you will remember that man 
who has just gone out, will you not?
Yes, my lord,he replied. Thenturning toward Porthos
The devil!said hethis has a bad look. I dislike these 
quarrels among men of the church.
Gondy withdrewdistributing benedictions on his wayand 
finding a malicious satisfaction in causing the adherents of 
his foes to prostrate themselves at his feet. 
Oh!he murmuredas he left the threshold of the palace: 
ungrateful court! faithless court! cowardly court! I will 
teach you how to laugh to-morrow -- but in another manner.
But whilst they were indulging in extravagant joy at the 
Palais Royalto increase the hilarity of the queen
Mazarina man of senseand whose fearmoreovergave him 
foresightlost no time in making idle and dangerous jokes; 
he went out after the coadjutorsettled his accountlocked 
up his goldand had confidential workmen to contrive hiding 
places in his walls. 
On his return home the coadjutor was informed that a young 
man hail come in after his departure and was waiting for 
him; he started with delight whenon demanding the name of 
this young manhe learned that it was Louvieres. He 
hastened to his cabinet. Broussel's son was therestill 
furiousand still bearing bloody marks of his struggle with 
the king's officers. The only precaution he had taken in 
coming to the archbishopric was to leave his arquebuse in 
the hands of a friend. 
The coadjutor went to him and held out his hand. The young 
man gazed at him as if he would have read the secret of his 
heart. 
My dear Monsieur Louvieres,said the coadjutorbelieve 
me, I am truly concerned for the misfortune which has 
happened to you.
Is that true, and do you speak seriously?asked Louvieres. 
From the depth of my heart,said Gondy. 
In that case, my lord, the time for words has passed and 
the hour for action is at hand; my lord, in three days, if 
you wish it, my father will be out of prison and in six 
months you may be cardinal.
The coadjutor started. 
Oh! let us speak frankly,continued Louvieresand act in 
a straightforward manner. Thirty thousand crowns in alms is 
not given, as you have done for the last six months, out of 
pure Christian charity; that would be too grand. You are 
ambitious -- it is natural; you are a man of genius and you 
know your worth. As for me, I hate the court and have but 
one desire at this moment -- vengeance. Give us the clergy 
and the people, of whom you can dispose, and I will bring 
you the citizens and the parliament; with these four 
elements Paris is ours in a week; and believe me, monsieur 
coadjutor, the court will give from fear what it will not 
give from good-will.
It was now the coadjutor's turn to fix his piercing eyes on 
Louvieres. 
But, Monsieur Louvieres, are you aware that it is simply 
civil war you are proposing to me?
You have been preparing long enough, my lord, for it to be 
welcome to you now.
Never mind,said the coadjutor; "you must be well aware 
that this requires reflection." 
And how many hours of reflection do you ask?
Twelve hours, sir; is it too long?
It is now noon; at midnight I will be at your house.
If I should not be in, wait for me.
Good! at midnight, my lord.
At midnight, my dear Monsieur Louvieres.
When once more alone Gondy sent to summon all the curates 
with whom he had any connection to his house. Two hours 
laterthirty officiating ministers from the most populous
and consequently the most disturbed parishes of Paris had 
assembled there. Gondy related to them the insults he had 
received at the Palais Royal and retailed the jests of 
Beautinthe Count de Villeroy and Marechal de la 
Meilleraie. The curates asked him what was to be done. 
Simply this,said the coadjutor. "You are the directors of 
all consciences. Wellundermine in them the miserable 
prejudice of respect and fear of kings; teach your flocks 
that the queen is a tyrant; and repeat often and loudlyso 
that all may know itthat the misfortunes of France are 
caused by Mazarinher lover and her destroyer; begin this 
work to-daythis instant evenand in three days I shall 
expect the result. For the restif any one of you have 
further or better counsel to expoundI will listen to him 
with the greatest pleasure." 
Three curates remained -- those of St. MerriSt. Sulpice 
and St. Eustache. The others withdrew. 
You think, then, that you can help me more efficaciously 
than your brothers?said Gondy. 
We hope so,answered the curates. 
Let us hear. Monsieur de St. Merri, you begin.
My lord, I have in my parish a man who might be of the 
greatest use to you.
Who and what is this man?
A shopkeeper in the Rue des Lombards, who has great 
influence upon the commerce of his quarter.
What is his name?
He is named Planchet, who himself also caused a rising 
about six weeks ago; but as he was searched for after this 
emeute he disappeared.
And can you find him?
I hope so. I think he has not been arrested, and as I am 
his wife's confessor, if she knows where he is I shall know 
it too.
Very well, sir, find this man, and when you have found him 
bring him to me.
We will be with you at six o'clock, my lord.
Go, my dear curate, and may God assist you!
And you, sir?continued Gondyturning to the curate of 
St. Sulpice. 
I, my lord,said the latterI know a man who has 
rendered great services to a very popular prince and who 
would make an excellent leader of revolt. Him I can place at 
your disposal; it is Count de Rochefort.
I know him also, but unfortunately he is not in Paris.
My lord, he has been for three days at the Rue Cassette.
And wherefore has he not been to see me?
He was told -- my lord will pardon me ---- 
Certainly, speak.
That your lordship was about to treat with the court.
Gondy bit his lips. 
They are mistaken; bring him here at eight o'clock, sir, 
and may Heaven bless you as I bless you!
And now 'tis your turn,said the coadjutorturning to the 
last that remained; "have you anything as good to offer me 
as the two gentlemen who have left us?" 
Better, my lord.
Diable! think what a solemn engagement you are making; one 
has offered a wealthy shopkeeper, the other a count; you are 
going, then, to offer a prince, are you?
I offer you a beggar, my lord.
Ah! ah!said Gondyreflectingyou are right, sir; some 
one who could raise the legion of paupers who choke up the 
crossings of Paris; some one who would know how to cry aloud 
to them, that all France might hear it, that it is Mazarin 
who has reduced them to poverty.
Exactly your man.
Bravo! and the man?
A plain and simple beggar, as I have said, my lord, who 
asks for alms, as he gives holy water; a practice he has 
carried on for six years on the steps of St. Eustache.
And you say that he has a great influence over his 
compeers?
Are you aware, my lord, that mendacity is an organized 
body, a kind of association of those who have nothing 
against those who have everything; an association in which 
every one takes his share; one that elects a leader?
Yes, I have heard it said,replied the coadjutor. 
Well, the man whom I offer you is a general syndic.
And what do you know of him?
Nothing, my lord, except that he is tormented with 
remorse.
What makes you think so?
On the twenty-eighth of every month he makes me say a mass 
for the repose of the soul of one who died a violent death; 
yesterday I said this mass again.
And his name?
Maillard; but I do not think it is his right one.
And think you that we should find him at this hour at his 
post?
Certainly.
Let us go and see your beggar, sir, and if he is such as 
you describe him, you are right -- it will be you who have 
discovered the true treasure.
Gondy dressed himself as an officerput on a felt cap with 
a red featherhung on a long swordbuckled spurs to his 
bootswrapped himself in an ample cloak and followed the 
curate. 
The coadjutor and his companion passed through all the 
streets lying between the archbishopric and the St. Eustache 
Churchwatching carefully to ascertain the popular feeling. 
The people were in an excited moodbutlike a swarm of 
frightened beesseemed not to know at what point to 
concentrate; and it was very evident that if leaders of the 
people were not provided all this agitation would pass off 
in idle buzzing. 
On arriving at the Rue des Prouvairesthe curate pointed 
toward the square before the church. 
Stop!he saidthere he is at his post.
Gondy looked at the spot indicated and perceived a beggar 
seated in a chair and leaning against one of the moldings; a 
little basin was near him and he held a holy water brush in 
his hand. 
Is it by permission that he remains there?asked Gondy. 
No, my lord; these places are bought. I believe this man 
paid his predecessor a hundred pistoles for his.
The rascal is rich, then?
Some of those men sometimes die worth twenty thousand and 
twenty-five and thirty thousand francs and sometimes more.
Hum!said Gondylaughing; "I was not aware my alms were 
so well invested." 
In the meantime they were advancing toward the squareand 
the moment the coadjutor and the curate put their feet on 
the first church step the mendicant arose and proffered his 
brush. 
He was a man between sixty-six and sixty-eight years of age
littlerather stoutwith gray hair and light eyes. His 
countenance denoted the struggle between two opposite 
principles -- a wicked naturesubdued by determination
perhaps by repentance. 
He started on seeing the cavalier with the curate. The 
latter and the coadjutor touched the brush with the tips of 
their fingers and made the sign of the cross; the coadjutor 
threw a piece of money into the hatwhich was on the 
ground. 
Maillard,began the curatethis gentleman and I have 
come to talk with you a little.
With me!said the mendicant; "it is a great honor for a 
poor distributor of holy water." 
There was an ironical tone in his voice which he could not 
quite disguise and which astonished the coadjutor. 
Yes,continued the curateapparently accustomed to this 
toneyes, we wish to know your opinion of the events of 
to-day and what you have heard said by people going in and 
out of the church.
The mendicant shook his head. 
These are melancholy doings, your reverence, which always 
fall again upon the poor. As to what is said, everybody is 
discontented, everybody complains, but `everybody' means 
`nobody.'
Explain yourself, my good friend,said the coadjutor. 
I mean that all these cries, all these complaints, these 
curses, produce nothing but storms and flashes and that is 
all; but the lightning will not strike until there is a hand 
to guide it.
My friend,said Gondyyou seem to be a clever and a 
thoughtful man; are you disposed to take a part in a little 
civil war, should we have one, and put at the command of the 
leader, should we find one, your personal influence and the 
influence you have acquired over your comrades?
Yes, sir, provided this war were approved of by the church 
and would advance the end I wish to attain -- I mean, the 
remission of my sins.
The war will not only be approved of, but directed by the 
church. As for the remission of your sins, we have the 
archbishop of Paris, who has the very greatest power at the 
court of Rome, and even the coadjutor, who possesses some 
plenary indulgences; we will recommend you to him.
Consider, Maillard,said the curatethat I have 
recommended you to this gentleman, who is a powerful lord, 
and that I have made myself responsible for you.
I know, monsieur le cure,said the beggarthat you have 
always been very kind to me, and therefore I, in my turn, 
will be serviceable to you.
And do you think your power as great with the fraternity as 
monsieur le cure told me it was just now?
I think they have some esteem for me,said the mendicant 
with prideand that not only will they obey me, but 
wherever I go they will follow me.
And could you count on fifty resolute men, good, 
unemployed, but active souls, brawlers, capable of bringing 
down the walls of the Palais Royal by crying, `Down with 
Mazarin,' as fell those at Jericho?
I think,said the beggarI can undertake things more 
difficult and more important than that.
Ah, ah,said Gondyyou will undertake, then, some night, 
to throw up some ten barricades?
I will undertake to throw up fifty, and when the day comes, 
to defend them.
I'faith!exclaimed Gondyyou speak with a certainty that 
gives me pleasure; and since monsieur le cure can answer for 
you ---- 
I answer for him,said the curate. 
Here is a bag containing five hundred pistoles in gold; 
make all your arrangements, and tell me where I shall be 
able to find you this evening at ten o'clock.
It must be on some elevated place, whence a given signal 
may be seen in every part of Paris.
Shall I give you a line for the vicar of St. Jacques de la 
Boucherie? he will let you into the rooms in his tower,
said the curate. 
Capital,answered the mendicant. 
Then,said the coadjutorthis evening, at ten o'clock, 
and if I am pleased with you another bag of five hundred 
pistoles will be at your disposal.
The eyes of the mendicant dashed with cupiditybut he 
quickly suppressed his emotion. 
This evening, sir,he repliedall will be ready.
The Tower of St. Jacques de la Boucherie. 
At a quarter to six o'clockMonsieur de Gondyhaving 
finished his businessreturned to the archiepiscopal 
palace. 
At six o'clock the curate of St. Merri was announced. 
The coadjutor glanced rapidly behind and saw that he was 
followed by another man. The curate then enteredfollowed 
by Planchet. 
Your holiness,said the curatehere is the person of 
whom I had the honor to speak to you.
Planchet saluted in the manner of one accustomed to fine 
houses. 
And you are disposed to serve the cause of the people?
asked Gondy. 
Most undoubtedly,said Planchet. "I am a Frondist from my 
heart. You see in mesuch as I ama person sentenced to be 
hung." 
And on what account?
I rescued from the hands of Mazarin's police a noble lord 
whom they were conducting back to the Bastile, where he had 
been for five years.
Will you name him?
Oh, you know him well, my lord -- it is Count de 
Rochefort.
Ah! really, yes,said the coadjutorI have heard this 
affair mentioned. You raised the whole district, so they 
told me!
Very nearly,replied Planchetwith a self-satisfied air. 
And your business is ---- 
That of a confectioner, in the Rue des Lombards.
Explain to me how it happens that, following so peaceful a 
business, you had such warlike inclinations.
Why does my lord, belonging to the church, now receive me 
in the dress of an officer, with a sword at his side and 
spurs to his boots?
Not badly answered, i'faith,said Gondylaughing; "but I 
haveyou must knowalways hadin spite of my bands
warlike inclinations." 
Well, my lord, before I became a confectioner I myself was 
three years sergeant in the Piedmontese regiment, and before 
I became sergeant I was for eighteen months the servant of 
Monsieur d'Artagnan.
The lieutenant of musketeers?asked Gondy. 
Himself, my lord.
But he is said to be a furious Mazarinist.
Phew!whistled Planchet. 
What do you mean by that?
Nothing, my lord; Monsieur d'Artagnan belongs to the 
service; Monsieur d'Artagnan makes it his business to defend 
the cardinal, who pays him, as much as we make it ours, we 
citizens, to attack him, whom he robs.
You are an intelligent fellow, my friend; can we count upon 
you?
You may count upon me, my lord, provided you want to make a 
complete upheaval of the city.
'Tis that exactly. How many men, think you, you could 
collect together to-night?
Two hundred muskets and five hundred halberds.
Let there be only one man in every district who can do as 
much and by to-morrow we shall have quite a powerful army. 
Are you disposed to obey Count de Rochefort?
I would follow him to hell, and that is saying not a 
little, as I believe him entirely capable of the descent.
Bravo!
By what sign to-morrow shall we be able to distinguish 
friends from foes?
Every Frondist must put a knot of straw in his hat.
Good! Give the watchword.
Do you want money?
Money never comes amiss at any time, my lord; if one has it 
not, one must do without it; with it, matters go on much 
better and more rapidly.
Gondy went to a box and drew forth a bag. 
Here are five hundred pistoles,he said; "and if the 
action goes off well you may reckon upon a similar sum 
to-morrow." 
I will give a faithful account of the sum to your 
lordship,said Planchetputting the bag under his arm. 
That is right; I recommend the cardinal to your attention.
Make your mind easy, he is in good hands.
Planchet went outthe curate remaining for a moment 
Are you satisfied, my lord?he asked. 
Yes; he appears to be a resolute fellow.
Well, he will do more than he has promised.
He will do wonders then.
The curate rejoined Planchetwho was waiting for him on the 
stairs. Ten minutes later the curate of St. Sulpice was 
announced. As soon as the door of Gondy's study was opened a 
man rushed in. It was the Count de Rochefort. 
'Tis you, then, my dear count,cried Gondyoffering his 
hand. 
You have made up your mind at last, my lord?said 
Rochefort. 
It has been made up a long time,said Gondy. 
Let us say no more on the subject; you tell me so, I 
believe you. Well, we are going to give a ball to Mazarin.
I hope so.
And when will the dance begin?
The invitations are given for this evening,said the 
coadjutorbut the violins will not begin to play until 
to-morrow morning.
You may reckon upon me and upon fifty soldiers which the 
Chevalier d'Humieres has promised me whenever I need them.
Upon fifty soldiers?
Yes, he is making recruits and he will lend them to me; if 
any are missing when the fete is over, I shall replace 
them.
Good, my dear Rochefort; but that is not all. What have you 
done with Monsieur de Beaufort?
He is in Vendome, where he will wait until I write to him 
to return to Paris.
Write to him; now's the time.
You are sure of your enterprise?
Yes, but he must make haste; for hardly will the people of 
Paris have revolted before we shall have a score of princes 
begging to lead them. If he defers he will find the place of 
honor taken.
Shall I send word to him as coming from you?
Yes certainly.
Shall I tell him that he can count on you?
To the end.
And you will leave the command to him?
Of the war, yes, but in politics ---- 
You must know it is not his element.
He must leave me to negotiate for my cardinal's hat in my 
own fashion.
You care about it, then, so much?
Since they force me to wear a hat of a form which does not 
become me,said GondyI wish at least that the hat should 
be red.
One must not dispute matters of taste and colors,said 
Rochefortlaughing. "I answer for his consent." 
How soon can he be here?
In five days.
Let him come and he will find a change, I will answer for 
it.
Therefore, go and collect your fifty men and hold yourself 
in readiness.
For what?
For everything.
Is there any signal for the general rally?
A knot of straw in the hat.
Very good. Adieu, my lord.
Adieu, my dear Rochefort.
Ah, Monsieur Mazarin, Monsieur Mazarin,said Rochefort
leading off his curatewho had not found an opportunity of 
uttering a single word during the foregoing dialogueyou 
will see whether I am too old to be a man of action.
It was half-past nine o'clock and the coadjutor required 
half an hour to go from the archbishop's palace to the tower 
of St. Jacques de la Boucherie. He remarked that a light was 
burning in one of the highest windows of the tower. "Good 
said he, our syndic is at his post." 
He knocked and the door was opened. The vicar himself 
awaited himconducted him to the top of the towerand when 
there pointed to a little doorplaced the light which he 
had brought with him in a corner of the wallthat the 
coadjutor might be able to find it on his returnand went 
down again. Although the key was in the door the coadjutor 
knocked. 
Come in,said a voice which he recognized as that of the 
mendicantwhom he found lying on a kind of truckle bed. He 
rose on the entrance of the coadjutorand at that moment 
ten o'clock struck. 
Well,said Gondyhave you kept your word with me?
Not exactly,replied the mendicant. 
How is that?
You asked me for five hundred men, did you not? Well, I 
have ten thousand for you.
You are not boasting?
Do you wish for a proof?
Yes.
There were three candles alighteach of which burnt before 
a windowone looking upon the citythe other upon the 
Palais Royaland a third upon the Rue Saint Denis. 
The man went silently to each of the candles and blew them 
out one after the other. 
What are you doing?asked the coadjutor. 
I have given the signal.
For what?
For the barricades. When you leave this you will behold my 
men at work. Only take care you do not break your legs in 
stumbling over some chain or your neck by falling in a 
hole.
Good! there is your money, the same sum as that you have 
received already. Now remember that you are a general and do 
not go and drink.
For twenty years I have tasted nothing but water.
The man took the bag from the hands of the coadjutorwho 
heard the sound of his fingers counting and handling the 
gold pieces. 
Ah! ah!said the coadjutoryou are avaricious, my good 
fellow.
The mendicant sighed and threw down the bag. 
Must I always be the same?said heand shall I never 
succeed in overcoming the old leaven? Oh, misery, oh, 
vanity!
You take it, however.
Yes, but I make hereby a vow in your presence, to employ 
all that remains to me in pious works.
His face was pale and drawnlike that of a man who had just 
undergone some inward struggle. 
Singular man!muttered Gondytaking his hat to go away; 
but on turning around he saw the beggar between him and the 
door. His first idea was that this man intended to do him 
some harmbut on the contrary he saw him fall on his knees 
before him with his hands clasped. 
Your blessing, your holiness, before you go, I beseech 
you!he cried. 
Your holiness!said Gondy; "my friendyou take me for 
some one else." 
No, your holiness, I take you for what you are, that is to 
say, the coadjutor; I recognized you at the first glance.
Gondy smiled. "And you want my blessing?" he said. 
Yes, I have need of it.
The mendicant uttered these words in a tone of such 
humilitysuch earnest repentancethat Gondy placed his 
hand upon him and gave him his benediction with all the 
unction of which he was capable. 
Now,said Gondythere is a communion between us. I have 
blessed you and you are sacred to me. Come, have you 
committed some crime, pursued by human justice, from which I 
can protect you?
The beggar shook his head. "The crime which I have 
committedmy lordhas no call upon human justiceand you 
can only deliver me from it by blessing me frequentlyas 
you have just done." 
Come, be candid,said the coadjutoryou have not all 
your life followed the trade which you do now?
No, my lord. I have pursued it for six years only.
And previously, where were you?
In the Bastile.
And before you went to the Bastile?
I will tell you, my lord, on the day when you are willing 
to hear my confession.
Good! At whatsoever hour of the day or night you may 
present yourself, remember that I shall be ready to give you 
absolution.
Thank you, my lord,said the mendicant in a hoarse voice. 
But I am not yet ready to receive it.
Very well. Adieu.
Adieu, your holiness,said the mendicantopening the door 
and bending low before the prelate. 
The Riot. 
It was about eleven o'clock at night. Gondy had not walked a 
hundred steps ere he perceived the strange change which had 
been made in the streets of Paris. 
The whole city seemed peopled with fantastic beings; silent 
shadows were seen unpaving the streets and others dragging 
and upsetting great wagonswhilst others again dug ditches 
large enough to ingulf whole regiments of horsemen. These 
active beings flitted here and there like so many demons 
completing some unknown labor; these were the beggars of the 
Court of Miracles -- the agents of the giver of holy water 
in the Square of Saint Eustachepreparing barricades for 
the morrow. 
Gondy gazed on these deeds of darknesson these nocturnal 
laborerswith a kind of fear; he asked himselfifafter 
having called forth these foul creatures from their denshe 
should have the power of making them retire again. He felt 
almost inclined to cross himself when one of these beings 
happened to approach him. He reached the Rue Saint Honore 
and went up it toward the Rue de la Ferronnerie; there the 
aspect changed; here it was the tradesmen who were running 
from shop to shop; their doors seemed closed like their 
shuttersbut they were only pushed to in such a manner as 
to open and allow the menwho seemed fearful of showing 
what they carriedto enterclosing immediately. These men 
were shopkeeperswho had arms to lend to those who had 
none. 
One individual went from door to doorbending under the 
weight of swordsgunsmuskets and every kind of weapon
which he deposited as fast as he could. By the light of a 
lantern the coadjutor recognized Planchet. 
The coadjutor proceeded onward to the quay by way of the Rue 
de la Monnaie; there he found groups of bourgeois clad in 
black cloaks or grayaccording as they belonged to the 
upper or lower bourgeoisie. They were standing motionless
while single men passed from one group to another. All these 
cloaksgray or blackwere raised behind by the point of a 
swordor before by the barrel of an arquebuse or a musket. 
On reaching the Pont Neuf the coadjutor found it strictly 
guarded and a man approached him. 
Who are you?asked the man. "I do not know you for one of 
us." 
Then it is because you do not know your friends, my dear 
Monsieur Louvieres,said the coadjutorraising his hat. 
Louvieres recognized him and bowed. 
Gondy continued his way and went as far as the Tour de 
Nesle. There he saw a lengthy chain of people gliding under 
the walls. They might be said to be a procession of ghosts
for they were all wrapped in white cloaks. When they reached 
a certain spot these men appeared to be annihilatedone 
after the otheras if the earth had opened under their 
feet. Gondyedged into a cornersaw them vanish from the 
first until the last but one. The last raised his eyesto 
ascertaindoubtlessthat neither his companions nor 
himself had been watchedandin spite of the darknesshe 
perceived Gondy. He walked straight up to him and placed a 
pistol to his throat. 
Halloo! Monsieur de Rochefort,said Gondylaughingare 
you a boy to play with firearms?
Rochefort recognized the voice. 
Ah, it is you, my lord!said he. 
The very same. What people are you leading thus into the 
bowels of the earth?
My fifty recruits from the Chevalier d'Humieres, who are 
destined to enter the light cavalry and who have only 
received as yet for their equipment their white cloaks.
And where are you going?
To the house of one of my friends, a sculptor, only we 
enter by the trap through which he lets down his marble.
Very good,said Gondyshaking Rochefort by the handwho 
descended in his turn and closed the trap after him. 
It was now one o'clock in the morning and the coadjutor 
returned home. He opened a window and leaned out to listen. 
A strangeincomprehensibleunearthly sound seemed to 
pervade the whole city; one felt that something unusual and 
terrible was happening in all the streetsnow dark as 
ocean's most unfathomable caves. From time to time a dull 
sound was heardlike that of a rising tempest or a billow 
of the sea; but nothing clearnothing distinctnothing 
intelligible; it was like those mysterious subterraneous 
noises that precede an earthquake. 
The work of revolt continued the whole night thus. The next 
morningon awakingParis seemed to be startled at her own 
appearance. It was like a besieged town. Armed men
shouldering musketswatched over the barricades with 
menacing looks; words of commandpatrolsarrests
executionsevenwere encountered at every step. Those 
bearing plumed hats and gold swords were stopped and made to 
cryLong live Broussel!Down with Mazarin!and whoever 
refused to comply with this ceremony was hooted atspat 
upon and even beaten. They had not yet begun to slaybut it 
was well felt that the inclination to do so was not wanting. 
The barricades had been pushed as far as the Palais Royal. 
From the Rue de Bons Enfants to that of the Ferronnerie
from the Rue Saint Thomas-du-Louvre to the Pont Neuffrom 
the Rue Richelieu to the Porte Saint Honorethere were more 
than ten thousand armed men; those who were at the front 
hurled defiance at the impassive sentinels of the regiment 
of guards posted around the Palais Royalthe gates of which 
were closed behind thema precaution which made their 
situation precarious. Among these thousands movedin bands 
numbering from one hundred to two hundredpale and haggard 
menclothed in ragswho bore a sort of standard on which 
was inscribed these words: "Behold the misery of the 
people!" Wherever these men passedfrenzied cries were 
heard; and there were so many of these bands that the cries 
were to be heard in all directions. 
The astonishment of Mazarin and of Anne of Austria was great 
when it was announced to them that the citywhich the 
previous evening they had left entirely tranquilhad 
awakened to such feverish commotion; nor would either the 
one or the other believe the reports that were brought to 
themdeclaring they would rather rely on the evidence of 
their own eyes and ears. Then a window was opened and when 
they saw and heard they were convinced. 
Mazarin shrugged his shoulders and pretended to despise the 
populace; but he turned visibly pale and ran to his closet
trembling all overlocked up his gold and jewels in his 
caskets and put his finest diamonds on his fingers. As for 
the queenfuriousand left to her own guidanceshe went 
for the Marechal de la Meilleraie and desired him to take as 
many men as he pleased and to go and see what was the 
meaning of this pleasantry. 
The marshal was ordinarily very adventurous and was wont to 
hesitate at nothing; and he had that lofty contempt for the 
populace which army officers usually profess. He took a 
hundred and fifty men and attempted to go out by the Pont du 
Louvrebut there he met Rochefort and his fifty horsemen
attended by more than five hundred men. The marshal made no 
attempt to force that barrier and returned up the quay. But 
at Pont Neuf he found Louvieres and his bourgeois. This time 
the marshal chargedbut he was welcomed by musket shots
while stones fell like hail from all the windows. He left 
there three men. 
He beat a retreat toward the marketbut there he met 
Planchet with his halberdiers; their halberds were leveled 
at him threateningly. He attempted to ride over those gray 
cloaksbut the gray cloaks held their ground and the 
marshal retired toward the Rue Saint Honoreleaving four of 
his guards dead on the field of battle. 
The marshal then entered the Rue Saint Honorebut there he 
was opposed by the barricades of the mendicant of Saint 
Eustache. They were guardednot only by armed menbut even 
by women and children. Master Friquetthe owner of a pistol 
and of a sword which Louvieres had given himhad organized 
a company of rogues like himself and was making a tremendous 
racket. 
The marshal thought this barrier not so well fortified as 
the others and determined to break through it. He dismounted 
twenty men to make a breach in the barricadewhilst he and 
othersremaining on their horseswere to protect the 
assailants. The twenty men marched straight toward the 
barrierbut from behind the beamsfrom among the 
wagon-wheels and from the heights of the rocks a terrible 
fusillade burst forth and at the same time Planchet's 
halberdiers appeared at the corner of the Cemetery of the 
Innocentsand Louvieres's bourgeois at the corner of the 
Rue de la Monnaie. 
The Marechal de la Meilleraie was caught between two fires
but he was brave and made up his mind to die where he was. 
He returned blow for blow and cries of pain began to be 
heard in the crowd. The guardsmore skillfuldid greater 
execution; but the bourgeoismore numerousoverwhelmed 
them with a veritable hurricane of iron. Men fell around him 
as they had fallen at Rocroy or at Lerida. Fontrailleshis 
aide-de-camphad an arm broken; his horse had received a 
bullet in his neck and he had difficulty in controlling him
maddened by pain. In shorthe had reached that supreme 
moment when the bravest feel a shudder in their veinswhen 
suddenlyin the direction of the Rue de l'Arbre-Secthe 
crowd openedcrying: "Long live the coadjutor!" and Gondy
in surplice and cloakappearedmoving tranquilly in the 
midst of the fusillade and bestowing his benedictions to the 
right and leftas undisturbed as if he were leading a 
procession of the Fete Dieu. 
All fell to their knees. The marshal recognized him and 
hastened to meet him. 
Get me out of this, in Heaven's name!he saidor I shall 
leave my carcass here and those of all my men.
A great tumult arosein the midst of which even the noise 
of thunder could not have been heard. Gondy raised his hand 
and demanded silence. All were still. 
My children,he saidthis is the Marechal de la 
Meilleraie, as to whose intentions you have been deceived 
and who pledges himself, on returning to the Louvre, to 
demand of the queen, in your name, our Broussel's release. 
You pledge yourself to that, marshal?added Gondyturning 
to La Meilleraie. 
Morbleu!cried the latterI should say that I do pledge 
myself to it! I had no hope of getting off so easily.
He gives you his word of honor,said Gondy. 
The marshal raised his hand in token of assent. 
Long live the coadjutor!cried the crowd. Some voices even 
added: "Long live the marshal!" But all took up the cry in 
chorus: "Down with Mazarin!" 
The crowd gave placethe barricade was openedand the 
marshalwith the remnant of his companyretreated
preceded by Friquet and his banditssome of them making a 
presence of beating drums and others imitating the sound of 
the trumpet. It was almost a triumphal procession; only
behind the guards the barricades were closed again. The 
marshal bit his fingers. 
In the meantimeas we have saidMazarin was in his closet
putting his affairs in order. He called for D'Artagnanbut 
in the midst of such tumult he little expected to see him
D'Artagnan not being on service. In about ten minutes 
D'Artagnan appeared at the doorfollowed by the inseparable 
Porthos. 
Ah, come in, come in, Monsieur d'Artagnan!cried the 
cardinaland welcome your friend too. But what is going on 
in this accursed Paris?
What is going on, my lord? nothing good,replied 
D'Artagnanshaking his head. "The town is in open revolt
and just nowas I was crossing the Rue Montorgueil with 
Monsieur du Vallonwho is hereand is your humble servant
they wanted in spite of my uniformor perhaps because of my 
uniformto make us cry `Long live Broussel!' and must I 
tell youmy lord what they wished us to cry as well?" 
Speak, speak.
`Down with Mazarin!' I'faith, the treasonable word is out.
Mazarin smiledbut became very pale. 
And you did cry?he asked. 
I'faith, no,said D'Artagnan; "I was not in voice; 
Monsieur du Vallon has a cold and did not cry either. Then
my lord ---- " 
Then what?asked Mazarin. 
Look at my hat and cloak.
And D'Artagnan displayed four gunshot holes in his cloak and 
two in his beaver. As for Porthos's coata blow from a 
halberd had cut it open on the flank and a pistol shot had 
cut his feather in two. 
Diavolo!said the cardinalpensively gazing at the two 
friends with lively admiration; "I should have criedI 
should." 
At this moment the tumult was heard nearer. 
Mazarin wiped his forehead and looked around him. He had a 
great desire to go to the windowbut he dared not. 
See what is going on, Monsieur D'Artagnan,said he. 
D'Artagnan went to the window with his habitual composure. 
Oho!said hewhat is this? Marechal de la Meilleraie 
returning without a hat -- Fontrailles with his arm in a 
sling -- wounded guards -- horses bleeding; eh, then, what 
are the sentinels about? They are aiming -- they are going 
to fire!
They have received orders to fire on the people if the 
people approach the Palais Royal!exclaimed Mazarin. 
But if they fire, all is lost!cried D'Artagnan. 
We have the gates.
The gates! to hold for five minutes -- the gates, they will 
be torn down, twisted into iron wire, ground to powder! 
God's death, don't fire!screamed D'Artagnanthrowing open 
the window. 
In spite of this recommendationwhichowing to the noise
could scarcely have been heardtwo or three musket shots 
resoundedsucceeded by a terrible discharge. The balls 
might be heard peppering the facade of the Palais Royaland 
one of thempassing under D'Artagnan's armentered and 
broke a mirrorin which Porthos was complacently admiring 
himself. 
Alack! alack!cried the cardinala Venetian glass!
Oh, my lord,said D'Artagnanquietly shutting the window
it is not worth while weeping yet, for probably an hour 
hence there will not be one of your mirrors remaining in the 
Palais Royal, whether they be Venetian or Parisian.
But what do you advise, then?asked Mazarintrembling. 
Eh, egad, to give up Broussel as they demand! What the 
devil do you want with a member of the parliament? He is of 
no earthly use to anybody.
And you, Monsieur du Vallon, is that your advice? What 
would you do?
I should give up Broussel,said Porthos. 
Come, come with me, gentlemen!exclaimed Mazarin. "I will 
go and discuss the matter with the queen." 
He stopped at the end of the corridor and said: 
I can count upon you, gentlemen, can I not?
We do not give ourselves twice over,said D'Artagnan; "we 
have given ourselves to you; commandwe shall obey." 
Very well, then,said Mazarin; "enter this cabinet and 
wait till I come back." 
And turning off he entered the drawing-room by another door. 
The Riot becomes a Revolution. 
The closet into which D'Artagnan and Porthos had been 
ushered was separated from the drawing-room where the queen 
was by tapestried curtains onlyand this thin partition 
enabled them to hear all that passed in the adjoining room
whilst the aperture between the two hangingssmall as it 
waspermitted them to see. 
The queen was standing in the roompale with anger; her 
self-controlhoweverwas so great that it might have been 
imagined that she was calm. CommingesVillequier and 
Guitant were behind her and the women again were behind the 
men. The Chancellor Sequierwho twenty years previously had 
persecuted her so ruthlesslystood before herrelating how 
his carriage had been smashedhow he had been pursued and 
had rushed into the Hotel d'O ----that the hotel was 
immediately invadedpillaged and devastated; happily he had 
time to reach a closet hidden behind tapestryin which he 
was secreted by an old womantogether with his brotherthe 
Bishop of Meaux. Then the danger was so imminentthe 
rioters came so nearuttering such threatsthat the 
chancellor thought his last hour had come and confessed 
himself to his brother priestso as to be all ready to die 
in case he was discovered. Fortunatelyhoweverhe had not 
been taken; the peoplebelieving that he had escaped by 
some back entranceretired and left him at liberty to 
retreat. Thendisguised in he clothes of the Marquis d'O 
----he had left the hotelstumbling over the bodies of 
an officer and two guards who had been killed whilst 
defending the street door. 
During the recital Mazarin entered and glided noiselessly up 
to the queen to listen. 
Well,said the queenwhen the chancellor had finished 
speaking; "what do you think of it all?" 
I think that matters look very gloomy, madame.
But what step would you propose to me?
I could propose one to your majesty, but I dare not.
You may, you may, sir,said the queen with a bitter smile; 
you were not so timid once.
The chancellor reddened and stammered some words. 
It is not a question of the past, but of the present,said 
the queen; "you said you could give me advice -- what is 
it?" 
Madame,said the chancellorhesitatingit would be to 
release Broussel.
The queenalthough already palebecame visibly paler and 
her face was contracted. 
Release Broussel!she criednever!
At this moment steps were heard in the ante-room and without 
any announcement the Marechal de la Meilleraie appeared at 
the door. 
Ah, there you are, marechal,cried Anne of Austria 
joyfully. "I trust you have brought this rabble to reason." 
Madame,replied the marechalI have left three men on 
the Pont Neuf, four at the Halle, six at the corner of the 
Rue de l'Arbre-Sec and two at the door of your palace -fifteen 
in all. I have brought away ten or twelve wounded. I 
know not where I have left my hat, and in all probability I 
should have been left with my hat, had the coadjutor not 
arrived in time to rescue me.
Ah, indeed,said the queenit would have much astonished 
me if that low cur, with his distorted legs, had not been 
mixed up with all this.
Madame,said La Meilleraiedo not say too much against 
him before me, for the service he rendered me is still 
fresh.
Very good,said the queenbe as grateful as you like, it 
does not implicate me; you are here safe and sound, that is 
all I wished for; you are not only welcome, but welcome 
back.
Yes, madame; but I only came back on one condition -- that 
I would transmit to your majesty the will of the people.
The will!exclaimed the queenfrowning. "Oh! oh! monsieur 
marechalyou must indeed have found yourself in wondrous 
peril to have undertaken so strange a commission!" 
The irony with which these words were uttered did not escape 
the marechal. 
Pardon, madame,he saidI am not a lawyer, I am a mere 
soldier, and probably, therefore, I do not quite comprehend 
the value of certain words; I ought to have said the wishes, 
and not the will, of the people. As for what you do me the 
honor to say, I presume you mean I was afraid?
The queen smiled. 
Well, then, madame, yes, I did feel fear; and though I have 
been through twelve pitched battles and I cannot count how 
many charges and skirmishes, I own for the third time in my 
life I was afraid. Yes, and I would rather face your 
majesty, however threatening your smile, than face those 
demons who accompanied me hither and who sprung from I know 
not whence, unless from deepest hell.
(" Bravo said D'Artagnan in a whisper to Porthos; well 
answered.") 
Well,said the queenbiting her lipswhilst her 
courtiers looked at each other with surprisewhat is the 
desire of my people?
That Broussel shall be given up to them, madame.
Never!said the queennever!
Your majesty is mistress,said La Meilleraieretreating a 
few steps. 
Where are you going, marechal?asked the queen. 
To give your majesty's reply to those who await it.
Stay, marechal; I will not appear to parley with rebels.
Madame, I have pledged my word, and unless you order me to 
be arrested I shall be forced to return.
Anne of Austria's eyes shot glances of fire. 
Oh! that is no impediment, sir,said she; "I have had 
greater men than you arrested -- Guitant!" 
Mazarin sprang forward. 
Madame, said heif I dared in my turn advise ---- 
Would it be to give up Broussel, sir? If so, you can spare 
yourself the trouble.
No,said Mazarin; "althoughperhapsthat counsel is as 
good as any other." 
Then what may it be?
To call for monsieur le coadjuteur.
The coadjutor!cried the queenthat dreadful mischief 
maker! It is he who has raised all this revolt.
The more reason,said Mazarin; "if he has raised it he can 
put it down." 
And hold, madame,suggested Commingeswho was near a 
windowout of which he could see; "holdthe moment is a 
happy onefor there he is nowgiving his blessing in the 
square of the Palais Royal." 
The queen sprang to the window. 
It is true,she saidthe arch hypocrite -- see!
I see,said Mazarinthat everybody kneels before him, 
although he be but coadjutor, whilst I, were I in his place, 
though I am cardinal, should be torn to pieces. I persist, 
then, madame, in my wish(he laid an emphasis on the word)
that your majesty should receive the coadjutor.
And wherefore do you not say, like the rest, your will?
replied the queenin a low voice. 
Mazarin bowed. 
Monsieur le marechal,said the queenafter a moment's 
reflectiongo and find the coadjutor and bring him to me.
And what shall I say to the people?
That they must have patience,said Anneas I have.
The fiery Spanish woman spoke in a tone so imperative that 
the marechal made no reply; he bowed and went out. 
(D'Artagnan turned to Porthos. "How will this end?" he said. 
We shall soon see,said Porthosin his tranquil way.) 
In the meantime Anne of Austria approached Comminges and 
conversed with him in a subdued tonewhilst Mazarin glanced 
uneasily at the corner occupied by D'Artagnan and Porthos. 
Ere long the door opened and the marechal enteredfollowed 
by the coadjutor. 
There, madame,he saidis Monsieur Gondy, who hastens to 
obey your majesty's summons.
The queen advanced a few steps to meet himand then 
stoppedcoldsevereunmovedwith her lower lip 
scornfully protruded. 
Gondy bowed respectfully. 
Well, sir,said the queenwhat is your opinion of this 
riot?
That it is no longer a riot, madame,he repliedbut a 
revolt.
The revolt is at the door of those who think my people can 
rebel,cried Anneunable to dissimulate before the 
coadjutorwhom she looked uponand probably with reason
as the promoter of the tumult. "Revolt! thus it is called by 
those who have wished for this demonstration and who are
perhapsthe cause of it; butwaitwait! the king's 
authority will put all this to rights." 
Was it to tell me that, madame,coldly replied Gondy
that your majesty admitted me to the honor of entering your 
presence?
No, my dear coadjutor,said Mazarin; "it was to ask your 
advice in the unhappy dilemma in which we find ourselves." 
Is it true,asked Gondyfeigning astonishmentthat her 
majesty summoned me to ask for my opinion?
Yes,said the queenit is requested.
The coadjutor bowed. 
Your majesty wishes, then ---- 
You to say what you would do in her place,Mazarin 
hastened to reply. 
The coadjutor looked at the queenwho replied by a sign in 
the affirmative. 
Were I in her majesty's place,said GondycoldlyI 
should not hesitate; I should release Broussel.
And if I do not give him up, what think you will be the 
result?exclaimed the queen. 
I believe that not a stone in Paris will remain unturned,
put in the marechal. 
It was not your opinion that I asked,said the queen
sharplywithout even turning around. 
If it is I whom your majesty interrogates,replied the 
coadjutor in the same calm mannerI reply that I hold 
monsieur le marechal's opinion in every respect.
The color mounted to the queen's face; her fine blue eyes 
seemed to start out of her head and her carmine lips
compared by all the poets of the day to a pomegranate in 
flowerwere trembling with anger. Mazarin himselfwho was 
well accustomed to the domestic outbreaks of this disturbed 
householdwas alarmed. 
Give up Broussel!she cried; "fine counselindeed. Upon 
my word! one can easily see it comes from a priest. 
Gondy remained firmand the abuse of the day seemed to 
glide over his head as the sarcasms of the evening before 
had done; but hatred and revenge were accumulating in his 
heart silently and drop by drop. He looked coldly at the 
queenwho nudged Mazarin to make him say something in his 
turn. 
Mazarinaccording to his customwas thinking much and 
saying little. 
Ho! ho!said hegood advice, advice of a friend. I, too, 
would give up that good Monsieur Broussel, dead or alive, 
and all would be at an end.
If you yield him dead, all will indeed be at an end, my 
lord, but quite otherwise than you mean.
Did I say `dead or alive?'replied Mazarin. "It was only a 
way of speaking. You know I am not familiar with the French 
languagewhich youmonsieur le coadjuteurboth speak and 
write so well." 
("This is a council of state D'Artagnan remarked to 
Porthos; but we held better ones at La Rochellewith Athos 
and Aramis." 
At the Saint Gervais bastion,said Porthos. 
There and elsewhere.) 
The coadjutor let the storm pass over his head and resumed
still with the same tranquillity: 
Madame, if the opinion I have submitted to you does not 
please you it is doubtless because you have better counsels 
to follow. I know too well the wisdom of the queen and that 
of her advisers to suppose that they will leave the capital 
long in trouble that may lead to a revolution.
Thus, then, it is your opinion,said Anne of Austriawith 
a sneer and biting her lips with ragethat yesterday's 
riot, which to-day is already a rebellion, to-morrow may 
become a revolution?
Yes, madame,replied the coadjutorgravely. 
But if I am to believe you, sir, the people seem to have 
thrown off all restraint.
It is a bad year for kings,said Gondyshaking his head; 
look at England, madame.
Yes; but fortunately we have no Oliver Cromwell in France,
replied the queen. 
Who knows?said Gondy; "such men are like thunderbolts -one 
recognizes them only when they have struck." 
Every one shuddered and there was a moment of silence
during which the queen pressed her hand to her side
evidently to still the beatings of her heart. 
("Porthos murmured D'Artagnan, look well at that priest." 
Yes,said PorthosI see him. What then?
Well, he is a man.
Porthos looked at D'Artagnan in astonishment. Evidently he 
did not understand his meaning.) 
Your majesty,continued the coadjutorpitilesslyis 
about to take such measures as seem good to you, but I 
foresee that they will be violent and such as will still 
further exasperate the rioters.
In that case, you, monsieur le coadjuteur, who have such 
power over them and are at the same time friendly to us,
said the queenironicallywill quiet them by bestowing 
your blessing upon them.
Perhaps it will be too late,said Gondystill unmoved; 
perhaps I shall have lost all influence; while by giving up 
Broussel your majesty will strike at the root of the 
sedition and will gain the right to punish severely any 
revival of the revolt.
Have I not, then, that right?cried the queen. 
If you have it, use it,replied Gondy. 
("Peste!" said D'Artagnan to Porthos. "There is a man after 
my own heart. Oh! if he were minister and I were his 
D'Artagnaninstead of belonging to that beast of a Mazarin
mordieu! what fine things we would do together!" 
Yes,said Porthos.) 
The queen made a sign for every oneexcept Mazarinto quit 
the room; and Gondy bowedas if to leave with the rest. 
Stay, sir,said Anne to him. 
Good,thought Gondyshe is going to yield.
("She is going to have him killed said D'Artagnan to 
Porthos, but at all events it shall not be by me. I swear 
to Heavenon the contrarythat if they fall upon him I 
will fall upon them." 
And I, too,said Porthos.) 
Good,muttered Mazarinsitting downwe shall soon see 
something startling.
The queen's eyes followed the retreating figures and when 
the last had closed the door she turned away. It was evident 
that she was making unnatural efforts to subdue her anger; 
she fanned herselfsmelled at her vinaigrette and walked up 
and down. Gondywho began to feel uneasyexamined the 
tapestry with his eyestouched the coat of mail which he 
wore under his long gown and felt from time to time to see 
if the handle of a good Spanish daggerwhich was hidden 
under his cloakwas well within reach. 
And now,at last said the queennow that we are alone, 
repeat your counsel, monsieur le coadjuteur.
It is this, madame: that you should appear to have 
reflected, and publicly acknowledge an error, which 
constitutes the extra strength of a strong government; 
release Broussel from prison and give him back to the 
people.
Oh!cried Anneto humble myself thus! Am I, or am I not, 
the queen? This screaming mob, are they, or are they not, my 
subjects? Have I friends? Have I guards? Ah! by Notre Dame! 
as Queen Catherine used to say,continued sheexcited by 
her own wordsrather than give up this infamous Broussel 
to them I will strangle him with my own hands!
And she sprang toward Gondywhom assuredly at that moment 
she hated more than Brousselwith outstretched arms. The 
coadjutor remained immovable and not a muscle of his face 
was discomposed; only his glance flashed like a sword in 
returning the furious looks of the queen. 
("He were a dead man)" said the Gasconif there were still 
a Vitry at the court and if Vitry entered at this moment; 
but for my part, before he could reach the good prelate I 
would kill Vitry at once; the cardinal would be infinitely 
pleased with me.
Hush!said Porthos; "listen.") 
Madame,cried the cardinalseizing hold of Anne and 
drawing her backMadame, what are you about?
Then he added in SpanishAnne, are you mad? You, a queen 
to quarrel like a washerwoman! And do you not perceive that 
in the person of this priest is represented the whole people 
of Paris and that it is dangerous to insult him at this 
moment, and if this priest wished it, in an hour you would 
be without a crown? Come, then, on another occasion you can 
be firm and strong; but to-day is not the proper time; 
to-day, flatter and caress, or you are only a common woman.
(At the first words of this address D'Artagnan had seized 
Porthos's armwhich he pressed with gradually increasing 
force. When Mazarin ceased speaking he said to Porthos in a 
low tone: 
Never tell Mazarin that I understand Spanish, or I am a 
lost man and you are also.
All right,said Porthos.) 
This rough appealmarked by the eloquence which 
characterized Mazarin when he spoke in Italian or Spanish 
and which he lost entirely in speaking Frenchwas uttered 
with such impenetrable expression that Gondyclever 
physiognomist as he washad no suspicion of its being more 
than a simple warning to be more subdued. 
The queenon her partthus chidedsoftened immediately 
and sat downand in an almost weeping voiceletting her 
arms fall by her sidesaid: 
Pardon me, sir, and attribute this violence to what I 
suffer. A woman, and consequently subject to the weaknesses 
of my sex, I am alarmed at the idea of civil war; a queen, 
accustomed to be obeyed, I am excited at the first 
opposition.
Madame,replied Gondybowingyour majesty is mistaken 
in qualifying my sincere advice as opposition. Your majesty 
has none but submissive and respectful subjects. It is not 
the queen with whom the people are displeased; they ask for 
Broussel and are only too happy, if you release him to them, 
to live under your government.
Mazarinwho at the wordsIt is not the queen with whom 
the people are displeased,had pricked up his ears
thinking that the coadjutor was about to speak of the cries
Down with Mazarin,and pleased with Gondy's suppression of 
this facthe said with his sweetest voice and his most 
gracious expression: 
Madame, credit the coadjutor, who is one of the most able 
politicians we have; the first available cardinal's hat 
seems to belong already to his noble brow.
Ah! how much you have need of me, cunning rogue!thought 
Gondy. 
("And what will he promise us?" said D'Artagnan. "Pesteif 
he is giving away hats like thatPorthoslet us look out 
and both demand a regiment to-morrow. Corbleu! let the civil 
war last but one year and I will have a constable's sword 
gilt for me." 
And for me?put in Porthos. 
For you? I will give you the baton of the Marechal de la 
Meilleraie, who does not seem to be much in favor just 
now.) 
And so, sir,said the queenyou are seriously afraid of 
a public tumult.
Seriously,said Gondyastonished at not having further 
advanced; "I fear that when the torrent has broken its 
embankment it will cause fearful destruction." 
And I,said the queenthink that in such a case other 
embankments should be raised to oppose it. Go; I will 
reflect.
Gondy looked at Mazarinastonishedand Mazarin approached 
the queen to speak to herbut at this moment a frightful 
tumult arose from the square of the Palais Royal. 
Gondy smiledthe queen's color rose and Mazarin grew even 
paler. 
What is that again?he asked. 
At this moment Comminges rushed into the room. 
Pardon, your majesty,he criedbut the people have 
dashed the sentinels against the gates and they are now 
forcing the doors; what are your commands?
Listen, madame,said Gondy. 
The moaning of wavesthe noise of thunderthe roaring of a 
volcanocannot be compared with the tempest of cries heard 
at that moment. 
What are my commands?said the queen. 
Yes, for time presses.
How many men have you about the Palais Royal?
Six hundred.
Place a hundred around the king and with the remainder 
sweep away this mob for me.
Madame,cried Mazarinwhat are you about?
Go!said the queen. 
Comminges went out with a soldier's passive obedience. 
At this moment a monstrous battering was heard. One of the 
gates began to yield. 
Oh! madame,cried Mazarinyou have ruined us all -- the 
king, yourself and me.
At this cry from the soul of the frightened cardinalAnne 
became alarmed in her turn and would have recalled 
Comminges. 
It is too late,said Mazarintearing his hairtoo 
late!
The gale had given way. Hoarse shouts were heard from the 
excited mob. D'Artagnan put his hand to his swordmotioning 
to Porthos to follow his example. 
Save the queen!cried Mazarin to the coadjutor. 
Gondy sprang to the window and threw it open; he recognized 
Louvieres at the head of a troop of about three or four 
thousand men. 
Not a step further,he shoutedthe queen is signing!
What are you saying?asked the queen. 
The truth, madame,said Mazarinplacing a pen and a paper 
before heryou must;then he added: "SignAnneI 
implore you -- I command you." 
The queen fell into a chairtook the pen and signed. 
The peoplekept back by Louviereshad not made another 
step forward; but the awful murmuringwhich indicates an 
angry peoplecontinued. 
The queen had writtenThe keeper of the prison at Saint 
Germain will set Councillor Broussel at liberty;and she 
had signed it. 
The coadjutorwhose eyes devoured her slightest movements
seized the paper immediately the signature had been affixed 
to itreturned to the window and waved it in his hand. 
This is the order,he said. 
All Paris seemed to shout with joyand then the air 
resounded with the cries of "Long live Broussel!" "Long live 
the coadjutor!" 
Long live the queen!cried De Gondy; but the cries which 
replied to his were poor and fewand perhaps he had but 
uttered it to make Anne of Austria sensible of her weakness. 
And now that you have obtained what you want, go,said 
sheMonsieur de Gondy.
Whenever her majesty has need of me,replied the 
coadjutorbowingher majesty knows I am at her command.
Ah, cursed priest!cried Annewhen he had retired
stretching out her arm to the scarcely closed doorone day 
I will make you drink the dregs of the atrocious gall you 
have poured out on me to-day.
Mazarin wished to approach her. "Leave me!" she exclaimed; 
you are not a man!and she went out of the room. 
It is you who are not a woman,muttered Mazarin. 
Thenafter a moment of reveriehe remembered where he had 
left D'Artagnan and Porthos and that they must have 
overheard everything. He knit his brows and went direct to 
the tapestrywhich he pushed aside. The closet was empty. 
At the queen's last wordD'Artagnan had dragged Porthos 
into the gallery. Thither Mazarin went in his turn and found 
the two friends walking up and down. 
Why did you leave the closet, Monsieur d'Artagnan?asked 
the cardinal. 
Because,replied D'Artagnanthe queen desired every one 
to leave and I thought that this command was intended for us 
as well as for the rest.
And you have been here since ---- 
About a quarter of an hour,said D'Artagnanmotioning to 
Porthos not to contradict him. 
Mazarin saw the sign and remained convinced that D'Artagnan 
had seen and heard everything; but he was pleased with his 
falsehood. 
Decidedly, Monsieur d'Artagnan, you are the man I have been 
seeking. You may reckon upon me and so may your friend.
Then bowing to the two musketeers with his most gracious 
smilehe re-entered his closet more calmlyfor on the 
departure of De Gondy the uproar had ceased as though by 
enchantment. 
Misfortune refreshes the Memory. 
Anne of Austria returned to her oratoryfurious. 
What!she criedwringing her beautiful handsWhat! the 
people have seen Monsieur de Conde, a prince of the blood 
royal, arrested by my mother-in-law, Maria de Medicis; they 
saw my mother-in-law, their former regent, expelled by the 
cardinal; they saw Monsieur de Vendome, that is to say, the 
son of Henry IV., a prisoner at Vincennes; and whilst these 
great personages were imprisoned, insulted and threatened, 
they said nothing; and now for a Broussel -- good God! what, 
then, is to become of royalty?
The queen unconsciously touched here upon the exciting 
question. The people had made no demonstration for the 
princesbut they had risen for Broussel; they were taking 
the part of a plebeian and in defending Broussel they 
instinctively felt they were defending themselves. 
During this time Mazarin walked up and down the study
glancing from time to time at his beautiful Venetian mirror
starred in every direction. "Ah!" he saidit is sad, I 
know well, to be forced to yield thus; but, pshaw! we shall 
have our revenge. What matters it about Broussel -- it is a 
name, not a thing.
Mazarinclever politician as he waswas for once mistaken; 
Broussel was a thingnot a name. 
The next morningthereforewhen Broussel made his entrance 
into Paris in a large carriagehaving his son Louvieres at 
his side and Friquet behind the vehiclethe people threw 
themselves in his way and cries of "Long live Broussel!" 
Long live our father!resounded from all parts and was 
death to Mazarin's ears; and the cardinal's spies brought 
bad news from every directionwhich greatly agitated the 
ministerbut was calmly received by the queen. The latter 
seemed to be maturing in her mind some great strokea fact 
which increased the uneasiness of the cardinalwho knew the 
proud princess and dreaded much the determination of Anne of 
Austria. 
The coadjutor returned to parliament more a monarch than 
kingqueenand cardinalall three together. By his advice 
a decree from parliament summoned the citizens to lay down 
their arms and demolish the barricades. They now knew that 
it required but one hour to take up arms again and one night 
to reconstruct the barricades. 
Rochefort had returned to the Chevalier d'Humieres his fifty 
horsemenless twomissing at roll call. But the chevalier 
was himself at heart a Frondist and would hear nothing said 
of compensation. 
The mendicant had gone to his old place on the steps of 
Saint Eustache and was again distributing holy water with 
one hand and asking alms with the other. No one could 
suspect that those two hands had been engaged with others in 
drawing out from the social edifice the keystone of royalty. 
Louvieres was proud and satisfied; he had taken revenge on 
Mazarin and had aided in his father's deliverance from 
prison. His name had been mentioned as a name of terror at 
the Palais Royal. Laughingly he said to the councillor
restored to his family: 
Do you think, father, that if now I should ask for a 
company the queen would give it to me?
D'Artagnan profited by this interval of calm to send away 
Raoulwhom he had great difficulty in keeping shut up 
during the riotand who wished positively to strike a blow 
for one party or the other. Raoul had offered some 
opposition at first; but D'Artagnan made use of the Comte de 
la Fere's nameand after paying a visit to Madame de 
ChevreuseRaoul started to rejoin the army. 
Rochefort alone was dissatisfied with the termination of 
affairs. He had written to the Duc de Beaufort to come and 
the duke was about to arriveand he world find Paris 
tranquil. He went to the coadjutor to consult with him 
whether it would not be better to send word to the duke to 
stop on the roadbut Gondy reflected for a momentand then 
said: 
Let him continue his journey.
All is not then over?asked Rochefort. 
My dear count, we have only just begun.
What induces you to think so?
The knowledge that I have of the queen's heart; she will 
not rest contented beaten.
Is she, then, preparing for a stroke?
I hope so.
Come, let us see what you know.
I know that she has written to the prince to return in 
haste from the army.
Ah! ha!said Rochefortyou are right. We must let 
Monsieur de Beaufort come.
In factthe evening after this conversation the report was 
circulated that the Prince de Conde had arrived. It was a 
very simplenatural circumstance and yet it created a 
profound sensation. It was said that Madame de Longueville
for whom the prince had more than a brother's affection and 
in whom he had confidedhad been indiscreet. His confidence 
had unveiled the sinister project of the queen. 
Even on the night of the prince's returnsome citizens
bolder than the restsuch as the sheriffscaptains and the 
quartermasterwent from house to house among their friends
saying: 
Why do we not take the king and place him in the Hotel de 
Ville? It is a shame to leave him to be educated by our 
enemies, who will give him evil counsel; whereas, brought up 
by the coadjutor, for instance, he would imbibe national 
principles and love his people.
That night the question was secretly agitated and on the 
morrow the gray and black cloaksthe patrols of armed 
shop-peopleand the bands of mendicants reappeared. 
The queen had passed the night in lonely conference with the 
princewho had entered the oratory at midnight and did not 
leave till five o'clock in the morning. 
At five o'clock Anne went to the cardinal's room. If she had 
not yet taken any reposehe at least was already up. Six 
days had already passed out of the ten he had asked from 
Mordaunt; he was therefore occupied in revising his reply to 
Cromwellwhen some one knocked gently at the door of 
communication with the queen's apartments. Anne of Austria 
alone was permitted to enter by that door. The cardinal 
therefore rose to open it. 
The queen was in a morning gownbut it became her still; 
forlike Diana of Poictiers and NinonAnne of Austria 
enjoyed the privilege of remaining ever beautiful; 
neverthelessthis morning she looked handsomer than usual
for her eyes had all the sparkle inward satisfaction adds to 
expression. 
What is the matter, madame?said Mazarinuneasily. "You 
seem secretly elated." 
Yes, Giulio,she saidproud and happy; for I have found 
the means of strangling this hydra.
You are a great politician, my queen,said Mazarin; "let 
us hear the means." And he hid what he had written by 
sliding the letter under a folio of blank paper. 
You know,said the queenthat they want to take the king 
away from me?
Alas! yes, and to hang me.
They shall not have the king.
Nor hang me.
Listen. I want to carry off my son from them, with 
yourself. I wish that this event, which on the day it is 
known will completely change the aspect of affairs, should 
be accomplished without the knowledge of any others but 
yourself, myself, and a third person.
And who is this third person?
Monsieur le Prince.
He has come, then, as they told me?
Last evening.
And you have seen him?
He has just left me.
And will he aid this project?
The plan is his own.
And Paris?
He will starve it out and force it to surrender at 
discretion.
The plan is not wanting in grandeur; I see but one 
impediment.
What is it?
Impossibility.
A senseless word. Nothing is impossible.
On paper.
In execution. We have money?
A little,said Mazarintremblinglest Anne should ask to 
draw upon his purse. 
Troops?
Five or six thousand men.
Courage?
Plenty.
Then the thing is easy. Oh! do think of it, Giulio! Paris, 
this odious Paris, waking up one morning without queen or 
king, surrounded, besieged, famished -- having for its sole 
resource its stupid parliament and their coadjutor with 
crooked limbs!
Charming! charming!said Mazarin. "I can imagine the 
effectI do not see the means." 
I will find the means myself.
You are aware it will be war, civil war, furious, 
devouring, implacable?
Oh! yes, yes, war,said Anne of Austria. "YesI will 
reduce this rebellious city to ashes. I will extinguish the 
fire with blood! I will perpetuate the crime and punishment 
by making a frightful example. Paris!; I -- I detestI 
loathe it!" 
Very fine, Anne. You are now sanguinary; but take care. We 
are not in the time of Malatesta and Castruccio Castracani. 
You will get yourself decapitated, my beautiful queen, and 
that would be a pity.
You laugh.
Faintly. It is dangerous to go to war with a nation. Look 
at your brother monarch, Charles I. He is badly off, very 
badly.
We are in France, and I am Spanish.
So much the worse; I had much rather you were French and 
myself also; they would hate us both less.
Nevertheless, you consent?
Yes, if the thing be possible.
It is; it is I who tell you so; make preparations for 
departure.
I! I am always prepared to go, only, as you know, I never 
do go, and perhaps shall go this time as little as before.
In short, if I go, will you go too?
I will try.
You torment me, Giulio, with your fears; and what are you 
afraid of, then?
Of many things.
What are they?
Mazarin's facesmiling as it wasbecame clouded. 
Anne,said heyou are but a woman and as a woman you may 
insult men at your ease, knowing that you can do it with 
impunity. You accuse me of fear; I have not so much as you 
have, since I do not fly as you do. Against whom do they cry 
out? is it against you or against myself? Whom would they 
hang, yourself or me? Well, I can weather the storm -- I, 
whom, notwithstanding, you tax with fear -- not with 
bravado, that is not my way; but I am firm. Imitate me. Make 
less hubbub and think more deeply. You cry very loud, you 
end by doing nothing; you talk of flying ---- 
Mazarin shrugged his shoulders and taking the queen's hand 
led her to the window. 
Look!he said. 
Well?said the queenblinded by her obstinacy. 
Well, what do you see from this window? If I am not 
mistaken those are citizens, helmeted and mailed, armed with 
good muskets, as in the time of the League, and whose eyes 
are so intently fixed on this window that they will see you 
if you raise that curtain much; and now come to the other 
side -- what do you see? Creatures of the people, armed with 
halberds, guarding your doors. You will see the same at 
every opening from this palace to which I should lead you. 
Your doors are guarded, the airholes of your cellars are 
guarded, and I could say to you, as that good La Ramee said 
to me of the Duc de Beaufort, you must be either bird or 
mouse to get out.
He did get out, nevertheless.
Do you think of escaping in the same way?
I am a prisoner, then?
Parbleu!said MazarinI have been proving it to you this 
last hour.
And he quietly resumed his dispatch at the place where he 
had been interrupted. 
Annetrembling with anger and scarlet with humiliation
left the roomshutting the door violently after her. 
Mazarin did not even turn around. When once more in her own 
apartment Anne fell into a chair and wept; then suddenly 
struck with an idea: 
I am saved!she exclaimedrising; "ohyes! yes! I know a 
man who will find the means of taking me from Parisa man I 
have too long forgotten." Then falling into a reverieshe 
addedhoweverwith an expression of joyUngrateful woman 
that I am, for twenty years I have forgotten this man, whom 
I ought to have made a marechal of France. My mother-in-law 
expended gold, caresses, dignities on Concini, who ruined 
her; the king made Vitry marechal of France for an 
assassination: while I have left in obscurity, in poverty, 
the noble D'Artagnan, who saved me!
And running to a tableon which were paperpens and ink
she hastily began to write. 
The Interview. 
It had been D'Artagnan's practiceever since the riotsto 
sleep in the same room as Porthosand on this eventful 
morning he was still theresleepingand dreaming that a 
yellow cloud had overspread the sky and was raining gold 
pieces into his hatwhich he held out till it was 
overflowing with pistoles. As for Porthoshe dreamed that 
the panels of his carriage were not capacious enough to 
contain the armorial bearings he had ordered to be painted 
on them. They were both aroused at seven o'clock by the 
entrance of an unliveried servantwho brought a letter for 
D'Artagnan. 
From whom?asked the Gascon. 
From the queen,replied the servant. 
Ho!said Porthosraising himself in his bed; "what does 
she say?" 
D'Artagnan requested the servant to wait in the next room 
and when the door was closed he sprang up from his bed and 
read rapidlywhilst Porthos looked at him with starting 
eyesnot daring to ask a single question. 
Friend Porthos,said D'Artagnanhanding the letter to 
himthis time, at least, you are sure of your title of 
baron, and I of my captaincy. Read for yourself and judge.
Porthos took the letter and with a trembling voice read the 
following words: 
The queen wishes to speak to Monsieur d'Artagnan, who must 
follow the bearer.
Well!exclaimed Porthos; "I see nothing in that very 
extraordinary." 
But I see much that is very extraordinary in it,replied 
D'Artagnan. "It is evidentby their sending for methat 
matters are becoming complicated. Just reflect a little what 
an agitation the queen's mind must be in for her to have 
remembered me after twenty years." 
It is true,said Porthos. 
Sharpen your sword, baron, load your pistols, and give some 
corn to the horses, for I will answer for it, 
something lightning-like will happen ere to-morrow.
But, stop; do you think it can be a trap that they are 
laying for us?suggested Porthosincessantly thinking how 
his greatness must be irksome to inferior people. 
If it is a snare,replied D'ArtagnanI shall scent it 
out, be assured. If Mazarin is an Italian, I am a Gascon.
And D'Artagnan dressed himself in an instant. 
Whilst Porthosstill in bedwas hooking on his cloak for 
hima second knock at the door was heard. 
Come in,exclaimed D'Artagnan; and another servant 
entered. 
From His Eminence, Cardinal Mazarin,presenting a letter. 
D'Artagnan looked at Porthos. 
A complicated affair,said Porthos; "where will you 
begin?" 
It is arranged capitally; his eminence expects me in half 
an hour.
Good.
My friend,said D'Artagnanturning to the servanttell 
his eminence that in half an hour I shall be at his 
command.
It is very fortunate,resumed the Gasconwhen the valet 
had retiredthat he did not meet the other one.
Do you not think that they have sent for you, both for the 
same thing?
I do not think it, I am certain of it.
Quick, quick, D'Artagnan. Remember that the queen awaits 
you, and after the queen, the cardinal, and after the 
cardinal, myself.
D'Artagnan summoned Anne of Austria's servant and signified 
that he was ready to follow him into the queen's presence. 
The servant conducted him by the Rue des Petits Champs and 
turning to the left entered the little garden gate leading 
into the Rue Richelieu; then they gained the private 
staircase and D'Artagnan was ushered into the oratory. A 
certain emotionfor which he could not accountmade the 
lieutenant's heart beat: he had no longer the assurance of 
youth; experience had taught him the importance of past 
events. Formerly he would have approached the queen as a 
young man who bends before a woman; but now it was a 
different thing; he answered her summons as an humble 
soldier obeys an illustrious general. 
The silence of the oratory was at last disturbed by the 
slight rustling of silkand D'Artagnan started when he 
perceived the tapestry raised by a white handwhichby its 
formits color and its beauty he recognized as that royal 
hand which had one day been presented to him to kiss. The 
queen entered. 
It is you, Monsieur d'Artagnan,she saidfixing a gaze 
full of melancholy interest on the countenance of the 
officerand I know you well. Look at me well in your turn. 
I am the queen; do you recognize me?
No, madame,replied D'Artagnan. 
But are you no longer aware,continued Annegiving that 
sweet expression to her voice which she could do at will
that in former days the queen had once need of a young, 
brave and devoted cavalier -- that she found this cavalier 
-- and that, although he might have thought that she had 
forgotten him, she had kept a place for him in the depths of 
her heart?
No, madame, I was ignorant of that,said the musketeer. 
So much the worse, sir,said Anne of Austria; "so much the 
worseat least for the queenfor to-day she has need of 
the same courage and the same devotion." 
What!exclaimed D'Artagnandoes the queen, surrounded as 
she is by such devoted servants, such wise counselors, men, 
in short, so great by merit or position -- does she deign to 
cast her eyes on an obscure soldier?
Anne understood this covert reproach and was more moved than 
irritated by it. She had many a time felt humiliated by the 
self-sacrifice and disinterestedness shown by the Gascon 
gentleman. She had allowed herself to be exceeded in 
generosity. 
All that you tell me of those by whom I am surrounded, 
Monsieur d'Artagnan, is doubtless true,said the queen
but I have confidence in you alone. I know that you belong 
to the cardinal, but belong to me as well, and I will take 
upon myself the making of your fortune. Come, will you do 
to-day what formerly the gentleman you do not know did for 
the queen?
I will do everything your majesty commands,replied 
D'Artagnan. 
The queen reflected for a moment and thenseeing the 
cautious demeanor of the musketeer: 
Perhaps you like repose?she said. 
I do not know, for I have never had it, madame.
Have you any friends?
I had three, two of whom have left Paris, to go I know not 
where. One alone is left to me, but he is one of those 
known, I believe, to the cavalier of whom your majesty did 
me the honor to speak.
Very good,said the queen; "you and your friend are worth 
an army." 
What am I to do, madame?
Return at five o'clock and I will tell you; but do not 
breathe to a living soul, sir, the rendezvous which I give 
you.
No, madame.
Swear it upon the cross.
Madame, I have never been false to my word; when I say I 
will not do a thing, I mean it.
The queenalthough astonished at this languageto which 
she was not accustomed from her courtiersargued from it a 
happy omen of the zeal with which D'Artagnan would serve her 
in the accomplishment of her project. It was one of the 
Gascon's artifices to hide his deep cunning occasionally 
under an appearance of rough loyalty. 
Has the queen any further commands for me now?asked 
D'Artagnan. 
No, sir,replied Anne of Austriaand you may retire 
until the time that I mentioned to you.
D'Artagnan bowed and went out. 
Diable!he exclaimed when the door was shutthey seem to 
have the greatest need of me just now.
Thenas the half hour had already glided byhe crossed the 
gallery and knocked at the cardinal's door. 
Bernouin introduced him. 
I come for your commands, my lord,he said. 
And according to his custom D'Artagnan glanced rapidly 
around and remarked that Mazarin had a sealed letter before 
him. But it was so placed on the desk that he could not see 
to whom it was addressed. 
You come from the queen?said Mazarinlooking fixedly at 
D'Artagnan. 
I! my lord -- who told you that?
Nobody, but I know it.
I regret infinitely to tell you, my lord, that you are 
mistaken,replied the Gasconimpudentlyfirm to the 
promise he had just made to Anne of Austria. 
I opened the door of the ante-room myself and I saw you 
enter at the end of the corridor.
Because I was shown up the private stairs.
How so?
I know not; it must have been a mistake.
Mazarin was aware that it was not easy to make D'Artagnan 
reveal anything he was desirous of hidingso he gave up
for the timethe discovery of the mystery the Gascon was 
concealing. 
Let us speak of my affairs,said Mazarinsince you will 
tell me naught of yours. Are you fond of traveling?
My life has been passed on the high road.
Would anything retain you particularly in Paris?
Nothing but an order from a superior would retain me in 
Paris.
Very well. Here is a letter, which must be taken to its 
address.
To its address, my lord? But it has none.
In factthe side of the letter opposite the seal was blank. 
I must tell you,resumed Mazarinthat it is in a double 
envelope.
I understand; and I am to take off the first one when I 
have reached a certain place?
Just so, take it and go. You have a friend, Monsieur du 
Vallon, whom I like much; let him accompany you.
The devil!said D'Artagnan to himself. "He knows that we 
overheard his conversation yesterday and he wants to get us 
away from Paris." 
Do you hesitate?asked Mazarin. 
No, my lord, and I will set out at once. There is one thing 
only which I must request.
What is it? Speak.
That your eminence will go at once to the queen.
What for?
Merely to say these words: `I am going to send Monsieur 
d'Artagnan away and I wish him to set out directly.'
I told you,said Mazarinthat you had seen the queen.
I had the honor of saying to your eminence that there had 
been some mistake.
What is the meaning of that?
May I venture to repeat my prayer to your eminence?
Very well; I will go. Wait here for me.And looking 
attentively around himto see if he had left any of his 
keys in his closetsMazarin went out. Ten minutes elapsed
during which D'Artagnan made every effort to read through 
the first envelope what was written on the second. But he 
did not succeed. 
Mazarin returnedpaleand evidently thoughtful. He seated 
himself at his desk and D'Artagnan proceeded to examine his 
faceas he had just examined the letter he heldbut the 
envelope which covered his countenance appeared as 
impenetrable as that which covered the letter. 
Ah!thought the Gascon; "he looks displeased. Can it be 
with me? He meditates. Is it about sending me to the 
Bastile? All very finemy lordbut at the very first hint 
you give of such a thing I will strangle you and become 
Frondist. I should be carried home in triumph like Monsieur 
Broussel and Athos would proclaim me the French Brutus. It 
would be exceedingly droll." 
The Gasconwith his vivid imaginationhad already seen the 
advantage to be derived from his situation. Mazarin gave
howeverno order of the kindbut on the contrary began to 
be insinuating. 
You were right,he saidmy dear Monsieur d'Artagnan, and 
you cannot set out yet. I beg you to return me that 
dispatch.
D'Artagnan obeyedand Mazarin ascertained that the seal was 
intact. 
I shall want you this evening,he said "Return in two 
hours." 
My lord,said D'ArtagnanI have an appointment in two 
hours which I cannot miss.
Do not be uneasy,said Mazarin; "it is the same." 
Good!thought D'Artagnan; "I fancied it was so." 
Return, then, at five o'clock and bring that worthy 
Monsieur du Vallon with you. Only, leave him in the 
ante-room, as I wish to speak to you alone.
D'Artagnan bowedand thought: "Both at the same hour; both 
commands alike; both at the Palais Royal. Monsieur de Gondy 
would pay a hundred thousand francs for such a secret!" 
You are thoughtful,said Mazarinuneasily. 
Yes, I was thinking whether we ought to come armed or not.
Armed to the teeth!replied Mazarin. 
Very well, my lord; it shall be so.
D'Artagnan salutedwent out and hastened to repeat to his 
friend Mazarin's flattering promiseswhich gave Porthos an 
indescribable happiness. 
The Flight. 
When D'Artagnan returned to the Palais Royal at five 
o'clockit presentedin spite of the excitement which 
reigned in the towna spectacle of the greatest rejoicing. 
Nor was that surprising. The queen had restored Broussel and 
Blancmesnil to the people and had therefore nothing to fear
since the people had nothing more just then to ask for. The 
returnalsoof the conqueror of Lens was the pretext for 
giving a grand banquet. The princes and princesses were 
invited and their carriages had crowded the court since 
noon; then after dinner the queen was to have a play in her 
apartment. Anne of Austria had never appeared more brilliant 
than on that day -- radiant with grace and wit. Mazarin 
disappeared as they rose from table. He found D'Artagnan 
waiting for him already at his post in the ante-room. 
The cardinal advanced to him with a smile and taking him by 
the hand led him into his study. 
My dear M. d'Artagnan,said the ministersitting downI 
am about to give you the greatest proof of confidence that a 
minister can give an officer.
I hope,said D'Artagnanbowingthat you give it, my 
lord, without hesitation and with the conviction that I am 
worthy of it.
More worthy than any one in Paris my dear friend; therefore 
I apply to you. We are about to leave this evening,
continued Mazarin. "My dear M. d'Artagnanthe welfare of 
the state is deposited in your hands." He paused. 
Explain yourself, my lord, I am listening.
The queen has resolved to make a little excursion with the 
king to Saint Germain.
Aha!said D'Artagnanthat is to say, the queen wishes to 
leave Paris.
A woman's caprice -- you understand.
Yes, I understand perfectly,said D'Artagnan. 
It was for this she summoned you this morning and that she 
told you to return at five o'clock.
Was it worth while to wish me to swear this morning that I 
would mention the appointment to no one?muttered 
D'Artagnan. "Ohwomen! women! whether queens or notthey 
are always the same." 
Do you disapprove of this journey, my dear M. d'Artagnan?
asked Mazarinanxiously. 
I, my lord?said D'Artagnan; "why should I?" 
Because you shrug your shoulders.
It is a way I have of speaking to myself. I neither approve 
nor disapprove, my lord; I merely await your commands.
Good; it is you, accordingly, that I have pitched upon to 
conduct the king and the queen to Saint Germain.
Liar!thought D'Artagnan. 
You see, therefore,continued the cardinalperceiving 
D'Artagnan's composurethat, as I have told you, the 
welfare of the state is placed in your hands.
Yes, my lord, and I feel the whole responsibility of such a 
charge.
You accept, however?
I always accept.
Do you think the thing possible?
Everything is possible.
Shall you be attacked on the road?
Probably.
And what will you do in that case?
I shall pass through those who attack me.
And suppose you cannot pass through them?
So much the worse for them; I shall pass over them.
And you will place the king and queen in safety also, at 
Saint Germain?
Yes.
On your life?
On my life.
You are a hero, my friend,said Mazaringazing at the
musketeer with admiration.
D'Artagnan smiled.
And I?asked Mazarinafter a moment's silence.
How? and you, my lord?
If I wish to leave?
That would be much more difficult.
Why so?
Your eminence might be recognized.
Even under this disguise?asked Mazarinraising a cloak 
which covered an arm-chairupon which lay a complete dress 
for an officerof pearl-gray and redentirely embroidered 
with silver. 
If your eminence is disguised it will be almost easy.
Ah!said Mazarinbreathing more freely. 
But it will be necessary for your eminence to do what the 
other day you declared you should have done in our place -cry, 
`Down with Mazarin!'
I will: `Down with Mazarin'
In French, in good French, my lord, take care of your 
accent; they killed six thousand Angevins in Sicily because 
they pronounced Italian badly. Take care that the French do 
not take their revenge on you for the Sicilian vespers.
I will do my best.
The streets are full of armed men,continued D'Artagnan. 
Are you sure that no one is aware of the queen's project?
Mazarin reflected. 
This affair would give a fine opportunity for a traitor, my 
lord; the chance of being attacked would be an excuse for 
everything.
Mazarin shudderedbut he reflected that a man who had the 
least intention to betray would not warn first. 
And therefore,added hequietlyI have not confidence 
in every one; the proof of which is, that I have fixed upon 
you to escort me.
Shall you not go with the queen?
No,replied Mazarin. 
Then you will start after the queen?
No,said Mazarin again. 
Ah!said D'Artagnanwho began to understand. 
Yes,continued the cardinal. "I have my plan. With the 
queen I double her risk; after the queen her departure would 
double mine; thenthe court once safeI might be 
forgotten. The great are often ungrateful." 
Very true,said D'Artagnanfixing his eyesin spite of 
himselfon the queen's diamondwhich Mazarin wore on his 
finger. Mazarin followed the direction of his eyes and 
gently turned the hoop of the ring inside. 
I wish,he saidwith his cunning smileto prevent them 
from being ungrateful to me.
It is but Christian charity,replied D'Artagnannot to 
lead one's neighbors into temptation.
It is exactly for that reason,said Mazarinthat I wish 
to start before them.
D'Artagnan smiled -- he was just the man to understand the 
astute Italian. Mazarin saw the smile and profited by the 
moment. 
You will begin, therefore, by taking me first out of Paris, 
will you not, my dear M. d'Artagnan?
A difficult commission, my lord,replied D'Artagnan
resuming his serious manner. 
But,said Mazarinyou did not make so many difficulties 
with regard to the king and queen.
The king and the queen are my king and queen,replied the 
musketeermy life is theirs and I must give it for them. 
If they ask it what have I to say?
That is true,murmured Mazarinin a low tonebut as thy 
life is not mine I suppose I must buy it, must I not?and 
sighing deeply he began to turn the hoop of his ring outside 
again. D'Artagnan smiled. These two men met at one point and 
that wascunning; had they been actuated equally by 
couragethe one would have done great things for the other. 
But, also,said Mazarinyou must understand that if I 
ask this service from you it is with the intention of being 
grateful.
Is it still only an intention, your eminence?asked 
D'Artagnan. 
Stay,said Mazarindrawing the ring from his fingermy 
dear D'Artagnan, there is a diamond which belonged to you 
formerly, it is but just it should return to you; take it, I 
pray.
D'Artagnan spared Mazarin the trouble of insistingand 
after looking to see if the stone was the same and assuring 
himself of the purity of its waterhe took it and passed it 
on his finger with indescribable pleasure. 
I valued it much,said Mazaringiving a last look at it; 
nevertheless, I give it to you with great pleasure.
And I, my lord,said D'Artagnanaccept it as it is 
given. Come, let us speak of your little affairs. You wish 
to leave before everybody and at what hour?
At ten o'clock.
And the queen, at what time is it her wish to start?
At midnight.
Then it is possible. I can get you out of Paris and leave 
you beyond the barriere, and can return for her.
Capital; but how will you get me out of Paris?
Oh! as to that, you must leave it to me.
I give you absolute power, therefore; take as large an 
escort as you like.
D'Artagnan shook his head. 
It seems to me, however,said Mazarinthe safest 
method.
Yes, for you, my lord, but not for the queen; you must 
leave it to me and give me the entire direction of the 
undertaking.
Nevertheless ---- 
Or find some one else,continued D'Artagnanturning his 
back. 
Oh!muttered MazarinI do believe he is going off with 
the diamond! M. d'Artagnan, my dear M. d'Artagnan,he 
called out in a coaxing voicewill you answer for 
everything?
I will answer for nothing. I will do my best.
Well, then, let us go -- I must trust to you.
It is very fortunate,said D'Artagnan to himself. 
You will be here at half-past nine.
And I shall find your eminence ready?
Certainly, quite ready.
Well, then, it is a settled thing; and now, my lord, will 
you obtain for me an audience with the queen?
For what purpose?
I wish to receive her majesty's commands from her own
lips.
She desired me to give them to you.
She may have forgotten something.
You really wish to see her?
It is indispensable, my lord.
Mazarin hesitated for one instantbut D'Artagnan was firm.
Come, then,said the minister; "I will conduct you to her
but remembernot one word of our conversation." 
What has passed between us concerns ourselves alone. my 
lord,replied D'Artagnan. 
Swear to be mute.
I never swear, my lord, I say yes or no; and, as I am a 
gentleman, I keep my word.
Come, then, I see that I must trust unreservedly to you.
Believe me, my lord, it will be your best plan.
Come,said Mazarinconducting D'Artagnan into the queen's 
oratory and desiring him to wait there. He did not wait 
longfor in five minutes the queen entered in full gala 
costume. Thus dressed she scarcely appeared thirty-five 
years of age. She was still exceedingly handsome. 
It is you, Monsieur D'Artagnan,she saidsmiling 
graciously; "I thank you for having insisted on seeing me." 
I ought to ask your majesty's pardon, but I wished to 
receive your commands from your own mouth.
Do you accept the commission which I have intrusted to 
you?
With gratitude.
Very well, be here at midnight.
I will not fail.
Monsieur d'Artagnan,continued the queenI know your 
disinterestedness too well to speak of my own gratitude at 
such a moment, but I swear to you that I shall not forget 
this second service as I forgot the first.
Your majesty is free to forget or to remember, as it 
pleases you; and I know not what you mean,said D'Artagnan
bowing. 
Go, sir,said the queenwith her most bewitching smile
go and return at midnight.
And D'Artagnan retiredbut as he passed out he glanced at 
the curtain through which the queen had entered and at the 
bottom of the tapestry he remarked the tip of a velvet 
slipper. 
Good,thought he; "Mazarin has been listening to discover 
whether I betrayed him. In truththat Italian puppet does 
not deserve the services of an honest man." 
D'Artagnan was not less exact to his appointment and at 
half-past nine o'clock he entered the ante-room. 
He found the cardinal dressed as an officerand he looked 
very well in that costumewhichas we have already said
he wore elegantly; only he was very pale and trembled 
slightly. 
Quite alone?he asked. 
Yes, my lord.
And that worthy Monsieur du Vallon, are we not to enjoy his 
society?
Certainly, my lord; he is waiting in his carriage at the 
gate of the garden of the Palais Royal.
And we start in his carriage, then?
Yes, my lord.
And with us no other escort but you two?
Is it not enough? One of us would suffice.
Really, my dear Monsieur d'Artagnan,said the cardinal
your coolness startles me.
I should have thought, on the contrary, that it ought to 
have inspired you with confidence.
And Bernouin -- do I not take him with me?
There is no room for him, he will rejoin your eminence.
Let us go,said Mazarinsince everything must be done as 
you wish.
My lord, there is time to draw back,said D'Artagnanand 
your eminence is perfectly free.
Not at all, not at all,said Mazarin; "let us be off." 
And so they descended the private stairMazarin leaning on 
the arm of D'Artagnan a hand the musketeer felt trembling. 
At lastafter crossing the courts of the Palais Royal
where there still remained some of the conveyances of late 
gueststhey entered the garden and reached the little gate. 
Mazarin attempted to open it by a key which he took from his 
pocketbut with such shaking fingers that he could not find 
the keyhole. 
Give it to me,said D'Artagnanwho when the gate was open 
deposited the key in his pocketreckoning upon returning by 
that gate. 
The steps were already down and the door open. Musqueton 
stood at the door and Porthos was inside the carriage. 
Mount, my lord,said D'Artagnan to Mazarinwho sprang 
into the carriage without waiting for a second bidding. 
D'Artagnan followed himand Musquetonhaving closed the 
doormounted behind the carriage with many groans. He had 
made some difficulties about goingunder pretext that he 
still suffered from his woundbut D'Artagnan had said to 
him: 
Remain if you like, my dear Monsieur Mouston, but I warn 
you that Paris will be burnt down to-night;upon which 
Musqueton had declaredwithout asking anything further
that he was ready to follow his master and Monsieur 
d'Artagnan to the end of the world. 
The carriage started at a measured pacewithout betraying 
by the slightest sign that it contained people in a hurry. 
The cardinal wiped his forehead with his handkerchief and 
looked around him. On his left was Porthoswhilst 
D'Artagnan was on his right; each guarded a door and served 
as a rampart to him on either side. Before himon the front 
seatlay two pairs of pistols -- one in front of Porthos 
and the other of D'Artagnan. About a hundred paces from the 
Palais Royal a patrol stopped the carriage. 
Who goes?asked the captain. 
Mazarin!replied D'Artagnanbursting into a laugh. The 
cardinal's hair stood on end. But the joke appeared an 
excellent one to the citizenswhoseeing the conveyance 
without escort and unarmedwould never have believed in the 
possibility of so great an imprudence. 
A good journey to ye,they criedallowing it to pass. 
Hem!said D'Artagnanwhat does my lord think of that 
reply?
Man of talent!cried Mazarin. 
In truth,said PorthosI understand; but now ---- 
About the middle of the Rue des Petits Champs they were 
stopped by a second patrol. 
Who goes there?inquired the captain of the patrol. 
Keep back, my lord,said D'Artagnan. And Mazarin buried 
himself so far behind the two friends that he disappeared
completely hidden between them. 
Who goes there?cried the same voiceimpatiently whilst 
D'Artagnan perceived that they had rushed to the horses' 
heads. But putting hid head out of the carriage: 
Eh! Planchet,said he. 
The chief approachedand it was indeed Planchet; D'Artagnan 
had recognized the voice of his old servant. 
How, sir!said Planchetis it you?
Eh! mon Dieu! yes, my good friend, this worthy Porthos has 
just received a sword wound and I am taking him to his 
country house at Saint Cloud.
Oh! really,said Planchet. 
Porthos,said D'Artagnanif you can still speak, say a 
word, my dear Porthos, to this good Planchet.
Planchet, my friend,said Porthosin a melancholy voice
I am very ill; should you meet a doctor you will do me a 
favor by sending him to me.
Oh! good Heaven,said Planchetwhat a misfortune! and 
how did it happen?
I will tell you all about it,replied Musqueton. 
Porthos uttered a deep groan. 
Make way for us, Planchet,said D'Artagnan in a whisper to 
himor he will not arrive alive; the lungs are attacked, 
my friend.
Planchet shook his head with the air of a man who saysIn 
that case things look ill.Then he exclaimedturning to 
his men: 
Let them pass; they are friends. 
The carriage resumed its course, and Mazarin, who had held 
his breath, ventured to breathe again. 
Bricconi!" muttered he. 
A few steps in advance of the gate of Saint Honore they met 
a third troop; this latter party was composed of ill-looking 
fellowswho resembled bandits more than anything else; they 
were the men of the beggar of Saint Eustache. 
Attention, Porthos!cried D'Artagnan. 
Porthos placed his hand on the pistols. 
What is it?asked Mazarin. 
My lord, I think we are in bad company.
A man advanced to the door with a kind of scythe in his 
hand. "Qui vive?" he asked. 
Eh, rascal!said D'Artagnando you not recognize his 
highness the prince's carriage?
Prince or not,said the manopen. We are here to guard 
the gate, and no one whom we do not know shall pass.
What is to be done?said Porthos. 
Pardieu! pass,replied D'Artagnan. 
But how?asked Mazarin. 
Through or over; coachman, gallop on.
The coachman raised his whip. 
Not a step further,said the manwho appeared to be the 
captainor I will hamstring your horses.
Peste!said Porthosit would be a pity; animals which 
cost me a hundred pistoles each.
I will pay you two hundred for them,said Mazarin. 
Yes, but when once they are hamstrung, our necks will be 
strung next.
If one of them comes to my side,asked Porthosmust I 
kill him?
Yes, by a blow of your fist, if you can; we will not fire 
but at the last extremity.
I can do it,said Porthos. 
Come and open, then!cried D'Artagnan to the man with the 
scythetaking one of the pistols up by the muzzle and 
preparing to strike with the handle. And as the man 
approachedD'Artagnanin order to have more freedom for 
his actionsleaned half out of the door; his eyes were 
fixed upon those of the mendicantwhich were lighted up by 
a lantern. Without doubt he recognized D'Artagnanfor he 
became deadly pale; doubtless the musketeer knew himfor 
his hair stood up on his head. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan!he criedfalling back a step; "it is 
Monsieur d'Artagnan! let him pass." 
D'Artagnan was perhaps about to replywhen a blowsimilar 
to that of a mallet falling on the head of an oxwas heard. 
The noise was caused by Porthoswho had just knocked down 
his man. 
D'Artagnan turned around and saw the unfortunate man upon 
his back about four paces off. 
'Sdeath!cried he to the coachman. "Spur your horses! 
whip! get on!" 
The coachman bestowed a heavy blow of the whip upon his 
horses; the noble animals bounded forward; then cries of men 
who were knocked down were heard; then a double concussion 
was feltand two of the wheels seemed to pass over a round 
and flexible body. There was a moment's silencethen the 
carriage cleared the gate. 
To Cours la Reine!cried D'Artagnan to the coachman; then 
turning to Mazarin he saidNow, my lord, you can say five 
paters and five aves, in thanks to Heaven for your 
deliverance. You are safe -- you are free.
Mazarin replied only by a groan; he could not believe in 
such a miracle. Five minutes later the carriage stopped
having reached Cours la Reine. 
Is my lord pleased with his escort?asked D'Artagnan. 
Enchanted, monsieur,said Mazarinventuring his head out 
of one of the windows; "and now do as much for the queen." 
It will not be so difficult,replied D'Artagnanspringing 
to the ground. "Monsieur du VallonI commend his eminence 
to your care." 
Be quite at ease,said Porthosholding out his hand
which D'Artagnan took and shook in his. 
Oh!cried Porthosas if in pain. 
D'Artagnan looked with surprise at his friend. 
What is the matter, then?he asked. 
I think I have sprained my wrist,' said Porthos. 
The devil! whyyou strike like a blind or a deaf man." 
It was necessary; my man was going to fire a pistol at me; 
but you -- how did you get rid of yours?
Oh, mine,replied D'Artagnanwas not a man.
What was it then?
It was an apparition.
And ---- 
I charmed it away.
Without further explanation D'Artagnan took the pistols 
which were upon the front seatplaced them in his belt
wrapped himself in his cloakand not wishing to enter by 
the same gate as that through which they had lefthe took 
his way toward the Richelieu gate. 
The Carriage of Monsieur le Coadjuteur. 
Instead of returningthenby the Saint Honore gate
D'Artagnanwho had time before himwalked around and 
re-entered by the Porte Richelieu. He was approached to be 
examinedand when it was discovered by his plumed hat and 
his laced coatthat he was an officer of the musketeershe 
was surroundedwith the intention of making him cryDown 
with Mazarin!The demonstration did not fail to make him 
uneasy at first; but when he discovered what it meanthe 
shouted it in such a voice that even the most exacting were 
satisfied. He walked down the Rue Richelieumeditating how 
he should carry off the queen in her turnfor to take her 
in a carriage bearing the arms of France was not to be 
thought ofwhen he perceived an equipage standing at the 
door of the hotel belonging to Madame de Guemenee. 
He was struck by a sudden idea. 
Ah, pardieu!he exclaimed; "that would be fair play." 
And approaching the carriagehe examined the arms on the 
panels and the livery of the coachman on his box. This 
scrutiny was so much the more easythe coachman being sound 
asleep. 
It is, in truth, monsieur le coadjuteur's carriage,said 
D'Artagnan; "upon my honor I begin to think that Heaven 
favors us." 
He mounted noiselessly into the chariot and pulled the silk 
cord which was attached to the coachman's little finger. 
To the Palais Royal,he called out. 
The coachman awoke with a start and drove off in the 
direction he was desirednever doubting but that the order 
had come from his master. The porter at the palace was about 
to close the gatesbut seeing such a handsome equipage he 
fancied that it was some visit of importance and the 
carriage was allowed to pass and to stop beneath the porch. 
It was then only the coachman perceived the grooms were not 
behind the vehicle; he fancied monsieur le coadjuteur had 
sent them backand without dropping the reins he sprang 
from his box to open the door. D'Artagnanin his turn
sprang to the groundand just at the moment when the 
coachmanalarmed at not seeing his masterfell back a 
stephe seized him by his collar with the leftwhilst with 
the right hand he placed the muzzle of a pistol at his 
breast. 
Pronounce one single word,muttered D'Artagnanand you 
are a dead man.
The coachman perceived at onceby the expression of the man 
who thus addressed himthat he had fallen into a trapand 
he remained with his mouth wide open and his eyes 
portentously staring. 
Two musketeers were pacing the courtto whom D'Artagnan 
called by their names. 
Monsieur de Belliere,said he to one of themdo me the 
favor to take the reins from the hands of this worthy man, 
mount upon the box and drive to the door of the private 
stair, and wait for me there; it is an affair of importance 
on the service of the king.
The musketeerwho knew that his lieutenant was incapable of 
jesting with regard to the serviceobeyed without a word
although he thought the order strange. Then turning toward 
the second musketeerD'Artagnan said: 
Monsieur du Verger, help me to place this man in a place of 
safety.
The musketeerthinking that his lieutenant had just 
arrested some prince in disguisebowedand drawing his 
swordsignified that he was ready. D'Artagnan mounted the 
staircasefollowed by his prisonerwho in his turn was 
followed by the soldierand entered Mazarin's ante-room. 
Bernouin was waiting thereimpatient for news of his 
master. 
Well, sir?he said. 
Everything goes on capitally, my dear Monsieur Bernouin, 
but here is a man whom I must beg you to put in a safe 
place.
Where, then, sir?
Where you like, provided that the place which you shall 
choose has iron shutters secured by padlocks and a door that 
can be locked.
We have that, sir,replied Bernouin; and the poor coachman 
was conducted to a closetthe windows of which were barred 
and which looked very much like a prison. 
And now, my good friend,said D'Artagnan to himI must 
invite you to deprive yourself, for my sake, of your hat and 
cloak.
The coachmanas we can well understandmade no resistance; 
in facthe was so astonished at what had happened to him 
that he stammered and reeled like a drunken man; D'Artagnan 
deposited his clothes under the arm of one of the valets. 
And now, Monsieur du Verger,he saidshut yourself up 
with this man until Monsieur Bernouin returns to open the 
door. The duty will be tolerably long and not very amusing, 
I know; but,added heseriouslyyou understand, it is on 
the king's service.
At your command, lieutenant,replied the musketeerwho 
saw the business was a serious one. 
By-the-bye,continued D'Artagnanshould this man attempt 
to fly or to call out, pass your sword through his body.
The musketeer signified by a nod that these commands should 
be obeyed to the letterand D'Artagnan went outfollowed 
by Bernouin. Midnight struck. 
Lead me into the queen's oratory,said D'Artagnan
announce to her I am here, and put this parcel, with a 
well-loaded musket, under the seat of the carriage which is 
waiting at the foot of the private stair.
Bernouin conducted D'Artagnan to the oratorywhere he sat 
down pensively. Everything had gone on as usual at the 
Palais Royal. As we said beforeby ten o'clock almost all 
the guests had dispersed; those who were to fly with the 
court had the word of command and they were each severally 
desired to be from twelve o'clock to one at Cours la Reine. 
At ten o'clock Anne of Austria had entered the king's room. 
Monsieur had just retiredand the youthful Louisremaining 
the lastwas amusing himself by placing some lead soldiers 
in a line of battlea game which delighted him much. Two 
royal pages were playing with him. 
Laporte,said the queenit is time for his majesty to go 
to bed.
The king asked to remain uphavinghe saidno wish to 
sleep; but the queen was firm. 
Are you not going to-morrow morning at six o'clock, Louis, 
to bathe at Conflans? I think you wished to do so of your 
own accord?
You are right, madame,said the kingand I am ready to 
retire to my room when you have kissed me. Laporte, give the 
light to Monsieur the Chevalier de Coislin.
The queen touched with her lips the whitesmooth brow the 
royal child presented to her with a gravity which already 
partook of etiquette. 
Go to sleep soon, Louis,said the queenfor you must be 
awakened very early.
I will do my best to obey you, madame,said the youthful 
kingbut I have no inclination to sleep.
Laporte,said Anne of Austriain an undertonefind some 
very dull book to read to his majesty, but do not undress 
yourself.
The king went outaccompanied by the Chevalier de Coislin
bearing the candlestickand then the queen returned to her 
own apartment. Her ladies -- that is to say Madame de Bregy
Mademoiselle de BeaumontMadame de Mottevilleand 
Socratineher sisterso called on account of her sense -had 
just brought into her dressing-room the remains of the 
dinneron whichaccording to her usual customshe supped. 
The queen then gave her ordersspoke of a banquet which the 
Marquis de Villequier was to give to her on the day after 
the morrowindicated the persons she would admit to the 
honor of partaking of itannounced another visit on the 
following day to Val-de-Gracewhere she intended to pay her 
devotionsand gave her commands to her senior valet to 
accompany her. When the ladies had finished their supper the 
queen feigned extreme fatigue and passed into her bedroom. 
Madame de Mottevillewho was on especial duty that evening
followed to aid and undress her. The queen then began to 
readand after conversing with her affectionately for a few 
minutesdismissed her. 
It was at this moment D'Artagnan entered the courtyard of 
the palacein the coadjutor's carriageand a few seconds 
later the carriages of the ladies-in-waiting drove out and 
the gates were shut after them. 
A few minutes after twelve o'clock Bernouin knocked at the 
queen's bedroom doorhaving come by the cardinal's secret 
corridor. Anne of Austria opened the door to him herself. 
She was dressedthat is to sayin dishabillewrapped in a 
longwarm dressing-gown. 
It is you, Bernouin,she said. "Is Monsieur d'Artagnan 
there?" 
Yes, madame, in your oratory. He is waiting till your 
majesty is ready.
I am. Go and tell Laporte to wake and dress the king, and 
then pass on to the Marechal de Villeroy and summon him to 
me.
Bernouin bowed and retired. 
The queen entered her oratorywhich was lighted by a single 
lamp of Venetian crystalShe saw D'Artagnanwho stood 
expecting her. 
Is it you?she said. 
Yes, madame.
Are you ready?
I am.
And his eminence, the cardinal?
Has got off without any accident. He is awaiting your 
majesty at Cours la Reine.
But in what carriage do we start?
I have provided for everything; a carriage below is waiting 
for your majesty.
Let us go to the king.
D'Artagnan bowed and followed the queen. The young Louis was 
already dressedwith the exception of his shoes and 
doublet; he had allowed himself to be dressedin great 
astonishmentoverwhelming Laporte with questionswho 
replied only in these wordsSire, it is by the queen's 
commands.
The bedclothes were thrown backexposing the king's bed 
linenwhich was so worn that here and there holes could be 
seen. It was one of the results of Mazarin's niggardliness. 
The queen entered and D'Artagnan remained at the door. As 
soon as the child perceived the queen he escaped from 
Laporte and ran to meet her. Anne then motioned to 
D'Artagnan to approachand he obeyed. 
My son,said Anne of Austriapointing to the musketeer
calmstanding uncoveredhere is Monsieur d'Artagnan, who 
is as brave as one of those ancient heroes of whom you like 
so much to hear from my women. Remember his name well and 
look at him well, that his face may not be forgotten, for 
this evening he is going to render us a great service.
The young king looked at the officer with his large-formed 
eyeand repeated: 
Monsieur d'Artagnan.
That is it, my son.
The young king slowly raised his little hand and held it out 
to the musketeer; the latter bent on his knee and kissed it. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan,repeated Louis; "very wellmadame." 
At this moment they were startled by a noise as if a tumult 
were approaching. 
What is that?exclaimed the queen. 
Oh, oh!replied D'Artagnanstraining both at the same 
time his quick ear and his intelligent glanceit is the 
murmur of the populace in revolution.
We must fly,said the queen. 
Your majesty has given me the control of this business; we 
had better wait and see what they want.
Monsieur d'Artagnan!
I will answer for everything.
Nothing is so catching as confidence. The queenfull of 
energy and couragewas quickly alive to these two virtues 
in others. 
Do as you like,she saidI rely upon you.
Will your majesty permit me to give orders in your name 
throughout this business?
Command, sir.
What do the people want this time?demanded the king. 
We are about to ascertain, sire,replied D'Artagnanas he 
rapidly left the room. 
The tumult continued to increase and seemed to surround the 
Palais Royal entirely. Cries were heard from the interior
of which they could not comprehend the sense. It was evident 
that there was clamor and sedition. 
The kinghalf dressedthe queen and Laporte remained each 
in the same state and almost in the same placewhere they 
were listening and waiting. Commingeswho was on guard that 
night at the Palais Royalran in. He had about two hundred 
men in the courtyards and stablesand he placed them at the 
queen's disposal. 
Well,asked Anne of Austriawhen D'Artagnan reappeared
what does it mean?
It means, madame, that the report has spread that the queen 
has left the Palais Royal, carrying off the king, and the 
people ask to have proof to the contrary, or threaten to 
demolish the Palais Royal.
Oh, this time it is too much!exclaimed the queenand I 
will prove to them I have not left.
D'Artagnan saw from the expression of the queen's face that 
she was about to issue some violent command. He approached 
her and said in a low voice: 
Has your majesty still confidence in me?
This voice startled her. "Yessir she replied, every 
confidence; speak." 
Will the queen deign to follow my advice?
Speak.
Let your majesty dismiss M. de Comminges and desire him to 
shut himself up with his men in the guardhouse and in the 
stables.
Comminges glanced at D'Artagnan with the envious look with 
which every courtier sees a new favorite spring up. 
You hear, Comminges?said the queen. 
D'Artagnan went up to him; with his usual quickness he 
caught the anxious glance. 
Monsieur de Comminges,he saidpardon me; we both are 
servants of the queen, are we not? It is my turn to be of 
use to her; do not envy me this happiness.
Comminges bowed and left. 
Come,said D'Artagnan to himselfI have got one more 
enemy.
And now,said the queenaddressing D'Artagnanwhat is 
to be done? for you hear that, instead of becoming calmer, 
the noise increases.
Madame,said D'Artagnanthe people want to see the king 
and they must see him.
What! must see him! Where -- on the balcony?
Not at all, madame, but here, sleeping in his bed.
Oh, your majesty,exclaimed LaporteMonsieur d'Artagnan 
is right.
The queen became thoughtful and smiledlike a woman to whom 
duplicity is no stranger. 
Without doubt,she murmured. 
Monsieur Laporte,said D'Artagnango and announce to the 
people through the grating that they are going to be 
satisfied and that in five minutes they shall not only see 
the king, but they shall see him in bed; add that the king 
sleeps and that the queen begs that they will keep silence, 
so as not to awaken him.
But not every one; a deputation of two or four people.
Every one, madame.
But reflect, they will keep us here till daybreak. 
It shall take but a quarter of an hourI answer for 
everythingmadame; believe meI know the people; they are 
like a great childwho only wants humoring. Before the 
sleeping king they will be mutegentle and timid as lambs." 
Go, Laporte,said the queen. 
The young king approached his mother and saidWhy do as 
these people ask?
It must be so, my son,said Anne of Austria. 
But if they say, `it must be' to me, am I no longer king?
The queen remained silent. 
Sire,said D'Artagnanwill your majesty permit me to ask 
you a question?
Louis XIV. turned aroundastonished that any one should 
dare to address him. But the queen pressed the child's hand. 
Yes, sir.he said. 
Does your majesty remember, when playing in the park of 
Fontainebleau, or in the palace courts at Versailles, ever 
to have seen the sky grow suddenly dark and heard the sound 
of thunder?
Yes, certainly.
Well, then, this noise of thunder, however much your 
majesty may have wished to continue playing, has said, `go 
in, sire. You must do so.'
Certainly, sir; but they tell me that the noise of thunder 
is the voice of God.
Well then, sire,continued D'Artagnanlisten to the 
noise of the people; you will perceive that it resembles 
that of thunder.
In truth at that moment a terrible murmur was wafted to them 
by the night breeze; then all at once it ceased. 
Hold, sire,said D'Artagnanthey have just told the 
people that you are asleep; you see, you still are king.
The queen looked with surprise at this strange manwhose 
brilliant courage made him the equal of the bravestand who 
wasby his fine and quick intelligencethe equal of the 
most astute. 
Laporte entered. 
Well, Laporte?asked the queen. 
Madame,he repliedMonsieur d'Artagnan's prediction has 
been accomplished; they are calm, as if by enchantment. The 
doors are about to be opened and in five minutes they will 
be here.
Laporte,said the queensuppose you put one of your sons 
in the king's place; we might be off during the time.
If your majesty desires it,said Laportemy sons, like 
myself, are at the queen's service.
Not at all,said D'Artagnan; "should one of them know his 
majesty and discover but a substituteall would be lost." 
You are right, sir, always right,said Anne of Austria. 
Laporte, place the king in bed.
Laporte placed the kingdressed as he wasin the bed and 
then covered him as far as the shoulders with the sheet. The 
queen bent over him and kissed his brow. 
Pretend to sleep, Louis,said she. 
Yes,said the kingbut I do not wish to be touched by 
any of those men.
Sire, I am here,said D'Artagnanand I give you my word, 
that if a single man has the audacity, his life shall pay 
for it.
And now what is to be done?asked the queenfor I hear 
them.
Monsieur Laporte, go to them and again recommend silence. 
Madame, wait at the door, whilst I shall be at the head of 
the king's bed, ready to die for him.
Laporte went out; the queen remained standing near the 
hangingswhilst D'Artagnan glided behind the curtains. 
Then the heavy and collected steps of a multitude of men 
were heardand the queen herself raised the tapestry 
hangings and put her finger on her lips. 
On seeing the queenthe men stopped shortrespectfully. 
Enter, gentlemen, enter,said the queen. 
There was then amongst that crowd a moment's hesitation
which looked like shame. They had expected resistancethey 
had expected to be thwartedto have to force the gatesto 
overturn the guards. The gates had opened of themselvesand 
the kingostensibly at leasthad no other guard at his 
bed-head but his mother. The foremost of them stammered and 
attempted to fall back. 
Enter, gentlemen,said Laportesince the queen desires 
you so to do.
Then one more bold than the rest ventured to pass the door 
and to advance on tiptoe. This example was imitated by the 
restuntil the room filled silentlyas if these men had 
been the humblestmost devoted courtiers. Far beyond the 
door the heads of those who were not able to enter could be 
seenall craning to their utmost height to try and see. 
D'Artagnan saw it all through an opening he had made in the 
curtainand in the very first man who entered he recognized 
Planchet. 
Sir,said the queen to himthinking he was the leader of 
the bandyou wished to see the king and therefore I 
determined to show him to you myself. Approach and look at 
him and say if we have the appearance of people who wish to 
run away.
No, certainly,replied Planchetrather astonished at the 
unexpected honor conferred upon him. 
You will say, then, to my good and faithful Parisians,
continued Annewith a smilethe expression of which did 
not deceive D'Artagnanthat you have seen the king in bed, 
asleep, and the queen also ready to retire.
I shall tell them, madame, and those who accompany me will 
say the same thing; but ---- 
But what?asked Anne of Austria. 
Will your majesty pardon me,said Planchetbut is it 
really the king who is lying there?
Anne of Austria started. "If she said, there is one among 
you who knows the kinglet him approach and say whether it 
is really his majesty lying there." 
A man wrapped in a cloakin the folds of which his face was 
hiddenapproached and leaned over the bed and looked. 
For one secondD'Artagnan thought the man had some evil 
design and he put his hand to his sword; but in the movement 
made by the man in stooping a portion of his face was 
uncovered and D'Artagnan recognized the coadjutor. 
It is certainly the king,said the manrising again. "God 
bless his majesty!" 
Yes,repeated the leader in a whisperGod bless his 
majesty!and all these menwho had entered enragedpassed 
from anger to pity and blessed the royal infant in their 
turn. 
Now,', said Planchet, let us thank the queen. My friends
retire." 
They all bowedand retired by degrees as noiselessly as 
they had entered. Planchetwho had been the first to enter
was the last to leave. The queen stopped him. 
What is your name, my friend?she said. 
Planchetmuch surprised at the inquiryturned back. 
Yes,continued the queenI think myself as much honored 
to have received you this evening as if you had been a 
prince, and I wish to know your name.
Yes,thought Planchetto treat me as a prince. No, thank 
you.
D'Artagnan trembled lest Planchetseducedlike the crow in 
the fableshould tell his nameand that the queenknowing 
his namewould discover that Planchet had belonged to him. 
Madame,replied PlanchetrespectfullyI am called 
Dulaurier, at your service.
Thank you, Monsieur Dulaurier,said the queen; "and what 
is your business?" 
Madame, I am a clothier in the Rue Bourdonnais.
That is all I wished to know,said the queen. "Much 
obliged to youMonsieur Dulaurier. You will hear again from 
me." 
Come, come,thought D'Artagnanemerging from behind the 
curtaindecidedly Monsieur Planchet is no fool; it is 
evident he has been brought up in a good school.
The different actors in this strange scene remained facing 
one anotherwithout uttering a single word; the queen 
standing near the doorD'Artagnan half out of his hiding 
placethe king raised on his elbowready to fall down on 
his bed again at the slightest sound that would indicate the 
return of the multitudebut instead of approachingthe 
noise became more and more distant and very soon it died 
entirely away. 
The queen breathed more freely. D'Artagnan wiped his damp 
forehead and the king slid off his bedsayingLet us go.
At this moment Laporte reappeared. 
Well?asked the queen 
Well, madame,replied the valetI followed them as far 
as the gates. They announced to all their comrades that they 
had seen the king and that the queen had spoken to them; 
and, in fact, they went away quite proud and happy.
Oh, the miserable wretches!murmured the queenthey 
shall pay dearly for their boldness, and it is I who promise 
this.
Then turning to D'Artagnanshe said: 
Sir, you have given me this evening the best advice I have 
ever received. Continue, and say what we must do now.
Monsieur Laporte,said D'Artagnanfinish dressing his 
majesty.
We may go, then?asked the queen. 
Whenever your majesty pleases. You have only to descend by 
the private stairs and you will find me at the door.
Go, sir,said the queen; "I will follow you." 
D'Artagnan went down and found the carriage at its post and 
the musketeer on the box. D'Artagnan took out the parcel 
which he had desired Bernouin to place under the seat. It 
may be remembered that it was the hat and cloak belonging to 
Monsieur de Gondy's coachman. 
He placed the cloak on his shoulders and the hat on his 
headwhilst the musketeer got off the box. 
Sir,said D'Artagnanyou will go and release your 
companion, who is guarding the coachman. You must mount your 
horse and proceed to the Rue Tiquetonne, Hotel de la 
Chevrette, whence you will take my horse and that of 
Monsieur du Vallon, which you must saddle and equip as if 
for war, and then you will leave Paris, bringing them with 
you to Cours la Reine. If, when you arrive at Cours la 
Reine, you find no one, you must go on to Saint Germain. On 
the king's service.
The musketeer touched his cap and went away to execute the 
orders thus received. 
D'Artagnan mounted the boxhaving a pair of pistols in his 
belta musket under his feet and a naked sword behind him. 
The queen appearedand was followed by the king and the 
Duke d'Anjouhis brother. 
Monsieur the coadjutor's carriage!she exclaimedfalling 
back. 
Yes, madame,said D'Artagnan; "but get in fearlesslyfor 
I myself will drive you." 
The queen uttered a cry of surprise and entered the 
carriageand the king and monsieur took their places at her 
side. 
Come, Laporte,said the queen. 
How, madame!said the valetin the same carriage as your 
majesties?
It is not a matter of royal etiquette this evening, but of 
the king's safety. Get in, Laporte.
Laporte obeyed.
Pull down the blinds,said D'Artagnan.
But will that not excite suspicion, sir?asked the queen.
Your majesty's mind may be quite at ease,replied the 
officer; "I have my answer ready." 
The blinds were pulled down and they started at a gallop by 
the Rue Richelieu. On reaching the gate the captain of the 
post advanced at the head of a dozen menholding a lantern 
in his hand. 
D'Artagnan signed to them to draw near. 
Do you recognize the carriage?he asked the sergeant.
No,replied the latter.
Look at the arms.
The sergeant put the lantern near the panel.
They are those of monsieur le coadjuteur,he said.
Hush; he is enjoying a ride with Madame de Guemenee.
The sergeant began to laugh.
Open the gate,he cried. "I know who it is!" Then putting 
his face to the lowered blindshe said: 
I wish you joy, my lord!
Impudent fellow!cried D'Artagnanyou will get me turned 
off.
The gate groaned on its hingesand D'Artagnanseeing the 
way clearwhipped his horseswho started at a canterand 
five minutes later they had rejoined the cardinal. 
Musqueton!exclaimed D'Artagnandraw up the blinds of 
his majesty's carriage.
It is he!cried Porthos.
Disguised as a coachman!exclaimed Mazarin.
And driving the coadjutor's carriage!said the queen.
Corpo di Dio! Monsieur d'Artagnan!said Mazarinyou are 
worth your weight in gold.
How D'Artagnan and Porthos earned by selling Strawthe one 
Two Hundred and Nineteenand the other Two Hundred and 
Fifteen Louis d'or. 
Mazarin was desirous of setting out instantly for Saint 
Germainbut the queen declared that she should wait for the 
people whom she had appointed to meet her. Howevershe 
offered the cardinal Laporte's placewhich he accepted and 
went from one carriage to the other. 
It was not without foundation that a report of the king's 
intention to leave Paris by night had been circulated. Ten 
or twelve persons had been in the secret since six o'clock
and howsoever great their prudence might bethey could not 
issue the necessary orders for the departure without 
suspicion being generated. Besideseach individual had one 
or two others for whom he was interested; and as there could 
be no doubt but that the queen was leaving Paris full of 
terrible projects of vengeanceevery one had warned parents 
and friends of what was about to transpire; so that the news 
of the approaching exit ran like a train of lighted 
gunpowder along the streets. 
The first carriage which arrived after that of the queen was 
that of the Prince de Condewith the princess and dowager 
princess. Both these ladies had been awakened in the middle 
of the night and did not know what it all was about. The 
second contained the Duke and Duchess of Orleansthe tall 
young Mademoiselle and the Abbe de la Riviere; and the 
thirdthe Duke de Longueville and the Prince de Conti
brother and brother-in-law of Conde. They all alighted and 
hastened to pay their respects to the king and queen in 
their coach. The queen fixed her eyes upon the carriage they 
had leftand seeing that it was emptyshe said: 
But where is Madame de Longueville?
Ah, yes, where is my sister?asked the prince. 
Madame de Longueville is ill,said the dukeand she 
desired me to excuse her to your majesty.
Anne gave a quick glance to Mazarinwho answered by an 
almost imperceptible shake of his head. 
What do you say of this?asked the queen. 
I say that she is a hostage for the Parisians,answered 
the cardinal. 
Why is she not come?asked the prince in a low voice
addressing his brother. 
Silence,whispered the dukeshe has her reasons.
She will ruin us!returned the prince. 
She will save us,said Conti. 
Carriages now arrived in crowds; those of the Marechal de 
VilleroyGuitantVillequier and Comminges came into the 
line. The two musketeers arrived in their turnholding the 
horses of D'Artagnan and Porthos in their hands. These two 
instantly mountedthe coachman of the latter replacing 
D'Artagnan on the coach-box of the royal coach. Musqueton 
took the place of the coachmanand drove standingfor 
reasons known to himselflike Automedon of antiquity. 
The queenthough occupied by a thousand detailstried to 
catch the Gascon's eye; but hewith his wonted prudence
had mingled with the crowd. 
Let us be the avant guard,said he to Porthosand find 
good quarters at Saint Germain; nobody will think of us, and 
for my part I am greatly fatigued.
As for me,replied PorthosI am falling asleep, which is 
strange, considering we have not had any fighting; truly the 
Parisians are idiots.
Or rather, we are very clever,said D'Artagnan. 
Perhaps.
And how is your wrist?
Better; but do you think that we've got them this time?
Got what?
You your command, and I my title?
I'faith! yes -- I should expect so; besides, if they 
forget, I shall take the liberty of reminding them.
The queen's voice! she is speaking,said Porthos; "I think 
she wants to ride on horseback." 
Oh, she would like it, but ---- 
But what?
The cardinal won't allow it. Gentlemen,he said
addressing the two musketeersaccompany the royal 
carriage, we are going forward to look for lodgings.
D'Artagnan started off for Saint Germainfollowed by 
Porthos. 
We will go on, gentlemen,said the queen. 
And the royal carriage drove onfollowed by the other 
coaches and about fifty horsemen. 
They reached Saint German without any accident; on 
descendingthe queen found the prince awaiting her
bare-headedto offer her his hand. 
What an awakening for the Parisians!said the queen
radiant. 
It is war,said the prince. 
Well, then, let it be war! Have we not on our side the 
conqueror of Rocroy, of Nordlingen, of Lens?
The prince bowed low. 
It was then three o'clock in the morning. The queen walked 
firstevery one followed her. About two hundred persons had 
accompanied her in her flight. 
Gentlemen,said the queenlaughingpray take up your 
abode in the chateau; it is large, and there will be no want 
of room for you all; but, as we never thought of coming 
here, I am informed that there are, in all, only three beds 
in the whole establishment, one for the king, one for me 
---- 
And one for the cardinal,muttered the prince. 
Am I -- am I, then, to sleep on the floor?asked Gaston 
d'Orleanswith a forced smile. 
No, my prince,replied Mazarinthe third bed is intended 
for your highness.
But your eminence?replied the prince. 
I,answered MazarinI shall not sleep at all; I have 
work to do.
Gaston desired that he should be shown into the room wherein 
he was to sleepwithout in the least concerning himself as 
to where his wife and daughter were to repose. 
Well, for my part, I shall go to bed,said D'Artagnan; 
come, Porthos.
Porthos followed the lieutenant with that profound 
confidence he ever had in the wisdom of his friend. They 
walked from one end of the chateau to the otherPorthos 
looking with wondering eyes at D'Artagnanwho was counting 
on his fingers. 
Four hundred, at a pistole each, four hundred pistoles.
Yes,interposed Porthosfour hundred pistoles; but who 
is to make four hundred pistoles?
A pistole is not enough,said D'Artagnan'tis worth a 
louis.
What is worth a louis?
Four hundred, at a louis each, make four hundred louis.
Four hundred?said Porthos. 
Yes, there are two hundred of them, and each of them will 
need two, which will make four hundred.
But four hundred what?
Listen!cried D'Artagnan. 
But as there were all kinds of people aboutwho were in a 
state of stupefaction at the unexpected arrival of the 
courthe whispered in his friend's ear. 
I understand,answered PorthosI understand you 
perfectly, on my honor; two hundred louis, each of us, would 
be making a pretty thing of it; but what will people say?
Let them say what they will; besides, how will they know 
that we are doing it?
But who will distribute these things?asked Porthos. 
Isn't Musqueton there?
But he wears my livery; my livery will be known,replied 
Porthos. 
He can turn his coat inside out.
You are always in the right, my dear friend,cried 
Porthos; "but where the devil do you discover all the 
notions you put into practice?" 
D'Artagnan smiled. The two friends turned down the first 
street they came to. Porthos knocked at the door of a house 
to the rightwhilst D'Artagnan knocked at the door of a 
house to the left. 
Some straw,they said. 
Sir, we don't keep any,was the reply of the people who 
opened the doors; "but please ask at the hay dealer's." 
Where is the hay dealer's?
At the last large door in the street.
Are there any other people in Saint Germain who sell 
straw?
Yes; there's the landlord of the Lamb, and Gros-Louis the 
farmer; they both live in the Rue des Ursulines.
Very well.
D'Artagnan went instantly to the hay dealer and bargained 
with him for a hundred and fifty trusses of strawwhich he 
obtainedat the rate of three pistoles each. He went 
afterward to the innkeeper and bought from him two hundred 
trusses at the same price. FinallyFarmer Louis sold them 
eighty trussesmaking in all four hundred and thirty. 
There was no more to be had in Saint Germain. This foraging 
did not occupy more than half an hour. Musquetonduly 
instructedwas put at the head of this sudden and new 
business. He was cautioned not to let a bit of straw out of 
his hands under a louis the trussand they intrusted to him 
straw to the amount of four hundred and thirty louis. 
D'Artagnantaking with him three trusses of strawreturned 
to the chateauwhere everybodyfreezing with cold and more 
than half asleepenvied the kingthe queenand the Duke 
of Orleanson their camp beds. The lieutenant's entrance 
produced a burst of laughter in the great drawing-room; but 
he did not appear to notice that he was the object of 
general attentionbut began to arrangewith so much 
clevernessnicety and gayetyhis straw bedthat the 
mouths of all these poor creatureswho could not go to 
sleepbegan to water. 
Straw!they all cried outstraw! where is there any to 
be found?
I can show you,answered the Gascon. 
And he conducted them to Musquetonwho freely distributed 
the trusses at the rate of a louis apiece. It was thought 
rather dearbut people wanted to sleepand who would not 
give even two or three louis for a few hours of sound sleep? 
D'Artagnan gave up his bed to any one who wanted itmaking 
it over about a dozen times; and since he was supposed to 
have paidlike the othersa louis for his truss of straw
he pocketed in that way thirty louis in less than half an 
hour. At five o'clock in the morning the straw was worth 
eighty francs a truss and there was no more to be had. 
D'Artagnan had taken the precaution to set apart four 
trusses for his own use. He put in his pocket the key of the 
room where he had hidden themand accompanied by Porthos 
returned to settle with Musquetonwhonaivelyand like 
the worthy steward that he washanded them four hundred and 
thirty louis and kept one hundred for himself. 
Musquetonwho knew nothing of what was going on in the 
chateauwondered that the idea had not occurred to him 
sooner. D'Artagnan put the gold in his hatand in going 
back to the chateau settled the reckoning with Porthoseach 
of them had cleared two hundred and fifteen louis. 
Porthoshoweverfound that he had no straw left for 
himself. He returned to Musquetonbut the steward had sold 
the last wisp. He then repaired to D'Artagnanwhothanks 
to his four trusses of strawwas in the act of making up 
and tastingby anticipationthe luxury of a bed so soft
so well stuffed at the headso well covered at the foot
that it would have excited the envy of the king himselfif 
his majesty had not been fast asleep in his own. D'Artagnan 
could on no account consent to pull his bed to pieces again 
for Porthosbut for a consideration of four louis that the 
latter paid him for ithe consented that Porthos should 
share his couch with him. He laid his sword at the headhis 
pistols by his sidestretched his cloak over his feet
placed his felt hat on the top of his cloak and extended 
himself luxuriously on the strawwhich rustled under him. 
He was already enjoying the sweet dream engendered by the 
possession of two hundred and nineteen louismade in a 
quarter of an hourwhen a voice was heard at the door of 
the hallwhich made him stir. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan!it cried. 
Here!cried Porthoshere!
Porthos foresaw that if D'Artagnan was called away he should 
remain the sole possessor of the bed. An officer approached. 
I am come to fetch you, Monsieur d'Artagnan.
From whom?
His eminence sent me.
Tell my lord that I'm going to sleep, and I advise him, as 
a friend, to do the same.
His eminence is not gone to bed and will not go to bed, and 
wants you instantly.
The devil take Mazarin, who does not know when to sleep at 
the proper time. What does he want with me? Is it to make me 
a captain? In that case I will forgive him.
And the musketeer rosegrumblingtook his swordhat
pistolsand cloakand followed the officerwhilst 
Porthosalone and sole possessor of the bedendeavored to 
follow the good example of falling asleepwhich his 
predecessor had set him. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan,said the cardinalon perceiving him
I have not forgotten with what zeal you have served me. I 
am going to prove to you that I have not.
Good,thought the Gasconthis is a promising beginning.
Monsieur d'Artagnan,he resumeddo you wish to become a 
captain?
Yes, my lord.
And your friend still longs to be made a baron?
At this very moment, my lord, he no doubt dreams that he is 
one already.
Then,said Mazarintaking from his portfolio the letter 
which he had already shown D'Artagnantake this dispatch 
and carry it to England.
D'Artagnan looked at the envelope; there was no address on 
it. 
Am I not to know to whom to present it?
You will know when you reach London; at London you may tear 
off the outer envelope.
And what are my instructions?
To obey in every particular the man to whom this letter is 
addressed. You must set out for Boulogne. At the Royal Arms 
of England you will find a young gentleman named Mordaunt.
Yes, my lord; and what am I to do with this young 
gentleman?
Follow wherever he leads you.
D'Artagnan looked at the cardinal with a stupefied air. 
There are your instructions,said Mazarin; "go!" 
Go! 'tis easy to say so, but that requires money, and I 
haven't any.
Ah!replied Mazarinso you have no money?
None, my lord.
But the diamond I gave you yesterday?
I wish to keep it in remembrance of your eminence.
Mazarin sighed. 
'Tis very dear living in England, my lord, especially as 
envoy extraordinary.
Zounds!replied Mazarinthe people there are very 
sedate, and their habits, since the revolution, simple; but 
no matter.
He opened a drawer and took out a purse. 
What do you say to a thousand crowns?
D'Artagnan pouted out his lower lip in a most extraordinary 
manner. 
I reply, my lord, 'tis but little, as certainly I shall not 
go alone.
I suppose not. Monsieur du Vallon, that worthy gentleman, 
for, with the exception of yourself, Monsieur d'Artagnan, 
there's not a man in France that I esteem and love so much 
as him ---- 
Then, my lord,replied D'Artagnanpointing to the purse 
which Mazarin still heldif you love and esteem him so 
much, you -- understand me?
Be it so! on his account I add two hundred crowns.
Scoundrel!muttered D'Artagnan. "But on our return he 
said aloud, may wethat ismy friend and Idepend on 
havinghe his baronyand I my promotion?" 
On the honor of Mazarin.
I should like another sort of oath better,said D'Artagnan 
to himself; then aloudMay I not offer my duty to her 
majesty the queen?
Her majesty is asleep and you must set off directly,
replied Mazarin; "gopraysir ---- " 
One word more, my lord; if there's any fighting where I'm 
going, must I fight?
You are to obey the commands of the personage to whom I 
have addressed the inclosed letter.
'Tis well,said D'Artagnanholding out his hand to 
receive the money. "I offer my best respects and services to 
youmy lord." 
D'Artagnan thenreturning to the officersaid: 
Sir, have the kindness also to awaken Monsieur du Vallon 
and to say 'tis by his eminence's order, and that I shall 
await him at the stables.
The officer went off with an eagerness that showed the 
Gascon that he had some personal interest in the matter. 
Porthos was snoring most musically when some one touched him 
on the shoulder. 
I come from the cardinal,said the officer. 
Heigho!said Porthosopening his large eyes; "what have 
you got to say?" 
That his eminence has ordered you to England and that 
Monsieur d'Artagnan is waiting for you in the stables.
Porthos sighed heavilyarosetook his hathis pistols
and his cloakand departedcasting a look of regret upon 
the couch where he had hoped to sleep so well. 
No sooner had he turned his back than the officer laid 
himself down in itand he had scarcely crossed the 
threshold before his successorin his turnwas snoring 
immoderately. It was very naturalhe being the only person 
in the whole assemblageexcept the kingthe queenand the 
Duke of Orleanswho slept gratuitously. 
In which we hear Tidings of Aramis. 
D'Artagnan went straight to the stables; day was just 
dawning. He found his horse and that of Porthos fastened to 
the mangerbut to an empty manger. He took pity on these 
poor animals and went to a corner of the stablewhere he 
saw a little strawbut in doing so he struck his foot 
against a human bodywhich uttered a cry and arose on its 
kneesrubbing its eyes. It was Musquetonwhohaving no 
straw to lie uponhad helped himself to that of the horses. 
Musqueton,cried D'Artagnanlet us be off! Let us set 
off.
Musquetonrecognizing the voice of his master's friendgot 
up suddenlyand in doing so let fall some louis which he 
had appropriated to himself illegally during the night. 
Ho! ho!exclaimed D'Artagnanpicking up a louis and 
displaying it; "here's a louis that smells confoundedly of 
straw." 
Musqueton blushed so confusedly that the Gascon began to 
laugh at him and said: 
Porthos would be angry, my dear Monsieur Musqueton, but I 
pardon you, only let us remember that this gold must serve 
us as a joke, so be gay -- come along.
Musqueton instantly assumed a jovial countenancesaddled 
the horses quickly and mounted his own without making faces 
over it. 
Whilst this went onPorthos arrived with a very cross look 
on his faceand was astonished to find the lieutenant 
resigned and Musqueton almost merry. 
Ah, that's it!he criedyou have your promotion and I my 
barony.
We are going to fetch our brevets,said D'Artagnanand 
when we come back, Master Mazarin will sign them.
And where are we going?asked Porthos. 
To Paris first; I have affairs to settle.
And they both set out for Paris. 
On arriving at its gates they were astounded to see the 
threatening aspect of the capital. Around a broken-down 
carriage the people were uttering imprecationswhilst the 
persons who had attempted to escape were made prisoners -that 
is to sayan old man and two women. On the other hand
as the two friends approached to enterthey showed them 
every kind of civilitythinking them deserters from the 
royal party and wishing to bind them to their own. 
What is the king doing?they asked. 
He is asleep.
And the Spanish woman?
Dreaming.
And the cursed Italian?
He is awake, so keep on the watch, as they are gone away; 
it's for some purpose, rely on it. But as you are the 
strongest, after all,continued D'Artagnandon't be 
furious with old men and women, and keep your wrath for more 
appropriate occasions.
The people listened to these words and let go the ladies
who thanked D'Artagnan with an eloquent look. 
Now! onward!cried the Gascon. 
And they continued their waycrossing the barricades
getting the chains about their legspushed about
questioning and questioned. 
In the place of the Palais Royal D'Artagnan saw a sergeant
who was drilling six or seven hundred citizens. It was 
Planchetwho brought into play profitably the recollections 
of the regiment of Piedmont. 
In passing before D'Artagnan he recognized his former 
master. 
Good-day, Monsieur d'Artagnan,said Planchet proudly. 
Good-day, Monsieur Dulaurier,replied D'Artagnan. 
Planchet stopped shortstaring at D'Artagnan. The first 
rowseeing their sergeant stopstopped in their turnand 
so on to the very last. 
These citizens are dreadfully ridiculous,observed 
D'Artagnan to Porthos and went on his way. 
Five minutes afterward he entered the hotel of La Chevrette
where pretty Madeleinethe hostesscame to him. 
My dear Mistress Turquaine,said the Gasconif you 
happen to have any money, lock it up quickly; if you happen 
to have any jewels, hide them directly; if you happen to 
have any debtors, make them pay you, or any creditors, don't 
pay them.
Why, prithee?asked Madeleine. 
Because Paris is going to be reduced to dust and ashes like 
Babylon, of which you have no doubt heard tell.
And are you going to leave me at such a time?
This very instant.
And where are you going?
Ah, if you could tell me that, you would be doing me a 
service.
Ah, me! ah, me! 
Have you any letters for me?" inquired D'Artagnanwishing 
to signify to the hostess that her lamentations were 
superfluous and that therefore she had better spare him 
demonstrations of her grief. 
There's one just arrived,and she handed the letter to 
D'Artagnan. 
From Athos!cried D'Artagnanrecognizing the handwriting. 
Ah!said Porthoslet us hear what he says.
D'Artagnan opened the letter and read as follows: 
Dear D'Artagnan, dear Du Vallon, my good friends, perhaps 
this may be the last time that you will ever hear from me. 
Aramis and I are very unhappy; but God, our courage, and the 
remembrance of our friendship sustain us. Think often of 
Raoul. I intrust to you certain papers which are at Blois; 
and in two months and a half, if you do not hear of us, take 
possession of them. 
Embracewith all your heartthe vicomtefor your 
devotedfriend
ATHOS.
I believe, by Heaven,said D'Artagnanthat I shall 
embrace him, since he's upon our road; and if he is so 
unfortunate as to lose our dear Athos, from that very day he 
becomes my son.
And I,said Porthosshall make him my sole heir.
Let us see, what more does Athos say?
Should you meet on your journey a certain Monsieur 
Mordaunt, distrust him, in a letter I cannot say more.
Monsieur Mordaunt!exclaimed the Gasconsurprised. 
Monsieur Mordaunt! 'tis well,said Porthoswe shall 
remember that; but see, there is a postscript from Aramis.
So there is,said D'Artagnanand he read: 
We conceal the place where we are, dear friends, knowing 
your brotherly affection and that you would come and die 
with us were we to reveal it.
Confound it,interrupted Porthoswith an explosion of 
passion which sent Musqueton to the other end of the room; 
are they in danger of dying?
D'Artagnan continued: 
Athos bequeaths to you Raoul, and I bequeath to you my 
revenge. If by any good luck you lay your hand on a certain 
man named Mordaunt, tell Porthos to take him into a corner 
and to wring his neck. I dare not say more in a letter. 
ARAMIS. 
If that is all, it is easily done,said Porthos. 
On the contrary,observed D'Artagnanwith a vexed look; 
it would be impossible.
How so?
It is precisely this Monsieur Mordaunt whom we are going to 
join at Boulogne and with whom we cross to England.
Well, suppose instead of joining this Monsieur Mordaunt we 
were to go and join our friends?said Porthoswith a 
gesture fierce enough to have frightened an army. 
I did think of it, but this letter has neither date nor 
postmark.
True,said Porthos. And he began to wander about the room 
like a man beside himselfgesticulating and half drawing 
his sword out of the scabbard. 
As to D'Artagnanhe remained standing like a man in 
consternationwith the deepest affliction depicted on his 
face. 
Ah, this is not right; Athos insults us; he wishes to die 
alone; it is bad, bad, bad.
Musquetonwitnessing this despairmelted into tears in a 
corner of the room. 
Come,said D'Artagnanall this leads to nothing. Let us 
go on. We will embrace Raoul, and perhaps he will have news 
of Athos.
Stop -- an idea!cried Porthos; "indeedmy dear 
D'ArtagnanI don't know how you managebut you are always 
full of ideas; let us go and embrace Raoul." 
Woe to that man who should happen to contradict my master 
at this moment,said Musqueton to himself; "I wouldn't give 
a farthing for his life." 
They set out. On arriving at the Rue Saint Denisthe 
friends found a vast concourse of people. It was the Duc de 
Beaufortwho was coming from the Vendomois and whom the 
coadjutor was showing to the Parisiansintoxicated with 
joy. With the duke's aid they already considered themselves 
invincible. 
The two friends turned off into a side street to avoid 
meeting the princeand so reached the Saint Denis gate. 
Is it true,said the guard to the two cavaliersthat the 
Duc de Beaufort has arrived in Paris?
Nothing more certain; and the best proof of it is,said 
D'Artagnanthat he has dispatched us to meet the Duc de 
Vendome, his father, who is coming in his turn.
Long live De Beaufort!cried the guardsand they drew 
back respectfully to let the two friends pass. Once across 
the barriers these two knew neither fatigue nor fear. Their 
horses flewand they never ceased speaking of Athos and 
Aramis. 
The camp had entered Saint Omer; the friends made a little 
detour and went to the campand gave the army an exact 
account of the flight of the king and queen. They found 
Raoul near his tentreclining on a truss of hayof which 
his horse stole some mouthfuls; the young man's eyes were 
red and he seemed dejected. The Marechal de Grammont and the 
Comte de Guiche had returned to Paris and he was quite 
lonely. And as soon as he saw the two cavaliers he ran to 
them with open arms. 
Oh, is it you, dear friends? Did you come here to fetch me? 
Will you take me away with you? Do you bring me tidings of 
my guardian?
Have you not received any?said D'Artagnan to the youth. 
Alas! sir, no, and I do not know what has become of him; so 
that I am really so unhappy that I weep.
In facttears rolled down his cheeks. 
Porthos turned asidein order not to show by his honest 
round face what was passing in his mind. 
Deuce take it!cried D'Artagnanmore moved than he had 
been for a long timedon't despair, my friend, if you have 
not received any letters from the count, we have received 
one.
Oh, really!cried Raoul. 
And a comforting one, too,added D'Artagnanseeing the 
delight that his intelligence gave the young man. 
Have you it?asked Raoul 
Yes -- that is, I had it,repined the Gasconmaking 
believe to find it. "Waitit ought to be there in my 
pocket; it speaks of his returndoes it notPorthos?" 
All Gascon as he wasD'Artagnan could not bear alone the 
weight of that falsehood. 
Yes,replied Porthoscoughing. 
Eh, give it to me!said the young man. 
Eh! I read it a little while since. Can I have lost it? Ah! 
confound it! yes, my pocket has a hole in it.
Oh, yes, Monsieur Raoul!said Musquetonthe letter was 
very consoling. These gentlemen read it to me and I wept for 
joy.
But at any rate, you know where he is, Monsieur 
d'Artagnan?asked Raoulsomewhat comforted. 
Ah! that's the thing!replied the Gascon. "Undoubtedly I 
know itbut it is a mystery." 
Not to me, I hope?
No, not to you, so I am going to tell you where he is.
Porthos devoured D'Artagnan with wondering eyes. 
Where the devil shall I say that he is, so that he cannot 
try to rejoin him?thought D'Artagnan. 
Well, where is he, sir?asked Raoulin a soft and coaxing 
voice. 
He is at Constantinople.
Among the Turks!exclaimed Raoulalarmed. "Good heavens! 
how can you tell me that?" 
Does that alarm you?cried D'Artagnan. "Pooh! what are the 
Turks to such men as the Comte de la Fere and the Abbe 
d'Herblay?" 
Ah, his friend is with him?said Raoul. "That comforts me 
a little." 
Has he wit or not -- this demon D'Artagnan?said Porthos
astonished at his friend's deception. 
Now, sir,said D'Artagnanwishing to change the 
conversationhere are fifty pistoles that the count has 
sent you by the same courier. I suppose you have no more 
money and that they will be welcome.
I have still twenty pistoles, sir.
Well, take them; that makes seventy.
And if you wish for more,said Porthosputting his hand 
to his pocket ---
Thank you, sir,replied Raoulblushing; "thank you a 
thousand times." 
At this moment Olivain appeared. "Apropos said D'Artagnan, 
loud enough for the servant to hear him, are you satisfied 
with Olivain?" 
Yes, in some respects, tolerably well.
Olivain pretended to have heard nothing and entered the 
tent. 
What fault do you find with the fellow?
He is a glutton.
Oh, sir!cried Olivainreappearing at this accusation. 
And a little bit of a thief.
Oh, sir! oh!
And, more especially, a notorious coward.
Oh, oh! sir! you really vilify me!cried Olivain. 
The deuce!cried D'Artagnan. "Pray learnMonsieur 
Olivainthat people like us are not to be served by 
cowards. Rob your mastereat his sweetmeatsand drink his 
wine; butby Jove! don't be a cowardor I shall cut off 
your ears. Look at Monsieur Moustonsee the honorable 
wounds he has receivedobserve how his habitual valor has 
given dignity to his countenance." 
Musqueton was in the third heaven and would have embraced 
D'Artagnan had he dared; meanwhile he resolved to sacrifice 
his life for him on the next occasion that presented itself. 
Send away that fellow, Raoul,said the Gascon; "for if 
he's a coward he will disgrace thee some day." 
Monsieur says I am coward,cried Olivainbecause he 
wanted the other day to fight a cornet in Grammont's 
regiment and I refused to accompany him.
Monsieur Olivain, a lackey ought never to disobey,said 
D'Artagnansternly; then taking him asidehe whispered to 
him: "Thou hast done right; thy master was in the wrong; 
here's a crown for theebut should he ever be insulted and 
thou cost not let thyself be cut in quarters for himI will 
cut out thy tongue. Remember that." 
Olivain bowed and slipped the crown into his pocket. 
And now, Raoul,said the GasconMonsieur du Vallon and I 
are going away as ambassadors, where, I know not; but should 
you want anything, write to Madame Turquaine, at La 
Chevrette, Rue Tiquetonne and draw upon her purse as on a 
banker -- with economy; for it is not so well filled as that 
of Monsieur d'Emery.
And havingmeantimeembraced his wardhe passed him into 
the robust arms of Porthoswho lifted him up from the 
ground and held him a moment suspended near the noble heart 
of the formidable giant. 
Come,said D'Artagnanlet us go.
And they set out for Boulognewhere toward evening they 
arrivedtheir horses flecked with foam and dark with 
perspiration. 
At ten steps from the place where they halted was a young 
man in blackwho seemed waiting for some oneand whofrom 
the moment he saw them enter the townnever took his eyes 
off them. 
D'Artagnan approached himand seeing him stare so fixedly
said: 
Well, friend! I don't like people to quiz me!
Sir,said the young mando you not come from Paris, if 
you please?
D'Artagnan thought it was some gossip who wanted news from 
the capital. 
Yes, sir,he saidin a softened tone. 
Are you not going to put up at the `Arms of England'?
Yes, sir.
Are you not charged with a mission from his eminence, 
Cardinal Mazarin?
Yes, sir.
In that case, I am the man you have to do with. I am M. 
Mordaunt.
Ah!thought D'Artagnanthe man I am warned against by 
Athos.
Ah!thought Porthosthe man Aramis wants me to 
strangle.
They both looked searchingly at the young manwho 
misunderstood the meaning of that inquisition. 
Do you doubt my word?he said. "In that case I can give 
you proofs." 
No, sir,said D'Artagnan; "and we place ourselves at your 
orders." 
Well, gentlemen,resumed Mordauntwe must set out 
without delay, to-day is the last day granted me by the 
cardinal. My ship is ready, and had you not come I must have 
set off without you, for General Cromwell expects my return 
impatiently.
So!thought the lieutenant'tis to General Cromwell that 
our dispatches are addressed.
Have you no letter for him?asked the young man. 
I have one, the seal of which I am not to break till I 
reach London; but since you tell me to whom it is addressed, 
'tis useless to wait till then.
D'Artagnan tore open the envelope of the letter. It was 
directed to "Monsieur Oliver CromwellGeneral of the Army 
of the English Nation." 
Ah!said D'Artagnan; "a singular commission." 
Who is this Monsieur Oliver Cromwell?inquired Porthos. 
Formerly a brewer,replied the Gascon. 
Perhaps Mazarin wishes to make a speculation in beer, as we 
did in straw,said Porthos. 
Come, come, gentlemen,said Mordauntimpatientlylet us 
depart.
What!exclaimed Porthos "without supper? Cannot Monsieur 
Cromwell wait a little?" 
Yes, but I?said Mordaunt. 
Well, you,said Porthoswhat then?
I cannot wait.
Oh! as to you, that is not my concern, and I shall sup 
either with or without your permission.
The young man's eyes kindled in secretbut he restrained 
himself. 
Monsieur,said D'Artagnanyou must excuse famished 
travelers. Besides, our supper can't delay you much. We will 
hasten on to the inn; you will meanwhile proceed on foot to 
the harbor. We will take a bite and shall be there as soon 
as you are.
Just as you please, gentlemen, provided we set sail,he 
said. 
The name of your ship?inquired D'Artagnan. 
The Standard.
Very well; in half an hour we shall be on board.
And the friendsspurring on their horsesrode to the 
hotelthe "Arms of England." 
What do you say of that young man?asked D'Artagnanas 
they hurried along. 
I say that he doesn't suit me at all,said Porthosand 
that I feel a strong itching to follow Aramis's advice.
By no means, my dear Porthos; that man is a messenger of 
General Cromwell; it would insure for us a poor reception, I 
imagine, should it be announced to him that we had twisted 
the neck of his confidant.
Nevertheless,said PorthosI have always noticed that 
Aramis gives good advice.
Listen,returned D'Artagnanwhen our embassy is finished 
---- 
Well?
If it brings us back to France ---- 
Well?
Well, we shall see.
At that moment the two friends reached the hotelArms of 
England,where they supped with hearty appetite and then at 
once proceeded to the port. 
There they found a brig ready to set sailupon the deck of 
which they recognized Mordaunt walking up and down 
impatiently. 
It is singular,said D'Artagnanwhilst the boat was 
taking them to the Standardit is astonishing how that 
young man resembles some one I must have known, but who it 
was I cannot yet remember.
A few minutes later they were on boardbut the embarkation 
of the horses was a longer matter than that of the menand 
it was eight o'clock before they raised anchor. 
The young man stamped impatiently and ordered all sail to be 
spread. 
Porthoscompletely used up by three nights without sleep 
and a journey of seventy leagues on horsebackretired to 
his cabin and went to sleep. 
D'Artagnanovercoming his repugnance to Mordauntwalked 
with him upon the deck and invented a hundred stories to 
make him talk. 
Musqueton was seasick. 
The Scotchman. 
And now our readers must leave the Standard to sail 
peaceablynot toward Londonwhere D'Artagnan and Porthos 
believed they were goingbut to Durhamwhither Mordaunt 
had been ordered to repair by the letter he had received 
during his sojourn at Boulogneand accompany us to the 
royalist campon this side of the Tynenear Newcastle. 
Thereplaced between two rivers on the borders of Scotland
but still on English soilthe tents of a little army 
extended. It was midnight. Some Highlanders were listlessly 
keeping watch. The moonwhich was partially obscured by 
heavy cloudsnow and then lit up the muskets of the 
sentinelsor silvered the wallsthe roofsand the spires 
of the town that Charles I. had just surrendered to the 
parliamentary troopswhilst Oxford and Newark still held 
out for him in the hopes of coming to some arrangement. 
At one of the extremities of the campnear an immense tent
in which the Scottish officers were holding a kind of 
councilpresided over by Lord Leventheir commandera man 
attired as a cavalier lay sleeping on the turfhis right 
hand extended over his sword. 
About fifty paces offanother manalso appareled as a 
cavalierwas talking to a Scotch sentinelandthough a 
foreignerhe seemed to understand without much difficulty 
the answers given in the broad Perthshire dialect. 
As the town clock of Newcastle struck one the sleeper awoke
and with all the gestures of a man rousing himself out of 
deep sleep he looked attentively about him; perceiving that 
he was alone he rose and making a little circuit passed 
close to the cavalier who was speaking to the sentinel. The 
former had no doubt finished his questionsfor a moment 
later he said good-night and carelessly followed the same 
path taken by the first cavalier. 
In the shadow of a tent the former was awaiting him. 
Well, my dear friend?said hein as pure French as has 
ever been uttered between Rouen and Tours. 
Well, my friend, there is not a moment to lose; we must let 
the king know immediately.
Why, what is the matter?
It would take too long to tell you, besides, you will hear 
it all directly and the least word dropped here might ruin 
all. We must go and find Lord Winter.
They both set off to the other end of the campbut as it 
did not cover more than a surface of five hundred feet they 
quickly arrived at the tent they were looking for. 
Tony, is your master sleeping?said one of the two 
cavaliers to a servant who was lying in the outer 
compartmentwhich served as a kind of ante-room. 
No, monsieur le comte,answered the servantI think not; 
or at least he has not long been so, for he was pacing up 
and down for more than two hours after he left the king, and 
the sound of his footsteps has only ceased during the last 
ten minutes. However, you may look and see,added the 
lackeyraising the curtained entrance of the tent. 
Lord Winter was seated near an aperturearranged as a 
window to let in the night airhis eyes mechanically 
following the course of the moonintermittently veiledas 
we before observedby heavy clouds. The two friends 
approached Winterwhowith his head on his handswas 
gazing at the heavens; he did not hear them enter and 
remained in the same attitude till he felt a hand upon his 
shoulder. 
He turned aroundrecognized Athos and Aramis and held out 
his hand to them. 
Have you observed,said he to themwhat a blood-red 
color the moon has to-night?
No,replied Athos; "I thought it looked much the same as 
usual." 
Look, again, chevalier,returned Lord Winter. 
I must own,said AramisI am like the Comte de la Fere 
-- I can see nothing remarkable about it.
My lord,said Athosin a position so precarious as ours 
we must examine the earth and not the heavens. Have you 
studied our Scotch troops and have you confidence in them?
The Scotch?inquired Winter. "What Scotch?" 
Ours, egad!exclaimed Athos. "Those in whom the king has 
confided -- Lord Leven's Highlanders." 
No,said Winterthen he paused; "but tell mecan you not 
perceive the russet tint which marks the heavens?" 
Not the least in the world,said Aramis and Athos at once. 
Tell me,continued Winteralways possessed by the same 
ideais there not a tradition in France that Henry IV., 
the evening before the day he was assassinated, when he was 
playing at chess with M. de Bassompiere, saw clots of blood 
upon the chessboard?
Yes,said Athosand the marechal has often told me so 
himself.
Then it was so,murmured Winterand the next day Henry 
IV. was killed.
But what has this vision of Henry IV. to do with you, my 
lord?inquired Aramis. 
Nothing; and indeed I am mad to trouble you with such 
things, when your coming to my tent at such an hour 
announces that you are the bearers of important news.
Yes, my lord,said AthosI wish to speak to the king.
To the king! but the king is asleep.
I have something important to reveal to him.
Can it not be put off till to-morrow?
He must know it this moment, and perhaps it is already too 
late.
Come, then,said Lord Winter. 
Lord Winter's tent was pitched by the side of the royal 
marqueea kind of corridor communicating between the two. 
This corridor was guardednot by a sentinelbut by a 
confidential servantthrough whomin case of urgency
Charles could communicate instantly with his faithful 
subject. 
These gentlemen are with me,said Winter. 
The lackey bowed and let them pass. As he had saidon a 
camp beddressed in his black doubletbootedunbelted
with his felt hat beside himlay the kingovercome by 
sleep and fatigue. They advancedand Athoswho was the 
first to entergazed a moment in silence on that pale and 
noble faceframed in its long and now untidymatted hair
the blue veins showing through the transparent templeshis 
eyes seemingly swollen by tears. 
Athos sighed deeply; the sigh woke the kingso lightly did 
he sleep. 
He opened his eyes. 
Ah!said heraising himself on his elbowis it you, 
Comte de la Fere?
Yes, sire,replied Athos. 
You watch while I sleep and you have come to bring me some 
news?
Alas, sire,answered Athosyour majesty has guessed 
aright.
It is bad news?
Yes, sire.
Never mind; the messenger is welcome. You never come to me 
without conferring pleasure. You whose devotion recognizes 
neither country nor misfortune, you who are sent to me by 
Henrietta; whatever news you bring, speak out.
Sire, Cromwell has arrived this night at Newcastle.
Ah!exclaimed the kingto fight?
No, sire, but to buy your majesty.
What did you say?
I said, sire, that four hundred thousand pounds are owing 
to the Scottish army.
For unpaid wages; yes, I know it. For the last year my 
faithful Highlanders have fought for honor alone.
Athos smiled. 
Well, sir, though honor is a fine thing, they are tired of 
fighting for it, and to-night they have sold you for two 
hundred thousand pounds -- that is to say, for half what is 
owing them.
Impossible!cried the kingthe Scotch sell their king 
for two hundred thousand pounds! And who is the Judas who 
has concluded this infamous bargain?
Lord Leven.
Are you certain of it, sir?
I heard it with my own ears.
The king sighed deeplyas if his heart would breakand 
then buried his face in his hands. 
Oh! the Scotch,he exclaimedthe Scotch I called `my 
faithful,' to whom I trusted myself when I could have fled 
to Oxford! the Scotch, my brothers! But are you well 
assured, sir?
Lying behind the tent of Lord Leven, I raised it and saw 
all, heard all!
And when is this to be consummated?
To-day -- this morning; so your majesty must perceive there 
is no time to lose!
To do what? since you say I am sold.
To cross the Tyne, reach Scotland and rejoin Lord Montrose, 
who will not sell you.
And what shall I do in Scotland? A war of partisans, 
unworthy of a king.
The example of Robert Bruce will absolve you, sire.
No, no! I have fought too long; they have sold me, they 
shall give me up, and the eternal shame of treble treason 
shall fall on their heads.
Sire,said Athosperhaps a king should act thus, but not 
a husband and a father. I have come in the name of your wife 
and daughter and of the children you have still in London, 
and I say to you, `Live, sire,' -- it is the will of 
Heaven.
The king raised himselfbuckled on his beltand passing 
his handkerchief over his moist foreheadsaid: 
Well, what is to be done?
Sire, have you in the army one regiment on which you can 
implicitly rely?
Winter,said the kingdo you believe in the fidelity of 
yours?
Sire, they are but men, and men are become both weak and 
wicked. I will not answer for them. I would confide my life 
to them, but I should hesitate ere I trusted them with your 
majesty's.
Well!said Athossince you have not a regiment, we are 
three devoted men. It is enough. Let your majesty mount on 
horseback and place yourself in the midst of us; we will 
cross the Tyne, reach Scotland, and you will be saved.
Is this your counsel also, Winter?inquired the king. 
Yes, sire.
And yours, Monsieur d'Herblay?
Yes, sire.
As you wish, then. Winter, give the necessary orders.
Winter then left the tent; in the meantime the king finished 
his toilet. The first rays of daybreak penetrated the 
aperture of the tent as Winter re-entered it. 
All is ready, sire,said he. 
For us, also?inquired Athos. 
Grimaud and Blaisois are holding your horses, ready 
saddled.
In that case,exclaimed Athoslet us not lose an 
instant, but set off.
Come,added the king. 
Sire,said Aramiswill not your majesty acquaint some of 
your friends of this?
Friends!answered CharlessadlyI have but three -- one 
of twenty years, who has never forgotten me, and two of a 
week's standing, whom I shall never forget. Come, gentlemen, 
come!
The king quitted his tent and found his horse ready waiting 
for him. It was a chestnut that the king had ridden for 
three years and of which he was very fond. 
The horse neighed with pleasure at seeing him. 
Ah!said the kingI was unjust; here is a creature that 
loves me. You at least will be faithful to me, Arthur.
The horseas if it understood these wordsbent its red 
nostrils toward the king's faceand parting his lips 
displayed all its teethas if with pleasure. 
Yes, yes,said the kingcaressing it with his handyes, 
my Arthur, thou art a fond and faithful creature.
After this little scene Charles threw himself into the 
saddleand turning to AthosAramis and Wintersaid: 
Now, gentlemen, I am at your service.
But Athos was standing with his eyes fixed on a black line 
which bordered the banks of the Tyne and seemed to extend 
double the length of the camp. 
What is that line?cried Athoswhose vision was still 
rather obscured by the uncertain shades and demi-tints of 
daybreak. "What is that line? I did not observe it 
yesterday." 
It must be the fog rising from the river,said the king. 
Sire, it is something more opaque than the fog.
Indeed!said Winterit appears to me like a bar of red 
color.
It is the enemy, who have made a sortie from Newcastle and 
are surrounding us!exclaimed Athos. 
The enemy!cried the king. 
Yes, the enemy. It is too late. Stop a moment; does not 
that sunbeam yonder, just by the side of the town, glitter 
on the Ironsides?
This was the name given the cuirassierswhom Cromwell had 
made his body-guard. 
Ah!said the kingwe shall soon see whether my 
Highlanders have betrayed me or not.
What are you going to do?exclaimed Athos. 
To give them the order to charge, and run down these 
miserable rebels.
And the kingputting spurs to his horseset off to the 
tent of Lord Leven. 
Follow him,said Athos. 
Come!exclaimed Aramis. 
Is the king wounded?cried Lord Winter. "I see spots of 
blood on the ground." And he set off to follow the two 
friends. 
He was stopped by Athos. 
Go and call out your regiment,said he; "I can foresee 
that we shall have need of it directly." 
Winter turned his horse and the two friends rode on. It had 
taken but two minutes for the king to reach the tent of the 
Scottish commander; he dismounted and entered. 
The general was theresurrounded by the more prominent 
chiefs. 
The king!they exclaimedas all rose in bewilderment. 
Charles was indeed in the midst of themhis hat on his 
headhis brows bentstriking his boot with his riding 
whip. 
Yes, gentlemen, the king in person, the king who has come 
to ask for some account of what has happened.
What is the matter, sire?exclaimed Lord Leven. 
It is this, sir,said the kingangrilythat General 
Cromwell has reached Newcastle; that you knew it and I was 
not informed of it; that the enemy have left the town and 
are now closing the passages of the Tyne against us; that 
our sentinels have seen this movement and I have been left 
unacquainted with it; that, by an infamous treaty you have 
sold me for two hundred thousand pounds to Parliament. Of 
this treaty, at least, I have been warned. This is the 
matter, gentlemen; answer and exculpate yourselves, for I 
stand here to accuse you.
Sire,said Lord Levenwith hesitationsire, your 
majesty has been deceived by false reports.
My own eyes have seen the enemy extend itself between 
myself and Scotland; and I can almost say that with my own 
ears I have heard the clauses of the treaty debated.
The Scotch chieftains looked at each other in their turn 
with frowning brows. 
Sire,murmured Lord Levencrushed by shamesire, we are 
ready to give you every proof of our fidelity.
I ask but one,said the king; "put the army in battle 
array and face the enemy." 
That cannot be, sire,said the earl. 
How, cannot be? What hinders it?exclaimed the king. 
Your majesty is well aware that there is a truce between us 
and the English army.
And if there is a truce the English army has broken it by 
quitting the town, contrary to the agreement which kept it 
there. Now, I tell you, you must pass with me through this 
army across to Scotland, and if you refuse you may choose 
betwixt two names, which the contempt of all honest men will 
brand you with -- you are either cowards or traitors!
The eyes of the Scotch flashed fire; andas often happens 
on such occasionsfrom shame they passed to effrontery and 
two heads of clans advanced upon the king. 
Yes,said theywe have promised to deliver Scotland and 
England from him who for the last five-and-twenty years has 
sucked the blood and gold of Scotland and England. We have 
promised and we will keep our promise. Charles Stuart, you 
are our prisoner.
And both extended their hands as if to seize the kingbut 
before they could touch him with the tips of their fingers
both had fallenone deadthe other stunned. 
Aramis had passed his sword through the body of the first 
and Athos had knocked down the other with the butt end of 
his pistol. 
Thenas Lord Leven and the other chieftains recoiled before 
this unexpected rescuewhich seemed to come from Heaven for 
the prince they already thought was their prisonerAthos 
and Aramis dragged the king from the perjured assembly into 
which he had so imprudently venturedand throwing 
themselves on horseback all three returned at full gallop to 
the royal tent. 
On their road they perceived Lord Winter marching at the 
head of his regiment. The king motioned him to accompany 
them. 
The Avenger. 
They all four entered the tent; they had no plan ready -they 
must think of one. 
The king threw himself into an arm-chair. "I am lost said 
he. 
Nosire replied Athos. You are only betrayed." 
The king sighed deeply. 
Betrayed! yes betrayed by the Scotch, amongst whom I was 
born, whom I have always loved better than the English. Oh, 
traitors that ye are!
Sire,said Athosthis is not a moment for recrimination, 
but a time to show yourself a king and a gentleman. Up, 
sire! up! for you have here at least three men who will not 
betray you. Ah! if we had been five!murmured Athos
thinking of D'Artagnan and Porthos. 
What do you say?inquired Charlesrising. 
I say, sire, that there is now but one way open. Lord 
Winter answers for his regiment, or at least very nearly so 
-- we will not split straws about words -- let him place 
himself at the head of his men, we will place ourselves at 
the side of your majesty, and we will mow a swath through 
Cromwell's army and reach Scotland.
There is another method,said Aramis. "Let one of us put 
on the dress and mount the king's horse. Whilst they pursue 
him the king might escape." 
It is good advice,said Athosand if the king will do 
one of us the honor we shall be truly grateful to him.
What do you think of this counsel, Winter?asked the king
looking with admiration at these two menwhose chief idea 
seemed to be how they could take on their shoulders all the 
dangers that assailed him. 
I think the only chance of saving your majesty has just 
been proposed by Monsieur d'Herblay. I humbly entreat your 
majesty to choose quickly, for we have not an instant to 
lose.
But if I accept, it is death, or at least imprisonment, for 
him who takes my place.
He will have had the glory of having saved his king,cried 
Winter. 
The king looked at his old friend with tears in his eyes; 
undid the Order of the Saint Esprit which he woreto honor 
the two Frenchmen who were with himand passed it around 
Winter's neckwho received on his knees this striking proof 
of his sovereign's confidence and friendship. 
It is right,said Athos; "he has served your majesty 
longer than we have." 
The king overheard these words and turned around with tears 
in his eyes. 
Wait a moment, sir,said he; "I have an order for each of 
you also." 
He turned to a closet where his own orders were locked up
and took out two ribbons of the Order of the Garter. 
These cannot be for us,said Athos. 
Why not, sir?asked Charles. 
Such are for royalty, and we are simple commoners.
Speak not of crowns. I shall not find amongst them such 
great hearts as yours. No, no, you do yourselves injustice; 
but I am here to do you justice. On your knees, count.
Athos knelt down and the king passed the ribbon down from 
left to right as usualraised his swordand instead of 
pronouncing the customary formulaI make you a knight. Be 
brave, faithful and loyal,he saidYou are brave, 
faithful and loyal. I knight you, monsieur le comte.
Then turning to Aramishe said: 
It is now your turn, monsieur le chevalier.
The same ceremony recommencedwith the same wordswhilst 
Winter unlaced his leather cuirassthat he might disguise 
himself like the king. Charleshaving proceeded with Aramis 
as with Athosembraced them both. 
Sire,said Winterwho in this trying emergency felt all 
his strength and energy fire upwe are ready.
The king looked at the three gentlemen. "Then we must fly!" 
said he. 
Flying through an army, sire,said Athosin all 
countries in the world is called charging.
Then I shall die, sword in hand,said Charles. "Monsieur 
le comtemonsieur le chevalierif ever I am king ---- " 
Sire, you have already done us more honor than simple 
gentlemen could ever aspire to, therefore gratitude is on 
our side. But we must not lose time. We have already wasted 
too much.
The king again shook hands with all threeexchanged hats 
with Winter and went out. 
Winter's regiment was ranged on some high ground above the 
camp. The kingfollowed by the three friendsturned his 
steps that way. The Scotch camp seemed as if at last 
awakened; the soldiers had come out of their tents and taken 
up their station in battle array. 
Do you see that?said the king. "Perhaps they are penitent 
and preparing to march." 
If they are penitent,said Athoslet them follow us.
Well!said the kingwhat shall we do?
Let us examine the enemy's army.
At the same instant the eyes of the little group were fixed 
on the same line which at daybreak they had mistaken for fog 
and which the morning sun now plainly showed was an army in 
order of battle. The air was soft and clearas it generally 
is at that early hour of the morning. The regimentsthe 
standardsand even the colors of the horses and uniforms 
were now clearly distinct. 
On the summit of a rising grounda little in advance of the 
enemyappeared a short and heavy looking man; this man was 
surrounded by officers. He turned a spyglass toward the 
little group amongst which the king stood. 
Does this man know your majesty personally?inquired 
Aramis. 
Charles smiled. 
That man is Cromwell,said he. 
Then draw down your hat, sire, that he may not discover the 
substitution.
Ah!said Athoshow much time we have lost.
Now,said the kinggive the word and let us start.
Will you not give it, sire?asked Athos. 
No; I make you my lieutenant-general,said the king. 
Listen, then, Lord Winter. Proceed, sire, I beg. What we 
are going to say does not concern your majesty.
The kingsmilingturned a few steps back. 
This is what I propose to do,said Athos. "We will divide 
our regiments into two squadrons. You will put yourself at 
the head of the first. We and his majesty will lead the 
second. If no obstacle occurs we will both charge together
force the enemy's line and throw ourselves into the Tyne
which we must crosseither by fording or swimming; ifon 
the contraryany repulse should take placeyou and your 
men must fight to the last manwhilst we and the king 
proceed on our road. Once arrived at the brink of the river
should we even find them three ranks deepas long as you 
and your regiment do your dutywe will look to the rest." 
To horse!said Lord Winter. 
To horse!re-echoed Athos; "everything is arranged and 
decided." 
Now, gentlemen,cried the kingforward! and rally to the 
old cry of France, `Montjoy and St. Denis!' The war cry of 
England is too often in the mouths of traitors.
They mounted -- the king on Winter's horse and Winter on 
that of the king; then Winter took his place at the head of 
the first squadronand the kingwith Athos on his right 
and Aramis on his leftat the head of the second. 
The Scotch army stood motionless and silentseized with 
shame at sight of these preparations. 
Some of the chieftains left the ranks and broke their swords 
in two. 
There,said the kingthat consoles me; they are not all 
traitors.
At this moment Winter's voice was raised with the cry of 
Forward!
The first squadron moved off; the second followedand 
descended from the plateau. A regiment of cuirassiers
nearly equal as to numbersissued from behind the hill and 
came full gallop toward it. 
The king pointed this out. 
Sire,said Athoswe foresaw this; and if Lord Winter's 
men but do their duty, we are saved, instead of lost.
At this moment they heard above all the galloping and 
neighing of the horses Winter's voice crying out: 
Sword in hand!
At these words every sword was drawnand glittered in the 
air like lightning. 
Now, gentlemen,said the king in his turnexcited by this 
sightcome, gentlemen, sword in hand!
But Aramis and Athos were the only ones to obey this command 
and the king's example. 
We are betrayed,said the king in a low voice. 
Wait a moment,said Athosperhaps they do not recognize 
your majesty's voice, and await the order of their captain.
Have they not heard that of their colonel? But look! look!
cried the kingdrawing up his horse with a sudden jerk
which threw it on its haunchesand seizing the bridle of 
Athos's horse. 
Ah, cowards! traitors!screamed Lord Winterwhose voice 
they heardwhilst his menquitting their ranksdispersed 
all over the plain. 
About fifteen men were ranged around him and awaited the 
charge of Cromwell's cuirassiers. 
Let us go and die with them!said the king. 
Let us go,said Athos and Aramis. 
All faithful hearts with me!cried out Winter. 
This voice was heard by the two friendswho set offfull 
gallop. 
No quarter!cried a voice in Frenchanswering to that of 
Winterwhich made them tremble. 
As for Winterat the sound of that voice he turned pale
and wasas it werepetrified. 
It was the voice of a cavalier mounted on a magnificent 
black horsewho was charging at the head of the English 
regimentof whichin his ardorhe was ten steps in 
advance. 
'Tis he!murmured Winterhis eyes glazed and he allowed 
his sword to fall to his side. 
The king! the king!cried out several voicesdeceived by 
the blue ribbon and chestnut horse of Winter; "take him 
alive." 
No! it is not the king!exclaimed the cavalier. "Lord 
Winteryou are not the king; you are my uncle." 
At the same moment Mordauntfor it was heleveled his 
pistol at Winter; it went off and the ball entered the heart 
of the old cavalierwho with one bound on his saddle fell 
back into the arms of Athosmurmuring: "He is avenged!" 
Think of my mother!shouted Mordauntas his horse plunged 
and darted off at full gallop. 
Wretch!exclaimed Aramisraising his pistol as he passed 
by him; but the powder flashed in the pan and it did not go 
off. 
At this moment the whole regiment came up and they fell upon 
the few men who had held outsurrounding the two Frenchmen. 
Athosafter making sure that Lord Winter was really dead
let fall the corpse and said: 
Come, Aramis, now for the honor of France!and the two 
Englishmen who were nearest to them fellmortally wounded. 
At the same moment a fearful "hurrah!" rent the air and 
thirty blades glittered about their heads. 
Suddenly a man sprang out of the English ranksfell upon 
Athostwined arms of steel around himand tearing his 
sword from himsaid in his ear: 
Silence! yield -- you yield to me, do you not?
A giant had seized also Aramis's two wristswho struggled 
in vain to release himself from this formidable grasp. 
D'Art ---- exclaimed Athoswhilst the Gascon covered his 
mouth with his hand. 
I am your prisoner,said Aramisgiving up his sword to 
Porthos. 
Fire, fire!cried Mordauntreturning to the group 
surrounding the two friends. 
And wherefore fire?said the colonel; "every one has 
yielded." 
It is the son of Milady,said Athos to D'Artagnan. 
I recognize him.
It is the monk,whispered Porthos to Aramis. 
I know it.
And now the ranks began to open. D'Artagnan held the bridle 
of Athos's horse and Porthos that of Aramis. Both of them 
attempted to lead his prisoner off the battle-field. 
This movement revealed the spot where Winter's body had 
fallen. Mordaunt had found it out and was gazing on his dead 
relative with an expression of malignant hatred. 
Athosthough now cool and collectedput his hand to his 
beltwhere his loaded pistols yet remained. 
What are you about?said D'Artagnan. 
Let me kill him.
We are all four lost, if by the least gesture you discover 
that you recognize him.
Then turning to the young man he exclaimed: 
A fine prize! a fine prize, friend Mordaunt; we have both 
myself and Monsieur du Vallon, taken two Knights of the 
Garter, nothing less.
But,said Mordauntlooking at Athos and Aramis with 
bloodshot eyesthese are Frenchmen, I imagine.
I'faith, I don't know. Are you French, sir?said he to 
Athos. 
I am,replied the lattergravely. 
Very well, my dear sir, you are the prisoner of a fellow 
countryman.
But the king -- where is the king?exclaimed Athos
anxiously. 
D'Artagnan vigorously seized his prisoner's handsaying: 
Eh! the king? We have secured him.
Yes,said Aramisthrough an infamous act of treason.
Porthos pressed his friend's hand and said to him: 
Yes, sir, all is fair in war, stratagem as well as force; 
look yonder!
At this instant the squadronthat ought to have protected 
Charles's retreatwas advancing to meet the English 
regiments. The kingwho was entirely surroundedwalked 
alone in a great empty space. He appeared calmbut it was 
evidently not without a mighty effort. Drops of perspiration 
trickled down his faceand from time to time he put a 
handkerchief to his mouth to wipe away the blood that rilled 
from it. 
Behold Nebuchadnezzar!exclaimed an old Puritan soldier
whose eyes flashed at the sight of the man they called the 
tyrant. 
Do you call him Nebuchadnezzar?said Mordauntwith a 
terrible smile; "noit is Charles the Firstthe kingthe 
good King Charleswho despoils his subjects to enrich 
himself." 
Charles glanced a moment at the insolent creature who 
uttered thisbut did not recognize him. Neverthelessthe 
calm religious dignity of his countenance abashed Mordaunt. 
Bon jour, messieurs!said the king to the two gentlemen 
who were held by D'Artagnan and Porthos. "The day has been 
unfortunatebut it is not your faultthank God! But where 
is my old friend Winter?" 
The two gentlemen turned away their heads in silence. 
In Strafford's company,said Mordaunttauntingly. 
Charles shuddered. The demon had known how to wound him. The 
remembrance of Strafford was a source of lasting remorse to 
himthe shadow that haunted him by day and night. The king 
looked around him. He saw a corpse at his feet. It was 
Winter's. He uttered not a wordnor shed a tearbut a 
deadly pallor spread over his face; he knelt down on the 
groundraised Winter's headand unfastening the Order of 
the Saint Espritplaced it on his own breast. 
Lord Winter is killed, then?inquired D'Artagnanfixing 
his eyes on the corpse. 
Yes,said Athosby his own nephew.
Come, he was the first of us to go; peace be to him! he was 
an honest man,said D'Artagnan. 
Charles Stuart,said the colonel of the English regiment
approaching the kingwho had just put on the insignia of 
royaltydo you yield yourself a prisoner?
Colonel Tomlison,said Charleskings cannot yield; the 
man alone submits to force.
Your sword.
The king drew his sword and broke it on his knee. 
At this moment a horse without a ridercovered with foam
his nostrils extended and eyes all firegalloped upand 
recognizing his masterstopped and neighed with pleasure; 
it was Arthur. 
The king smiledpatted it with his hand and jumped lightly 
into the saddle. 
Now, gentlemen,said heconduct me where you will.
Turning back againhe saidI thought I saw Winter move; 
if he still lives, by all you hold most sacred, do not 
abandon him.
Never fear, King Charles,said Mordauntthe bullet 
pierced his heart.
Do not breathe a word nor make the least sign to me or 
Porthos,said D'Artagnan to Athos and Aramisthat you 
recognize this man, for Milady is not dead; her soul lives 
in the body of this demon.
The detachment now moved toward the town with the royal 
captive; but on the road an aide-de-campfrom Cromwell
sent orders that Colonel Tomlison should conduct him to 
Holdenby Castle. 
At the same time couriers started in every direction over 
England and Europe to announce that Charles Stuart was the 
prisoner of Oliver Cromwell. 
Oliver Cromwell. 
Have you been to the general?said Mordaunt to D'Artagnan 
and Porthos; "you know he sent for you after the action." 
We want first to put our prisoners in a place of safety,
replied D'Artagnan. "Do you knowsirthese gentlemen are 
each of them worth fifteen hundred pounds?" 
Oh, be assured,said Mordauntlooking at them with an 
expression he vainly endeavoured to softenmy soldiers 
will guard them, and guard them well, I promise you.
I shall take better care of them myself,answered 
D'Artagnan; "besidesall they require is a good roomwith 
sentinelsor their simple parole that they will not attempt 
escape. I will go and see about thatand then we shall have 
the honor of presenting ourselves to the general and 
receiving his commands for his eminence." 
You think of starting at once, then?inquired Mordaunt. 
Our mission is ended, and there is nothing more to detain 
us now but the good pleasure of the great man to whom we 
were sent.
The young man bit his lips and whispered to his sergeant: 
You will follow these men and not lose sight of them; when 
you have discovered where they lodge, come and await me at 
the town gate.
The sergeant made a sign of comprehension. 
Instead of following the knot of prisoners that were being 
taken into the townMordaunt turned his steps toward the 
rising ground from whence Cromwell had witnessed the battle 
and on which he had just had his tent pitched. 
Cromwell had given orders that no one was to be allowed 
admission; but the sentinelwho knew that Mordaunt was one 
of the most confidential friends of the generalthought the 
order did not extend to the young man. Mordaunttherefore
raised the canvasand saw Cromwell seated before a table
his head buried in his handshis back being turned. 
Whether he heard Mordaunt or not as he enteredCromwell did 
not move. Mordaunt remained standing near the door. At last
after a few momentsCromwell raised his headandas if he 
divined that some one was thereturned slowly around. 
I said I wished to be alone,he exclaimedon seeing the 
young man. 
They thought this order did not concern me, sir; 
nevertheless, if you wish it, I am ready to go.
Ah! is it you, Mordaunt?said Cromwellthe cloud passing 
away from his face; "since you are hereit is well; you may 
remain." 
I come to congratulate you.
To congratulate me -- what for?
On the capture of Charles Stuart. You are now master of 
England.
I was much more really so two hours ago.
How so, general?
Because England had need of me to take the tyrant, and now 
the tyrant is taken. Have you seen him?
Yes, sir.said Mordaunt. 
What is his bearing?
Mordaunt hesitated; but it seemed as though he was
constrained to tell the truth.
Calm and dignified,said he.
What did he say?
Some parting words to his friends.
His friends!murmured Cromwell. "Has he any friends?" Then 
he added aloudDid he make any resistance?
No, sir, with the exception of two or three friends every 
one deserted him; he had no means of resistance.
To whom did he give up his sword?
He did not give it up; he broke it.
He did well; but instead of breaking it, he might have used 
it to still more advantage.
There was a momentary pause. 
I heard that the colonel of the regiment that escorted 
Charles was killed,said Cromwellstaring very fixedly at 
Mordaunt. 
Yes, sir.
By whom?inquired Cromwell. 
By me.
What was his name?
Lord Winter.
Your uncle?exclaimed Cromwell. 
My uncle,answered Mordaunt; "but traitors to England are 
no longer members of my family." 
Cromwell observed the young man a moment in silencethen
with that profound melancholy Shakespeare describes so well: 
Mordaunt,he saidyou are a terrible servant.
When the Lord commands,said MordauntHis commands are 
not to be disputed. Abraham raised the knife against Isaac, 
and Isaac was his son.
Yes,said Cromwellbut the Lord did not suffer that 
sacrifice to be accomplished.
I have looked around me,said Mordauntand I have seen 
neither goat nor kid caught among the bushes of the plain.
Cromwell bowed. "You are strong among the strongMordaunt 
he said; and the Frenchmenhow did they behave?" 
Most fearlessly.
Yes, yes,murmured Cromwell; "the French fight well; and 
if my glass was good and I mistake notthey were foremost 
in the fight." 
They were,replied Mordaunt. 
After you, however,said Cromwell.
It was the fault of their horses, not theirs.
Another pause
And the Scotch?
They kept their word and never stirred,said Mordaunt.
Wretched men!
Their officers wish to see you, sir.
I have no time to see them. Are they paid?
Yes, to-night.
Let them be off and return to their own country, there to 
hide their shame, if its hills are high enough; I have 
nothing more to do with them nor they with me. And now go, 
Mordaunt.
Before I go,said MordauntI have some questions and a 
favor to ask you, sir.
A favor from me?
Mordaunt bowed. 
I come to you, my leader, my head, my father, and I ask 
you, master, are you contented with me?
Cromwell looked at him with astonishment. The young man 
remained immovable. 
Yes,said Cromwell; "you have donesince I knew younot 
only your dutybut more than your duty; you have been a 
faithful frienda cautious negotiatora brave soldier." 
Do you remember, sir it was my idea, the Scotch treaty, for 
giving up the king?
Yes, the idea was yours. I had no such contempt for men 
before.
Was I not a good ambassador in France?
Yes, for Mazarin has granted what I desire.
Have I not always fought for your glory and interests?
Too ardently, perhaps; it is what I have just reproached 
you for. But what is the meaning of all these questions?
To tell you, my lord, that the moment has now arrived when, 
with a single word, you may recompense all these services.
Oh!said Oliverwith a slight curl of his lipI forgot 
that every service merits some reward and that up to this 
moment you have not been paid.
Sir, I can take my pay at this moment, to the full extent 
of my wishes.
How is that?
I have the payment under my hand; I almost possess it.
What is it? Have they offered you money? Do you wish a 
step, or some place in the government?
Sir, will you grant me my request?
Let us hear what it is, first.
Sir, when you have told me to obey an order did I ever 
answer, `Let me see that order '?
If, however, your wish should be one impossible to 
fulfill?
When you have cherished a wish and have charged me with its 
fulfillment, have I ever replied, `It is impossible'?
But a request preferred with so much preparation ---- 
Ah, do not fear, sir,said Mordauntwith apparent 
simplicity: "it will not ruin you." 
Well, then,said CromwellI promise, as far as lies in 
my power, to grant your request; proceed.
Sir, two prisoners were taken this morning, will you let me 
have them?
For their ransom? have they then offered a large one?
inquired Cromwell. 
On the contrary, I think they are poor, sir.
They are friends of yours, then?
Yes, sir,exclaimed Mordauntthey are friends, dear 
friends of mine, and I would lay down my life for them.
Very well, Mordaunt,exclaimed Cromwellpleased at having 
his opinion of the young man raised once more; "I will give 
them to you; I will not even ask who they are; do as you 
like with them." 
Thank you, sir!exclaimed Mordauntthank you; my life is 
always at your service, and should I lose it I should still 
owe you something; thank you; you have indeed repaid me 
munificently for my services.
He threw himself at the feet of Cromwelland in spite of 
the efforts of the Puritan generalwho did not like this 
almost kingly homagehe took his hand and kissed it. 
What!said Cromwellarresting him for a moment as he 
arose; "is there nothing more you wish? neither gold nor 
rank?" 
You have given me all you can give me, and from to-day your 
debt is paid.
And Mordaunt darted out of the general's tenthis heart 
beating and his eyes sparkling with joy. 
Cromwell gazed a moment after him. 
He has slain his uncle!he murmured. "Alas! what are my 
servants? Possibly this onewho asks nothing or seems to 
ask nothinghas asked more in the eyes of Heaven than those 
who tax the country and steal the bread of the poor. Nobody 
serves me for nothing. Charleswho is my prisonermay 
still have friendsbut I have none!" 
And with a deep sigh he again sank into the reverie that had 
been interrupted by Mordaunt. 
Jesus Seigneur. 
Whilst Mordaunt was making his way to Cromwell's tent
D'Artagnan and Porthos had brought their prisoners to the 
house which had been assigned to them as their dwelling at 
Newcastle. 
The order given by Mordaunt to the sergeant had been heard 
by D'Artagnanwho accordinglyby an expressive glance
warned Athos and Aramis to exercise extreme caution. The 
prisonersthereforehad remained silent as they marched 
along in company with their conquerors -- which they could 
do with the less difficulty since each of them had 
occupation enough in answering his own thoughts. 
It would be impossible to describe Musqueton's astonishment 
when from the threshold of the door he saw the four friends 
approachingfollowed by a sergeant with a dozen men. He 
rubbed his eyesdoubting if he really saw before him Athos 
and Aramis; and forced at last to yield to evidencehe was 
on the point of breaking forth in exclamations when he 
encountered a glance from the eyes of Porthosthe 
repressive force of which he was not inclined to dispute. 
Musqueton remained glued to the doorawaiting the 
explanation of this strange occurrence. What upset him 
completely was that the four friends seemed to have no 
acquaintance with one another. 
The house to which D'Artagnan and Porthos conducted Athos 
and Aramis was the one assigned to them by General Cromwell 
and of which they had taken possession on the previous 
evening. It was at the corner of two streets and had in the 
rearbordering on the side streetstables and a sort of 
garden. The windows on the ground flooraccording to a 
custom in provincial villageswere barredso that they 
strongly resembled the windows of a prison. 
The two friends made the prisoners enter the house first
whilst they stood at the doordesiring Musqueton to take 
the four horses to the stable. 
Why don't we go in with them?asked Porthos. 
We must first see what the sergeant wishes us to do,
replied D'Artagnan. 
The sergeant and his men took possession of the little 
garden. 
D'Artagnan asked them what they wished and why they had 
taken that position. 
We have had orders,answered the manto help you in 
taking care of your prisoners.
There could be no fault to find with this arrangement; on 
the contraryit seemed to be a delicate attentionto be 
gratefully received; D'Artagnanthereforethanked the man 
and gave him a crown piece to drink to General Cromwell's 
health. 
The sergeant answered that Puritans never drankand put the 
crown piece in his pocket. 
Ah!said Porthoswhat a fearful day, my dear 
D'Artagnan!
What! a fearful day, when to-day we find our friends?
Yes; but under what circumstances?
'Tis true that our position is an awkward one; but let us 
go in and see more clearly what is to be done.
Things look black enough,replied Porthos; "I understand 
now why Aramis advised me to strangle that horrible 
Mordaunt." 
Silence!cried the Gascon; "do not utter that name." 
But,argued PorthosI speak French and they are all 
English.
D'Artagnan looked at Porthos with that air of wonder which a 
cunning man cannot help feeling at displays of crass 
stupidity. 
But as Porthos on his side could not comprehend his 
astonishmenthe merely pushed him indoorssayingLet us 
go in.
They found Athos in profound despondency; Aramis looked 
first at Porthos and then at D'Artagnanwithout speaking
but the latter understood his meaning look. 
You want to know how we came here? 'Tis easily guessed. 
Mazarin sent us with a letter to General Cromwell.
But how came you to fall into company with Mordaunt, whom I 
bade you distrust?asked Athos. 
And whom I advised you to strangle, Porthos,said Aramis. 
Mazarin again. Cromwell had sent him to Mazarin. Mazarin 
sent us to Cromwell. There is a certain fatality in it.
Yes, you are right, D'Artagnan, a fatality that will 
separate and ruin us! So, my dear Aramis, say no more about 
it and let us prepare to submit to destiny.
Zounds! on the contrary, let us speak about it; for it was 
agreed among us, once for all, that we should always hold 
together, though engaged on opposing sides.
Yes,added AthosI now ask you, D'Artagnan, what side 
you are on? Ah! behold for what end the wretched Mazarin has 
made use of you. Do you know in what crime you are to-day 
engaged? In the capture of a king, his degradation and his 
murder.
Oh! oh!cried Porthosdo you think so?
You are exaggerating, Athos; we are not so far gone as 
that,replied the lieutenant. 
Good heavens! we are on the very eve of it. I say, why is 
the king taken prisoner? Those who wish to respect him as a 
master would not buy him as a slave. Do you think it is to 
replace him on the throne that Cromwell has paid for him two 
hundred thousand pounds sterling? They will kill him, you 
may be sure of it.
I don't maintain the contrary,said D'Artagnan. "But 
what's that to us? I am here because I am a soldier and have 
to obey orders -- I have taken an oath to obeyand I do 
obey; but you who have taken no such oathwhy are you here 
and what cause do you represent?" 
That most sacred in the world,said Athos; "the cause of 
misfortuneof religionroyalty. A frienda wifea 
daughterhave done us the honor to call us to their aid. We 
have served them to the best of our poor meansand God will 
recompense the willforgive the want of power. You may see 
matters differentlyD'Artagnanand think otherwise. I will 
not attempt to argue with youbut I blame you." 
Heyday!cried D'Artagnanwhat matters it to me, after 
all, if Cromwell, who's an Englishman, revolts against his 
king, who is a Scotchman? I am myself a Frenchman. I have 
nothing to do with these things -- why hold me responsible?
Yes,said Porthos. 
Because all gentlemen are brothers, because you are a 
gentleman, because the kings of all countries are the first 
among gentlemen, because the blind populace, ungrateful and 
brutal, always takes pleasure in pulling down what is above 
them. And you, you, D'Artagnan, a man sprung from the 
ancient nobility of France, bearing an honorable name, 
carrying a good sword, have helped to give up a king to 
beersellers, shopkeepers, and wagoners. Ah! D'Artagnan! 
perhaps you have done your duty as a soldier, but as a 
gentleman, I say that you are very culpable.
D'Artagnan was chewing the stalk of a flowerunable to 
reply and thoroughly uncomfortable; for when turned from the 
eyes of Athos he encountered those of Aramis. 
And you, Porthos,continued the countas if in 
consideration for D'Artagnan's embarrassmentyou, the best 
heart, the best friend, the best soldier that I know -- you, 
with a soul that makes you worthy of a birth on the steps of 
a throne, and who, sooner or later, must receive your reward 
from an intelligent king -- you, my dear Porthos, you, a 
gentleman in manners, in tastes and in courage, you are as 
culpable as D'Artagnan.
Porthos blushedbut with pleasure rather than with 
confusion; and yetbowing his headas if humiliatedhe 
said: 
Yes, yes, my dear count, I feel that you are right.
Athos arose. 
Come,he saidstretching out his hand to D'Artagnan
come, don't be sullen, my dear son, for I have said all 
this to you, if not in the tone, at least with the feelings 
of a father. It would have been easier to me merely to have 
thanked you for preserving my life and not to have uttered a 
word of all this.
Doubtless, doubtless, Athos. But here it is: you have 
sentiments, the devil knows what, such as every one can't 
entertain. Who could suppose that a sensible man could leave 
his house, France, his ward -- a charming youth, for we saw 
him in the camp -- to fly to the aid of a rotten, worm-eaten 
royalty, which is going to crumble one of these days like an 
old hovel. The sentiments you air are certainly fine, so 
fine that they are superhuman.
However that may be, D'Artagnan,replied Athoswithout 
falling into the snare which his Gascon friend had prepared 
for him by an appeal to his parental lovehowever that may 
be, you know in the bottom of your heart that it is true; 
but I am wrong to dispute with my master. D'Artagnan, I am 
your prisoner -- treat me as such.
Ah! pardieu!said D'Artagnanyou know you will not be my 
prisoner very long.
No,said Aramisthey will doubtless treat us like the 
prisoners of the Philipghauts.
And how were they treated?asked D'Artagnan. 
Why,said Aramisone-half were hanged and the other half 
were shot.
Well, I,said D'Artagnan "I answer that while there 
remains a drop of blood in my veins you will be neither 
hanged nor shot. Sang Diou! let them come on! Besides -- do 
you see that doorAthos?" 
Yes; what then?
Well, you can go out by that door whenever you please; for 
from this moment you are free as the air.
I recognize you there, my brave D'Artagnan,replied Athos; 
but you are no longer our masters. That door is guarded, 
D'Artagnan; you know that.
Very well, you will force it,said Porthos. "There are 
only a dozen men at the most." 
That would be nothing for us four; it is too much for us 
two. No, divided as we now are, we must perish. See the 
fatal example: on the Vendomois road, D'Artagnan, you so 
brave, and you, Porthos, so valiant and so strong -- you 
were beaten; to-day Aramis and I are beaten in our turn. Now 
that never happened to us when we were four together. Let us 
die, then, as De Winter has died; as for me, I will fly only 
on condition that we all fly together.
Impossible,said D'Artagnan; "we are under Mazarin's 
orders." 
I know it and I have nothing more to say; my arguments lead 
to nothing; doubtless they are bad, since they have not 
determined minds so just as yours.
Besides,said Aramishad they taken effect it would be 
still better not to compromise two excellent friends like 
D'Artagnan and Porthos. Be assured, gentlemen, we shall do 
you honor in our dying. As for myself, I shall be proud to 
face the bullets, or even the rope, in company with you, 
Athos; for you have never seemed to me so grand as you are 
to-day.
D'Artagnan said nothingbutafter having gnawed the flower 
stalkhe began to bite his nails. At last: 
Do you imagine,he resumedthat they mean to kill you? 
And wherefore should they do so? What interest have they in 
your death? Moreover, you are our prisoners.
Fool!cried Aramis; "knowest thou notthenMordaunt? I 
have but exchanged with him one lookyet that look 
convinced me that we were doomed." 
The truth is, I'm very sorry that I did not strangle him as 
you advised me,said Porthos. 
Eh! I make no account of the harm Mordaunt can do!cried 
D'Artagnan. "Cap de Diou! if he troubles me too much I will 
crush himthe insect! Do not flythen. It is useless; for 
I swear to you that you are as safe here as you were twenty 
yearsago -- youAthosin the Rue Ferouand youAramis
in the Rue de Vaugirard." 
Stop,cried Athosextending his hand to one of the grated 
windows by which the room was lighted; "you will soon know 
what to expectfor here he is." 
Who?
Mordaunt.
In factlooking at the place to which Athos pointed
D'Artagnan saw a cavalier coming toward the house at full 
gallop. 
It was Mordaunt. 
D'Artagnan rushed out of the room. 
Porthos wanted to follow him. 
Stay,said D'Artagnanand do not come till you hear me 
drum my fingers on the door.
When Mordaunt arrived opposite the house he saw D'Artagnan 
on the threshold and the soldiers lying on the grass here 
and therewith their arms. 
Halloo!he criedare the prisoners still there?
Yes, sir,answered the sergeantuncovering. 
'Tis well; order four men to conduct them to my lodging.
Four men prepared to do so. 
What is it?said D'Artagnanwith that jeering manner 
which our readers have so often observed in him since they 
made his acquaintance. "What is the matterif you please?" 
Sir,replied MordauntI have ordered the two prisoners 
we made this morning to be conducted to my lodging.
Wherefore, sir? Excuse curiosity, but I wish to be 
enlightened on the subject.
Because these prisoners, sir, are at my disposal and I 
choose to dispose of them as I like.
Allow me -- allow me, sir,said D'Artagnanto observe 
you are in error. The prisoners belong to those who take 
them and not to those who only saw them taken. You might 
have taken Lord Winter -- who, 'tis said, was your uncle -prisoner, 
but you preferred killing him; 'tis well; we, that 
is, Monsieur du Vallon and I, could have killed our 
prisoners -- we preferred taking them.
Mordaunt's very lips grew white with rage. 
D'Artagnan now saw that affairs were growing worse and he 
beat the guard's march upon the door. At the first beat 
Porthos rushed out and stood on the other side of the door. 
This movement was observed by Mordaunt. 
Sir!he thus addressed D'Artagnanyour resistance is 
useless; these prisoners have just been given me by my 
illustrious patron, Oliver Cromwell.
These words struck D'Artagnan like a thunderbolt. The blood 
mounted to his templeshis eyes became dim; he saw from 
what fountainhead the ferocious hopes of the young man 
aroseand he put his hand to the hilt of his sword. 
As for Porthoshe looked inquiringly at D'Artagnan. 
This look of Porthos's made the Gascon regret that he had 
summoned the brute force of his friend to aid him in an 
affair which seemed to require chiefly cunning. 
Violence,he said to himselfwould spoil all; 
D'Artagnan, my friend, prove to this young serpent that thou 
art not only stronger, but more subtle than he is.
Ah!he saidmaking a low bowwhy did you not begin by 
saying that, Monsieur Mordaunt? What! are you sent by 
General Oliver Cromwell, the most illustrious captain of the 
age?
I have this instant left him,replied Mordauntalighting
in order to give his horse to a soldier to hold. 
Why did you not say so at once, my dear sir! all England is 
with Cromwell; and since you ask for my prisoners, I bend, 
sir, to your wishes. They are yours; take them.
MordauntdelightedadvancedPorthos looking at D'Artagnan 
with open-mouthed astonishment. Then D'Artagnan trod on his 
foot and Porthos began to understand that this was merely 
acting. 
Mordaunt put his foot on the first step of the door and
with his hat in handprepared to pass by the two friends
motioning to the four men to follow him. 
But, pardon,said D'Artagnanwith the most charming smile 
and putting his hand on the young man's shoulderif the 
illustrious General Oliver Cromwell has disposed of our 
prisoners in your favour, he has, of course, made that act 
of donation in writing.
Mordaunt stopped short. 
He has given you some little writing for me -- the least 
bit of paper which may show that you come in his name. Be 
pleased to give me that scrap of paper so that I may 
justify, by a pretext at least, my abandoning my countrymen. 
Otherwise, you see, although I am sure that General Oliver 
Cromwell can intend them no harm, it would have a bad 
appearance.
Mordaunt recoiled; he felt the blow and discharged a 
terrible look at D'Artagnanwho responded by the most 
amiable expression that ever graced a human countenance. 
When I tell you a thing, sir,said Mordauntyou insult 
me by doubting it.
I!cried D'ArtagnanI doubt what you say!God keep me 
from itmy dear Monsieur Mordaunt! On the contraryI take 
you to be a worthy and accomplished gentleman. And then
sirdo you wish me to speak freely to you?" continued 
D'Artagnanwith his frank expression. 
Speak out, sir,said Mordaunt. 
Monsieur du Vallon, yonder, is rich and has forty thousand 
francs yearly, so he does not care about money. I do not 
speak for him, but for myself.
Well, sir? What more?
Well -- I -- I'm not rich. In Gascony 'tis no dishonor, 
sir, nobody is rich; and Henry IV., of glorious memory, who 
was the king of the Gascons, as His Majesty Philip IV. is 
the king of the Spaniards, never had a penny in his pocket.
Go on, sir, I see what you wish to get at; and if it is 
simply what I think that stops you, I can obviate the 
difficulty.
Ah, I knew well,said the Gasconthat you were a man of 
talent. Well, here's the case, here's where the saddle hurts 
me, as we French say. I am an officer of fortune, nothing 
else; I have nothing but what my sword brings me in -- that 
is to say, more blows than banknotes. Now, on taking 
prisoners, this morning, two Frenchmen, who seemed to me of 
high birth -- in short, two knights of the Garter -- I said 
to myself, my fortune is made. I say two, because in such 
circumstances, Monsieur du Vallon, who is rich, always gives 
me his prisoners.
Mordauntcompletely deceived by the wordy civility of 
D'Artagnansmiled like a man who understands perfectly the 
reasons given himand said: 
I shall have the order signed directly, sir, and with it 
two thousand pistoles; meanwhile, let me take these men 
away.
No,replied D'Artagnan; "what signifies a delay of half an 
hour? I am a man of ordersir; let us do things in order." 
Nevertheless,replied MordauntI could compel you; I 
command here.
Ah, sir!said D'ArtagnanI see that although we have had 
the honor of traveling in your company you do not know us. 
We are gentlemen; we are, both of us, able to kill you and 
your eight men -- we two only. For Heaven's sake don't be 
obstinate, for when others are obstinate I am obstinate 
likewise, and then I become ferocious and headstrong, and 
there's my friend, who is even more headstrong and ferocious 
than myself. Besides, we are sent here by Cardinal Mazarin, 
and at this moment represent both the king and the cardinal, 
and are, therefore, as ambassadors, able to act with 
impunity, a thing that General Oliver Cromwell, who is 
assuredly as great a politician as he is a general, is quite 
the man to understand. Ask him then, for the written order. 
What will that cost you my dear Monsieur Mordaunt?
Yes, the written order,said Porthoswho now began to 
comprehend what D'Artagnan was aiming atwe ask only for 
that.
However inclined Mordaunt was to have recourse to violence
he understood the reasons D'Artagnan had given him; besides
completely ignorant of the friendship which existed between 
the four Frenchmenall his uneasiness disappeared when he 
heard of the plausible motive of the ransom. He decided
thereforenot only to fetch the orderbut the two thousand 
pistolesat which he estimated the prisoners. He therefore 
mounted his horse and disappeared. 
Good!thought D'Artagnan; "a quarter of an hour to go to 
the tenta quarter of an hour to return; it is more than we 
need." Then turningwithout the least change of 
countenanceto Porthoshe saidlooking him full in the 
face: "Friend Porthoslisten to this; firstnot a syllable 
to either of our friends of what you have heard; it is 
unnecessary for them to know the service we are going to 
render them." 
Very well; I understand.
Go to the stable; you will find Musqueton there; saddle 
your horses, put your pistols in your saddle-bags, take out 
the horses and lead them to the street below this, so that 
there will be nothing to do but mount them; all the rest is 
my business.
Porthos made no remarkbut obeyedwith the sublime 
confidence he had in his friend. 
I go,he saidonly, shall I enter the chamber where 
those gentlemen are?
No, it is not worth while.
Well, do me the kindness to take my purse. which I left on 
the mantelpiece.
All right.
He then proceededwith his usual calm gaitto the stable 
and went into the very midst of the soldierywhoforeigner 
as he wascould not help admiring his height and the 
enormous strength of his great limbs. 
At the corner of the street he met Musqueton and took him 
with him. 
D'Artagnanmeantimewent into the housewhistling a tune 
which he had begun before Porthos went away. 
My dear Athos, I have reflected on your arguments and I am 
convinced. I am sorry to have had anything to do with this 
matter. As you say, Mazarin is a knave. I have resolved to 
fly with you, not a word -- be ready. Your swords are in the 
corner; do not forget them, they are in many circumstances 
very useful; there is Porthos's purse, too.
He put it into his pocket. The two friends were perfectly 
stupefied. 
Well, pray, is there anything to be so surprised at?he 
said. "I was blind; Athos has made me seethat's all; come 
here." 
The two friends went near him. 
Do you see that street? There are the horses. Go out by the 
door, turn to the right, jump into your saddles, all will be 
right; don't be uneasy at anything except mistaking the 
signal. That will be the signal when I call out -- Jesus 
Seigneur!
But give us your word that you will come too, D'Artagnan,
said Athos. 
I swear I will, by Heaven.
'Tis settled,said Aramis; "at the cry `Jesus Seigneur' we 
go outupset all that stands in our wayrun to our horses
jump into our saddlesspur them; is that all?" 
Exactly.
See, Aramis, as I have told you, D'Artagnan is first 
amongst us all,said Athos. 
Very true,replied the Gasconbut I always run away from 
compliments. Don't forget the signal: `Jesus Seigneur!'and 
he went out as he came inwhistling the self-same air. 
The soldiers were playing or sleeping; two of them were 
singing in a cornerout of tunethe psalm: "On the rivers 
of Babylon." 
D'Artagnan called the sergeant. "My dear friendGeneral 
Cromwell has sent Monsieur Mordaunt to fetch me. Guard the 
prisoners wellI beg of you." 
The sergeant made a signas much as to say he did not 
understand Frenchand D'Artagnan tried to make him 
comprehend by signs and gestures. Then he went into the 
stable; he found the five horses saddledhis own amongst 
the rest. 
Each of you take a horse by the bridle,he said to Porthos 
and Musqueton; "turn to the leftso that Athos and Aramis 
may see you clearly from the window." 
They are coming, then?said Porthos. 
In a moment.
You didn't forget my purse?
No; be easy.
Good.
Porthos and Musqueton each took a horse by the bridle and 
proceeded to their post. 
Then D'Artagnanbeing alonestruck a light and lighted a 
small bit of tindermounted his horse and stopped at the 
door in the midst of the soldiers. Therecaressing as he 
pretendedthe animal with his handhe put this bit of 
burning tinder in his ear. It was necessary to be as good a 
horseman as he was to risk such a schemefor no sooner had 
the animal felt the burning tinder than he uttered a cry of 
pain and reared and jumped as if he had been mad. 
The soldierswhom he was nearly tramplingran away. 
Help! help!cried D'Artagnan; "stop -- my horse has the 
staggers." 
In an instant the horse's eyes grew bloodshot and he was 
white with foam. 
Help!cried D'Artagnan. "What! will you let me be killed? 
Jesus Seigneur!" 
No sooner had he uttered this cry than the door opened and 
Athos and Aramis rushed out. The coastowing to the 
Gascon's stratagemwas clear. 
The prisoners are escaping! the prisoners are escaping!
cried the sergeant. 
Stop! stop!cried D'Artagnangiving rein to his famous 
steedwhodarting forthoverturned several men. 
Stop! stop!cried the soldiersand ran for their arms. 
But the prisoners were in their saddles and lost no time 
hastening to the nearest gate. 
In the middle of the street they saw Grimaud and Blaisois
who were coming to find their masters. With one wave of his 
hand Athos made Grimaudwho followed the little troop
understand everythingand they passed on like a whirlwind
D'Artagnan still directing them from behind with his voice. 
They passed through the gate like apparitionswithout the 
guards thinking of detaining themand reached the open 
country. 
All this time the soldiers were calling outStop! stop!
and the sergeantwho began to see that he was the victim of 
an artificewas almost in a frenzy of despair. Whilst all 
this was going ona cavalier in full gallop was seen 
approaching. It was Mordaunt with the order in his hand. 
The prisoners!he exclaimedjumping off his horse. 
The sergeant had not the courage to reply; he showed him the 
open doorthe empty room. Mordaunt darted to the steps
understood alluttered a cryas if his very heart was 
piercedand fell fainting on the stone steps. 
In which it is shown that under the most trying 
Circumstances noble Natures never lose their Couragenor 
good Stomachs their Appetites. 
The little troopwithout looking behind them or exchanging 
a wordfled at a rapid gallopfording a little streamof 
which none of them knew the nameand leaving on their left 
a town which Athos declared to be Durham. At last they came 
in sight of a small woodand spurring their horses afresh
rode in its direction. 
As soon as they had disappeared behind a green curtain 
sufficiently thick to conceal them from the sight of any one 
who might be in pursuit they drew up to hold a council 
together. The two grooms held the horsesthat they might 
take a little rest without being unsaddledand Grimaud was 
posted as sentinel. 
Come, first of all,said Athos to D'Artagnanmy friend, 
that I may shake hands with you -- you, our rescuer -- you, 
the true hero of us all.
Athos is right -- you have my adoration,said Aramisin 
his turn pressing his hand. "To what are you not equalwith 
your superior intelligenceinfallible eyeyour arm of iron 
and your enterprising mind!" 
Now,said the Gasconthat is all well, I accept for 
Porthos and myself everything -- thanks and compliments; we 
have plenty of time to spare.
The two friendsrecalled by D'Artagnan to what was also due 
to Porthospressed his hand in their turn. 
And now,said Athosit is not our plan to run anywhere 
and like madmen, but we must map up our campaign. What shall 
we do?
What are we going to do, i'faith? It is not very difficult 
to say.
Tell us, then, D'Artagnan.
We are going to reach the nearest seaport, unite our little 
resources, hire a vessel and return to France. As for me I 
will give my last sou for it. Life is the greatest treasure, 
and speaking candidly, ours hangs by a thread.
What do you say to this, Du Vallon?
I,said PorthosI am entirely of D'Artagnan's opinion; 
this is a `beastly' country, this England.
You are quite decided, then, to leave it?asked Athos of 
D'Artagnan. 
Egad! I don't see what is to keep me here.
A glance was exchanged between Athos and Aramis. 
Go, then, my friends,said the formersighing. 
How, go then?exclaimed D'Artagnan. "Let us goyou mean?" 
No, my friend,said Athosyou must leave us.
Leave you!cried D'Artagnanquite bewildered at this 
unexpected announcement. 
Bah!said Porthoswhy separate, since we are all 
together?
Because you can and ought to return to France; your mission 
is accomplished, but ours is not.
Your mission is not accomplished?exclaimed D'Artagnan
looking in astonishment at Athos. 
No, my friend,replied Athosin his gentle but decided 
voicewe came here to defend King Charles; we have but ill 
defended him -- it remains for us to save him!
To save the king?said D'Artagnanlooking at Aramis as he 
had looked at Athos. 
Aramis contented himself by making a sign with his head. 
D'Artagnan's countenance took an expression of the deepest 
compassion; he began to think he had to do with madmen. 
You cannot be speaking seriously, Athos!said he; "the 
king is surrounded by an armywhich is conducting him to 
London. This army is commanded by a butcheror the son of a 
butcher -- it matters little -- Colonel Harrison. His 
majestyI can assure youwill be tried on his arrival in 
London; I have heard enough from the lips of Oliver Cromwell 
to know what to expect." 
A second look was exchanged between Athos and Aramis. 
And when the trial is ended there will be no delay in 
putting the sentence into execution,continued D'Artagnan. 
And to what penalty do you think the king will be 
condemned?asked Athos. 
The penalty of death, I greatly fear; they have gone too 
far for him to pardon them, and there is nothing left to 
them but one thing, and that is to kill him. Have you never 
heard what Oliver Cromwell said when he came to Paris and 
was shown the dungeon at Vincennes where Monsieur de Vendome 
was imprisoned?
What did he say?asked Porthos. 
`Princes must be knocked on the head.'
I remember it,said Athos. 
And you fancy he will not put his maxim into execution, now 
that he has got hold of the king?
On the contrary, I am certain he will do so. But then that 
is all the more reason why we should not abandon the august 
head so threatened.
Athos, you are becoming mad.
No, my friend,Athos gently repliedbut De Winter sought 
us out in France and introduced us, Monsieur d'Herblay and 
myself, to Madame Henrietta. Her majesty did us the honor to 
ask our aid for her husband. We engaged our word; our word 
included everything. It was our strength, our intelligence, 
our life, in short, that we promised. It remains now for us 
to keep our word. Is that your opinion, D'Herblay?
Yes,said Aramiswe have promised.
Then,continued Athoswe have another reason; it is this 
-- listen: In France at this moment everything is poor and 
paltry. We have a king ten years old, who doesn't yet know 
what he wants; we have a queen blinded by a belated passion; 
we have a minister who governs France as he would govern a 
great farm -- that is to say, intent only on turning out all 
the gold he can by the exercise of Italian cunning and 
invention; we have princes who set up a personal and 
egotistic opposition, who will draw from Mazarin's hands 
only a few ingots of gold or some shreds of power granted as 
bribes. I have served them without enthusiasm -- God knows 
that I estimated them at their real value, and that they are 
not high in my esteem -- but on principle. To-day I am 
engaged in a different affair. I have encountered misfortune 
in a high place, a royal misfortune, a European misfortune; 
I attach myself to it. If we can succeed in saving the king 
it will be good; if we die for him it will be grand.
So you know beforehand you must perish!said D'Artagnan. 
We fear so, and our only regret is to die so far from both 
of you.
What will you do in a foreign land, an enemy's country?
I traveled in England when I was young, I speak English 
like an Englishman, and Aramis, too, knows something of the 
language. Ah! if we had you, my friends! With you, 
D'Artagnan, with you, Porthos -- all four reunited for the 
first time for twenty years -- we would dare not only 
England, but the three kingdoms put together!
And did you promise the queen,resumed D'Artagnan
petulantlyto storm the Tower of London, to kill a hundred 
thousand soldiers, to fight victoriously against the wishes 
of the nation and the ambition of a man, and when that man 
is Cromwell? Do not exaggerate your duty. In Heaven's name, 
my dear Athos, do not make a useless sacrifice. When I see 
you merely, you look like a reasonable being; when you 
speak, I seem to have to do with a madman. Come, Porthos, 
join me; say frankly, what do you think of this business?
Nothing good,replied Porthos. 
Come,continued D'Artagnanwhoirritated that instead of 
listening to him Athos seemed to be attending to his own 
thoughtsyou have never found yourself the worse for my 
advice. Well, then, believe me, Athos, your mission is 
ended, and ended nobly; return to France with us.
Friend,said Athosour resolution is irrevocable.
Then you have some other motive unknown to us?
Athos smiled and D'Artagnan struck his hand together in 
anger and muttered the most convincing reasons that he could 
discover; but to all these reasons Athos contented himself 
by replying with a calmsweet smile and Aramis by nodding 
his head. 
Very well,cried D'Artagnanat lastfuriousvery well, 
since you wish it, let us leave our bones in this beggarly 
land, where it is always cold, where fine weather is a fog, 
fog is rain, and rain a deluge; where the sun represents the 
moon and the moon a cream cheese; in truth, whether we die 
here or elsewhere matters little, since we must die.
Only reflect, my good fellow,said Athosit is but dying 
rather sooner.
Pooh! a little sooner or a little later, it isn't worth 
quarreling over.
If I am astonished at anything,remarked Porthos
sententiouslyit is that it has not already happened.
Oh, it will happen, you may be sure,said D'Artagnan. "So 
it is agreedand if Porthos makes no objection ---- " 
I,said PorthosI will do whatever you please; and 
besides, I think what the Comte de la Fere said just now is 
very good.
But your future career, D'Artagnan -- your ambition, 
Porthos?
Our future, our ambition!replied D'Artagnanwith 
feverish volubility. "Need we think of that since we are to 
save the king? The king saved -- we shall assemble our 
friends together -- we will head the Puritans -- reconquer 
England; we shall re-enter London -- place him securely on 
his throne ---- " 
And he will make us dukes and peers,said Porthoswhose 
eyes sparkled with joy at this imaginary prospect. 
Or he will forget us,added D'Artagnan. 
Oh!said Porthos. 
Well, that has happened, friend Porthos. It seems to me 
that we once rendered Anne of Austria a service not much 
less than that which to-day we are trying to perform for 
Charles I.; but, none the less, Anne of Austria has 
forgotten us for twenty years.
Well, in spite of that, D'Artagnan,said Athosyou are 
not sorry that you were useful to her?
No, indeed,said D'Artagnan; "I admit even that in my 
darkest moments I find consolation in that remembrance." 
You see, then, D'Artagnan, though princes often are 
ungrateful, God never is.
Athos,said D'ArtagnanI believe that were you to fall 
in with the devil, you would conduct yourself so well that 
you would take him with you to Heaven.
So, then?said Athosoffering his hand to D'Artagnan. 
'Tis settled,replied D'Artagnan. "I find England a 
charming countryand I stay -- but on one condition only." 
What is it?
That I am not forced to learn English.
Well, now,said AthostriumphantlyI swear to you, my 
friend, by the God who hears us -- I believe that there is a 
power watching over us, and that we shall all four see 
France again.
So be it!said D'Artagnanbut I -- I confess I have a 
contrary conviction.
Our good D'Artagnan,said Aramisrepresents among us the 
opposition in parliament, which always says no, and always 
does aye.
But in the meantime saves the country,added Athos. 
Well, now that everything is decided,cried Porthos
rubbing his handssuppose we think of dinner! It seems to 
me that in the most critical positions of our lives we have 
always dined.
Oh! yes, speak of dinner in a country where for a feast 
they eat boiled mutton, and as a treat drink beer. What the 
devil did you come to such a country for, Athos? But I 
forgot,added the Gasconsmilingpardon, I forgot you 
are no longer Athos; but never mind, let us hear your plan 
for dinner, Porthos.
My plan!
Yes, have you a plan?
No! I am hungry, that is all.
Pardieu, if that is all, I am hungry, too; but it is not 
everything to be hungry, one must find something to eat, 
unless we browse on the grass, like our horses ---- 
Ah!exclaimed Aramiswho was not quite so indifferent to 
the good things of the earth as Athosdo you remember, 
when we were at Parpaillot, the beautiful oysters that we 
ate?
And the legs of mutton of the salt marshes,said Porthos
smacking his lips. 
But,suggested D'Artagnanhave we not our friend 
Musqueton, who managed for us so well at Chantilly, 
Porthos?
Yes,said Porthoswe have Musqueton, but since he has 
been steward, he has become very heavy; never mind, let us 
call him, and to make sure that he will reply agreeably ---
Here! Mouston cried Porthos. 
Mouston appeared, with a most piteous face. 
What is the mattermy dear M. Mouston?" asked D'Artagnan. 
Are you ill?
Sir, I am very hungry,replied Mouston. 
Well, it is just for that reason that we have called you, 
my good M. Mouston. Could you not procure us a few of those 
nice little rabbits, and some of those delicious partridges, 
of which you used to make fricassees at the hotel ---- ? 
'Faith, I do not remember the name of the hotel.
At the hotel of ---- ,said Porthos; "by my faith -- nor 
do I remember it either." 
It does not matter; and a few of those bottles of old 
Burgundy wine, which cured your master so quickly of his 
sprain!
Alas! sir,said MusquetonI much fear that what you ask 
for are very rare things in this detestable and barren 
country, and I think we should do better to go and seek 
hospitality from the owner of a little house we see on the 
fringe of the forest.
How! is there a house in the neighborhood?asked 
D'Artagnan. 
Yes, sir,replied Musqueton. 
Well, let us, as you say, go and ask a dinner from the 
master of that house. What is your opinion, gentlemen, and 
does not M. Mouston's suggestion appear to you full of 
sense?
Oh!said Aramissuppose the master is a Puritan?
So much the better, mordioux!replied D'Artagnan; "if he 
is a Puritan we will inform him of the capture of the king
and in honor of the news he will kill for us his fatted 
hens." 
But if he should be a cavalier?said Porthos. 
In that case we will put on an air of mourning and he will 
pluck for us his black fowls.
You are very happy,exclaimed Athoslaughingin spite of 
himselfat the sally of the irresistible Gascon; "for you 
see the bright side of everything." 
What would you have?said D'Artagnan. "I come from a land 
where there is not a cloud in the sky." 
It is not like this, then,said Porthos stretching out his 
hand to assure himself whether a chill sensation he felt on 
his cheek was not really caused by a drop of rain. 
Come, come,said D'Artagnanmore reason why we should 
start on our journey. Halloo, Grimaud!
Grimaud appeared. 
Well, Grimaud, my friend, have you seen anything?asked 
the Gascon. 
Nothing!replied Grimaud. 
Those idiots!cried Porthosthey have not even pursued 
us. Oh! if we had been in their place!
Yes, they are wrong,said D'Artagnan. "I would willingly 
have said two words to Mordaunt in this little desert. It is 
an excellent spot for bringing down a man in proper style." 
I think, decidedly,observed Aramisgentlemen, that the 
son hasn't his mother's energy.
What, my good fellow!replied Athoswait awhile; we have 
scarcely left him two hours ago -- he does not know yet in 
what direction we came nor where we are. We may say that he 
is not equal to his mother when we put foot in France, if we 
are not poisoned or killed before then.
Meanwhile, let us dine,suggested Porthos. 
I'faith, yes,said Athosfor I am hungry.
Look out for the black fowls!cried Aramis. 
And the four friendsguided by Musquetontook up the way 
toward the housealready almost restored to their former 
gayety; for they were nowas Athos had saidall four once 
more united and of single mind. 
Respect to Fallen Majesty. 
As our fugitives approached the housethey found the ground 
cut upas if a considerable body of horsemen had preceded 
them. Before the door the traces were yet more apparent; 
these horsemenwhoever they might behad halted there. 
Egad!cried D'Artagnanit's quite clear that the king 
and his escort have been by here.
The devil!said Porthos; "in that case they have eaten 
everything." 
Bah!said D'Artagnanthey will have left a chicken, at 
least.He dismounted and knocked on the door. There was no 
response. 
He pushed open the door and found the first room empty and 
deserted. 
Well?cried Porthos. 
I can see nobody,said D'Artagnan. "Aha!" 
What?
Blood!
At this word the three friends leaped from their horses and 
entered. D'Artagnan had already opened the door of the 
second roomand from the expression of his face it was 
clear that he there beheld some extraordinary object. 
The three friends drew near and discovered a young man 
stretched on the groundbathed in a pool of blood. It was 
evident that he had attempted to regain his bedbut had not 
had sufficient strength to do so. 
Athoswho imagined that he saw him movewas the first to 
go up to him. 
Well?inquired D'Artagnan. 
Well, if he is dead,said Athoshe has not been so long, 
for he is still warm. But no, his heart is beating. Ho, 
there, my friend!
The wounded man heaved a sigh. D'Artagnan took some water in 
the hollow of his hand and threw it upon his face. The man 
opened his eyesmade an effort to raise his headand fell 
back again. The wound was in the top of his skull and blood 
was flawing copiously. 
Aramis dipped a cloth into some water and applied it to the 
gash. Again the wounded man opened his eyes and looked in 
astonishment at these strangerswho appeared to pity him. 
You are among friends,said Athosin English; "so cheer 
upand tell usif you have the strength to do sowhat has 
happened?" 
The king,muttered the wounded manthe king is a 
prisoner.
You have seen him?asked Aramisin the same language. 
The man made no reply. 
Make your mind easy,resumed Athoswe are all faithful 
servants of his majesty.
Is what you tell me true?asked the wounded man. 
On our honor as gentlemen.
Then I may tell you all. I am brother to Parry, his 
majesty's lackey.
Athos and Aramis remembered that this was the name by which 
De Winter had called the man they had found in the passage 
of the king's tent. 
We know him,said Athoshe never left the king.
Yes, that is he. Well, he thought of me, when he saw the 
king was taken, and as they were passing before the house he 
begged in the king's name that they would stop, as the king 
was hungry. They brought him into this room and placed 
sentinels at the doors and windows. Parry knew this room, as 
he had often been to see me when the king was at Newcastle. 
He knew that there was a trap-door communicating with a 
cellar, from which one could get into the orchard. He made a 
sign, which I understood, but the king's guards must have 
noticed it and held themselves on guard. I went out as if to 
fetch wood, passed through the subterranean passage into the 
cellar, and whilst Parry was gently bolting the door, pushed 
up the board and beckoned to the king to follow me. Alas! he 
would not. But Parry clasped his hands and implored him, and 
at last he agreed. I went on first, fortunately. The king 
was a few steps behind me, when suddenly I saw something 
rise up in front of me like a huge shadow. I wanted to cry 
out to warn the king, but that very moment I felt a blow as 
if the house was falling on my head, and fell insensible. 
When I came to myself again, I was stretched in the same 
place. I dragged myself as far as the yard. The king and his 
escort were no longer there. I spent perhaps an hour in 
coming from the yard to this place; then my strength gave 
out and I fainted again.
And now how are you feeling?
Very ill,replied the wounded man. 
Can we do anything for you?asked Athos. 
Help to put me on the bed; I think I shall feel better 
there.
Have you any one to depend on for assistance?
My wife is at Durham and may return at any moment. But you 
-- is there nothing that you want?
We came here with the intention of asking for something to 
eat.
Alas, they have taken everything; there isn't a morsel of 
bread in the house.
You hear, D'Artagnan?said Athos; "we shall have to look 
elsewhere for our dinner." 
It is all one to me now,said D'Artagnan; "I am no longer 
hungry." 
Faith! neither am I,said Porthos. 
They carried the man to his bed and called Grimaud to dress 
the wound. In the service of the four friends Grimaud had 
had so frequent occasion to make lint and bandages that he 
had become something of a surgeon. 
In the meantime the fugitives had returned to the first 
roomwhere they took counsel together. 
Now,said Aramiswe know how the matter stands. The king 
and his escort have gone this way; we had better take the 
opposite direction, eh?
Athos did not reply; he reflected. 
Yes,said Porthoslet us take the opposite direction; if 
we follow the escort we shall find everything devoured and 
die of hunger. What a confounded country this England is! 
This is the first time I have gone without my dinner for ten 
years, and it is generally my best meal.
What do you think, D'Artagnan?asked Athos. "Do you agree 
with Aramis?" 
Not at all,said D'Artagnan; "I am precisely of the 
contrary opinion." 
What! you would follow the escort?exclaimed Porthosin 
dismay. 
No, I would join the escort.
Athos's eyes shone with joy. 
Join the escort!cried Aramis. 
Let D'Artagnan speak,said Athos; "you know he always has 
wise advice to give." 
Clearly,said D'Artagnanwe must go where they will not 
look for us. Now, they will be far from looking for us among 
the Puritans; therefore, with the Puritans we must go.
Good, my friend, good!said Athos. "It is excellent 
advice. I was about to give it when you anticipated me." 
That, then, is your opinion?asked Aramis. 
Yes. They will think we are trying to leave England and 
will search for us at the ports; meanwhile we shall reach 
London with the king. Once in London we shall be hard to 
find -- without considering,continued Athosthrowing a 
glance at Aramisthe chances that may come to us on the 
way.
Yes,said AramisI understand.
I, however, do not understand,said Porthos. "But no 
matter; since it is at the same time the opinion of 
D'Artagnan and of Athosit must be the best." 
But,said Aramisshall we not be suspected by Colonel 
Harrison?
Egad!cried D'Artagnanhe's just the man I count upon. 
Colonel Harrison is one of our friends. We have met him 
twice at General Cromwell's. He knows that we were sent from 
France by Monsieur Mazarin; he will consider us as brothers. 
Besides, is he not a butcher's son? Well, then, Porthos 
shall show him how to knock down an ox with a blow of the 
fist, and I how to trip up a bull by taking him by the 
horns. That will insure his confidence.
Athos smiled. "You are the best companion that I know
D'Artagnan he said, offering his hand to the Gascon; and 
I am very happy in having found you againmy dear son." 
This wasas we have seenthe term which Athos applied to 
D'Artagnan in his more expansive moods. 
At this moment Grimaud came in. He had stanched the wound 
and the man was better. 
The four friends took leave of him and asked if they could 
deliver any message for him to his brother. 
Tell him,answered the brave manto let the king know 
that they have not killed me outright. However insignificant 
I am, I am sure that his majesty is concerned for me and 
blames himself for my death.
Be easy,said D'Artagnanhe will know all before night.
The little troop recommenced their marchand at the end of 
two hours perceived a considerable body of horsemen about 
half a league ahead. 
My dear friends,said D'Artagnangive your swords to 
Monsieur Mouston, who will return them to you at the proper 
time and place, and do not forget you are our prisoners.
It was not long before they joined the escort. The king was 
riding in frontsurrounded by troopersand when he saw 
Athos and Aramis a glow of pleasure lighted his pale cheeks. 
D'Artagnan passed to the head of the columnand leaving his 
friends under the guard of Porthoswent straight to 
Harrisonwho recognized him as having met him at Cromwell's 
and received him as politely as a man of his breeding and 
disposition could. It turned out as D'Artagnan had foreseen. 
The colonel neither had nor could have any suspicion. 
They halted for the king to dine. This timehoweverdue 
precautions were taken to prevent any attempt at escape. In 
the large room of the hotel a small table was placed for him 
and a large one for the officers. 
Will you dine with me?asked Harrison of D'Artagnan. 
Gad, I should be very happy, but I have my companion, 
Monsieur du Vallon, and the two prisoners, whom I cannot 
leave. Let us manage it better. Have a table set for us in a 
corner and send us whatever you like from yours.
Good,answered Harrison. 
The matter was arranged as D'Artagnan had suggestedand 
when he returned he found the king already seated at his 
little tablewhere Parry waited on himHarrison and his 
officers sitting together at another tableandin a 
cornerplaces reserved for himself and his companions. 
The table at which the Puritan officers were seated was 
roundand whether by chance or coarse intentionHarrison 
sat with his back to the king. 
The king saw the four gentlemen come inbut appeared to 
take no notice of them. 
They sat down in such a manner as to turn their backs on 
nobody. The officerstable and that of the king were 
opposite to them. 
I'faith, colonel,said D'Artagnanwe are very grateful 
for your gracious invitation; for without you we ran the 
risk of going without dinner, as we have without breakfast. 
My friend here, Monsieur du Vallon, shares my gratitude, for 
he was particularly hungry.
And I am so still,said Porthos bowing to Harrison. 
And how,said Harrisonlaughingdid this serious 
calamity of going without breakfast happen to you?
In a very simple manner, colonel,said D'Artagnan. "I was 
in a hurry to join you and took the road you had already 
gone by. You can understand our disappointment when
arriving at a pretty little house on the skirts of a wood
which at a distance had quite a gay appearancewith its red 
roof and green shutterswe found nothing but a poor wretch 
bathed -- Ah! colonelpay my respects to the officer of 
yours who struck that blow." 
Yes,said Harrisonlaughingand looking over at one of 
the officers seated at his table. "When Groslow undertakes 
this kind of thing there's no need to go over the ground a 
second time." 
Ah! it was this gentleman?said D'Artagnanbowing to the 
officer. "I am sorry he does not speak Frenchthat I might 
tender him my compliments." 
I am ready to receive and return them, sir,said the 
officerin pretty good Frenchfor I resided three years 
in Paris.
Then, sir, allow me to assure you that your blow was so 
well directed that you have nearly killed your man.
Nearly? I thought I had quite,said Groslow. 
No. It was a very near thing, but he is not dead.
As he said thisD'Artagnan gave a glance at Parrywho was 
standing in front of the kingto show him that the news was 
meant for him. 
The kingtoowho had listened in the greatest agonynow 
breathed again. 
Hang it,said GroslowI thought I had succeeded better. 
If it were not so far from here to the house I would return 
and finish him.
And you would do well, if you are afraid of his recovering; 
for you know, if a wound in the head does not kill at once, 
it is cured in a week.
And D'Artagnan threw a second glance toward Parryon whose 
face such an expression of joy was manifested that Charles 
stretched out his hand to himsmiling. 
Parry bent over his master's hand and kissed it 
respectfully. 
I've a great desire to drink the king's health,said 
Athos. 
Let me propose it, then,said D'Artagnan. 
Do,said Aramis. 
Porthos looked at D'Artagnanquite amazed at the resources 
with which his companion's Gascon sharpness continually 
supplied him. D'Artagnan took up his camp tin cupfilled it 
with wine and arose. 
Gentlemen,said helet us drink to him who presides at 
the repast. Here's to our colonel, and let him know that we 
are always at his commands as far as London and farther.
And as D'Artagnanas he spokelooked at Harrisonthe 
colonel imagined the toast was for himself. He arose and 
bowed to the four friendswhose eyes were fixed on Charles
while Harrison emptied his glass without the slightest 
misgiving. 
The kingin returnlooked at the four gentlemen and drank 
with a smile full of nobility and gratitude. 
Come, gentlemen,cried Harrisonregardless of his 
illustrious captivelet us be off.
Where do we sleep, colonel?
At Thirsk,replied Harrison. 
Parry,said the kingrising toomy horse; I desire to 
go to Thirsk.
Egad!said D'Artagnan to Athosyour king has thoroughly 
taken me, and I am quite at his service.
If what you say is sincere,replied Athoshe will never 
reach London.
How so?
Because before then we shall have carried him off.
Well, this time, Athos,said D'Artagnanupon my word, 
you are mad.
Have you some plan in your head then?asked Aramis. 
Ay!said Porthosthe thing would not be impossible with 
a good plan.
I have none,said Athos; "but D'Artagnan will discover 
one." 
D'Artagnan shrugged his shoulders and they proceeded. 
D'Artagnan hits on a Plan. 
As night closed in they arrived at Thirsk. The four friends 
appeared to be entire strangers to one another and 
indifferent to the precautions taken for guarding the king. 
They withdrew to a private houseand as they had reason 
every moment to fear for their safetythey occupied but one 
room and provided an exitwhich might be useful in case of 
an attack. The lackeys were sent to their several posts
except that Grimaud lay on a truss of straw across the 
doorway. 
D'Artagnan was thoughtful and seemed for the moment to have 
lost his usual loquacity. Porthoswho could never see 
anything that was not self-evidenttalked to him as usual. 
He replied in monosyllables and Athos and Aramis looked 
significantly at one another. 
Next morning D'Artagnan was the first to rise. He had been 
down to the stablesalready taken a look at the horses and 
given the necessary orders for the daywhilst Athos and 
Aramis were still in bed and Porthos snoring. 
At eight o'clock the march was resumed in the same order as 
the night beforeexcept that D'Artagnan left his friends 
and began to renew the acquaintance which he had already 
struck up with Monsieur Groslow. 
Groslowwhom D'Artagnan's praises had greatly pleased
welcomed him with a gracious smile. 
Really, sir,D'Artagnan said to himI am pleased to find 
one with whom to talk in my own poor tongue. My friend, 
Monsieur du Vallon, is of a very melancholy disposition, so 
much so, that one can scarcely get three words out of him 
all day. As for our two prisoners, you can imagine that they 
are but little in the vein for conversation.
They are hot royalists,said Groslow. 
The more reason they should be sulky with us for having 
captured the Stuart, for whom, I hope, you're preparing a 
pretty trial.
Why,said Groslowthat is just what we are taking him to 
London for.
And you never by any chance lose sight of him, I presume?
I should think not, indeed. You see he has a truly royal 
escort.
Ay, there's no fear in the daytime; but at night?
We redouble our precautions.
And what method of surveillance do you employ?
Eight men remain constantly in his room.
The deuce, he is well guarded, then. But besides these 
eight men, you doubtless place some guard outside?
Oh, no! Just think. What would you have two men without 
arms do against eight armed men?
Two men -- how do you mean?
Yes, the king and his lackey.
Oh! then they allow the lackey to remain with him?
Yes; Stuart begged this favor and Harrison consented. Under 
pretense that he's a king it appears he cannot dress or 
undress without assistance.
Really, captain,said D'Artagnandetermined to continue 
on the laudatory tack on which he had commencedthe more I 
listen to you the more surprised I am at the easy and 
elegant manner in which you speak French. You have lived 
three years in Paris? May I ask what you were doing there?
My father, who is a merchant, placed me with his 
correspondent, who in turn sent his son to join our house in 
London.
Were you pleased with Paris, sir?
Yes, but you are much in want of a revolution like our own 
-- not against your king, who is a mere child, but against 
that lazar of an Italian, the queen's favorite.
Ah! I am quite of your opinion, sir, and we should soon 
make an end of Mazarin if we had only a dozen officers like 
yourself, without prejudices, vigilant and incorruptible.
But,said the officerI thought you were in his service 
and that it was he who sent you to General Cromwell.
That is to say I am in the king's service, and that knowing 
he wanted to send some one to England, I solicited the 
appointment, so great was my desire to know the man of 
genius who now governs the three kingdoms. So that when he 
proposed to us to draw our swords in honor of old England 
you see how we snapped up the proposition.
Yes, I know that you charged by the side of Mordaunt.
On his right and left, sir. Ah! there's another brave and 
excellent young man.
Do you know him?asked the officer. 
Yes, very well. Monsieur du Vallon and myself came from 
France with him.
It appears, too, you kept him waiting a long time at 
Boulogne.
What would you have? I was like you, and had a king in 
keeping.
Aha!said Groslow; "what king?" 
Our own, to be sure, the little one -- Louis XIV.
And how long had you to take care of him?
Three nights; and, by my troth, I shall always remember 
those three nights with a certain pleasure.
How do you mean?
I mean that my friends, officers in the guards and 
mousquetaires, came to keep me company and we passed the 
night in feasting, drinking, dicing.
Ah true,said the Englishmanwith a sigh; "you Frenchmen 
are born boon companions." 
And don't you play, too, when you are on guard?
Never,said the Englishman. 
In that case you must be horribly bored, and have my 
sympathy.
The fact is, I look to my turn for keeping guard with 
horror. It's tiresome work to keep awake a whole night.
Yes, but with a jovial partner and dice, and guineas 
clinking on the cloth, the night passes like a dream. You 
don't like playing, then?
On the contrary, I do.
Lansquenet, for instance?
Devoted to it. I used to play almost every night in 
France.
And since your return to England?
I have not handled a card or dice-box.
I sincerely pity you,said D'Artagnanwith an air of 
profound compassion. 
Look here,said the Englishman. 
Well?
To-morrow I am on guard.
In Stuart's room?
Yes; come and pass the night with me.
Impossible!
Impossible! why so?
I play with Monsieur du Vallon every night. Sometimes we 
don't go to bed at all!
Well, what of that?
Why, he would be annoyed if I did not play with him.
Does he play well?
I have seen him lose as much as two thousand pistoles, 
laughing all the while till the tears rolled down.
Bring him with you, then.
But how about our prisoners?
Let your servants guard them.
Yes, and give them a chance of escaping,said D'Artagnan. 
Why, one of them is a rich lord from Touraine and the other 
a knight of Malta, of noble family. We have arranged the 
ransom of each of them -- 2,000 on arriving in France. We 
are reluctant to leave for a single moment men whom our 
lackeys know to be millionaires. It is true we plundered 
them a little when we took them, and I will even confess 
that it is their purse that Monsieur du Vallon and I draw on 
in our nightly play. Still, they may have concealed some 
precious stone, some valuable diamond; so that we are like 
those misers who are unable to absent themselves from their 
treasures. We have made ourselves the constant guardians of 
our men, and while I sleep Monsieur du Vallon watches.
Ah! ah!said Groslow. 
You see, then, why I must decline your polite invitation, 
which is especially attractive to me, because nothing is so 
wearisome as to play night after night with the same person; 
the chances always balance and at the month's end nothing is 
gained or lost.
Ah!said Groslowsighing; "there is something still more 
wearisomeand that is not to play at all." 
I can understand that,said D'Artagnan. 
But, come,resumed the Englishmanare these men of yours 
dangerous?
In what respect?
Are they capable of attempting violence?
D'Artagnan burst out laughing at the idea. 
Jesus Dieu!he cried; "one of them is trembling with 
feverhaving failed to adapt himself to this charming 
country of yoursand the other is a knight of Maltaas 
timid as a young girl; and for greater security we have 
taken from them even their penknives and pocket scissors." 
Well, then,said Groslowbring them with you.
But really ---- said D'Artagnan. 
I have eight men on guard, you know. Four of them can guard 
the king and the other four your prisoners. I'll manage it 
somehow, you will see.
But,said D'Artagnannow I think of it -- what is to 
prevent our beginning to-night?
Nothing at all,said Groslow. 
Just so. Come to us this evening and to-morrow we'll return 
your visit.
Capital! This evening with you, to-morrow at Stuart's, the 
next day with me.
You see, that with a little forethought one can lead a 
merry life anywhere and everywhere,said D'Artagnan. 
Yes, with Frenchmen, and Frenchmen like you.
And Monsieur du Vallon,added the other. "You will see 
what a fellow he is; a man who nearly killed Mazarin between 
two doors. They employ him because they are afraid of him. 
Ahthere he is calling me now. You'll excuse meI know." 
They exchanged bows and D'Artagnan returned to his 
companions. 
What on earth can you have been saying to that bulldog?
exclaimed Porthos. 
My dear fellow, don't speak like that of Monsieur Groslow. 
He's one of my most intimate friends.
One of your friends!cried Porthosthis butcher of 
unarmed farmers!
Hush! my dear Porthos. Monsieur Groslow is perhaps rather 
hasty, it's true, but at bottom I have discovered two good 
qualities in him -- he is conceited and stupid.
Porthos opened his eyes in amazement; Athos and Aramis 
looked at one another and smiled; they knew D'Artagnanand 
knew that he did nothing without a purpose. 
But,continued D'Artagnanyou shall judge of him for 
yourself. He is coming to play with us this evening.
Oho!said Porthoshis eyes glistening at the news. "Is he 
rich?" 
He's the son of one of the wealthiest merchants in London.
And knows lansquenet?
Adores it.
Basset?
His mania.' 
Biribi?" 
Revels in it.
Good,said Porthos; "we shall pass an agreeable evening." 
The more so, as it will be the prelude to a better.
How so?
We invite him to play to-night; he has invited us in return 
to-morrow. But wait. To-night we stop at Derby; and if there 
is a bottle of wine in the town let Musqueton buy it. It 
will be well to prepare a light supper, of which you, Athos 
and Aramis, are not to partake -- Athos, because I told him 
you had a fever; Aramis, because you are a knight of Malta 
and won't mix with fellows like us. Do you understand?
That's no doubt very fine,said Porthos; "but deuce take 
me if I understand at all." 
Porthos, my friend, you know I am descended on the father's 
side from the Prophets and on the mother's from the Sybils, 
and that I only speak in parables and riddles. Let those who 
have ears hear and those who have eyes see; I can tell you 
nothing more at present.
Go ahead, my friend,said Athos; "I am sure that whatever 
you do is well done." 
And you, Aramis, are you of that opinion?
Entirely so, my dear D'Artagnan.
Very good,said D'Artagnan; "here indeed are true 
believers; it is a pleasure to work miracles before them; 
they are not like that unbelieving Porthoswho must see and 
touch before he will believe." 
The fact is,said Porthoswith an air of finesseI am 
rather incredulous.
D'Artagnan gave him playful buffet on the shoulderand as 
they had reached the station where they were to breakfast
the conversation ended there. 
At five in the evening they sent Musqueton on before as 
agreed upon. Blaisois went with him. 
In crossing the principal street in Derby the four friends 
perceived Blaisois standing in the doorway of a handsome 
house. It was there a lodging was prepared for them. 
At the hour agreed upon Groslow came. D'Artagnan received 
him as he would have done a friend of twenty years' 
standing. Porthos scanned him from head to foot and smiled 
when he discovered that in spite of the blow he had 
administered to Parry's brotherhe was not nearly so strong 
as himself. Athos and Aramis suppressed as well as they 
could the disgust they felt in the presence of such 
coarseness and brutality. 
In shortGroslow seemed to be pleased with his reception. 
Athos and Aramis kept themselves to their role. At midnight 
they withdrew to their chamberthe door of which was left 
open on the pretext of kindly consideration. Furthermore
D'Artagnan went with themleaving Porthos at play with 
Groslow. 
Porthos gained fifty pistoles from Groslowand found him a 
more agreeable companion than he had at first believed him 
to be. 
As to Groslowhe promised himself that on the following 
evening he would recover from D'Artagnan what he had lost to 
Porthosand on leaving reminded the Gascon of his 
appointment. 
The next day was spent as usual. D'Artagnan went from 
Captain Groslow to Colonel Harrison and from Colonel 
Harrison to his friends. To any one not acquainted with him 
he seemed to be in his normal condition; but to his friends 
-- to Athos and Aramis -- was apparent a certain 
feverishness in his gayety. 
What is he contriving?asked Aramis. 
Wait,said Athos. 
Porthos said nothingbut he handled in his pocket the fifty 
pistoles he had gained from Groslow with a degree of 
satisfaction which betrayed itself in his whole bearing. 
Arrived at RystonD'Artagnan assembled his friends. His 
face had lost the expression of careless gayety it had worn 
like a mask the whole day. Athos pinched Aramis's hand. 
The moment is at hand,he said. 
Yes,returned D'Artagnanwho had overheard him
to-night, gentlemen, we rescue the king.
D'Artagnan,said Athosthis is no joke, I trust? It 
would quite cut me up.
You are a very odd man, Athos,he repliedto doubt me 
thus. Where and when have you seen me trifle with a friend's 
heart and a king's life? I have told you, and I repeat it, 
that to-night we rescue Charles I. You left it to me to 
discover the means and I have done so.
Porthos looked at D'Artagnan with an expression of profound 
admiration. Aramis smiled as one who hopes. Athos was pale
and trembled in every limb. 
Speak,said Athos. 
We are invited,replied D'Artagnanto pass the night 
with M. Groslow. But do you know where?
No.
In the king's room.
The king's room?cried Athos. 
Yes, gentlemen, in the king's room. Groslow is on guard 
there this evening, and to pass the time away he has invited 
us to keep him company.
All four of us?asked Athos. 
Pardieu! certainly, all four; we couldn't leave our 
prisoners, could we?
Ah! ah!said Aramis. 
Tell us about it,said Athospalpitating. 
We are going, then, we two with our swords, you with 
daggers. We four have got to master these eight fools and 
their stupid captain. Monsieur Porthos, what do you say to 
that?
I say it is easy enough,answered Porthos. 
We dress the king in Groslow's clothes. Musqueton, Grimaud 
and Blaisois have our horses saddled at the end of the first 
street. We mount them and before daylight are twenty leagues 
distant.
Athos placed his two hands on D'Artagnan's shouldersand 
gazed at him with his calmsad smile. 
I declare, my friend,said hethat there is not a 
creature under the sky who equals you in prowess and in 
courage. Whilst we thought you indifferent to our sorrows, 
which you couldn't share without crime, you alone among us 
have discovered what we were searching for in vain. I repeat 
it, D'Artagnan, you are the best one among us; I bless and 
love you, my dear son.
And to think that I couldn't find that out,said Porthos
scratching his head; "it is so simple." 
But,said Aramisif I understand rightly we are to kill 
them all, eh?
Athos shuddered and turned pale. 
Mordioux!answered D'ArtagnanI believe we must. I 
confess I can discover no other safe and satisfactory way.
Let us see,said Aramishow are we to act?
I have arranged two plans. Firstly, at a given signal, 
which shall be the words `At last,' you each plunge a dagger 
into the heart of the soldier nearest to you. We, on our 
side, do the same. That will be four killed. We shall then 
be matched, four against the remaining five. If these five 
men give themselves up we gag them; if they resist, we kill 
them. If by chance our Amphitryon changes his mind and 
receives only Porthos and myself, why, then, we must resort 
to heroic measures and each give two strokes instead of one. 
It will take a little longer time and may make a greater 
disturbance, but you will be outside with swords and will 
rush in at the proper time.
But if you yourselves should be struck?said Athos. 
Impossible!said D'Artagnan; "those beer drinkers are too 
clumsy and awkward. Besidesyou will strike at the throat
Porthos; it kills as quickly and prevents all outcry." 
Very good,said Porthos; "it will be a nice little throat 
cutting." 
Horrible, horrible,exclaimed Athos. 
Nonsense,said D'Artagnan; "you would do as muchMr. 
Humanityin a battle. But if you think the king's life is 
not worth what it must cost there's an end of the matter and 
I send to Groslow to say I am ill." 
No, you are right,said Athos. 
At this moment a soldier entered to inform them that Groslow 
was waiting for them. 
Where?asked D'Artagnan. 
In the room of the English Nebuchadnezzar,replied the 
staunch Puritan. 
Good,replied Athoswhose blood mounted to his face at 
the insult offered to royalty; "tell the captain we are 
coming." 
The Puritan then went out. The lackeys had been ordered to 
saddle eight horses and to waitkeeping together and 
without dismountingat the corner of a street about twenty 
steps from the house where the king was lodged. 
It was nine o'clock in the evening; the sentinels had been 
relieved at eight and Captain Groslow had been on guard for 
an hour. D'Artagnan and Porthosarmed with their swords
and Athos and Aramiseach carrying a concealed poniard
approached the house which for the time being was Charles 
Stuart's prison. The two latter followed their captors in 
the humble guise of captiveswithout arms. 
Od's bodikins,said Groslowas the four friends entered
I had almost given you up.
D'Artagnan went up to him and whispered in his ear: 
The fact is, we, that is, Monsieur du Vallon and I, 
hesitated a little.
And why?
D'Artagnan looked significantly toward Athos and Aramis. 
Aha,said Groslow; "on account of political opinions? No 
matter. On the contrary he added, laughing, if they want 
to see their Stuart they shall see him. 
Are we to pass the night in the king's room?asked 
D'Artagnan. 
No, but in the one next to it, and as the door will remain 
open it comes to the same thing. Have you provided yourself 
with money? I assure you I intend to play the devil's game 
to-night.
D'Artagnan rattled the gold in his pockets. 
Very good,said Groslowand opened the door of the room. 
I will show you the way,and he went in first. 
D'Artagnan turned to look at his friends. Porthos was 
perfectly indifferent; Athospalebut resolute; Aramis was 
wiping a slight moisture from his brow. 
The eight guards were at their posts. Four in the king's 
roomtwo at the door between the rooms and two at that by 
which the friends had entered. Athos smiled when he saw 
their bare swords; he felt it was no longer to be a 
butcherybut a fightand he resumed his usual good humor. 
Charles was perceived through the doorlying dressed upon 
his bedat the head of which Parry was seatedreading in a 
low voice a chapter from the Bible. 
A candle of coarse tallow on a black table lighted up the 
handsome and resigned face of the king and that of his 
faithful retainerfar less calm. 
From time to time Parry stoppedthinking the kingwhose 
eyes were closedwas really asleepbut Charles would open 
his eyes and say with a smile: 
Go on, my good Parry, I am listening.
Groslow advanced to the door of the king's roomreplaced on 
his head the hat he had taken off to receive his guests
looked for a moment contemptuously at this simpleyet 
touching scenethen turning to D'Artagnanassumed an air 
of triumph at what he had achieved. 
Capital!cried the Gasconyou would make a distinguished 
general.
And do you think,asked Groslowthat Stuart will ever 
escape while I am on guard?
No, to be sure,replied D'Artagnan; "unlessforsooththe 
sky rains friends upon him." 
Groslow's face brightened. 
It is impossible to say whether Charleswho kept his eyes 
constantly closedhad noticed the insolence of the Puritan 
captainbut the moment he heard the clear tone of 
D'Artagnan's voice his eyelids rosein spite of himself. 
Parrytoostarted and stopped reading. 
What are you thinking about?said the king; "go onmy 
good Parryunless you are tired." 
Parry resumed his reading. 
On a table in the next room were lighted candlescardstwo 
dice-boxesand dice. 
Gentlemen,said GroslowI beg you will take your places. 
I will sit facing Stuart, whom I like so much to see, 
especially where he now is, and you, Monsieur d'Artagnan, 
opposite to me.
Athos turned red with rage. D'Artagnan frowned at him. 
That's it,said D'Artagnan; "youMonsieur le Comte de la 
Fereto the right of Monsieur Groslow. YouChevalier 
d'Herblayto his left. Du Vallon next me. You'll bet for me 
and those gentlemen for Monsieur Groslow." 
By this arrangement D'Artagnan could nudge Porthos with his 
knee and make signs with his eyes to Athos and Aramis. 
At the names Comte de la Fere and Chevalier d'Herblay
Charles opened his eyesand raising his noble headin 
spite of himselfthrew a glance at all the actors in the 
scene. 
At that moment Parry turned over several leaves of his Bible 
and read with a loud voice this verse in Jeremiah: 
God said, `Hear ye the words of the prophets my servants, 
whom I have sent unto you.
The four friends exchanged glances. The words that Parry had 
read assured them that their presence was understood by the 
king and was assigned to its real motive. D'Artagnan's eyes 
sparkled with joy. 
You asked me just now if I was in funds,said D'Artagnan
placing some twenty pistoles upon the table. "Wellin my 
turn I advise you to keep a sharp lookout on your treasure
my dear Monsieur Groslowfor I can tell you we shall not 
leave this without robbing you of it." 
Not without my defending it,said Groslow. 
So much the better,said D'Artagnan. "Fightmy dear 
captainfight. You know or you don't knowthat that is 
what we ask of you." 
Oh! yes,said Groslowbursting with his usual coarse 
laughI know you Frenchmen want nothing but cuts and 
bruises.
Charles had heard and understood it all. A slight color 
mounted to his cheeks. The soldiers then saw him stretch his 
limbslittle by littleand under the pretense of much heat 
throw off the Scotch plaid which covered him. 
Athos and Aramis started with delight to find that the king 
was lying with his clothes on. 
The game began. The luck had turnedand Groslowhaving won 
some hundred pistoleswas in the merriest possible humor. 
Porthoswho had lost the fifty pistoles he had won the 
night before and thirty more besideswas very cross and 
questioned D'Artagnan with a nudge of the knee as to whether 
it would not soon be time to change the game. Athos and 
Aramis looked at him inquiringly. But D'Artagnan remained 
impassible. 
It struck ten. They heard the guard going its rounds. 
How many rounds do they make a night?asked D'Artagnan
drawing more pistoles from his pocket. 
Five,answered Groslowone every two hours.
D'Artagnan glanced at Athos and Aramis and for the first 
time replied to Porthos's nudge of the knee by a nudge 
responsive. Meanwhilethe soldiers whose duty it was to 
remain in the king's roomattracted by that love of play so 
powerful in all menhad stolen little by little toward the 
tableand standing on tiptoeloungedwatching the game
over the shoulders of D'Artagnan and Porthos. Those on the 
other side had followed their examplethus favoring the 
views of the four friendswho preferred having them close 
at hand to chasing them about the chamber. The two sentinels 
at the door still had their swords unsheathedbut they were 
leaning on them while they watched the game. 
Athos seemed to grow calm as the critical moment approached. 
With his whitearistocratic hands he played with the louis
bending and straightening them againas if they were made 
of pewter. Aramisless self-controlledfumbled continually 
with his hidden poniard. Porthosimpatient at his continued 
losseskept up a vigorous play with his knee. 
D'Artagnan turnedmechanically looking behind himand 
between the figures of two soldiers he could see Parry 
standing up and Charles leaning on his elbow with his hands 
clasped and apparently offering a fervent prayer to God. 
D'Artagnan saw that the moment was come. He darted a 
preparatory glance at Athos and Aramiswho slyly pushed 
their chairs a little back so as to leave themselves more 
space for action. He gave Porthos a second nudge of the knee 
and Porthos got up as if to stretch his legs and took care 
at the same time to ascertain that his sword could be drawn 
smoothly from the scabbard. 
Hang it!cried D'Artagnananother twenty pistoles lost. 
Really, Captain Groslow, you are too much in fortune's way. 
This can't last,and he drew another twenty from his 
pocket. "One more turncaptain; twenty pistoles on one 
throw -- only onethe last." 
Done for twenty,replied Groslow. 
And he turned up two cards as usuala king for D'Artagnan 
and an ace for himself. 
A king,said D'Artagnan; "it's a good omenMaster Groslow 
-- look out for the king." 
And in spite of his extraordinary self-control there was a 
strange vibration in the Gascon's voice which made his 
partner start. 
Groslow began turning the cards one after another. If he 
turned up an ace first he won; if a king he lost. 
He turned up a king. 
At last!cried D'Artagnan. 
At this word Athos and Aramis jumped up. Porthos drew back a 
step. Daggers and swords were just about to shinewhen 
suddenly the door was thrown open and Harrison appeared in 
the doorwayaccompanied by a man enveloped in a large 
cloak. Behind this man could be seen the glistening muskets 
of half a dozen soldiers. 
Groslow jumped upashamed at being surprised in the midst 
of winecardsand dice. But Harrison paid not the least 
attention to himand entering the king's roomfollowed by 
his companion: 
Charles Stuart,said hean order has come to conduct you 
to London without stopping day or night. Prepare yourself, 
then, to start at once.
And by whom is this order given?asked the king. 
By General Oliver Cromwell. And here is Mr. Mordaunt, who 
has brought it and is charged with its execution.
Mordaunt!muttered the four friendsexchanging glances. 
D'Artagnan swept up the money that he and Porthos had lost 
and buried it in his huge pocket. Athos and Aramis placed 
themselves behind him. At this movement Mordaunt turned 
aroundrecognized themand uttered an exclamation of 
savage delight. 
I'm afraid we are prisoners,whispered D'Artagnan to his 
friend. 
Not yet,replied Porthos. 
Colonel, colonel,cried Mordauntyou are betrayed. These 
four Frenchmen have escaped from Newcastle, and no doubt 
want to carry off the king. Arrest them.
Ah! my young man,said D'Artagnandrawing his sword
that is an order sooner given than executed. Fly, friends, 
fly!he addedwhirling his sword around him. 
The next moment he darted to the door and knocked down two 
of the soldiers who guarded itbefore they had time to cock 
their muskets. Athos and Aramis followed him. Porthos 
brought up the rearand before soldiersofficersor 
colonel had time to recover their surprise all four were in 
the street. 
Fire!cried Mordaunt; "fire upon them!" 
Three or four shots were firedbut with no other result 
than to show the four fugitives turning the corner of the 
street safe and sound. 
The horses were at the place fixed uponand they leaped 
lightly into their saddles. 
Forward!cried D'Artagnanand spur for your dear lives!
They galloped away and took the road they had come by in the 
morningnamelyin the direction toward Scotland. A few 
hundred yards beyond the town D'Artagnan drew rein. 
Halt!he criedthis time we shall be pursued. We must 
let them leave the village and ride after us on the northern 
road, and when they have passed we will take the opposite 
direction.
There was a stream close by and a bridge across it. 
D'Artagnan led his horse under the arch of the bridge. The 
others followed. Ten minutes later they heard the rapid 
gallop of a troop of horsemen. A few minutes more and the 
troop passed over their heads. 
London. 
As soon as the noise of the hoofs was lost in the distance 
D'Artagnan remounted the bank of the stream and scoured the 
plainfollowed by his three friendsdirecting their 
courseas well as they could guesstoward London. 
This time,said D'Artagnanwhen they were sufficiently 
distant to proceed at a trotI think all is lost and we 
have nothing better to do than to reach France. What do you 
say, Athos, to that proposition? Isn't it reasonable?
Yes, dear friend,Athos repliedbut you said a word the 
other day that was more than reasonable -- it was noble and 
generous. You said, `Let us die here!' I recall to you that 
word.
Oh,said Porthosdeath is nothing: it isn't death that 
can disquiet us, since we don't know what it is. What 
troubles me is the idea of defeat. As things are turning 
out, I foresee that we must give battle to London, to the 
provinces, to all England, and certainly in the end we can't 
fail to be beaten.
We ought to witness this great tragedy even to its last 
scene,said Athos. "Whatever happenslet us not leave 
England before the crisis. Don't you agree with meAramis?" 
Entirely, my dear count. Then, too, I confess I should not 
be sorry to come across Mordaunt again. It appears to me 
that we have an account to settle with him, and that it is 
not our custom to leave a place without paying our debts, of 
this kind, at least.
Ah! that's another thing,said D'Artagnanand I should 
not mind waiting in London a whole year for a chance of 
meeting this Mordaunt in question. Only let us lodge with 
some one on whom we can count; for I imagine, just now, that 
Noll Cromwell would not be inclined to trifle with us. 
Athos, do you know any inn in the whole town where one can 
find white sheets, roast beef reasonably cooked, and wine 
which is not made of hops and gin?
I think I know what you want,replied Athos. "De Winter 
took us to the house of a Spaniardwhohe saidhad become 
naturalized as an Englishman by the guineas of his new 
compatriots. What do you say to itAramis?" 
Why, the idea of taking quarters with Senor Perez seems to 
me very reasonable, and for my part I agree to it. We will 
invoke the remembrance of that poor De Winter, for whom he 
seemed to have a great regard; we will tell him that we have 
come as amateurs to see what is going on; we will spend with 
him a guinea each per day; and I think that by taking all 
these precautions we can be quite undisturbed.
You forget, Aramis, one precaution of considerable 
importance.
What is that?
The precaution of changing our clothes.
Changing our clothes!exclaimed Porthos. "I don't see why; 
we are very comfortable in those we wear." 
To prevent recognition,said D'Artagnan. "Our clothes have 
a cut which would proclaim the Frenchman at first sight. 
NowI don't set sufficient store on the cut of my jerkin to 
risk being hung at Tyburn or sent for change of scene to the 
Indies. I shall buy a chestnut-colored suit. I've remarked 
that your Puritans revel in that color." 
But can you find your man?said Aramis to Athos. 
Oh! to be sure, yes. He lives at the Bedford Tavern, 
Greenhall Street. Besides, I can find my way about the city 
with my eyes shut.
I wish we were already there,said D'Artagnan; "and my 
advice is that we reach London before daybreakeven if we 
kill our horses." 
Come on, then,said Athosfor unless I am mistaken in my 
calculations we have only eight or ten leagues to go.
The friends urged on their horses and arrivedin factat 
about five o'clock in the morning. They were stopped and 
questioned at the gate by which they sought to enter the 
citybut Athos repliedin excellent Englishthat they had 
been sent forward by Colonel Harrison to announce to his 
colleagueMonsieur Bridgethe approach of the king. That 
reply led to several questions about the king's captureand 
Athos gave details so precise and positive that if the 
gatekeepers had any suspicions they vanished completely. The 
way was therefore opened to the four friends with all sorts 
of Puritan congratulations. 
Athos was right. He went direct to the Bedford Tavernand 
the hostwho recognized himwas delighted to see him again 
with such a numerous and promising company. 
Though it was scarcely daylight our four travelers found the 
town in a great bustleowing to the reported approach of 
Harrison and the king. 
The plan of changing their clothes was unanimously adopted. 
The landlord sent out for every description of garmentas 
if he wanted to fit up his wardrobe. Athos chose a black 
coatwhich gave him the appearance of a respectable 
citizen. Aramisnot wishing to part with his sword
selected a dark-blue cloak of a military cut. Porthos was 
seduced by a wine-colored doublet and sea-green breeches. 
D'Artagnanwho had fixed on his color beforehandhad only 
to select the shadeand looked in his chestnut suit exactly 
like a retired sugar dealer. 
Now,said D'Artagnanfor the actual man. We must cut off 
our hair, that the populace may not insult us. As we no 
longer wear the sword of the gentleman we may as well have 
the head of the Puritan. This, as you know, is the important 
point of distinction between the Covenanter and the 
Cavalier.
After some discussion this was agreed to and Musqueton 
played the role of barber. 
We look hideous,said Athos. 
And smack of the Puritan to a frightful extent,said 
Aramis. 
My head feels actually cold,said Porthos. 
As for me, I feel anxious to preach a sermon,said 
D'Artagnan. 
Now,said Athosthat we cannot even recognize one 
another and have therefore no fear of others recognizing us, 
let us go and see the king's entrance.
They had not been long in the crowd before loud cries 
announced the king's arrival. A carriage had been sent to 
meet himand the gigantic Porthoswho stood a head above 
the entire rabblesoon announced that he saw the royal 
equipage approaching. D'Artagnan raised himself on tiptoe
and as the carriage passedsaw Harrison at one window and 
Mordaunt at the other. 
The next dayAthosleaning out of his windowwhich looked 
upon the most populous part of the cityheard the Act of 
Parliamentwhich summoned the ex-kingCharles I.to the 
barpublicly cried. 
Parliament indeed!cried Athos. "Parliament can never have 
passed such an act as that." 
At this moment the landlord came in. 
Did parliament pass this act?Athos asked of him in 
English. 
Yes, my lord, the pure parliament.
What do you mean by `the pure parliament'? Are there, then, 
two parliaments?
My friend,D'Artagnan interruptedas I don't understand 
English and we all understand Spanish, have the kindness to 
speak to us in that language, which, since it is your own, 
you must find pleasure in using when you have the chance.
Ah! excellent!said Aramis. 
As to Porthosall his attention was concentrated on the 
allurements of the breakfast table. 
You were asking, then?said the host in Spanish. 
I asked,said Athosin the same languageif there are 
two parliaments, a pure and an impure?
Why, how extraordinary!said Porthosslowly raising his 
head and looking at his friends with an air of astonishment
I understand English, then! I understand what you say!
That is because we are talking Spanish, my dear friend,
said Athos. 
Oh, the devil!said PorthosI am sorry for that; it 
would have been one language more.
When I speak of the pure parliament,resumed the hostI 
mean the one which Colonel Bridge has weeded.
Ah! really,said D'Artagnanthese people are very 
ingenious. When I go back to France I must suggest some such 
convenient course to Cardinal Mazarin and the coadjutor. One 
of them will weed the parliament in the name of the court, 
and the other in the name of the people; and then there 
won't be any parliament at all.
And who is this Colonel Bridge?asked Aramisand how 
does he go to work to weed the parliament?
Colonel Bridge,replied the Spaniardis a retired 
wagoner, a man of much sense, who made one valuable 
observation whilst driving his team, namely, that where 
there happened to be a stone on the road, it was much easier 
to remove the stone than try and make the wheel pass over 
it. Now, of two hundred and fifty-one members who composed 
the parliament, there were one hundred and ninety-one who 
were in the way and might have upset his political wagon. He 
took them up, just as he formerly used to take up the stones 
from the road, and threw them out of the house.
Neat,remarked D'Artagnan. "Very!" 
And all these one hundred and ninety-one were Royalists?
asked Athos. 
Without doubt, senor; and you understand that they would 
have saved the king.
To be sure,said Porthoswith majestic common sense; 
they were in the majority.
And you think,said Aramishe will consent to appear 
before such a tribunal?
He will be forced to do so,smiled the Spaniard. 
Now, Athos!said D'Artagnando you begin to believe that 
it's a ruined cause, and that what with your Harrisons, 
Joyces, Bridges and Cromwells, we shall never get the upper 
hand?
The king will be delivered at the tribunal,said Athos; 
the very silence of his supporters indicates that they are 
at work.
D'Artagnan shrugged his shoulders. 
But,said Aramisif they dare to condemn their king, it 
can only be to exile or imprisonment.
D'Artagnan whistled a little air of incredulity. 
We shall see,said Athosfor we shall go to the 
sittings, I presume.
You will not have long to wait,said the landlord; "they 
begin to-morrow." 
So, then, they drew up the indictments before the king was 
taken?
Of course,said D'Artagnan; "they began the day he was 
sold." 
And you know,said Aramisthat it was our friend 
Mordaunt who made, if not the bargain, at least the 
overtures.
And you know,added D'Artagnanthat whenever I catch him 
I will kill him, this Mordaunt.
And I, too,exclaimed Porthos. 
And I, too,added Aramis. 
Touching unanimity!cried D'Artagnanwhich well becomes 
good citizens like us. Let us take a turn around the town 
and imbibe a little fog.
Yes,said Porthos'twill be at least a little change 
from beer.
The Trial. 
The next morning King Charles I. was haled by a strong guard 
before the high court which was to judge him. All London was 
crowding to the doors of the house. The throng was terrific
and it was not till after much pushing and some fighting 
that our friends reached their destination. When they did so 
they found the three lower rows of benches already occupied; 
but being anxious not to be too conspicuousallwith the 
exception of Porthoswho had a fancy to display his red 
doubletwere quite satisfied with their placesthe more so 
as chance had brought them to the centre of their rowso 
that they were exactly opposite the arm-chair prepared for 
the royal prisoner. 
Toward eleven o'clock the king entered the hallsurrounded 
by guardsbut wearing his head coveredand with a calm 
expression turned to every side with a look of complete 
assuranceas if he were there to preside at an assembly of 
submissive subjectsrather than to meet the accusations of 
a rebel court. 
The judgesproud of having a monarch to humiliate
evidently prepared to enjoy the right they had arrogated to 
themselvesand sent an officer to inform the king that it 
was customary for the accused to uncover his head. 
Charleswithout replying a single wordturned his head in 
another direction and pulled his felt hat over it. Then when 
the officer was gone he sat down in the arm-chair opposite 
the president and struck his boots with a little cane which 
he carried in his hand. Parrywho accompanied himstood 
behind him. 
D'Artagnan was looking at Athoswhose face betrayed all 
those emotions which the kingpossessing more self-control
had banished from his own. This agitation in one so cold and 
calm as Athosfrightened him. 
I hope,he whispered to himthat you will follow his 
majesty's example and not get killed for your folly in this 
den.
Set your mind at rest,replied Athos. 
Aha!continued D'Artagnanit is clear that they are 
afraid of something or other; for look, the sentinels are 
being reinforced. They had only halberds before, now they 
have muskets. The halberds were for the audience in the 
rear; the muskets are for us.
Thirty, forty, fifty, sixty-five men,said Porthos
counting the reinforcements. 
Ah!said Aramisbut you forget the officer.
D'Artagnan grew pale with rage. He recognized Mordauntwho 
with bare sword was marshalling the musketeers behind the 
king and opposite the benches. 
Do you think they have recognized us?said D'Artagnan. "In 
that case I should beat a retreat. I don't care to be shot 
in a box." 
No,said Aramishe has not seen us. He sees no one but 
the king. Mon Dieu! how he stares at him, the insolent dog! 
Does he hate his majesty as much as he does us?
Pardi,answered Athos "we only carried off his mother; the 
king has spoiled him of his name and property." 
True,said Aramis; "but silence! the president is speaking 
to the king." 
Stuart,Bradshaw was sayinglisten to the roll call of 
your judges and address to the court any observations you 
may have to make.
The king turned his head awayas if these words had not 
been intended for him. Bradshaw waitedand as there was no 
reply there was a moment of silence. 
Out of the hundred and sixty-three members designated there 
were only seventy-three presentfor the restfearful of 
taking part in such an acthad remained away. 
When the name of Colonel Fairfax was calledone of those 
brief but solemn silences ensuedwhich announced the 
absence of the members who had no wish to take a personal 
part in the trial. 
Colonel Fairfax,repeated Bradshaw. 
Fairfax,answered a laughing voicethe silvery tone of 
which betrayed it as that of a womanis not such a fool as 
to be here.
A loud laugh followed these wordspronounced with that 
boldness which women draw from their own weakness -- a 
weakness which removes them beyond the power of vengeance. 
It is a woman's voice,cried Aramis; "faithI would give 
a good deal if she is young and pretty." And he mounted on 
the bench to try and get a sight of her. 
By my soul,said Aramisshe is charming. Look 
D'Artagnan; everybody is looking at her; and in spite of 
Bradshaw's gaze she has not turned pale.
It is Lady Fairfax herself,said D'Artagnan. "Don't you 
rememberPorthoswe saw her at General Cromwell's?" 
The roll call continued. 
These rascals will adjourn when they find that they are not 
in sufficient force,said the Comte de la Fere. 
You don't know them. Athos, look at Mordaunt's smile. Is 
that the look of a man whose victim is likely to escape him? 
Ah, cursed basilisk, it will be a happy day for me when I 
can cross something more than a look with you.
The king is really very handsome,said Porthos; "and look
toothough he is a prisonerhow carefully he is dressed. 
The feather in his hat is worth at least five-and-twenty 
pistoles. Look at itAramis." 
The roll call finishedthe president ordered them to read 
the act of accusation. Athos turned pale. A second time he 
was disappointed in his expectation. Notwithstanding the 
judges were so few the trial was to continue; the king then
was condemned in advance. 
I told you so, Athos,said D'Artagnanshrugging his 
shoulders. "Now take your courage in both hands and hear 
what this gentleman in black is going to say about his 
sovereignwith full license and privilege." 
Never till then had a more brutal accusation or meaner 
insults tarnished kingly majesty. 
Charles listened with marked attentionpassing over the 
insultsnoting the grievancesandwhen hatred overflowed 
all bounds and the accuser turned executioner beforehand
replying with a smile of lofty scorn. 
The fact is,said D'Artagnanif men are punished for 
imprudence and triviality, this poor king deserves 
punishment. But it seems to me that that which he is just 
now undergoing is hard enough.
In any case,Aramis repliedthe punishment should fall 
not on the king, but on his ministers; for the first article 
of the constitution is, `The king can do no wrong.'
As for me,thought Porthosgiving Mordaunt his whole 
attentionwere it not for breaking in on the majesty of 
the situation I would leap down from the bench, reach 
Mordaunt in three bounds and strangle him; I would then take 
him by the feet and knock the life out of these wretched 
musketeers who parody the musketeers of France. Meantime, 
D'Artagnan, who is full of invention, would find some way to 
save the king. I must speak to him about it.
As to Athoshis face aflamehis fists clinchedhis lips 
bitten till they bledhe sat there foaming with rage at 
that endless parliamentary insult and that long enduring 
royal patience; the inflexible arm and steadfast heart had 
given place to a trembling hand and a body shaken by 
excitement. 
At this moment the accuser concluded with these words: "The 
present accusation is preferred by us in the name of the 
English people." 
At these words there was a murmur along the benchesand a 
second voicenot that of a womanbut a man'sstout and 
furiousthundered behind D'Artagnan. 
You lie!it cried. "Nine-tenths of the English people are 
horrified at what you say." 
This voice was that of Athoswhostanding up with 
outstretched hand and quite out of his mindthus assailed 
the public accuser. 
Kingjudgesspectatorsall turned their eyes to the bench 
where the four friends were seated. Mordaunt did the same 
and recognized the gentlemanaround whom the three other 
Frenchmen were standingpale and menacing. His eyes 
glittered with delight. He had discovered those to whose 
death he had devoted his life. A movement of fury called to 
his side some twenty of his musketeersand pointing to the 
bench where his enemies were: "Fire on that bench!" he 
cried. 
But with the rapidity of thought D'Artagnan seized Athos by 
the waistand followed by Porthos with Aramisleaped down 
from the benchesrushed into the passagesand flying down 
the staircase were lost in the crowd withoutwhile the 
muskets within were pointed on some three thousand 
spectatorswhose piteous cries and noisy alarm stopped the 
impulse already given to bloodshed. 
Charles also had recognized the four Frenchmen. He put one 
hand on his heart to still its beating and the other over 
his eyesthat he might not witness the slaying of his 
faithful friends. 
Mordauntpale and trembling with angerrushed from the 
hall sword in handfollowed by six pikemenpushing
inquiring and panting in the crowd; and thenhaving found 
nothingreturned. 
The tumult was indescribable. More than half an hour passed 
before any one could make himself heard. The judges were 
looking for a new outbreak from the benches. The spectators 
saw the muskets leveled at themand divided between fear 
and curiosityremained noisy and excited. 
Quiet was at length restored. 
What have you to say in your defense?asked Bradshaw of 
the king. 
Then risingwith his head still coveredin the tone of a 
judge rather than a prisonerCharles began. 
Before questioning me,he saidreply to my question. I 
was free at Newcastle and had there concluded a treaty with 
both houses. Instead of performing your part of this 
contract, as I performed mine, you bought me from the 
Scotch, cheaply, I know, and that does honor to the economic 
talent of your government. But because you have paid the 
price of a slave, do you imagine that I have ceased to be 
your king? No. To answer you would be to forget it. I shall 
only reply to you when you have satisfied me of your right 
to question me. To answer you would be to acknowledge you as 
my judges, and I only acknowledge you as my executioners.
And in the middle of a deathlike silenceCharlescalm
loftyand with his head still coveredsat down again in 
his arm-chair. 
Why are not my Frenchmen here?he murmured proudly and 
turning his eyes to the benches where they had appeared for 
a moment; "they would have seen that their friend was worthy 
of their defense while aliveand of their tears when dead." 
Well,said the presidentseeing that Charles was 
determined to remain silentso be it. We will judge you in 
spite of your silence. You are accused of treason, of abuse 
of power, and murder. The evidence will support it. Go, and 
another sitting will accomplish what you have postponed in 
this.
Charles rose and turned toward Parrywhom he saw pale and 
with his temples dewed with moisture. 
Well, my dear Parry,said hewhat is the matter, and 
what can affect you in this manner?
Oh, my king,said Parrywith tears in his eyes and in a 
tone of supplicationdo not look to the left as we leave 
the hall.
And why, Parry?
Do not look, I implore you, my king.
But what is the matter? Speak,said Charlesattempting to 
look across the hedge of guards which surrounded him. 
It is -- but you will not look, will you? -- it is because 
they have had the axe, with which criminals are executed, 
brought and placed there on the table. The sight is 
hideous.
Fools,said Charlesdo they take me for a coward, like 
themselves? You have done well to warn me. Thank you, 
Parry.
When the moment arrived the king followed his guards out of 
the hall. As he passed the table on which the axe was laid
he stoppedand turning with a smilesaid: 
Ah! the axe, an ingenious device, and well worthy of those 
who know not what a gentleman is; you frighten me not, 
executioner's axe,added hetouching it with the cane 
which he held in his handand I strike you now, waiting 
patiently and Christianly for you to return the blow.
And shrugging his shoulders with unaffected contempt he 
passed on. When he reached the door a stream of peoplewho 
had been disappointed in not being able to get into the 
house and to make amends had collected to see him come out
stood on each sideas he passedmany among them glaring on 
him with threatening looks. 
How many people,thought heand not one true friend.
And as he uttered these words of doubt and depression within 
his minda voice beside him said: 
Respect to fallen majesty.
The king turned quickly aroundwith tears in his eyes and 
heart. It was an old soldier of the guards who could not see 
his king pass captive before him without rendering him this 
final homage. But the next moment the unfortunate man was 
nearly killed with heavy blows of sword-hiltsand among 
those who set upon him the king recognized Captain Groslow. 
Alas!said Charlesthat is a severe chastisement for a 
very trifling fault.
He continued his walkbut he had scarcely gone a hundred 
paceswhen a furious fellowleaning between two soldiers
spat in the king's faceas once an infamous and accursed 
Jew spit in the face of Jesus of Nazareth. Loud roars of 
laughter and sullen murmurs arose together. The crowd opened 
and closed againundulating like a stormy seaand the king 
imagined that he saw shining in the midst of this living 
wave the bright eyes of Athos. 
Charles wiped his face and said with a sad smile: "Poor 
wretchfor half a crown he would do as much to his own 
father." 
The king was not mistaken. Athos and his friendsagain 
mingling with the throngwere taking a last look at the 
martyr king. 
When the soldier saluted CharlesAthos's heart bounded for 
joy; and that unfortunateon coming to himselffound ten 
guineas that the French gentleman had slipped into his 
pocket. But when the cowardly insulter spat in the face of 
the captive monarch Athos grasped his dagger. But D'Artagnan 
stopped his hand and in a hoarse voice criedWait!
Athos stopped. D'Artagnanleaning on Athosmade a sign to 
Porthos and Aramis to keep near them and then placed himself 
behind the man with the bare armswho was still laughing at 
his own vile pleasantry and receiving the congratulations of 
several others. 
The man took his way toward the city. The four friends 
followed him. The manwho had the appearance of being a 
butcherdescended a little steep and isolated street
looking on to the riverwith two of his friends. Arrived at 
the bank of the river the three men perceived that they were 
followedturned aroundand looking insolently at the 
Frenchmenpassed some jests from one to another. 
I don't know English, Athos,said D'Artagnan; "but you 
know it and will interpret for me." 
Then quickening their steps they passed the three menbut 
turned back immediatelyand D'Artagnan walked straight up 
to the butcher and touching him on the chest with the tip of 
his fingersaid to Athos: 
Say this to him in English: `You are a coward. You have 
insulted a defenseless man. You have defouled the face of 
your king. You must die.'
Athospale as a ghostrepeated these words to the man
whoseeing the bodeful preparations that were makingput 
himself in an attitude of defense. Aramisat this movement
drew his sword. 
No,cried D'Artagnanno steel. Steel is for gentlemen.
And seizing the butcher by the throat: 
Porthos,said hekill this fellow for me with a single 
blow.
Porthos raised his terrible fistwhich whistled through the 
air like a slingand the portentous mass fell with a 
smothered crash on the insulter's skull and crushed it. The 
man fell like an ox beneath the poleaxe. His companions
horror-struckcould neither move nor cry out. 
Tell them this, Athos,resumed D'Artagnan; "thus shall all 
die who forget that a captive man is sacred and that a 
captive king doubly represents the Lord." 
Athos repeated D'Artagnan's words. 
The fellows looked at the body of their companionswimming 
in bloodand then recovering voice and legs togetherran 
screaming off. 
Justice is done,said Porthoswiping his forehead. 
And now,said D'Artagnan to Athosentertain no further 
doubts about me; I undertake all that concerns the king.
Whitehall. 
The parliament condemned Charles to deathas might have 
been foreseen. Political judgments are generally vain 
formalitiesfor the same passions which give rise to the 
accusation ordain to the condemnation. Such is the atrocious 
logic of revolutions. 
Although our friends were expecting that condemnationit 
filled them with grief. D'Artagnanwhose mind was never 
more fertile in resources than in critical emergencies
swore again that he would try all conceivable means to 
prevent the denouement of the bloody tragedy. But by what 
means? As yet he could form no definite plan; all must 
depend on circumstances. Meanwhileit was necessary at all 
hazardsin order to gain timeto put some obstacle in the 
way of the execution on the following day -- the day 
appointed by the judges. The only way of doing that was to 
cause the disappearance of the London executioner. The 
headsman out of the waythe sentence could not be executed. 
Truethey could send for the headsman of the nearest town
but at least a day would be gainedand a day might be 
sufficient for the rescue. D'Artagnan took upon himself that 
more than difficult task. 
Another thingnot less essentialwas to warn Charles 
Stuart of the attempt to be madeso that he might assist 
his rescuers as much as possibleor at least do nothing to 
thwart their efforts. Aramis assumed that perilous charge. 
Charles Stuart had asked that Bishop Juxon might be 
permitted to visit him. Mordaunt had called on the bishop 
that very evening to apprise him of the religious desire 
expressed by the king and also of Cromwell's permission. 
Aramis determined to obtain from the bishopthrough fear or 
by persuasionconsent that he should enter in the bishop's 
placeand clad in his sacerdotal robesthe prison at 
Whitehall. 
FinallyAthos undertook to providein any eventthe means 
of leaving England -- in case either of failure or of 
success. 
The night having come they made an appointment to meet at 
eleven o'clock at the hoteland each started out to fulfill 
his dangerous mission. 
The palace of Whitehall was guarded by three regiments of 
cavalry and by the fierce anxiety of Cromwellwho came and 
went or sent his generals or his agents continually. Alone 
in his usual roomlighted by two candlesthe condemned 
monarch gazed sadly on the luxury of his past greatness
just as at the last hour one sees the images of life more 
mildly brilliant than of yore. 
Parry had not quitted his masterand since his condemnation 
had not ceased to weep. Charlesleaning on a tablewas 
gazing at a medallion of his wife and daughter; he was 
waiting first for Juxonthen for martyrdom. 
At times he thought of those brave French gentlemen who had 
appeared to him from a distance of a hundred leagues 
fabulous and unreallike the forms that appear in dreams. 
In facthe sometimes asked himself if all that was 
happening to him was not a dreamor at least the delirium 
of a fever. He rose and took a few steps as if to rouse 
himself from his torpor and went as far as the window; he 
saw glittering below him the muskets of the guards. He was 
thereupon constrained to admit that he was indeed awake and 
that his bloody dream was real. 
Charles returned in silence to his chairrested his elbow 
on the tablebowed his head upon his hand and reflected. 
Alas!he said to himselfif I only had for a confessor 
one of those lights of the church, whose soul has sounded 
all the mysteries of life, all the littlenesses of 
greatness, perhaps his utterance would overawe the voice 
that wails within my soul. But I shall have a priest of 
vulgar mind, whose career and fortune I have ruined by my 
misfortune. He will speak to me of God and death, as he has 
spoken to many another dying man, not understanding that 
this one leaves his throne to an usurper, his children to 
the cold contempt of public charity.
And he raised the medallion to his lips. 
It was a dullfoggy night. A neighboring church clock 
slowly struck the hour. The flickering light of the two 
candles showed fitful phantom shadows in the lofty room. 
These were the ancestors of Charlesstanding back dimly in 
their tarnished frames. 
An awful sadness enveloped the heart of Charles. He buried 
his brow in his hands and thought of the worldso beautiful 
when one is about to leave it; of the caresses of children
so pleasing and so sweetespecially when one is parting 
from his children never to see them again; then of his wife
the noble and courageous woman who had sustained him to the 
last moment. He drew from his breast the diamond cross and 
the star of the Garter which she had sent him by those 
generous Frenchmen; he kissed itand thenas he reflected
that she would never again see those things till he lay cold 
and mutilated in the tombthere passed over him one of 
those icy shivers which may be called forerunners of death. 
Thenin that chamber which recalled to him so many royal 
souvenirswhither had come so many courtiersthe scene of 
so much flattering homagealone with a despairing servant
whose feeble soul could afford no support to his ownthe 
king at last yielded to sorrowand his courage sank to a 
level with that feeblenessthose shadowsand that wintry 
cold. That kingwho was so grandso sublime in the hour of 
deathmeeting his fate with a smile of resignation on his 
lipsnow in that gloomy hour wiped away a tear which had 
fallen on the table and quivered on the gold embroidered 
cloth. 
Suddenly the door openedan ecclesiastic in episcopal robes 
enteredfollowed by two guardsto whom the king waved an 
imperious gesture. The guards retired; the room resumed its 
obscurity. 
Juxon!cried CharlesJuxon, thank you, my last friend; 
you come at a fitting moment.
The bishop looked anxiously at the man sobbing in the 
ingle-nook. 
Come, Parry,said the kingcease your tears.
If it's Parry,said the bishopI have nothing to fear; 
so allow me to salute your majesty and to tell you who I am 
and for what I am come.
At this sight and this voice Charles was about to cry out
when Aramis placed his finger on his lips and bowed low to 
the king of England. 
The chevalier!murmured Charles. 
Yes, sire,interrupted Aramisraising his voiceBishop 
Juxon, the faithful knight of Christ, obedient to your 
majesty's wishes.
Charles clasped his handsamazed and stupefied to find that 
these foreignerswithout other motive than that which their 
conscience imposed on themthus combated the will of a 
people and the destiny of a king. 
You!he saidyou! how did you penetrate hither? If they 
recognize you, you are lost.
Care not for me, sire; think only of yourself. You see, 
your friends are wakeful. I know not what we shall do yet, 
but four determined men can do much. Meanwhile, do not be 
surprised at anything that happens; prepare yourself for 
every emergency.
Charles shook his head. 
Do you know that I die to-morrow at ten o'clock?
Something, your majesty, will happen between now and then 
to make the execution impossible.
The king looked at Aramis with astonishment. 
At this moment a strange noiselike the unloading of a 
cartand followed by a cry of painwas heard beneath the 
window. 
Do you hear?said the king. 
I hear,said Aramisbut I understand neither the noise 
nor the cry of pain.
I know not who can have uttered the cry,said the king
but the noise is easily understood. Do you know that I am 
to be beheaded outside this window? Well, these boards you 
hear unloaded are the posts and planks to build my scaffold. 
Some workmen must have fallen underneath them and been 
hurt.
Aramis shuddered in spite of himself. 
You see,said the kingthat it is useless for you to 
resist. I am condemned; leave me to my death.
My king,said Aramisthey well may raise a scaffold, but 
they cannot make an executioner.
What do you mean?asked the king. 
I mean that at this hour the headsman has been got out of 
the way by force or persuasion. The scaffold will be ready 
by to-morrow, but the headsman will be wanting and they will 
put it off till the day after to-morrow.
What then?said the king. 
To-morrow night we shall rescue you.
How can that be?cried the kingwhose face was lighted 
upin spite of himselfby a flash of joy. 
Oh! sir,cried Parrymay you and yours be blessed!
How can it be?repeated the king. "I must knowso that I 
may assist you if there is any chance." 
I know nothing about it,continued Aramisbut the 
cleverest, the bravest, the most devoted of us four said to 
me when I left him, `Tell the king that to-morrow at ten 
o'clock at night, we shall carry him off.' He has said it 
and will do it.
Tell me the name of that generous friend,said the king
that I may cherish for him an eternal gratitude, whether he 
succeeds or not.
D'Artagnan, sire, the same who had so nearly rescued you 
when Colonel Harrison made his untimely entrance.
You are, indeed, wonderful men,said the king; "if such 
things had been related to me I should not have believed 
them." 
Now, sire,resumed Aramislisten to me. Do not forget 
for a single instant that we are watching over your safety; 
observe the smallest gesture, the least bit of song, the 
least sign from any one near you; watch everything, hear 
everything, interpret everything.
Oh, chevalier!cried the kingwhat can I say to you? 
There is no word, though it should come from the profoundest 
depth of my heart, that can express my gratitude. If you 
succeed I do not say that you will save a king; no, in 
presence of the scaffold as I am, royalty, I assure you, is 
a very small affair; but you will save a husband to his 
wife, a father to his children. Chevalier, take my hand; it 
is that of a friend who will love you to his last sigh.
Aramis stooped to kiss the king's handbut Charles clasped 
his and pressed it to his heart. 
At this moment a man enteredwithout even knocking at the 
door. Aramis tried to withdraw his handbut the king still 
held it. The man was one of those Puritanshalf preacher 
and half soldierwho swarmed around Cromwell. 
What do you want, sir?said the king. 
I desire to know if the confession of Charles Stuart is at 
an end?said the stranger. 
And what is it to you?replied the king; "we are not of 
the same religion." 
All men are brothers,said the Puritan. "One of my 
brothers is about to die and I come to prepare him." 
Bear with him,whispered Aramis; "it is doubtless some 
spy." 
After my reverend lord bishop,said the king to the man
I shall hear you with pleasure, sir.
The man retiredbut not before examining the supposed Juxon 
with an attention which did not escape the king. 
Chevalier,said the kingwhen the door was closedI 
believe you are right and that this man only came here with 
evil intentions. Take care that no misfortune befalls you 
when you leave.
I thank your majesty,said Aramisbut under these robes 
I have a coat of mail, a pistol and a dagger.
Go, then, sir, and God keep you!
The king accompanied him to the doorwhere Aramis 
pronounced his benediction upon himand passing through the 
ante-roomsfilled with soldiersjumped into his carriage 
and drove to the bishop's palace. Juxon was waiting for him 
impatiently. 
Well?said heon perceiving Aramis. 
Everything has succeeded as I expected; spies, guards, 
satellites, all took me for you, and the king blesses you 
while waiting for you to bless him.
May God protect you, my son; for your example has given me 
at the same time hope and courage.
Aramis resumed his own attire and left Juxon with the 
assurance that he might again have recourse to him. 
He had scarcely gone ten yards in the street when he 
perceived that he was followed by a manwrapped in a large 
cloak. He placed his hand on his dagger and stopped. The man 
came straight toward him. It was Porthos. 
My dear friend,cried Aramis. 
You see, we had each our mission,said Porthos; "mine was 
to guard you and I am doing so. Have you seen the king?" 
Yes, and all goes well.
We are to meet our friends at the hotel at eleven.
It was then striking half-past ten by St. Paul's. 
Arrived at the hotel it was not long before Athos entered. 
All's well,he criedas he entered; "I have hired a cedar 
wherryas light as a canoeas easy on the wing as any 
swallow. It is waiting for us at Greenwichopposite the 
Isle of Dogsmanned by a captain and four menwho for the 
sum of fifty pounds sterling will keep themselves at our 
disposition three successive nights. Once on board we drop 
down the Thames and in two hours are on the open sea. In 
case I am killedthe captain's name is Roger and the skiff 
is called the Lightning. A handkerchieftied at the four 
cornersis to be the signal." 
Next moment D'Artagnan entered. 
Empty your pockets,said he; "I want a hundred poundsand 
as for my own ---- " and he emptied them inside out. 
The sum was collected in a minute. D'Artagnan ran out and 
returned directly after. 
There,said heit's done. Ough! and not without a deal 
of trouble, too.
Has the executioner left London?asked Athos. 
Ah, you see that plan was not sure enough; he might go out 
by one gate and return by another.
Where is he, then?
In the cellar.
The cellar -- what cellar?
Our landlord's, to be sure. Musqueton is propped against 
the door and here's the key.
Bravo!said Aramishow did you manage it?
Like everything else, with money; but it cost me dear.
How much?asked Athos. 
Five hundred pounds.
And where did you get so much money?said Athos. "Had you
thenthat sum?" 
The queen's famous diamond,answered D'Artagnanwith a 
sigh. 
Ah, true,said Aramis. "I recognized it on your finger." 
You bought it back, then, from Monsieur des Essarts?asked 
Porthos. 
Yes, but it was fated that I should not keep it.
So, then, we are all right as regards the executioner,
said Athos; "but unfortunately every executioner has his 
assistanthis manor whatever you call him." 
And this one had his,said D'Artagnan; "butas good luck 
would have itjust as I thought I should have two affairs 
to manageour friend was brought home with a broken leg. In 
the excess of his zeal he had accompanied the cart 
containing the scaffolding as far as the king's windowand 
one of the crossbeams fell on his leg and broke it." 
Ah!cried Aramisthat accounts for the cry I heard.
Probably,said D'Artagnanbut as he is a thoughtful 
young man he promised to send four expert workmen in his 
place to help those already at the scaffold, and wrote the 
moment he was brought home to Master Tom Lowe, an assistant 
carpenter and friend of his, to go down to Whitehall, with 
three of his friends. Here's the letter he sent by a 
messenger, for sixpence, who sold it to me for a guinea.
And what on earth are you going to do with it?asked 
Athos. 
Can't you guess, my dear Athos? You, who speak English like 
John Bull himself, are Master Tom Lowe, we, your three 
companions. Do you understand it now?
Athos uttered a cry of joy and admirationran to a closet 
and drew forth workmen's clotheswhich the four friends 
immediately put on; they then left the hotelAthos carrying 
a sawPorthos a viseAramis an axe and D'Artagnan a hammer 
and some nails. 
The letter from the executioner's assistant satisfied the 
master carpenter that those were the men he expected. 
The Workmen. 
Toward midnight Charles heard a great noise beneath his 
window. It arose from blows of hammer and hatchetclinking 
of pincers and cranching of saws. 
Lying dressed upon his bedthe noise awoke him with a start 
and found a gloomy echo in his heart. He could not endure 
itand sent Parry to ask the sentinel to beg the workmen to 
strike more gently and not disturb the last slumber of one 
who had been their king. The sentinel was unwilling to leave 
his postbut allowed Parry to pass. 
Arriving at the window Parry found an unfinished scaffold
over which they were nailing a covering of black serge. 
Raised to the height of twenty feetso as to be on a level 
with the windowit had two lower stories. Parryodious as 
was this sight to himsought for those among some eight or 
ten workmen who were making the most noise; and fixed on two 
menwho were loosening the last hooks of the iron balcony. 
My friends,said Parrymounting the scaffold and standing 
beside themwould you work a little more quietly? The king 
wishes to get a sleep.
One of the twowho was standing upwas of gigantic size 
and was driving a pick with all his might into the wall
whilst the otherkneeling beside himwas collecting the 
pieces of stone. The face of the first was lost to Parry in 
the darkness; but as the second turned around and placed his 
finger on his lips Parry started back in amazement. 
Very well, very well,said the workman aloudin excellent 
English. "Tell the king that if he sleeps badly to-night he 
will sleep better to-morrow night." 
These blunt wordsso terrible if taken literallywere 
received by the other workmen with a roar of laughter. But 
Parry withdrewthinking he was dreaming. 
Charles was impatiently awaiting his return. At the moment 
he re-enteredthe sentinel who guarded the door put his 
head through the openingcurious as to what the king was 
doing. The king was lying on his bedresting on his elbow. 
Parry closed the door and approaching the kinghis face 
radiant with joy: 
Sire,he saidin a low voicedo you know who these 
workmen are who are making so much noise?
I? No; how would you have me know?
Parry bent his head and whispered to the king: "It is the 
Comte de la Fere and his friends." 
Raising my scaffold!cried the kingastounded. 
Yes, and at the same time making a hole in the wall.
The king clasped his hands and raised his eyes to Heaven; 
then leaping down from his bed he went to the windowand 
pulling aside the curtain tried to distinguish the figures 
outsidebut in vain. 
Parry was not wrong. It was Athos he had recognizedand 
Porthos who was boring a hole through the wall. 
This hole communicated with a kind of loft -- the space 
between the floor of the king's room and the ceiling of the 
one below it. Their plan was to pass through the hole they 
were making into this loft and cut out from below a piece of 
the flooring of the king's roomso as to form a kind of 
trap-door. 
Through this the king was to escape the next nightand
hidden by the black covering of the scaffoldwas to change 
his dress for that of a workmanslip out with his 
delivererspass the sentinelswho would suspect nothing
and so reach the skiff that was waiting for him at 
Greenwich. 
Day gilded the tops of the houses. The aperture was finished 
and Athos passed through itcarrying the clothes destined 
for the king wrapped in black clothand the tools with 
which he was to open a communication with the king's room. 
He had only two hours' work to do to open communication with 
the king andaccording to the calculations of the four 
friendsthey had the entire day before themsincethe 
executioner being absentanother must be sent for to 
Bristol. 
D'Artagnan returned to change his workman's clothes for his 
chestnut-colored suitand Porthos to put on his red 
doublet. As for Aramishe went off to the bishop's palace 
to see if he could possibly pass in with Juxon to the king's 
presence. All three agreed to meet at noon in Whitehall 
Place to see how things went on. 
Before leaving the scaffold Aramis had approached the 
opening where Athos was concealed to tell him that he was 
about to make an attempt to gain another interview with the 
king. 
Adieu, then, and be of good courage,said Athos. "Report 
to the king the condition of affairs. Say to him that when 
he is alone it will help us if he will knock on the floor
for then I can continue my work in safety. TryAramisto 
keep near the king. Speak loudvery loudfor they will be 
listening at the door. If there is a sentinel within the 
apartmentkill him without hesitation. If there are two
let Parry kill one and you the other. If there are three
let yourself be slainbut save the king." 
Be easy,said Aramis; "I will take two poniards and give 
one to Parry. Is that all?" 
Yes, go; but urge the king strongly not to stand on false 
generosity. While you are fighting if there is a fight, he 
must flee. The trap once replaced over his head, you being 
on the trap, dead or alive, they will need at least ten 
minutes to find the hole by which he has escaped. In those 
ten minutes we shall have gained the road and the king will 
be saved.
Everything shall be done as you say, Athos. Your hand, for 
perhaps we shall not see each other again.
Athos put his arm around Aramis's neck and embraced him. 
For you,he said. "Now if I diesay to D'Artagnan that I 
love him as a sonand embrace him for me. Embrace also our 
good and brave Porthos. Adieu." 
Adieu,said Aramis. "I am as sure now that the king will 
be saved as I am sure that I clasp the most loyal hand in 
the world." 
Aramis parted from Athoswent down from the scaffold in his 
turn and took his way to the hotelwhistling the air of a 
song in praise of Cromwell. He found the other two friends 
sitting at table before a good firedrinking a bottle of 
port and devouring a cold chicken. Porthos was cursing the 
infamous parliamentarians; D'Artagnan ate in silence
revolving in his mind the most audacious plans. 
Aramis related what had been agreed upon. D'Artagnan 
approved with a movement of the head and Porthos with his 
voice. 
Bravo!he said; "besideswe shall be there at the time of 
the flight. What with D'ArtagnanGrimaud and Musquetonwe 
can manage to dispatch eight of them. I say nothing about 
Blaisoisfor he is only fit to hold the horses. Two minutes 
a man makes four minutes. Musqueton will lose another
that's five; and in five minutes we shall have galloped a 
quarter of a league." 
Aramis swallowed a hasty mouthfulgulped a glass of wine 
and changed his clothes. 
Now,said heI'm off to the bishop's. Take care of the 
executioner, D'Artagnan.
All right. Grimaud has relieved Musqueton and has his foot 
on the cellar door.
Well, don't be inactive.
Inactive, my dear fellow! Ask Porthos. I pass my life upon 
my legs.
Aramis again presented himself at the bishop's. Juxon 
consented the more readily to take him with himas he would 
require an assistant priest in case the king should wish to 
communicate. Dressed as Aramis had been the night before
the bishop got into his carriageand the formermore 
disguised by his pallor and sad countenance than his 
deacon's dressgot in by his side. The carriage stopped at 
the door of the palace. 
It was about nine o'clock in the morning. 
Nothing was changed. The ante-rooms were still full of 
soldiersthe passages still lined by guards. The king was 
already sanguinebut when he perceived Aramis his hope 
turned to joy. He embraced Juxon and pressed the hand of 
Aramis. The bishop affected to speak in a loud voicebefore 
every oneof their previous interview. The king replied 
that the words spoken in that interview had borne their 
fruitand that he desired another under the same 
conditions. Juxon turned to those present and begged them to 
leave him and his assistant alone with the king. Every one 
withdrew. As soon as the door was closed: 
Sire,said Aramisspeaking rapidlyyou are saved; the 
London executioner has vanished. His assistant broke his leg 
last night beneath your majesty's window -- the cry we heard 
was his -- and there is no executioner nearer at hand than 
Bristol.
But the Comte de la Fere?asked the king. 
Two feet below you; take the poker from the fireplace and 
strike three times on the floor. He will answer you.
The king did soand the moment afterthree muffled knocks
answering the given signalsounded beneath the floor. 
So,said Charleshe who knocks down there ---- 
Is the Comte de la Fere, sire,said Aramis. "He is 
preparing a way for your majesty to escape. Parryfor his 
partwill raise this slab of marble and a passage will be 
opened." 
Oh, Juxon,said the kingseizing the bishop's two hands 
in his ownpromise that you will pray all your life for 
this gentleman and for the other that you hear beneath your 
feet, and for two others also, who, wherever they may be, 
are on the watch for my safety.
Sire,replied Juxonyou shall be obeyed.
Meanwhilethe miner underneath was heard working away 
incessantlywhen suddenly an unexpected noise resounded in 
the passage. Aramis seized the poker and gave the signal to 
stop; the noise came nearer and nearer. It was that of a 
number of men steadily approaching. The four men stood 
motionless. All eyes were fixed on the doorwhich opened 
slowly and with a kind of solemnity. 
A parliamentary officerclothed in black and with a gravity 
that augured illenteredbowed to the kingand unfolding 
a parchmentread the sentenceas is usually done to 
criminals before their execution. 
What is this?said Aramis to Juxon. 
Juxon replied with a sign which meant that he knew no more 
than Aramis about it. 
Then it is for to-day?asked the king. 
Was not your majesty warned that it was to take place this 
morning?
Then I must die like a common criminal by the hand of the 
London executioner?
The London executioner has disappeared, your majesty, but a 
man has offered his services instead. The execution will 
therefore only be delayed long enough for you to arrange 
your spiritual and temporal affairs.
A slight moisture on his brow was the only trace of emotion 
that Charles evincedas he learned these tidings. But 
Aramis was livid. His heart ceased beatinghe closed his 
eyes and leaned upon the table. Charles perceived it and 
took his hand. 
Come, my friend,said hecourage.Then he turned to the 
officer. "SirI am ready. There is but little reason why I 
should delay you. FirstlyI wish to communicate; secondly
to embrace my children and bid them farewell for the last 
time. Will this be permitted me?" 
Certainly,replied the officerand left the room. 
Aramis dug his nails into his flesh and groaned aloud. 
Oh! my lord bishop,he criedseizing Juxon's hands
where is Providence? where is Providence?
My son,replied the bishopwith firmnessyou see Him 
not, because the passions of the world conceal Him.
My son,said the king to Aramisdo not take it so to 
heart. You ask what God is doing. God beholds your devotion 
and my martyrdom, and believe me, both will have their 
reward. Ascribe to men, then, what is happening, and not to 
God. It is men who drive me to death; it is men who make you 
weep.
Yes, sire,said Aramisyes, you are right. It is men 
whom I should hold responsible, and I will hold them 
responsible.
Be seated, Juxon,said the kingfalling upon his knees. 
I have now to confess to you. Remain, sir,he added to 
Aramiswho had moved to leave the room. "RemainParry. I 
have nothing to say that cannot be said before all." 
Juxon sat downand the kingkneeling humbly before him
began his confession. 
Remember! 
The mob had already assembled when the confession 
terminated. The king's children next arrived -- the Princess 
Charlottea beautifulfair-haired childwith tears in her 
eyesand the Duke of Gloucestera boy eight or nine years 
oldwhose tearless eyes and curling lip revealed a growing 
pride. He had wept all night longbut would not show his 
grief before the people. 
Charles's heart melted within him at the sight of those two 
childrenwhom he had not seen for two years and whom he now 
met at the moment of death. He turned to brush away a tear
and thensummoning up all his firmnessdrew his daughter 
toward himrecommending her to be pious and resigned. Then 
he took the boy upon his knee. 
My son,he said to himyou saw a great number of people 
in the streets as you came here. These men are going to 
behead your father. Do not forget that. Perhaps some day 
they will want to make you king, instead of the Prince of 
Wales, or the Duke of York, your elder brothers. But you are 
not the king, my son, and can never be so while they are 
alive. Swear to me, then, never to let them put a crown upon 
your head unless you have a legal right to the crown. For 
one day -- listen, my son -- one day, if you do so, they 
will doom you to destruction, head and crown, too, and then 
you will not be able to die with a calm conscience, as I 
die. Swear, my son.
The child stretched out his little hand toward that of his 
father and saidI swear to your majesty.
Henry,said Charlescall me your father.
Father,replied the childI swear to you that they shall 
kill me sooner than make me king.
Good, my child. Now kiss me; and you, too, Charlotte. Never 
forget me.
Oh! never, never!cried both the childrenthrowing their 
arms around their father's neck. 
Farewell,said Charlesfarewell, my children. Take them 
away, Juxon; their tears will deprive me of the courage to 
die.
Juxon led them awayand this time the doors were left open. 
MeanwhileAthosin his concealmentwaited in vain the 
signal to recommence his work. Two long hours he waited in 
terrible inaction. A deathlike silence reigned in the room 
above. At last he determined to discover the cause of this 
stillness. He crept from his hole and stoodhidden by the 
black draperybeneath the scaffold. Peeping out from the 
draperyhe could see the rows of halberdiers and musketeers 
around the scaffold and the first ranks of the populace 
swaying and groaning like the sea. 
What is the matter, then?he asked himselftrembling more 
than the wind-swayed cloth he was holding back. "The people 
are hurrying onthe soldiers under armsand among the 
spectators I see D'Artagnan. What is he waiting for? What is 
he looking at? Good God! have they allowed the headsman to 
escape?" 
Suddenly the dull beating of muffled drums filled the 
square. The sound of heavy steps was heard above his head. 
The next moment the very planks of the scaffold creaked with 
the weight of an advancing processionand the eager faces 
of the spectators confirmed what a last hope at the bottom 
of his heart had prevented him till then believing. At the 
same moment a well-known voice above him pronounced these 
words: 
Colonel, I want to speak to the people.
Athos shuddered from head to foot. It was the king speaking 
on the scaffold. 
In factafter taking a few drops of wine and a piece of 
breadCharlesweary of waiting for deathhad suddenly 
decided to go to meet it and had given the signal for 
movement. Then the two wings of the window facing the square 
had been thrown openand the people had seen silently 
advancing from the interior of the vast chamberfirsta 
masked manwhocarrying an axe in his handwas recognized 
as the executioner. He approached the block and laid his axe 
upon it. Behind himpale indeedbut marching with a firm 
stepwas Charles Stuartwho advanced between two priests
followed by a few superior officers appointed to preside at 
the execution and attended by two files of partisans who 
took their places on opposite sides of the scaffold. 
The sight of the masked man gave rise to a prolonged 
sensation. Every one was full of curiosity as to who that 
unknown executioner could be who presented himself so 
opportunely to assure to the people the promised spectacle
when the people believed it had been postponed until the 
following day. All gazed at him searchingly. 
But they could discern nothing but a man of middle height
dressed in blackapparently of a certain agefor the end 
of a gray beard peeped out from the bottom of the mask that 
hid his features. 
The king's request had undoubtedly been acceded to by an 
affirmative signfor in firmsonorous accentswhich 
vibrated in the depths of Athos's heartthe king began his 
speechexplaining his conduct and counseling the welfare of 
the kingdom. 
Oh!said Athos to himselfis it indeed possible that I 
hear what I hear and that I see what I see? Is it possible 
that God has abandoned His representative on earth and left 
him to die thus miserably? And I have not seen him! I have 
not said adieu to him!
A noise was heard like that the instrument of death would 
make if moved upon the block. 
Do not touch the axe,said the kingand resumed his 
speech. 
At the end of his speech the king looked tenderly around 
upon the people. Then unfastening the diamond ornament which 
the queen had sent himhe placed it in the hands of the 
priest who accompanied Juxon. Then he drew from his breast a 
little cross set in diamondswhichlike the orderhad 
been the gift of Henrietta Maria. 
Sir,said he to the priestI shall keep this cross in my 
hand till the last moment. Take it from me when I am -dead.
Yes, sire,said a voicewhich Athos recognized as that of 
Aramis. 
He then took his hat from his head and threw it on the 
ground. One by one he undid the buttons of his doublettook 
it off and deposited it by the side of his hat. Thenas it 
was coldhe asked for his gownwhich was brought to him. 
All the preparations were made with a frightful calmness. 
One would have thought the king was going to bed and not to 
his coffin. 
Will these be in your way?he said to the executioner
raising his long locks; "if sothey can be tied up." 
Charles accompanied these words with a look designed to 
penetrate the mask of the unknown headsman. His cakenoble 
gaze forced the man to turn away his head. But after the 
searching look of the king he encountered the burning eyes 
of Aramis. 
The kingseeing that he did not replyrepeated his 
question. 
It will do,replied the manin a tremulous voiceif you 
separate them across the neck.
The king parted his hair with his handsand looking at the 
block he said: 
This block is very low, is there no other to be had?
It is the usual block,answered the man in the mask. 
Do you think you can behead me with a single blow?asked 
the king. 
I hope so,was the reply. There was something so strange 
in these three words that everybodyexcept the king
shuddered. 
I do not wish to be taken by surprise,added the king. "I 
shall kneel down to pray; do not strike then." 
When shall I strike?
When I shall lay my head on the block and say `Remember!' 
then strike boldly.
Gentlemen,said the king to those around himI leave you 
to brave the tempest; I go before you to a kingdom which 
knows no storms. Farewell.
He looked at Aramis and made a special sign to him with his 
head. 
Now,he continuedwithdraw a little and let me say my 
prayer, I beseech you. You, also, stand aside,he said to 
the masked man. "It is only for a moment and I know that I 
belong to you; but remember that you are not to strike till 
I give the signal." 
Then he knelt downmade the sign of the crossand lowering 
his face to the planksas if he would have kissed them
said in a low tonein FrenchComte de la Fere, are you 
there?
Yes, your majesty,he answeredtrembling. 
Faithful friend, noble heart!said the kingI should not 
have been rescued. I have addressed my people and I have 
spoken to God; last of all I speak to you. To maintain a 
cause which I believed sacred I have lost the throne and my 
children their inheritance. A million in gold remains; it is 
buried in the cellars of Newcastle Keep. You only know that 
this money exists. Make use of it, then, whenever you think 
it will be most useful, for my eldest son's welfare. And 
now, farewell.
Farewell, saintly, martyred majesty,lisped Athoschilled 
with terror. 
A moment's silence ensued and thenin a fullsonorous 
voicethe king exclaimed: "Remember!" 
He had scarcely uttered the word when a heavy blow shook the 
scaffold and where Athos stood immovable a warm drop fell 
upon his brow. He reeled back with a shudder and the same 
moment the drops became a crimson cataract. 
Athos fell on his knees and remained some minutes as if 
bewildered or stunned. At last he rose and taking his 
handkerchief steeped it in the blood of the martyred king. 
Then as the crowd gradually dispersed he leaped downcrept 
from behind the draperyglided between two horsesmingled 
with the crowd and was the first to arrive at the inn. 
Having gained his room he raised his hand to his faceand 
observing that his fingers were covered with the monarch's 
bloodfell down insensible. 
The Man in the Mask. 
The snow was falling thick and icy. Aramis was the next to 
come in and to discover Athos almost insensible. But at the 
first words he uttered the comte roused himself from the 
kind of lethargy in which he had sunk. 
Well,said Aramisbeaten by fate!
Beaten!said Athos. "Noble and unhappy king!" 
Are you wounded?cried Aramis. 
No, this is his blood.
Where were you, then?
Where you left me -- under the scaffold.
Did you see it all?
No, but I heard all. God preserve me from another such hour 
as I have just passed.
Then you know that I did not leave him?
I heard your voice up to the last moment.
Here is the order he gave me and the cross I took from his 
hand; he desired they should be returned to the queen.
Then here is a handkerchief to wrap them in,replied 
Athosdrawing from his pocket the one he had steeped in the 
king's blood. 
And what,he continuedhas been done with the poor 
body?
By order of Cromwell royal honors will be accorded to it. 
The doctors are embalming the corpse, and when it is ready 
it will be placed in a lighted chapel.
Mockery,muttered Athossavagely; "royal honors to one 
whom they have murdered!" 
Well, cheer up!said a loud voice from the staircase
which Porthos had just mounted. "We are all mortalmy poor 
friends." 
You are late, my dear Porthos.
Yes, there were some people on the way who delayed me. The 
wretches were dancing. I took one of them by the throat and 
three-quarters throttled him. Just then a patrol rode up. 
Luckily the man I had had most to do with was some minutes 
before he could speak, so I took advantage of his silence to 
walk off.
Have you seen D'Artagnan?
We got separated in the crowd and I could not find him 
again.
Oh!said AthossatiricallyI saw him. He was in the 
front row of the crowd, admirably placed for seeing; and as 
on the whole the sight was curious, he probably wished to 
stay to the end.
Ah Comte de la Fere,said a calm voicethough hoarse with 
runningis it your habit to calumniate the absent?
This reproof stung Athos to the heartbut as the impression 
produced by seeing D'Artagnan foremost in a coarse
ferocious crowd had been very stronghe contented himself 
with replying: 
I am not calumniating you, my friend. They were anxious 
about you here; I simply told them where you were. You 
didn't know King Charles; to you he was only a foreigner and 
you were not obliged to love him.
So sayinghe stretched out his handbut the other 
pretended not to see it and he let it drop again slowly by 
his side. 
Ugh! I am tired,cried D'Artagnansitting down. 
Drink a glass of port,said Aramis; "it will refresh you." 
Yes, let us drink,said Athosanxious to make it up by 
hobnobbing with D'Artagnanlet us drink and get away from 
this hateful country. The felucca is waiting for us, you 
know; let us leave to-night, we have nothing more to do 
here.
You are in a hurry, sir count,said D'Artagnan. 
But what would you have us to do here, now that the king is 
dead?
Go, sir count,replied D'Artagnancarelessly; "you see 
nothing to keep you a little longer in England? Wellfor my 
partIa bloodthirsty ruffianwho can go and stand close 
to a scaffoldin order to have a better view of the king's 
execution -- I remain." 
Athos turned pale. Every reproach his friend uttered struck 
deeply in his heart. 
Ah! you remain in London?said Porthos. 
Yes. And you?
Hang it!said Porthosa little perplexed between the two
I suppose, as I came with you, I must go away with you. I 
can't leave you alone in this abominable country.
Thanks, my worthy friend. So I have a little adventure to 
propose to you when the count is gone. I want to find out 
who was the man in the mask, who so obligingly offered to 
cut the king's throat.
A man in a mask?cried Athos. "You did not let the 
executioner escapethen?" 
The executioner is still in the cellar, where, I presume, 
he has had an interview with mine host's bottles. But you 
remind me. Musqueton!
Sir,answered a voice from the depths of the earth. 
Let out your prisoner. All is over.
But,said Athoswho is the wretch that has dared to 
raise his hand against his king?
An amateur headsman,replied Aramiswho however, does 
not handle the axe amiss.
Did you not see his face?asked Athos. 
He wore a mask.
But you, Aramis, who were close to him?
I could see nothing but a gray beard under the fringe of 
the mask.
Then it must be a man of a certain age.
Oh!said D'Artagnanthat matters little. When one puts 
on a mask, it is not difficult to wear a beard under it.
I am sorry I did not follow him,said Porthos. 
Well, my dear Porthos,said D'Artagnanthat's the very 
thing it came into my head to do.
Athos understood all now. 
Pardon me, D'Artagnan,he said. "I have distrusted God; I 
could the more easily distrust you. Pardon memy friend." 
We will see about that presently,said D'Artagnanwith a 
slight smile. 
Well, then?said Aramis. 
Well, while I was watching -- not the king, as monsieur le 
comte thinks, for I know what it is to see a man led to 
death, and though I ought to be accustomed to the sight it 
always makes me ill -- while I was watching the masked 
executioner, the idea came to me, as I said, to find out who 
he was. Now, as we are wont to complete ourselves each by 
all the rest and to depend on one another for assistance, as 
one calls his other hand to aid the first, I looked around 
instinctively to see if Porthos was there; for I had seen 
you, Aramis, with the king, and you, count, I knew would be 
under the scaffold, and for that reason I forgive you,he 
addedoffering Athos his handfor you must have suffered 
much. I was looking around for Porthos when I saw near me a 
head which had been broken, but which, for better or worse, 
had been patched with plaster and with black silk. `Humph!' 
thought I, `that looks like my handiwork; I fancy I must 
have mended that skull somewhere or other.' And, in fact, it 
was that unfortunate Scotchman, Parry's brother, you know, 
on whom Groslow amused himself by trying his strength. Well, 
this man was making signs to another at my left, and turning 
around I recognized the honest Grimaud. `Oh!' said I to him. 
Grimaud turned round with a jerk, recognized me, and pointed 
to the man in the mask. `Eh!' said he, which meant, `Do you 
see him?' `Parbleu!' I answered, and we perfectly understood 
one another. Well, everything was finished as you know. The 
mob dispersed. I made a sign to Grimaud and the Scotchman, 
and we all three retired into a corner of the square. I saw 
the executioner return into the king's room, change his 
clothes, put on a black hat and a large cloak and disappear. 
Five minutes later he came down the grand staircase.
'You followed him?" cried Athos. 
I should think so, but not without difficulty. Every few 
minutes he turned around, and thus obliged us to conceal 
ourselves. I might have gone up to him and killed him. But I 
am not selfish, and I thought it might console you all a 
little to have a share in the matter. So we followed him 
through the lowest streets in the city, and in half an 
hour's time he stopped before a little isolated house. 
Grimaud drew out a pistol. `Eh?' said he, showing it. I held 
back his arm. The man in the mask stopped before a low door 
and drew out a key; but before he placed it in the lock he 
turned around to see if he was being followed. Grimaud and I 
got behind a tree, and the Scotchman having nowhere to hide 
himself, threw himself on his face in the road. Next moment 
the door opened and the man disappeared.
The scoundrel!said Aramis. "While you have been returning 
hither he will have escaped and we shall never find him." 
Come, now, Aramis,said D'Artagnanyou must be taking me 
for some one else.
Nevertheless,said Athosin your absence ---- 
Well, in my absence haven't I put in my place Grimaud and 
the Scotchman? Before he had taken ten steps beyond the door 
I had examined the house on all sides. At one of the doors, 
that by which he had entered, I placed our Scotchman, making 
a sign to him to follow the man wherever he might go, if he 
came out again. Then going around the house I placed Grimaud 
at the other exit, and here I am. Our game is beaten up. Now 
for the tally-ho.
Athos threw himself into D'Artagnan's arms. 
Friend,he saidyou have been too good in pardoning me; 
I was wrong, a hundred times wrong. I ought to have known 
you better by this time; but we are all possessed of a 
malignant spirit, which bids us doubt.
Humph!said Porthos. "Don't you think the executioner 
might be Master Cromwellwhoto make sure of this affair
undertook it himself?" 
Ah! just so. Cromwell is stout and short, and this man thin 
and lanky, rather tall than otherwise.
Some condemned soldier, perhaps,suggested Athoswhom 
they have pardoned at the price of regicide.
No, no,continued D'Artagnanit was not the measured 
step of a foot soldier, nor was it the gait of a horseman. 
If I am not mistaken we have to do with a gentleman.
A gentleman!exclaimed Athos. "Impossible! It would be a 
dishonor to all the nobility." 
Fine sport, by Jove!cried Porthoswith a laugh that 
shook the windows. "Fine sport!" 
Are you still bent on departure, Athos?asked D'Artagnan. 
No, I remain,replied Athoswith a threatening gesture 
that promised no good to whomsoever it was addressed. 
Swords, then!cried Aramisswords! let us not lose a 
moment.
The four friends resumed their own clothesgirded on their 
swordsordered Musqueton and Blaisois to pay the bill and 
to arrange everything for immediate departureand wrapped 
in their large cloaks left in search of their game. 
The night was darksnow was fallingthe streets were 
silent and deserted. D'Artagnan led the way through the 
intricate windings and narrow alleys of the city and ere 
long they had reached the house in question. For a moment 
D'Artagnan thought that Parry's brother had disappeared; but 
he was mistaken. The robust Scotchmanaccustomed to the 
snows of his native hillshad stretched himself against a 
postand like a fallen statueinsensible to the inclemency 
of the weatherhad allowed the snow to cover him. He rose
howeveras they approached. 
Come,said Athoshere's another good servant. Really, 
honest men are not so scarce as I thought.
Don't be in a hurry to weave crowns for our Scotchman. I 
believe the fellow is here on his own account, for I have 
heard that these gentlemen born beyond the Tweed are very 
vindictive. I should not like to be Groslow, if he meets 
him.
Well?said Athosto the manin English. 
No one has come out,he replied. 
Then, Porthos and Aramis, will you remain with this man 
while we go around to Grimaud?
Grimaud had made himself a kind of sentry box out of a 
hollow willowand as they drew near he put his head out and 
gave a low whistle. 
Soho!cried Athos. 
Yes,said Grimaud. 
Well, has anybody come out?
No, but somebody has gone in.
A man or a woman?
A man.
Ah! ah!said D'Artagnanthere are two of them, then!
I wish there were four,said Athos; "the two parties would 
then be equal." 
Perhaps there are four,said D'Artagnan. 
What do you mean?
Other men may have entered before them and waited for 
them.
We can find out,said Grimaud. At the same time he pointed 
to a windowthrough the shutters of which a faint light 
streamed. 
That is true,said D'Artagnanlet us call the others.
They returned around the house to fetch Porthos and Aramis. 
Have you seen anything?they asked. 
No, but we are going to,replied D'Artagnanpointing to 
Grimaudwho had already climbed some five or six feet from 
the ground. 
All four came up together. Grimaud continued to climb like a 
cat and succeeded at last in catching hold of a hookwhich 
served to keep one of the shutters back when opened. Then 
resting his foot on a small ledge he made a sign to show all 
was right. 
Well?asked D'Artagnan. 
Grimaud showed his closed handwith two fingers spread out. 
Speak,said Athos; "we cannot see your signs. How many are 
there?" 
Two. One opposite to me, the other with his back to me.
Good. And the man opposite to you is ---
The man I saw go in." 
Do you know him?
I thought I recognized him, and was not mistaken. Short and
stout.
Who is it?they all asked together in a low tone.
General Oliver Cromwell.
The four friends looked at one another.
And the other?asked Athos.
Thin and lanky.
The executioner,said D'Artagnan and Aramis at the same 
time. 
I can see nothing but his back,resumed Grimaud. "But 
wait. He is moving; and if he has taken off his mask I shall 
be able to see. Ah ---- " 
And as if struck in the heart he let go the hook and dropped 
with a groan. 
Did you see him?they all asked. 
Yes said Grimaud, with his hair standing on end.
The thinspare man?"
Yes.
The executioner, in short?asked Aramis.
Yes.
And who is it?said Porthos.
He -- he -- is ---- murmured Grimaudpale as a ghost and 
seizing his master's hand. 
Who? He?asked Athos. 
Mordaunt,replied Grimaud.
D'ArtagnanPorthos and Aramis uttered a cry of joy.
Athos stepped back and passed his hand across his brow.
Fatality!he muttered.
Cromwell's House. 
It wasin factMordaunt whom D'Artagnan had followed
without knowing it. On entering the house he had taken off 
his mask and imitation beardthenmounting a staircase
had opened a doorand in a room lighted by a single lamp 
found himself face to face with a man seated behind a desk. 
This man was Cromwell. 
Cromwell had two or three of these retreats in London
unknown except to the most intimate of his friends. Mordaunt 
was among these. 
It is you, Mordaunt,he said. "You are late." 
General, I wished to see the ceremony to the end, which 
delayed me.
Ah! I scarcely thought you were so curious as that.
I am always curious to see the downfall of your honor's 
enemies, and he was not among the least of them. But you, 
general, were you not at Whitehall?
No,said Cromwell. 
There was a moment's silence. 
Have you had any account of it?
None. I have been here since the morning. I only know that 
there was a conspiracy to rescue the king.
Ah, you knew that?said Mordaunt. 
It matters little. Four men, disguised as workmen, were to 
get the king out of prison and take him to Greenwich, where 
a vessel was waiting.
And knowing all that, your honor remained here, far from 
the city, tranquil and inactive.
Tranquil, yes,replied Cromwell. "But who told you I was 
inactive?" 
But -- if the plot had succeeded?
I wished it to do so.
I thought your excellence considered the death of Charles 
I. as a misfortune necessary to the welfare of England.
Yes, his death; but it would have been more seemly not upon 
the scaffold.
Why so?asked Mordaunt. 
Cromwell smiled. "Because it could have been said that I had 
had him condemned for the sake of justice and had let him 
escape out of pity." 
But if he had escaped?
Impossible; my precautions were taken.
And does your honor know the four men who undertook to 
rescue him?
The four Frenchmen, of whom two were sent by the queen to 
her husband and two by Mazarin to me.
And do you think Mazarin commissioned them to act as they 
have done?
It is possible. But he will not avow it.
How so?
Because they failed.
Your honor gave me two of these Frenchmen when they were 
only guilty of fighting for Charles I. Now that they are 
guilty of a conspiracy against England will your honor give 
me all four of them?
Take them,said Cromwell. 
Mordaunt bowed with a smile of triumphant ferocity. 
Did the people shout at all?Cromwell asked. 
Very little, except `Long live Cromwell!'
Where were you placed?
Mordaunt tried for a moment to read in the general's face if 
this was simply a useless questionor whether he knew 
everything. But his piercing eyes could by no means 
penetrate the sombre depths of Cromwell's. 
I was so situated as to hear and see everything,he 
answered. 
It was now Cromwell's turn to look fixedly at Mordauntand 
Mordaunt to make himself impenetrable. 
It appears,said Cromwellthat this improvised 
executioner did his duty remarkably well. The blow, so they 
tell me at least, was struck with a master's hand.
Mordaunt remembered that Cromwell had told him he had had no 
detailed accountand he was now quite convinced that the 
general had been present at the executionhidden behind 
some screen or curtain. 
In fact,said Mordauntwith a calm voice and immovable 
countenancea single blow sufficed.
Perhaps it was some one in that occupation,said Cromwell. 
Do you think so, sir? He did not look like an executioner.
And who else save an executioner would have wished to fill 
that horrible office?
But,said Mordauntit might have been some personal 
enemy of the king, who had made a vow of vengeance and 
accomplished it in this way. Perhaps it was some man of rank 
who had grave reasons for hating the fallen king, and who, 
learning that the king was about to flee and escape him, 
threw himself in the way, with a mask on his face and an axe 
in his hand, not as substitute for the executioner, but as 
an ambassador of Fate.
Possibly.
And if that were the case would your honor condemn his 
action?
It is not for me to judge. It rests between his conscience 
and his God.
But if your honor knew this man?
I neither know nor wish to know him. Provided Charles is 
dead, it is the axe, not the man, we must thank.
And yet, without the man, the king would have been 
rescued.
Cromwell smiled. 
They would have carried him to Greenwich,he saidand 
put him on board a felucca with five barrels of powder in 
the hold. Once out to sea, you are too good a politician not 
to understand the rest, Mordaunt.
Yes, they would have all been blown up.
Just so. The explosion would have done what the axe had 
failed to do. Men would have said that the king had escaped 
human justice and been overtaken by God's. You see now why I 
did not care to know your gentleman in the mask; for really, 
in spite of his excellent intentions, I could not thank him 
for what he has done.
Mordaunt bowed humbly. "Sir he said, you are a profound 
thinker and your plan was sublime." 
Say absurd, since it has become useless. The only sublime 
ideas in politics are those which bear fruit. So to-night, 
Mordaunt, go to Greenwich and ask for the captain of the 
felucca Lightning. Show him a white handkerchief knotted at 
the four corners and tell the crew to disembark and carry 
the powder back to the arsenal, unless, indeed ---- 
Unless?said Mordauntwhose face was lighted by a savage 
joy as Cromwell spoke: 
This skiff might be of use to you for personal projects.
Oh, my lord, my lord!
That title,said Cromwelllaughingis all very well 
here, but take care a word like that does not escape your 
lips in public.
But your honor will soon be called so generally.
I hope so, at least,said Cromwellrising and putting on 
his cloak. 
You are going, sir?
Yes,said Cromwell. "I slept here last night and the night 
beforeand you know it is not my custom to sleep three 
times in the same bed." 
Then,said Mordauntyour honor gives me my liberty for 
to-night?
And even for all day to-morrow, if you want it. Since last 
evening,he addedsmilingyou have done enough in my 
service, and if you have any personal matters to settle it 
is just that I should give you time.
Thank you, sir; it will be well employed, I hope.
Cromwell turned as he was going. 
Are you armed?he asked. 
I have my sword.
And no one waiting for you outside?
No.
Then you had better come with me.
Thank you, sir, but the way by the subterranean passage 
would take too much time and I have none to lose.
Cromwell placed his hand on a hidden handle and opened a 
door so well concealed by the tapestry that the most 
practiced eye could not have discovered it. It closed after 
him with a spring. This door communicated with a 
subterranean passageleading under the street to a grotto 
in the garden of a house about a hundred yards from that of 
the future Protector. 
It was just before this that Grimaud had perceived the two 
men seated together. 
D'Artagnan was the first to recover from his surprise. 
Mordaunt,he cried. "Ah! by Heaven! it is God Himself who 
sent us here." 
Yes,said Porthoslet us break the door in and fall upon 
him.
No,replied D'Artagnanno noise. Now, Grimaud, you come 
here, climb up to the window again and tell us if Mordaunt 
is alone and whether he is preparing to go out or go to bed. 
If he comes out we shall catch him. If he stays in we will 
break in the window. It is easier and less noisy than the 
door.
Grimaud began to scale the wall again. 
Keep guard at the other door, Athos and Aramis. Porthos and 
I will stay here.
The friends obeyed. 
He is alone,said Grimaud. 
We did not see his companion come out.
He may have gone by the other door.
What is he doing?
Putting on his cloak and gloves.
He's ours,muttered D'Artagnan. 
Porthos mechanically drew his dagger from the scabbard. 
Put it up again, my friend,said D'Artagnan. "We must 
proceed in an orderly manner." 
Hush!said Grimaudhe is coming out. He has put out the 
lamp, I can see nothing now.
Get down then and quickly.
Grimaud leaped down. The snow deadened the noise of his 
fall. 
Now go and tell Athos and Aramis to stand on each side of 
the door and clap their hands if they catch him. We will do 
the same.
The next moment the door opened and Mordaunt appeared on the 
thresholdface to face with D'Artagnan. Porthos clapped his 
hands and the other two came running around. Mordaunt was 
lividbut he uttered no cry nor called for assistance. 
D'Artagnan quietly pushed him in againand by the light of 
a lamp on the staircase made him ascend the steps backward 
one by onekeeping his eyes all the time on Mordaunt's 
handswhohoweverknowing that it was uselessattempted 
no resistance. At last they stood face to face in the very 
room where ten minutes before Mordaunt had been talking to 
Cromwell. 
Porthos came up behindand unhooking the lamp on the 
staircase relit that in the room. Athos and Aramis entered 
last and locked the door behind them. 
Oblige me by taking a seat,said D'Artagnanpushing a 
chair toward Mordauntwho sat downpale but calm. Aramis
Porthos and D'Artagnan drew their chairs near him. Athos 
alone kept away and sat in the furthest corner of the room
as if determined to be merely a spectator of the 
proceedings. He seemed to be quite overcome. Porthos rubbed 
his hands in feverish impatience. Aramis bit his lips till 
the blood came. 
D'Artagnan alone was calmat least in appearance. 
Monsieur Mordaunt,he saidsince, after running after 
one another so long, chance has at last brought us together, 
let us have a little conversation, if you please.
Conversational. 
Though Mordaunt had been so completely taken by surprise and 
had mounted the stairs in such utter confusionwhen once 
seated he recovered himselfas it wereand prepared to 
seize any possible opportunity of escape. His eye wandered 
to a long stout sword on his flank and he instinctively 
slipped it around within reach of his right hand. 
D'Artagnan was waiting for a reply to his remark and said 
nothing. Aramis muttered to himselfWe shall hear nothing 
but the usual commonplace things.
Porthos sucked his mustachemutteringA good deal of 
ceremony to-night about crushing an adder.Athos shrunk 
into his cornerpale and motionless as a bas-relief. 
The silencehowevercould not last forever. So D'Artagnan 
began: 
Sir,he saidwith desperate politenessit seems to me 
that you change your costume almost as rapidly as I have 
seen the Italian mummers do, whom the Cardinal Mazarin 
brought over from Bergamo and whom he doubtless took you to 
see during your travels in France.
Mordaunt did not reply. 
Just now,D'Artagnan continuedyou were disguised -- I 
mean to say, attired -- as a murderer, and now ---- 
And now I look very much like a man who is going to be 
murdered.
Oh! sir,said D'Artagnanhow can you talk like that when 
you are in the company of gentlemen and have such an 
excellent sword at your side?
No sword is excellent enough to be of use against four 
swords and daggers.
Well, that is scarcely the question. I had the honor of 
asking you why you altered your costume. The mask and beard 
became you very well, and as to the axe, I do not think it 
would be out of keeping even at this moment. Why, then, have 
you laid it aside?
Because, remembering the scene at Armentieres, I thought I 
should find four axes for one, as I was to meet four 
executioners.
Sir,replied D'Artagnanin the calmest manner possible
you are very young; I shall therefore overlook your 
frivolous remarks. What took place at Armentieres has no 
connection whatever with the present occasion. We could 
scarcely have requested your mother to take a sword and 
fight us.
Aha! It is a duel, then?cried Mordauntas if disposed to 
reply at once to the provocation. 
Porthos rosealways ready for this kind of adventure. 
Pardon me,said D'Artagnan. "Do not let us do things in a 
hurry. We will arrange the matter rather better. Confess
Monsieur Mordauntthat you are anxious to kill some of us." 
All,replied Mordaunt. 
Then, my dear sir; I am convinced that these gentlemen 
return your kind wishes and will be delighted to kill you 
also. Of course they will do so as honorable gentlemen, and 
the best proof I can furnish is this ---- 
So sayinghe threw his hat on the groundpushed back his 
chair to the wall and bowed to Mordaunt with true French 
grace. 
At your service, sir,he continued. "My sword is shorter 
than yoursit's truebutbah! I think the arm will make 
up for the sword." 
Halt!cried Porthos coming forward. "I beginand without 
any rhetoric." 
Allow me, Porthos,said Aramis. 
Athos did not move. He might have been taken for a statue. 
Even his breathing seemed to be arrested. 
Gentlemen,said D'Artagnanyou shall have your turn. 
Monsieur Mordaunt dislikes you sufficiently not to refuse 
you afterward. You can see it in his eye. So pray keep your 
places, like Athos, whose calmness is entirely laudable. 
Besides, we will have no words about it. I have particular 
business to settle with this gentleman and I shall and will 
begin.
Porthos and Aramis drew backdisappointedand drawing his 
sword D'Artagnan turned to his adversary: 
Sir, I am waiting for you.
And for my part, gentlemen, I admire you. You are disputing 
which shall fight me first, but you do not consult me who am 
most concerned in the matter. I hate you all, but not 
equally. I hope to kill all four of you, but I am more 
likely to kill the first than the second, the second than 
the third, and the third than the last. I claim, then, the 
right to choose my opponent. If you refuse this right you 
may kill me, but I shall not fight.
It is but fair,said Porthos and Aramishoping he would 
choose one of them. 
Athos and D'Artagnan said nothingbut their silence seemed 
to imply consent. 
Well, then,said MordauntI choose for my adversary the 
man who, not thinking himself worthy to be called Comte de 
la Fere, calls himself Athos.
Athos sprang upbut after an instant of motionless silence 
he saidto the astonishment of his friendsMonsieur 
Mordaunt, a duel between us is impossible. Submit this 
honour to somebody else.And he sat down. 
Ah!said Mordauntwith a sneerthere's one who is 
afraid.
Zounds!exclaimed D'Artagnanbounding toward himwho 
says that Athos is afraid?
Let him have his say, D'Artagnan,said Athoswith a smile 
of sadness and contempt. 
Is it your decision, Athos?resumed the Gascon. 
Irrevocably.
You hear, sir,said D'Artagnanturning to Mordaunt. "The 
Comte de la Fere will not do you the honor of fighting with 
you. Choose one of us to replace the Comte de la Fere." 
As long as I don't fight with him it is the same to me with 
whom I fight. Put your names into a hat and draw lots.
A good idea,said D'Artagnan. 
At least that will conciliate us all,said Aramis. 
I should never have thought of that,said Porthosand 
yet it is very simple.
Come, Aramis,said D'Artagnanwrite this for us in those 
neat little characters in which you wrote to Marie Michon 
that the mother of this gentleman intended to assassinate 
the Duke of Buckingham.
Mordaunt sustained this new attack without wincing. He stood 
with his arms foldedapparently as calm as any man could be 
in such circumstances. If he had not courage he had what is 
very like itnamelypride. 
Aramis went to Cromwell's desktore off three bits of paper 
of equal sizewrote on the first his own name and on the 
others those of his two companionsand presented them open 
to Mordauntwho by a movement of his head indicated that he 
left the matter entirely to Aramis. He then rolled them 
separately and put them in a hatwhich he handed to 
Mordaunt. 
Mordaunt put his hand into the hattook out one of the 
three papers and disdainfully dropped it on the table 
without reading it. 
Ah! serpent,muttered D'ArtagnanI would give my chance 
of a captaincy in the mousquetaires for that to be my name.
Aramis opened the paperand in a voice trembling with hate 
and vengeance read "D'Artagnan." 
The Gascon uttered a cry of joy and turning to Mordaunt: 
I hope, sir,said heyou have no objection to make.
None, whatever,replied the otherdrawing his sword and 
resting the point on his boot. 
The moment that D'Artagnan saw that his wish was 
accomplished and his man would not escape himhe recovered 
his usual tranquillity. He turned up his cuffs neatly and 
rubbed the sole of his right boot on the floorbut did not 
failhoweverto remark that Mordaunt was looking about him 
in a singular manner. 
Are you ready, sir?he said at last. 
I was waiting for you, sir,said Mordauntraising his 
head and casting at his opponent a look it would be 
impossible to describe. 
Well, then,said the Gascontake care of yourself, for I 
am not a bad hand at the rapier.
Nor I either.
So much the better; that sets my mind at rest. Defend 
yourself.
One minute,said the young man. "Give me your word
gentlementhat you will not attack me otherwise than one 
after the other." 
Is it to have the pleasure of insulting us that you say 
that, my little viper?
No, but to set my mind at rest, as you observed just now.
It is for something else than that, I imagine,muttered 
D'Artagnanshaking his head doubtfully. 
On the honor of gentlemen,said Aramis and Porthos. 
In that case, gentlemen, have the kindness to retire into 
the corners, so as to give us ample room. We shall require 
it.
Yes, gentlemen,said D'Artagnanwe must not leave this 
person the slightest pretext for behaving badly, which, with 
all due respect, I fancy he is anxious still to do.
This new attack made no impression on Mordaunt. The space 
was clearedthe two lamps placed on Cromwell's deskin 
order that the combatants might have as much light as 
possible; and the swords crossed. 
D'Artagnan was too good a swordsman to trifle with his 
opponent. He made a rapid and brilliant feint which Mordaunt 
parried. 
Aha!he cried with a smile of satisfaction. 
And without losing a minutethinking he saw an openinghe 
thrust his right in and forced Mordaunt to parry a counter 
en quarte so fine that the point of the weapon might have 
turned within a wedding ring. 
This time it was Mordaunt who smiled. 
Ah, sir,said D'Artagnanyou have a wicked smile. It 
must have been the devil who taught it you, was it not?
Mordaunt replied by trying his opponent's weapon with an 
amount of strength which the Gascon was astonished to find 
in a form apparently so feeble; but thanks to a parry no 
less clever than that which Mordaunt had just achievedhe 
succeeded in meeting his swordwhich slid along his own 
without touching his chest. 
Mordaunt rapidly sprang back a step. 
Ah! you lose ground, you are turning? Well, as you please, 
I even gain something by it, for I no longer see that wicked 
smile of yours. You have no idea what a false look you have, 
particularly when you are afraid. Look at my eyes and you 
will see what no looking-glass has ever shown you -- a frank 
and honorable countenance.
To this flow of wordsnot perhaps in the best tastebut 
characteristic of D'Artagnanwhose principal object was to 
divert his opponent's attentionMordaunt did not replybut 
continuing to turn around he succeeded in changing places 
with D'Artagnan. 
He smiled more and more sarcastically and his smile began to 
make the Gascon anxious. 
Come, come,cried D'Artagnanwe must finish with this,
and in his turn he pressed Mordaunt hardwho continued to 
lose groundbut evidently on purpose and without letting 
his sword leave the line for a moment. Howeveras they were 
fighting in a room and had not space to go on like that 
foreverMordaunt's foot at last touched the wallagainst 
which he rested his left hand. 
Ah, this time you cannot lose ground, my fine friend!
exclaimed D'Artagnan. "Gentlemendid you ever see a 
scorpion pinned to a wall? No. Wellthenyou shall see it 
now." 
In a second D'Artagnan had made three terrible thrusts at 
Mordauntall of which touchedbut only pricked him. The 
three friends looked onpanting and astonished. At last 
D'Artagnanhaving got up too closestepped back to prepare 
a fourth thrustbut the moment whenafter a finequick 
feinthe was attacking as sharply as lightningthe wall 
seemed to give wayMordaunt disappeared through the 
openingand D'Artagnan's bladecaught between the panels
shivered like a sword of glass. D'Artagnan sprang back; the 
wall had closed again. 
Mordauntin factwhile defending himselfhad manoeuvred 
so as to reach the secret door by which Cromwell had left
had felt for the knob with his left handpressed it and 
disappeared. 
The Gascon uttered a furious imprecationwhich was answered 
by a wild laugh on the other side of the iron panel. 
Help me, gentlemen,cried D'Artagnanwe must break in 
this door.
It is the devil in person!said Aramishastening forward. 
He escapes us,growled Porthospushing his huge shoulder 
against the hingesbut in vain. "'Sblood! he escapes us." 
So much the better,muttered Athos. 
I thought as much,said D'Artagnanwasting his strength 
in useless efforts. "ZoundsI thought as much when the 
wretch kept moving around the room. I thought he was up to 
something." 
It's a misfortune, to which his friend, the devil, treats 
us,said Aramis. 
It's a piece of good fortune sent from Heaven,said Athos
evidently much relieved. 
Really!said D'Artagnanabandoning the attempt to burst 
open the panel after several ineffectual attemptsAthos, I 
cannot imagine how you can talk to us in that way. You 
cannot understand the position we are in. In this kind of 
game, not to kill is to let one's self be killed. This fox 
of a fellow will be sending us a hundred iron-sided beasts 
who will pick us off like sparrows in this place. Come, 
come, we must be off. If we stay here five minutes more 
there's an end of us.
Yes, you are right.
But where shall we go?asked Porthos. 
To the hotel, to be sure, to get our baggage and horses; 
and from there, if it please God, to France, where, at 
least, I understand the architecture of the houses.
Sosuiting the action to the wordD'Artagnan thrust the 
remnant of his sword into its scabbardpicked up his hat 
and ran down the stairsfollowed by the others. 
The Skiff "Lightning." 
D'Artagnan had judged correctly; Mordaunt felt that he had 
no time to loseand he lost none. He knew the rapidity of 
decision and action that characterized his enemies and 
resolved to act with reference to that. This time the 
musketeers had an adversary who was worthy of them. 
After closing the door carefully behind him Mordaunt glided 
into the subterranean passagesheathing on the way his now 
useless swordand thus reached the neighboring housewhere 
he paused to examine himself and to take breath. 
Good!he saidnothing, almost nothing -- scratches, 
nothing more; two in the arm and one in the breast. The 
wounds that I make are better than that -- witness the 
executioner of Bethune, my uncle and King Charles. Now, not 
a second to lose, for a second lost will perhaps save them. 
They must die -- die all together -- killed at one stroke by 
the thunder of men in default of God's. They must disappear, 
broken, scattered, annihilated. I will run, then, till my 
legs no longer serve, till my heart bursts in my bosom but I 
will arrive before they do.
Mordaunt proceeded at a rapid pace to the nearest cavalry 
barracksabout a quarter of a league distant. He made that 
quarter of a league in four or five minutes. Arrived at the 
barracks he made himself knowntook the best horse in the 
stablesmounted and gained the high road. A quarter of an 
hour later he was at Greenwich. 
There is the port,he murmured. "That dark point yonder is 
the Isle of Dogs. Good! I am half an hour in advance of 
theman hourperhaps. Fool that I was! I have almost 
killed myself by my needless haste. Now he added, rising 
in the stirrups and looking about him, whichI wonderis 
the Lightning?" 
At this momentas if in reply to his wordsa man lying on 
a coil of cables rose and advanced a few steps toward him. 
Mordaunt drew a handkerchief from his pocketand tying a 
knot at each corner -- the signal agreed upon -- waved it in 
the air and the man came up to him. He was wrapped in a 
large rough capewhich concealed his form and partly his 
face. 
Do you wish to go on the water, sir?said the sailor. 
Yes, just so. Along the Isle of Dogs.
And perhaps you have a preference for one boat more than 
another. You would like one that sails as rapidly as ---- 
Lightning,interrupted Mordaunt. 
Then mine is the boat you want, sir. I'm your man.
I begin to think so, particularly if you have not forgotten 
a certain signal.
Here it is, sir,and the sailor took from his coat a 
handkerchieftied at each corner. 
Good, quite right!cried Mordauntspringing off his 
horse. "There's not a moment to lose; now take my horse to 
the nearest inn and conduct me to your vessel." 
But,asked the sailorwhere are your companions? I 
thought there were four of you.
Listen to me, sir. I'm not the man you take me for; you are 
in Captain Rogers's post, are you not? under orders from 
General Cromwell. Mine, also, are from him!
Indeed, sir, I recognize you; you are Captain Mordaunt.
Mordaunt was startled. 
Oh, fear nothing,said the skippershowing his face. "I 
am a friend." 
Captain Groslow!cried Mordaunt. 
Himself. The general remembered that I had formerly been a 
naval officer and he gave me the command of this expedition. 
Is there anything new in the wind?
Nothing.
I thought, perhaps, that the king's death ---- 
Has only hastened their flight; in ten minutes they will 
perhaps be here.
What have you come for, then?
To embark with you.
Ah! ah! the general doubted my fidelity?
No, but I wish to have a share in my revenge. Haven't you 
some one who will relieve me of my horse?
Groslow whistled and a sailor appeared. 
Patrick,said Groslowtake this horse to the stables of 
the nearest inn. If any one asks you whose it is you can say 
that it belongs to an Irish gentleman.
The sailor departed without reply. 
Now,said Mordauntare you not afraid that they will 
recognize you?
There is no danger, dressed as I am in this pilot coat, on 
a night as dark as this. Besides even you didn't recognize 
me; they will be much less likely to.
That is true,said Mordauntand they will be far from 
thinking of you. Everything is ready, is it not?
Yes.
The cargo on board?
Yes.
Five full casks?
And fifty empty ones.
Good.
We are carrying port wine to Anvers.
Excellent. Now take me aboard and return to your post, for 
they will soon be here.
I am ready.
It is important that none of your crew should see me.
I have but one man on board, and I am as sure of him as I 
am of myself. Besides, he doesn't know you; like his mates 
he is ready to obey our orders knowing nothing of our plan.
Very well; let us go.
They then went down to the Thames. A boat was fastened to 
the shore by a chain fixed to a stake. Groslow jumped in
followed by Mordauntand in five minutes they were quite 
away from that world of houses which then crowded the 
outskirts of London; and Mordaunt could discern the little 
vessel riding at anchor near the Isle of Dogs. When they 
reached the side of this feluccaMordauntdexterous in his 
eagerness for vengeanceseized a rope and climbed up the 
side of the vessel with a coolness and agility very rare 
among landsmen. He went with Groslow to the captain's berth
a sort of temporary cabin of planksfor the chief apartment 
had been given up by Captain Rogers to the passengerswho 
were to be accommodated at the other end of the boat. 
They will have nothing to do, then at this end?said 
Mordaunt. 
Nothing at all.
That's a capital arrangement. Return to Greenwich and bring 
them here. I shall hide myself in your cabin. You have a 
longboat?
That in which we came.
It appeared light and well constructed.
Quite a canoe.
Fasten it to the poop with a rope; put the oars into it, so 
that it may follow in the track and there will be nothing to 
do except to cut the cord. Put a good supply of rum and 
biscuit in it for the seamen; should the night happen to be 
stormy they will not be sorry to find something to console 
themselves with.
Consider all this done. Do you wish to see the 
powder-room?
No. When you return I will set the fuse myself, but be 
careful to conceal your face, so that you cannot be 
recognized by them.
Never fear.
There's ten o'clock striking at Greenwich.
Groslowthenhaving given the sailor on duty an order to 
be on the watch with more than usual vigilancewent down 
into the longboat and soon reached Greenwich. The wind was 
chilly and the jetty was desertedas he approached it; but 
he had no sooner landed than he heard a noise of horses 
galloping upon the paved road. 
These horsemen were our friendsor ratheran avant garde
composed of D'Artagnan and Athos. As soon as they arrived at 
the spot where Groslow stood they stoppedas if guessing 
that he was the man they wanted. Athos alighted and calmly 
opened the handkerchief tied at each cornerwhilst 
D'Artagnanever cautiousremained on horsebackone hand 
upon his pistolleaning forward watchfully. 
On seeing the appointed signalGroslowwho had at first 
crept behind one of the cannon planted on that spotwalked 
straight up to the gentlemen. He was so well wrapped up in 
his cloak that it would have been impossible to see his face 
even if the night had not been so dark as to render 
precaution superfluous; neverthelessthe keen glance of 
Athos perceived at once it was not Rogers who stood before 
them. 
What do you want with us?he asked of Groslow. 
I wish to inform you, my lord,replied Groslowwith an 
Irish accentfeigned of coursethat if you are looking 
for Captain Rogers you will not find him. He fell down this 
morning and broke his leg. But I'm his cousin; he told me 
everything and desired me to watch instead of him, and in 
his place to conduct, wherever they wished to go, the 
gentlemen who should bring me a handkerchief tied at each 
corner, like that one which you hold and one which I have in 
my pocket.
And he drew out the handkerchief. 
Was that all he said?inquired Athos. 
No, my lord; he said you had engaged to pay seventy pounds 
if I landed you safe and sound at Boulogne or any other port 
you choose in France.
What do you think of all this?said Athosin a low tone 
to D'Artagnanafter explaining to him in French what the 
sailor had said in English. 
It seems a likely story to me.
And to me, too.
Besides, we can but blow out his brains if he proves 
false,said the Gascon; "and youAthosyou know something 
of everything and can be our captain. I dare say you know 
how to navigateshould he fail us." 
My dear friend, you guess well. My father meant me for the 
navy and I have some vague notions about navigation.
You see!cried D'Artagnan. 
They then summoned their friendswhowith Blaisois
Musqueton and Grimaudpromptly joined themleaving Parry 
behind themwho was to take back to London the horses of 
the gentlemen and of their lackeyswhich had been sold to 
the host in settlement of their account with him. Thanks to 
this stroke of business the four friends were able to take 
away with them a sum of money whichif not largewas 
sufficient as a provision against delays and accidents. 
Parry parted from his friends regretfully; they had proposed 
his going with them to Francebut he had straightway 
declined. 
It is very simple,Musqueton had said; "he is thinking of 
Groslow." 
It was Captain Groslowthe reader will rememberwho had 
broken Parry's head. 
D'Artagnan resumed immediately the attitude of distrust that 
was habitual with him. He found the wharf too completely 
desertedthe night too darkthe captain too accommodating. 
He had reported to Aramis what had taken placeand Aramis
not less distrustful than hehad increased his suspicions. 
A slight click of the tongue against his teeth informed 
Athos of the Gascon's uneasiness. 
We have no time now for suspicions,said Athos. "The boat 
is waiting for us; come." 
Besides,said Aramiswhat prevents our being distrustful 
and going aboard at the same time? We can watch the 
skipper.
And if he doesn't go straight I will crush him, that's 
all.
Well said, Porthos,replied D'Artagnan. "Let us gothen. 
You firstMusqueton and he stopped his friends, directing 
the valets to go first, in order to test the plank leading 
from the pier to the boat. 
The three valets passed without accident. Athos followed 
them, then Porthos, then Aramis. D'Artagnan went last, still 
shaking his head. 
What in the devil is the matter with youmy friend?" said 
Porthos. "Upon my word you would make Caesar afraid." 
The matter is,replied D'Artagnanthat I can see upon 
this pier neither inspector nor sentinel nor exciseman.
And you complain of that!said Porthos. "Everything goes 
as if in flowery paths." 
Everything goes too well, Porthos. But no matter; we must 
trust in God.
As soon as the plank was withdrawn the captain took his 
place at the tiller and made a sign to one of the sailors
whoboat-hook in handbegan to push out from the labyrinth 
of boats in which they were involved. The other sailor had 
already seated himself on the port side and was ready to 
row. As soon as there was room for rowinghis companion 
rejoined him and the boat began to move more rapidly. 
At last we are off!exclaimed Porthos. 
Alas,said Athoswe depart alone.
Yes; but all four together and without a scratch; which is 
a consolation.
We are not yet at our destination,observed the prudent 
D'Artagnan; "beware of misadventure." 
Ah, my friend!cried Porthoslike the crows, you always 
bring bad omens. Who could intercept us on such a night as 
this, pitch dark, when one does not see more than twenty 
yards before one?
Yes, but to-morrow morning ---- 
To-morrow we shall be at Boulogne.
I hope so, with all my heart,said the Gasconand I 
confess my weakness. Yes, Athos, you may laugh, but as long 
as we were within gunshot of the pier or of the vessels 
lying by it I was looking for a frightful discharge of 
musketry which would crush us.
But,said Porthoswith great wisdomthat was 
impossible, for they would have killed the captain and the 
sailors.
Bah! much Monsieur Mordaunt would care. You don't imagine 
he would consider a little thing like that?
At any rate,said PorthosI am glad to hear D'Artagnan 
admit that he is afraid.
I not only confess it, but am proud of it,returned the 
Gascon; "I'm not such a rhinoceros as you are. Oho! what's 
that?" 
The Lightning,answered the captainour felucca.
So far, so good,laughed Athos. 
They went on board and the captain instantly conducted them 
to the berth prepared for them -- a cabin which was to serve 
for all purposes and for the whole party; he then tried to 
slip away under pretext of giving orders to some one. 
Stop a moment,cried D'Artagnan; "pray how many men have 
you on boardcaptain?" 
I don't understand,was the reply. 
Explain it, Athos.
Groslowon the question being interpretedanswered
Three, without counting myself.
D'Artagnan understoodfor while replying the captain had 
raised three fingers. "Oh!" he exclaimedI begin to be 
more at my ease, however, whilst you settle yourselves, I 
shall make the round of the boat.
As for me,said PorthosI will see to the supper.
A very good idea, Porthos,said the Gascon. "Athos lend me 
Grimaudwho in the society of his friend Parry has perhaps 
picked up a little Englishand can act as my interpreter." 
Go, Grimaud,said Athos. 
D'Artagnanfinding a lantern on the decktook it up and 
with a pistol in his hand he said to the captainin 
EnglishCome,(beingwith the classic English oaththe 
only English words he knew)and so saying he descended to 
the lower deck. 
This was divided into three compartments -- one which was 
covered by the floor of that room in which AthosPorthos 
and Aramis were to pass the night; the second was to serve 
as the sleeping-room for the servantsthe thirdunder the 
prow of the shipwas under the temporary cabin in which 
Mordaunt was concealed. 
Oho!cried D'Artagnanas he went down the steps of the 
hatchwaypreceded by the lanternwhat a number of 
barrels! one would think one was in the cave of Ali Baba. 
What is there in them?he addedputting his lantern on one 
of the casks. 
The captain seemed inclined to go upon deck againbut 
controlling himself he answered: 
Port wine.
Ah! port wine! 'tis a comfort,said the Gasconsince we 
shall not die of thirst. Are they all full?
Grimaud translated the questionand Groslowwho was wiping 
the perspiration from off his foreheadanswered: 
Some full, others empty.
D'Artagnan struck the barrels with his handand having 
ascertained that he spoke the truthpushed his lantern
greatly to the captain's alarminto the interstices between 
the barrelsand finding that there was nothing concealed in 
them: 
Come along,he said; and he went toward the door of the 
second compartment. 
Stop!said the EnglishmanI have the key of that door;
and he opened the doorwith a trembling handinto the 
second compartmentwhere Musqueton and Blaisois were 
preparing supper. 
Here there was evidently nothing to seek or to apprehend and 
they passed rapidly to examine the third compartment. 
This was the room appropriated to the sailors. Two or three 
hammocks hung upon the ceilinga table and two benches 
composed the entire furniture. D'Artagnan picked up two or 
three old sails hung on the wallsand meeting nothing to 
suspectregained by the hatchway the deck of the vessel. 
And this room?he askedpointing to the captain's cabin. 
That's my room,replied Groslow. 
Open the door.
The captain obeyed. D'Artagnan stretched out his arm in 
which he held the lanternput his head in at the half 
opened doorand seeing that the cabin was nothing better 
than a shed: 
Good,he said. "If there is an army on board it is not 
here that it is hidden. Let us see what Porthos has found 
for supper." And thanking the captainhe regained the state 
cabinwhere his friends were. 
Porthos had found nothingand with him fatigue had 
prevailed over hunger. He had fallen asleep and was in a 
profound slumber when D'Artagnan returned. Athos and Aramis 
were beginning to close their eyeswhich they half opened 
when their companion came in again. 
Well!said Aramis. 
All is well; we may sleep tranquilly.
On this assurance the two friends fell asleep; and 
D'Artagnanwho was very wearybade good-night to Grimaud 
and laid himself down in his cloakwith naked sword at his 
sidein such a manner that his body barricaded the passage
and it should be impossible to enter the room without 
upsetting him. 
Port Wine. 
In ten minutes the masters slept; not so the servants 
---hungryand more thirsty than hungry. 
Blaisois and Musqueton set themselves to preparing their bed 
which consisted of a plank and a valise. On a hanging table
which swung to and fro with the rolling of the vesselwere 
a pot of beer and three glasses. 
This cursed rolling!said Blaisois. "I know it will serve 
me as it did when we came over." 
And to think,said Musquetonthat we have nothing to 
fight seasickness with but barley bread and hop beer. Pah!
But where is your wicker flask, Monsieur Musqueton? Have 
you lost it?asked Blaisois. 
No,replied MusquetonParry kept it. Those devilish 
Scotchmen are always thirsty. And you, Grimaud,he said to 
his companionwho had just come in after his round with 
D'Artagnanare you thirsty?
As thirsty as a Scotchman!was Grimaud's laconic reply. 
And he sat down and began to cast up the accounts of his 
partywhose money he managed. 
Oh, lackadaisy! I'm beginning to feel queer!cried 
Blaisois. 
If that's the case,said Musquetonwith a learned air
take some nourishment.
Do you call that nourishment?said Blaisoispointing to 
the barley bread and pot of beer upon the table. 
Blaisois,replied Musquetonremember that bread is the 
true nourishment of a Frenchman, who is not always able to 
get bread, ask Grimaud.
Yes, but beer?asked Blaisois sharplyis that their true 
drink?
As to that,answered Musquetonpuzzled how to get out of 
the difficultyI must confess that to me beer is as 
disagreeable as wine is to the English.
What! Monsieur Musqueton! The English -- do they dislike 
wine?
They hate it.
But I have seen them drink it.
As a punishment. For example, an English prince died one 
day because they had put him into a butt of Malmsey. I heard 
the Chevalier d'Herblay say so.
The fool!cried BlaisoisI wish I had been in his 
place.
Thou canst be,said Grimaudwriting down his figures. 
How?asked BlaisoisI can? Explain yourself.
Grimaud went on with his sum and cast up the whole. 
Port,he saidextending his hand in the direction of the 
first compartment examined by D'Artagnan and himself. 
Eh? eh? ah? Those barrels I saw through the door?
Port!replied Grimaudbeginning a fresh sum. 
I have heard,said Blaisoisthat port is a very good 
wine.
Excellent!exclaimed Musquetonsmacking his lips. 
Excellent; there is port wine in the cellar of Monsieur le 
Baron de Bracieux.
Suppose we ask these Englishmen to sell us a bottle,said 
the honest Blaisois. 
Sell!cried Musquetonabout whom there was a remnant of 
his ancient marauding character left. "One may well 
perceiveyoung manthat you are inexperienced. Why buy 
what one can take?" 
Take!said Blaisois; "covet the goods of your neighbor? 
That is forbiddenit seems to me." 
Where forbidden?asked Musqueton. 
In the commandments of God, or of the church, I don't know 
which. I only know it says, `Thou shalt not covet thy 
neighbor's goods, nor yet his wife.'
That is a child's reason, Monsieur Blaisois,said 
Musqueton in his most patronizing manner. "Yesyou talk 
like a child -- I repeat the word. Where have you read in 
the ScripturesI ask youthat the English are your 
neighbors?" 
Where, that is true,said Blaisois; "at leastI can't now 
recall it." 
A child's reason -- I repeat it,continued Musqueton. "If 
you had been ten years engaged in waras Grimaud and I have 
beenmy dear Blaisoisyou would know the difference there 
is between the goods of others and the goods of enemies. Now 
an Englishman is an enemy; this port wine belongs to the 
Englishtherefore it belongs to us." 
And our masters?asked Blaisoisstupefied by this 
haranguedelivered with an air of profound sagacitywill 
they be of your opinion?
Musqueton smiled disdainfully. 
I suppose that you think it necessary that I should disturb 
the repose of these illustrious lords to say, `Gentlemen, 
your servant, Musqueton, is thirsty.' What does Monsieur 
Bracieux care, think you, whether I am thirsty or not?
'Tis a very expensive wine,said Blaisoisshaking his 
head. 
Were it liquid gold, Monsieur Blaisois, our masters would 
not deny themselves this wine. Know that Monsieur de 
Bracieux is rich enough to drink a tun of port wine, even if 
obliged to pay a pistole for every drop.His manner became 
more and more lofty every instant; then he arose and after 
finishing off the beer at one draught he advanced 
majestically to the door of the compartment where the wine 
was. "Ah! locked!" he exclaimed; "these devils of English
how suspicious they are!" 
Locked!said Blaisois; "ah! the deuce it is; unluckyfor 
my stomach is getting more and more upset." 
Locked!repeated Musqueton. 
But,Blaisois ventured to sayI have heard you relate, 
Monsieur Musqueton, that once on a time, at Chantilly, you 
fed your master and yourself by taking partridges in a 
snare, carp with a line, and bottles with a slipnoose.
Perfectly true; but there was an airhole in the cellar and 
the wine was in bottles. I cannot throw the loop through 
this partition nor move with a pack-thread a cask of wine 
which may perhaps weigh two hundred pounds.
No, but you can take out two or three boards of the 
partition,answered Blaisoisand make a hole in the cask 
with a gimlet.
Musqueton opened his great round eyes to the utmost
astonished to find in Blaisois qualities for which he did 
not give him credit. 
'Tis true,he said; "but where can I get a chisel to take 
the planks outa gimlet to pierce the cask?" 
Trousers,said Grimaudstill squaring his accounts. 
Ah, yes!said Musqueton. 
Grimaudin factwas not only the accountantbut the 
armorer of the party; and as he was a man full of 
forethoughtthese trouserscarefully rolled up in his 
valisecontained every sort of tool for immediate use. 
Musquetonthereforewas soon provided with tools and he 
began his task. In a few minutes he had extracted three 
boards. He tried to pass his body through the aperturebut 
not being like the frog in the fablewho thought he was 
larger than he really washe found he must take out three 
or four more before he could get through. 
He sighed and set to work again. 
Grimaud had now finished his accounts. He arose and stood 
near Musqueton. 
I,he said. 
What?said Musqueton. 
I can pass.
That is true,said Musquetonglancing at his friend's 
long and thin bodyyou will pass easily.
And he knows the full casks,said Blaisoisfor he has 
already been in the hold with Monsieur le Chevalier 
d'Artagnan. Let Monsieur Grimaud go in, Monsieur Mouston.
I could go in as well as Grimaud,said Musquetona little 
piqued. 
Yes, but that would take too much time and I am thirsty. I 
am getting more and more seasick.
Go in, then, Grimaud,said Musquetonhanding him the beer 
pot and gimlet. 
Rinse the glasses,said Grimaud. Then with a friendly 
gesture toward Musquetonthat he might forgive him for 
finishing an enterprise so brilliantly begun by anotherhe 
glided like a serpent through the opening and disappeared. 
Blaisois was in a state of great excitement; he was in 
ecstasies. Of all the exploits performed since their arrival 
in England by the extraordinary men with whom he had the 
honor to be associatedthis seemed without question to be 
the most wonderful. 
You are about to seesaid Musquetonlooking at Blaisois 
with an expression of superiority which the latter did not 
even think of questioningyou are about to see, Blaisois, 
how we old soldiers drink when we are thirsty.
My cloak,said Grimaudfrom the bottom of the hold. 
What do you want?asked Blaisois. 
My cloak -- stop up the aperture with it.
Why?asked Blaisois. 
Simpleton!exclaimed Musqueton; "suppose any one came into 
the room." 
Ah, true,cried Blaisoiswith evident admiration; "but it 
will be dark in the cellar." 
Grimaud always sees, dark or light, night as well as day,
answered Musqueton. 
That is lucky,said Blaisois. "As for mewhen I have no 
candle I can't take two steps without knocking against 
something." 
That's because you haven't served,said Musqueton. "Had 
you been in the army you would have been able to pick up a 
needle on the floor of a closed oven. But hark! I think some 
one is coming." 
Musqueton madewith a low whistling soundthe sign of 
alarm well known to the lackeys in the days of their youth
resumed his place at the table and made a sign to Blaisois 
to follow his example. 
Blaisois obeyed. 
The door of their cabin was opened. Two menwrapped in 
their cloaksappeared. 
Oho!said theynot in bed at a quarter past eleven. 
That's against all rules. In a quarter of an hour let every 
one be in bed and snoring.
These two men then went toward the compartment in which 
Grimaud was secreted; opened the doorentered and shut it 
after them. 
Ah!cried Blaisoishe is lost!
Grimaud's a cunning fellow,murmured Musqueton. 
They waited for ten minutesduring which time no noise was 
heard that might indicate that Grimaud was discoveredand 
at the expiration of that anxious interval the two men 
returnedclosed the door after themand repeating their 
orders that the servants should go to bed and extinguish 
their lightsdisappeared. 
Shall we obey?asked Blaisois. "All this looks 
suspicious." 
They said a quarter of an hour. We still have five 
minutes,replied Musqueton. 
Suppose we warn the masters.
Let's wait for Grimaud.
But perhaps they have killed him.
Grimaud would have cried out.
You know he is almost dumb.
We should have heard the blow, then.
But if he doesn't return?
Here he is.
At that very moment Grimaud drew back the cloak which hid 
the aperture and came in with his face lividhis eyes 
staring wide open with terrorso that the pupils were 
contracted almost to nothingwith a large circle of white 
around them. He held in his hand a tankard full of a dark 
substanceand approaching the gleam of light shed by the 
lamp he uttered this single monosyllable: "Oh!" with such an 
expression of extreme terror that Musqueton started
alarmedand Blaisois was near fainting from fright. 
Bothhowevercast an inquisitive glance into the tankard 
-- it was full of gunpowder. 
Convinced that the ship was full of powder instead of having 
a cargo of wineGrimaud hastened to awake D'Artagnanwho 
had no sooner beheld him than he perceived that something 
extraordinary had taken place. Imposing silenceGrimaud put 
out the little night lampthen knelt down and poured into 
the lieutenant's ear a recital melodramatic enough not to 
require play of feature to give it pith. 
This was the gist of his strange story: 
The first barrel that Grimaud had found on passing into the 
compartment he struck -- it was empty. He passed on to 
another -- italsowas emptybut the third which he tried 
wasfrom the dull sound it gave outevidently full. At 
this point Grimaud stopped and was preparing to make a hole 
with his gimletwhen he found a spigot; he therefore placed 
his tankard under it and turned the spout; something
whatever it was the cask containedfell silently into the 
tankard. 
Whilst he was thinking that he should first taste the liquor 
which the tankard contained before taking it to his 
companionsthe door of the cellar opened and a man with a 
lantern in his hands and enveloped in a cloakcame and 
stood just before the hogsheadbehind which Grimaudon 
hearing him come ininstantly crept. This was Groslow. He 
was accompanied by another manwho carried in his hand 
something long and flexible rolled upresembling a washing 
line. His face was hidden under the wide brim of his hat. 
Grimaudthinking that they had comeas he hadto try the 
port wineeffaced himself behind his cask and consoled 
himself with the reflection that if he were discovered the 
crime was not a great one. 
Have you the wick?asked the one who carried the lantern. 
Here it is,answered the other. 
At the voice of this last speakerGrimaud started and felt 
a shudder creeping through his very marrow. He rose gently
so that his head was just above the round of the barreland 
under the large hat he recognized the pale face of Mordaunt. 
How long will this fuse burn?asked this person. 
About five minutes,replied the captain. 
That voice also was known to Grimaud. He looked from one to 
the other and after Mordaunt he recognized Groslow. 
Then tell the men to be in readiness -- don't tell them why 
now. When the clock strikes a quarter after midnight collect 
your men. Get down into the longboat.
That is, when I have lighted the match?
I will undertake that. I wish to be sure of my revenge. Are 
the oars in the boat?
Everything is ready.
'Tis well.
Mordaunt knelt down and fastened one end of the train to the 
spigotin order that he might have nothing to do but to set 
it on fire at the opposite end with the match. 
He then arose. 
You hear me -- at a quarter past midnight -- in fact, in 
twenty minutes.
I understand all perfectly, sir,replied Groslow; "but 
allow me to say there is great danger in what you undertake; 
would it not be better to intrust one of the men to set fire 
to the train?" 
My dear Groslow,answered Mordauntyou know the French 
proverb, `Nothing one does not do one's self is ever well 
done.' I shall abide by that rule.
Grimaud had heard all thisif he had not understood it. But 
what he saw made good what he lacked in perfect 
comprehension of the language. He had seen the two mortal 
enemies of the musketeershad seen Mordaunt adjust the 
fuse; he had heard the proverbwhich Mordaunt had given in 
French. Then he felt and felt again the contents of the 
tankard he held in his hand; andinstead of the lively 
liquor expected by Blaisois and Musquetonhe found beneath 
his fingers the grains of some coarse powder. 
Mordaunt went away with the captain. At the door he stopped 
to listen. 
Do you hear how they sleep?he asked. 
In factPorthos could be heard snoring through the 
partition. 
'Tis God who gives them into our hands,answered Groslow. 
This time the devil himself shall not save them,rejoined 
Mordaunt. 
And they went out together. 
End of the Port Wine Mystery. 
Grimaud waited till he heard the bolt grind in the lock and 
when he was satisfied that he was alone he slowly rose from 
his recumbent posture. 
Ah!he saidwiping with his sleeve large drops of sweat 
from his foreheadhow lucky it was that Musqueton was 
thirsty!
He made haste to pass out by the openingstill thinking 
himself in a dream; but the sight of the gunpowder in the 
tankard proved to him that his dream was a fatal nightmare. 
It may be imagined that D'Artagnan listened to these details 
with increasing interest; before Grimaud had finished he 
rose without noise and putting his mouth to Aramis's ear
and at the same time touching him on the shoulder to prevent 
a sudden movement: 
Chevalier,he saidget up and don't make the least 
noise.
Aramis awoke. D'Artagnanpressing his handrepeated his 
call. Aramis obeyed. 
Athos is near you,said D'Artagnan; "warn him as I have 
warned you." 
Aramis easily aroused Athoswhose sleep was lightlike 
that of all persons of a finely organized constitution. But 
there was more difficulty in arousing Porthos. He was 
beginning to ask full explanation of that breaking in on his 
sleepwhich was very annoying to himwhen D'Artagnan
instead of explainingclosed his mouth with his hand. 
Then our Gasconextending his armsdrew to him the heads 
of his three friends till they almost touched one another. 
Friends,he saidwe must leave this craft at once or we 
are dead men.
Bah!said Athosare you still afraid?
Do you know who is captain of this vessel?
No.
Captain Groslow.
The shudder of the three musketeers showed to D'Artagnan 
that his words began to make some impression on them. 
Groslow!said Aramis; "the devil! 
Who is this Groslow?asked Porthos. "I don't remember 
him." 
Groslow is the man who broke Parry's head and is now 
getting ready to break ours.
Oh! oh!
And do you know who is his lieutenant?
His lieutenant? There is none,said Athos. "They don't 
have lieutenants in a felucca manned by a crew of four." 
Yes, but Monsieur Groslow is not a captain of the ordinary 
kind; he has a lieutenant, and that lieutenant is Monsieur 
Mordaunt.
This time the musketeers did more than shudder -- they 
almost cried out. Those invincible men were subject to a 
mysterious and fatal influence which that name had over 
them; the mere sound of it filled them with terror. 
What shall we do?said Athos. 
We must seize the felucca,said Aramis. 
And kill him,said Porthos. 
The felucca is mined,said D'Artagnan. "Those casks which 
I took for casks of port wine are filled with powder. When 
Mordaunt finds himself discovered he will destroy all
friends and foes; and on my word he would be bad company in 
going either to Heaven or to hell." 
You have some plan, then?asked Athos. 
Yes.
What is it?
Have you confidence in me?
Give your orders,said the three musketeers. 
Wry well; come this way.
D'Artagnan went toward a very smalllow windowjust large 
enough to let a man through. He turned it gently on its 
hinges. 
There,he saidis our road.
The deuce! it is a very cold one, my dear friend,said 
Aramis. 
Stay here, if you like, but I warn you 'twill be rather too 
warm presently.
But we cannot swim to the shore.
The longboat is yonder, lashed to the felucca. We will take 
possession of it and cut the cable. Come, my friends.
A moment's delay,said Athos; "our servants?" 
Here we are!they cried. 
Meantime the three friends were standing motionless before 
the awful sight which D'Artagnanin raising the shutters
had disclosed to them through the narrow opening of the 
window. 
Those who have once beheld such a spectacle know that there 
is nothing more solemnmore strikingthan the raging sea
rollingwith its deafening roarits dark billows beneath 
the pale light of a wintry moon. 
Gracious Heaven, we are hesitating!cried D'Artagnan; "if 
we hesitate what will the servants do?" 
I do not hesitate, you know,said Grimaud. 
Sir,interposed BlaisoisI warn you that I can only swim 
in rivers.
And I not at all,said Musqueton. 
But D'Artagnan had now slipped through the window. 
You have decided, friend?said Athos. 
Yes,the Gascon answered; "Athos! youwho are a perfect 
beingbid spirit triumph over body. Do youAramisorder 
the servants. Porthoskill every one who stands in your 
way." 
And after pressing the hand of AthosD'Artagnan chose a 
moment when the ship rolled backwardso that he had only to 
plunge into the waterwhich was already up to his waist. 
Athos followed him before the felucca rose again on the 
waves; the cable which tied the boat to the vessel was then 
seen plainly rising out of the sea. 
D'Artagnan swam to it and held itsuspending himself by 
this ropehis head alone out of water. 
In one second Athos joined him. 
Then they sawas the felucca turnedtwo other heads 
peepingthose of Aramis and Grimaud. 
I am uneasy about Blaisois,said Athos; "he canhe says
only swim in rivers." 
When people can swim at all they can swim anywhere. To the 
boat! to the boat!
But Porthos, I do not see him.
Porthos is coming -- he swims like Leviathan.
In factPorthos did not appear; for a scenehalf tragedy 
and half comedyhad been performed by him with Musqueton 
and Blaisoiswhofrightened by the noise of the seaby 
the whistling of the windby the sight of that dark water 
yawning like a gulf beneath themshrank back instead of 
going forward. 
Come, come!said Porthos; "jump in." 
But, monsieur,said MusquetonI can't swim; let me stay 
here.
And me, too, monsieur,said Blaisois. 
I assure you, I shall be very much in the way in that 
little boat,said Musqueton. 
And I know I shall drown before reaching it,continued 
Blaisois. 
Come along! I shall strangle you both if you don't get 
out,said Porthos at lastseizing Musqueton by the throat. 
Forward, Blaisois!
A groanstifled by the grasp of Porthoswas all the reply 
of poor Blaisoisfor the gianttaking him neck and heels
plunged him into the water headforemostpushing him out of 
the window as if he had been a plank. 
Now, Musqueton,he saidI hope you don't mean to desert 
your master?
Ah, sir,replied Musquetonhis eyes filling with tears
why did you re-enter the army? We were all so happy in the 
Chateau de Pierrefonds!
And without any other complaintpassive and obedient
either from true devotion to his master or from the example 
set by BlaisoisMusqueton leaped into the sea headforemost. 
A sublime actionat all eventsfor Musqueton looked upon 
himself as dead. But Porthos was not a man to abandon an old 
servantand when Musqueton rose above the waterblind as a 
new-born puppyhe found he was supported by the large hand 
of Porthos and that he was thus enabledwithout having 
occasion even to moveto advance toward the cable with the 
dignity of a very triton. 
In a few minutes Porthos had rejoined his companionswho 
were already in the boat; but whenafter they had all got 
init came to his turnthere was great danger that in 
putting his huge leg over the edge of the boat he would 
upset the little vessel. Athos was the last to enter. 
Are you all here?he asked. 
Ah! have you your sword, Athos?cried D'Artagnan. 
Yes.
Cut the cable, then.
Athos drew a sharp poniard from his belt and cut the cord. 
The felucca went onthe boat continued stationaryrocked 
only by the swashing waves. 
Come, Athos!said D'Artagnangiving his hand to the 
count; "you are going to see something curious added the 
Gascon. 
Fatality. 
Scarcely had D'Artagnan uttered these words when a ringing 
and sudden noise was heard resounding through the felucca, 
which had now become dim in the obscurity of the night. 
Thatyou may be sure said the Gascon, means something." 
They then at the same instant perceived a large lantern 
carried on a pole appear on the deckdefining the forms of 
shadows behind it. 
Suddenly a terrible crya cry of despairwas wafted 
through space; and as if the shrieks of anguish had driven 
away the cloudsthe veil which hid the moon was cleated 
away and the gray sails and dark shrouds of the felucca were 
plainly visible beneath the silvery light. 
Shadows ranas if bewilderedto and fro on the vesseland 
mournful cries accompanied these delirious walkers. In the 
midst of these screams they saw Mordaunt upon the poop with 
a torch in hand. 
The agitated figuresapparently wild with terrorconsisted 
of Groslowwho at the hour fixed by Mordaunt had collected 
his men and the sailors. Mordauntafter having listened at 
the door of the cabin to hear if the musketeers were still 
asleephad gone down into the cellarconvinced by their 
silence that they were all in a deep slumber. Then he had 
run to the trainimpetuous as a man who is excited by 
revengeand full of confidenceas are those whom God 
blindshe had set fire to the wick of nitre. 
All this while Groslow and his men were assembled on deck. 
Haul up the cable and draw the boat to us,said Groslow. 
One of the sailors got down the side of the shipseized the 
cableand drew it; it came without the least resistance. 
The cable is cut!he criedno boat!
How! no boat!exclaimed Groslow; "it is impossible." 
'Tis true, however,answered the sailor; "there's nothing 
in the wake of the ship; besideshere's the end of the 
cable." 
What's the matter?cried Mordauntwhocoming up out of 
the hatchwayrushed to the sternwaving his torch. 
Only that our enemies have escaped; they have cut the cord 
and gone off with the boat.
Mordaunt bounded with one step to the cabin and kicked open 
the door. 
Empty!he exclaimed; "the infernal demons!" 
We must pursue them,said Groslowthey can't be gone 
far, and we will sink them, passing over them.
Yes, but the fire,ejaculated Mordaunt; "I have lighted 
it." 
Ten thousand devils!cried Groslowrushing to the 
hatchway; "perhaps there is still time to save us." 
Mordaunt answered only by a terrible laughthrew his torch 
into the sea and plunged in after it. The instant Groslow 
put his foot upon the hatchway steps the ship opened like 
the crater of a volcano. A burst of flame rose toward the 
skies with an explosion like that of a hundred cannon; the 
air burnedignited by flaming embersthen the frightful 
lightning disappearedthe brands sankone after another
into the abysswhere they were extinguishedand save for a 
slight vibration in the airafter a few minutes had elapsed 
one would have thought that nothing had happened. 
Only -- the felucca had disappeared from the surface of the 
sea and Groslow and his three sailors were consumed. 
The four friends saw all this -- not a single detail of this 
fearful scene escaped them. At one momentbathed as they 
were in a flood of brilliant lightwhich illumined the sea 
for the space of a leaguethey might each be seeneach by 
his own peculiar attitude and manner expressing the awe 
whicheven in their hearts of bronzethey could not help 
experiencing. Soon a torrent of vivid sparks fell around 
them -- thenat lastthe volcano was extinguished -- then 
all was dark and still -- the floating bark and heaving 
ocean. 
They sat silent and dejected. 
By Heaven!at last said Athosthe first to speakby 
this time, I think, all must be over.
Here, my lords! save me! help!cried a voicewhose 
mournful accentsreaching the four friendsseemed to 
proceed from some phantom of the ocean. 
All looked around; Athos himself stared. 
'Tis he! it is his voice!
All still remained silentthe eyes of all were turned in 
the direction where the vessel had disappearedendeavoring 
in vain to penetrate the darkness. After a minute or two 
they were able to distinguish a manwho approached them
swimming vigorously. 
Athos extended his arm toward himpointing him out to his 
companions. 
Yes, yes, I see him well enough,said D'Artagnan. 
He -- again!cried Porthoswho was breathing like a 
blacksmith's bellows; "whyhe is made of iron." 
Oh, my God!muttered Athos. 
Aramis and D'Artagnan whispered to each other. 
Mordaunt made several strokes moreand raising his arm in 
sign of distress above the waves: "Pitypity on me
gentlemenin Heaven's name! my strength is failing me; I am 
dying." 
The voice that implored aid was so piteous that it awakened 
pity in the heart of Athos. 
Poor fellow!he exclaimed. 
Indeed!said D'Artagnanmonsters have only to complain 
to gain your sympathy. I believe he's swimming toward us. 
Does he think we are going to take him in? Row, Porthos, 
row.And setting the example he plowed his oar into the 
sea; two strokes took the bark on twenty fathoms further. 
Oh! you will not abandon me! You will not leave me to 
perish! You will not be pitiless!cried Mordaunt. 
Ah! ah!said Porthos to MordauntI think we have you 
now, my hero! and there are no doors by which you can escape 
this time but those of hell.
Oh! Porthos!murmured the Comte de la Fere. 
Oh, pray, for mercy's sake, don't fly from me. For pity's 
sake!cried the young manwhose agony-drawn breath at 
timeswhen his head went under waterunder the wave
exhaled and made the icy waters bubble. 
D'Artagnanhoweverwho had consulted with Aramisspoke to 
the poor wretch. "Go away he said; your repentance is too 
recent to inspire confidence. See! the vessel in which you 
wished to fry us is still smoking; and the situation in 
which you are is a bed of roses compared to that in which 
you wished to place us and in which you have placed Monsieur 
Groslow and his companions." 
Sir!replied Mordauntin a tone of deep despairmy 
penitence is sincere. Gentlemen, I am young, scarcely 
twenty-three years old. I was drawn on by a very natural 
resentment to avenge my mother. You would have done what I 
did.
Mordaunt wanted now only two or three fathoms to reach the 
boatfor the approach of death seemed to give him 
supernatural strength. 
Alas!he saidI am then to die? You are going to kill 
the son, as you killed the mother! Surely, if I am culpable 
and if I ask for pardon, I ought to be forgiven.
Thenas if his strength failed himhe seemed unable to 
sustain himself above the water and a wave passed over his 
headwhich drowned his voice. 
Oh! this is torture to me,cried Athos. 
Mordaunt reappeared. 
For my part,said D'ArtagnanI say this must come to an 
end; murderer, as you were, of your uncle! executioner, as 
you were, of King Charles! incendiary! I recommend you to 
sink forthwith to the bottom of the sea; and if you come 
another fathom nearer, I'll stave your wicked head in with 
this oar.
D'Artagnan! D'Artagnan!cried Athosmy son, I entreat 
you; the wretch is dying, and it is horrible to let a man 
die without extending a hand to save him. I cannot resist 
doing so; he must live.
Zounds!replied D'Artagnanwhy don't you give yourself 
up directly, feet and hands bound, to that wretch? Ah! Comte 
de la Fere, you wish to perish by his hands! I, your son, as 
you call me -- I will not let you!
'Twas the first time D'Artagnan had ever refused a request 
from Athos. 
Aramis calmly drew his swordwhich he had carried between 
his teeth as he swam. 
If he lays his hand on the boat's edge I will cut it off, 
regicide that he is.
And I,said Porthos. "Wait." 
What are you going to do?asked Aramis. 
Throw myself in the water and strangle him.
Oh, gentlemen!cried Athosbe men! be Christians! See! 
death is depicted on his face! Ah! do not bring on me the 
horrors of remorse! Grant me this poor wretch's life. I will 
bless you -- I ---- 
I am dying!cried Mordauntcome to me! come to me!
D'Artagnan began to be touched. The boat at this moment 
turned aroundand the dying man was by that turn brought 
nearer Athos. 
Monsieur the Comte de la Fere,he criedI supplicate 
you! pity me! I call on you -- where are you? I see you no 
longer -- I am dying -- help me! help me!
Here I am, sir!said Athosleaning and stretching out his 
arm to Mordaunt with that air of dignity and nobility of 
soul habitual to him; "here I amtake my hand and jump into 
our boat." 
Mordaunt made a last effort -- rose -- seized the hand thus 
extended to him and grasped it with the vehemence of 
despair. 
That's right,said Athos; "put your other hand here. "And 
he offered him his shoulder as another stay and supportso 
that his head almost touched that of Mordaunt; and these two 
mortal enemies were in as close an embrace as if they had 
been brothers. 
Now, sir,said the countyou are safe -- calm yourself.
Ah! my mother,cried Mordauntwith eyes on fire with a 
look of hate impossible to paintI can only offer thee one 
victim, but it shall at any rate be the one thou wouldst 
thyself have chosen!
And whilst D'Artagnan uttered a cryPorthos raised the oar
and Aramis sought a place to strikea frightful shake given 
to the boat precipitated Athos into the sea; whilst 
Mordauntwith a shout of triumphgrasped the neck of his 
victimand in order to paralyze his movementstwined arms 
and legs around the musketeer. For an instantwithout an 
exclamationwithout a cry for helpAthos tried to sustain 
himself on the surface of the watersbut the weight dragged 
him down; he disappeared by degrees; soon nothing was to be 
seen except his longfloating hair; then both men 
disappeared and the bubbling of the waterwhichin its 
turnwas soon effacedalone indicated the spot where these 
two had sunk. 
Mute with horrorthe three friends had remained 
open-mouthedtheir eyes dilatedtheir arms extended like 
statuesandmotionless as they werethe beating of their 
hearts was audible. Porthos was the first who came to 
himself. He tore his hair. 
Oh!he criedAthos! Athos! thou man of noble heart; woe 
is me! I have let thee perish!
At this instantin the midst of the silver circle illumined 
by the light of the moon the same whirlpool which had been 
made by the sinking men was again obviousand first were 
seenrising above the wavesa wisp of hairthen a pale 
face with open eyesyetneverthelessthe eyes of death; 
then a bodywhichafter rising of itself even to the waist 
above the seaturned gently on its backaccording to the 
caprice of the wavesand floated. 
In the bosom of this corpse was plunged a poniardthe gold 
hilt of which shone in the moonbeams. 
Mordaunt! Mordaunt!cried the three friends; "'tis 
Mordaunt!" 
But Athos!exclaimed D'Artagnan. 
Suddenly the boat leaned on one side beneath a new and 
unexpected weight and Grimaud uttered a shout of joy; every 
one turned around and beheld Athoslividhis eyes dim and 
his hands tremblingsupporting himself on the edge of the 
boat. Eight vigorous arms lifted him up immediately and laid 
him in the boatwhere directly Athos was warmed and 
reanimatedreviving with the caresses and cares of his 
friendswho were intoxicated with joy. 
You are not hurt?asked D'Artagnan. 
No,replied Athos; "and he ---- " 
Oh, he! now we may say at last, thank Heaven! he is really 
dead. Look!and D'Artagnanobliging Athos to look in the 
direction he pointedshowed him the body of Mordaunt 
floating on its backwhichsometimes submergedsometimes 
risingseemed still to pursue the four friends with looks 
of insult and mortal hatred. 
At last he sank. Athos had followed him with a glance in 
which the deepest melancholy and pity were expressed. 
Bravo! Athos!cried Aramiswith an emotion very rare in 
him. 
A capital blow you gave!cried Porthos. 
I have a son. I wished to live,said Athos. 
In short,said D'Artagnanthis has been the will of 
God.
It was not I who killed him,said Athos in a softlow 
tone'twas destiny.
How Musquetonafter being very nearly roastedhad a Narrow 
Escape of being eaten. 
A deep silence reigned for a long time in the boat after the 
fearful scene described. 
The moonwhich had shone for a short timedisappeared 
behind the clouds; every object was again plunged in the 
obscurity that is so awful in the deserts and still more so 
in that liquid desertthe oceanand nothing was heard save 
the whistling of the west wind driving along the tops of the 
crested billows. 
Porthos was the first to speak. 
I have seen,he saidmany dreadful things, but nothing 
that ever agitated me so much as what I have just witnessed. 
Nevertheless, even in my present state of perturbation, I 
protest that I feel happy. I have a hundred pounds' weight 
less upon my chest. I breathe more freely.In factPorthos 
breathed so loud as to do credit to the free play of his 
powerful lungs. 
For my part,observed AramisI cannot say the same as 
you do, Porthos. I am still terrified to such a degree that 
I scarcely believe my eyes. I look around the boat, 
expecting every moment to see that poor wretch holding 
between his hands the poniard plunged into his heart.
Oh! I feel easy,replied Porthos. "The poniard was pointed 
at the sixth rib and buried up to the hilt in his body. I do 
not reproach youAthosfor what you have done. On the 
contrarywhen one aims a blow that is the regulation way to 
strike. So nowI breathe again -- I am happy!" 
Don't be in haste to celebrate a victory, Porthos,
interposed D'Artagnan; "never have we incurred a greater 
danger than we are now encountering. Men may subdue men -they 
cannot overcome the elements. We are now on the seaat 
nightwithout any pilotin a frail bark; should a blast of 
wind upset the boat we are lost." 
Musqueton heaved a deep sigh. 
You are ungrateful, D'Artagnan,said Athos; "yes
ungrateful to Providenceto whom we owe our safety in the 
most miraculous manner. Let us sail before the windand 
unless it changes we shall be drifted either to Calais or 
Boulogne. Should our bark be upset we are five of us good 
swimmersable enough to turn it over againor if notto 
hold on by it. Now we are on the very road which all the 
vessels between Dover and Calais take'tis impossible but 
that we should meet with a fisherman who will pick us up." 
But should we not find any fisherman and should the wind 
shift to the north?
That,said Athoswould be quite another thing; and we 
should nevermore see land until we were upon the other side 
of the Atlantic.
Which implies that we may die of hunger,said Aramis. 
'Tis more than possible,answered the Comte de la Fere. 
Musqueton sighed againmore deeply than before. 
What is the matter? what ails you?asked Porthos. 
I am cold, sir,said Musqueton. 
Impossible! your body is covered with a coating of fat 
which preserves it from the cold air.
Ah! sir, 'tis this very coating of fat that makes me 
shiver.
How is that, Musqueton? 
Alas! your honorin the library of the Chateau of Bracieux 
there are a lot of books of travels." 
What then?
Amongst them the voyages of Jean Mocquet in the time of 
Henry IV.
Well?
In these books, your honor, 'tis told how hungry voyagers, 
drifting out to sea, have a bad habit of eating each other 
and beginning with ---- 
The fattest among them!cried D'Artagnanunable in spite 
of the gravity of the occasion to help laughing. 
Yes, sir,answered Musqueton; "but permit me to say I see 
nothing laughable in it. However he added, turning to 
Porthos, I should not regret dyingsirwere I sure that 
by doing so I might still be useful to you." 
Mouston,replied Porthosmuch affectedshould we ever 
see my castle of Pierrefonds again you shall have as your 
own and for your descendants the vineyard that surrounds the 
farm.
And you should call it `Devotion,'added Aramis; "the 
vineyard of self-sacrificeto transmit to latest ages the 
recollection of your devotion to your master." 
Chevalier,said D'Artagnanlaughingyou could eat a 
piece of Mouston, couldn't you, especially after two or 
three days of fasting?
Oh, no,replied AramisI should much prefer Blaisois; we 
haven't known him so long.
One may readily conceive that during these jokes which were 
intended chiefly to divert Athos from the scene which had 
just taken placethe servantswith the exception of 
Grimaudwere not silent. Suddenly Musqueton uttered a cry 
of delighttaking from beneath one of the benches a bottle 
of wine; and on looking more closely in the same place he 
discovered a dozen similar bottlesbreadand a monster 
junk of salted beef. 
Oh, sir!he criedpassing the bottle to Porthoswe are 
saved -- the bark is supplied with provisions.
This intelligence restored every one save Athos to gayety. 
Zounds!exclaimed Porthos'tis astonishing how empty 
violent agitation makes the stomach.
And he drank off half a bottle at a draught and bit great 
mouthfuls of the bread and meat. 
Now,said Athossleep, or try to sleep, my friends, and 
I will watch.
In a few momentsnotwithstanding their wet clothesthe icy 
blast that blew and the previous scene of terrorthese 
hardy adventurerswith their iron framesinured to every 
hardshipthrew themselves downintending to profit by the 
advice of Athoswho sat at the helmpensively wakeful
guiding the little bark the way it was to gohis eyes fixed 
on the heavensas if he sought to verify not only the road 
to Francebut the benign aspect of protecting Providence. 
After some hours of repose the sleepers were aroused by 
Athos. 
Dawn was shedding its pallidplacid glimmer on the purple 
oceanwhen at the distance of a musket shot from them was 
seen a dark gray massabove which gleamed a triangular 
sail; then masters and servants joined in a fervent cry to 
the crew of that vessel to hear them and to save. 
A bark!all cried together. 
It wasin facta small craft from Dunkirk bound for 
Boulogne. 
A quarter of an hour afterward the rowboat of this craft 
took them all aboard. Grimaud tendered twenty guineas to the 
captainand at nine o'clock in the morninghaving a fair 
windour Frenchmen set foot on their native land. 
Egad! how strong one feels here!said Porthosalmost 
burying his large feet in the sands. "Zounds! I could defy a 
nation!" 
Be quiet, Porthos,said D'Artagnanwe are observed.
We are admired, i'faith,answered Porthos. 
These people who are looking at us are only merchants,
said Athosand are looking more at the cargo than at us.
I shall not trust to that,said the lieutenantand I 
shall make for the Dunes* as soon as possible.
*Sandy hills about Dunkirkfrom which it derives its name. 
The party followed him and soon disappeared with him behind 
the hillocks of sand unobserved. Hereafter a short 
conferencethey proposed to separate. 
And why separate?asked Athos. 
Because,answered the Gasconwe were sent, Porthos and 
I, by Cardinal Mazarin to fight for Cromwell; instead of 
fighting for Cromwell we have served Charles I. -- not the 
same thing by any means. In returning with the Comte de la 
Fere and Monsieur d'Herblay our crime would be confirmed. We 
have circumvented Cromwell, Mordaunt, and the sea, but we 
shall find a certain difficulty in circumventing Mazarin.
You forget,replied Athosthat we consider ourselves 
your prisoners and not free from the engagement we entered 
into.
Truly, Athos,interrupted D'ArtagnanI am vexed that 
such a man as you are should talk nonsense which schoolboys 
would be ashamed of. Chevalier,he continuedaddressing 
Aramiswholeaning proudly on his swordseemed to agree 
with his companionChevalier, Porthos and I run no risk; 
besides, should any ill-luck happen to two of us, will it 
not be much better that the other two should be spared to 
assist those who may be apprehended? Besides, who knows 
whether, divided, we may not obtain a pardon -- you from the 
queen, we from Mazarin -- which, were we all four together, 
would never be granted. Come, Athos and Aramis, go to the 
right; Porthos, come with me to the left; these gentlemen 
should file off into Normandy, whilst we, by the nearest 
road, reach Paris.
He then gave his friends minute directions as to their 
route. 
Ah! my dear friend,exclaimed Athoshow I should admire 
the resources of your mind did I not stop to adore those of 
your heart.
And he gave him his hand. 
Isn't this fox a genius, Athos?asked the Gascon. "No! he 
knows how to crunch fowlsto dodge the huntsman and to find 
his way home by day or by nightthat's all. Wellis all 
said?" 
All.
Then let's count our money and divide it. Ah! hurrah! 
there's the sun! A merry morning to you, Sunshine. 'Tis a 
long time since I saw thee!
Come, come, D'Artagnan,said Athosdo not affect to be 
strong-minded; there are tears in your eyes. Let us be open 
with each other and sincere.
What!cried the Gascondo you think, Athos, we can take 
leave, calmly, of two friends at a time not free from danger 
to you and Aramis?
No,answered Athos; "embrace memy son." 
Zounds!said PorthossobbingI believe I'm crying; but 
how foolish all this is!
Then they embraced. At that moment their fraternal bond of 
union was closer than everand when they partedeach to 
take the route agreed onthey turned back to utter 
affectionate expressionswhich the echoes of the Dunes 
repeated. At last they lost sight of each other. 
Sacrebleu! D'Artagnan,said PorthosI must out with it 
at once, for I can't keep to myself anything I have against 
you; I haven't been able to recognize you in this matter.
Why not?said D'Artagnanwith his wise smile. 
Because if, as you say, Athos and Aramis are in real 
danger, this is not the time to abandon them. For my part, I 
confess to you that I was all ready to follow them and am 
still ready to rejoin them, in spite of all the Mazarins in 
the world.
You would be right, Porthos, but for one thing, which may 
change the current of your ideas; and that is, that it is 
not those gentlemen who are in the greatest danger, it is 
ourselves; it is not to abandon them that we have separated, 
but to avoid compromising them.
Really?said Porthosopening his eyes in astonishment. 
Yes, no doubt. If they are arrested they will only be put 
in the Bastile; if we are arrested it is a matter of the 
Place de Greve.
Oh! oh!said Porthosthere is quite a gap between that 
fate and the baronial coronet you promised me, D'Artagnan.
Bah! perhaps not so great as you think, Porthos; you know 
the proverb, `All roads lead to Rome.'
But how is it that we are incurring greater risks than 
Athos and Aramis?asked Porthos. 
Because they have but fulfilled the mission confided to 
them by Queen Henrietta and we have betrayed that confided 
to us by Mazarin; because, going hence as emissaries to 
Cromwell, we became partisans of King Charles; because, 
instead of helping cut off the royal head condemned by those 
fellows called Mazarin, Cromwell, Joyce, Bridge, Fairfax, 
etc., we very nearly succeeded in saving it.
Upon my word that is true,said Porthos; "but how can you 
supposemy dear friendthat in the midst of his great 
preoccupations General Cromwell has had time to think ---- " 
Cromwell thinks of everything; Cromwell has time for 
everything; and believe me, dear friend, we ought not to 
lose our time -- it is precious. We shall not be safe till 
we have seen Mazarin, and then ---- 
The devil!said Porthos; "what can we say to Mazarin?" 
Leave that to me -- I have my plan. He laughs best who 
laughs last. Cromwell is mighty, Mazarin is tricky, but I 
would rather have to do with them than with the late 
Monsieur Mordaunt.
Ah!said Porthosit is very pleasant to be able to say 
`the late Monsieur Mordaunt.'
My faith, yes,said D'Artagnan. "But we must be going." 
The two immediately started across country toward the road 
to Parisfollowed by Musquetonwhoafter being too cold 
all nightat the end of a quarter of an hour found himself 
too warm. 
The Return. 
During the six weeks that Athos and Aramis had been absent 
from Francethe Parisiansfinding themselves one morning 
without either queen or kingwere greatly annoyed at being 
thus desertedand the absence of Mazarina thing so long 
desireddid not compensate for that of the two august 
fugitives. 
The first feeling that pervaded Paris on hearing of the 
flight to Saint Germainwas that sort of affright which 
seizes children when they awake in the night and find 
themselves alone. A deputation was therefore sent to the 
queen to entreat her to return to Paris; but she not only 
declined to receive the deputiesbut sent an intimation by 
Chancellor Seguierimplying that if the parliament did not 
humble itself before her majesty by negativing all the 
questions that had been the cause of the quarrelParis 
would be besieged the very next day. 
This threatening answerunluckily for the courtproduced 
quite a different effect to that which was intended. It 
wounded the pride of the parliamentwhichsupported by the 
citizensreplied by declaring that Cardinal Mazarin was the 
cause of all the discontent; denounced him as the enemy both 
of the king and the stateand ordered him to retire from 
the court that same day and from France within a week 
afterward; enjoiningin case of disobedience on his part
all the subjects of the king to pursue and take him. 
Mazarin being thus placed beyond the pale of the protection 
of the lawpreparations on both sides were commenced -- by 
the queento attack Parisby the citizensto defend it. 
The latter were occupied in breaking up the pavement and 
stretching chains across the streetswhenheaded by the 
coadjutorappeared the Prince de Conti (the brother of the 
Prince de Conde) and the Duc de Longuevillehis 
brother-in-law. This unexpected band of auxiliaries arrived 
in Paris on the tenth of January and the Prince of Conti was 
namedbut not until after a stormy discussion
generalissimo of the army of the kingout of Paris. 
As for the Duc de Beauforthe arrived from Vendome
according to the annals of the daybringing with him his 
high bearing and his long and beautiful hairqualifications 
which gained him the sovereignty of the marketplaces. 
The Parisian army had organized with the promptness 
characteristic of the bourgeois whenever they are moved by 
any sentiment whatever to disguise themselves as soldiers. 
On the nineteenth the impromptu army had attempted a sortie
more to assure itself and others of its actual existence 
than with any more serious intention. They carried a banner
on which could be read this strange device: "We are seeking 
our king." 
The next following days were occupied in trivial movements 
which resulted only in the carrying off of a few herds of 
cattle and the burning of two or three houses. 
That was still the situation of affairs up to the early days 
of February. On the first day of that month our four 
companions had landed at Boulogneandin two partieshad 
set out for Paris. Toward the end of the fourth day of the 
journey Athos and Aramis reached Nanterrewhich place they 
cautiously passed by on the outskirtsfearing that they 
might encounter some troop from the queen's army. 
It was against his will that Athos took these precautions
but Aramis had very judiciously reminded him that they had 
no right to be imprudentthat they had been charged by King 
Charles with a supreme and sacred missionwhichreceived 
at the foot of the scaffoldcould be accomplished only at 
the feet of Queen Henrietta. Upon thatAthos yielded. 
On reaching the capital Athos and Aramis found it in arms. 
The sentinel at the gate refused even to let them passand 
called his sergeant. 
The sergeantwith the air of importance which such people 
assume when they are clad with military dignitysaid: 
Who are you, gentlemen?
Two gentlemen.
And where do you come from?
From London.
And what are you going to do in Paris?
We are going with a mission to Her Majesty, the Queen of 
England.
Ah, every one seems to be going to see the queen of 
England. We have already at the station three gentlemen 
whose passports are under examination, who are on their way 
to her majesty. Where are your passports?
We have none; we left England, ignorant of the state of 
politics here, having left Paris before the departure of the 
king.
Ah!said the sergeantwith a cunning smileyou are 
Mazarinists, who are sent as spies.
My dear friend,here Athos spokerest assured, if we 
were Mazarinists we should come well prepared with every 
sort of passport. In your situation distrust those who are 
well provided with every formality.
Enter the guardroom,said the sergeant; "we will lay your 
case before the commandant of the post." 
The guardroom was filled with citizens and common people
some playingsome drinkingsome talking. In a corner
almost hidden from viewwere three gentlemenwho had 
preceded Athos and Aramisand an officer was examining 
their passports. The first impulse of these threeand of 
those who last enteredwas to cast an inquiring glance at 
each other. The first arrivals wore long cloaksin whose 
drapery they were carefully enveloped; one of themshorter 
than the restremained pertinaciously in the background. 
When the sergeant on entering the room announced that in all 
probability he was bringing in two Mazarinistsit appeared 
to be the unanimous opinion of the officers on guard that 
they ought not to pass. 
Be it so,said Athos; "yet it is probableon the 
contrarythat we shall enterbecause we seem to have to do 
with sensible people. There seems to be only one thing to 
dowhich isto send our names to Her Majesty the Queen of 
Englandand if she engages to answer for us I presume we 
shall be allowed to enter." 
On hearing these words the shortest of the other three men 
seemed more attentive than ever to what was going on
wrapping his cloak around him more carefully than before. 
Merciful goodness!whispered Aramis to Athosdid you 
see?
What?asked Athos. 
The face of the shortest of those three gentlemen?
No.
He looked to me -- but 'tis impossible.
At this instant the sergeantwho had been for his orders
returnedand pointing to the three gentlemen in cloaks
said: 
The passports are in order; let these three gentlemen 
pass.
The three gentlemen bowed and hastened to take advantage of 
this permission. 
Aramis looked after themand as the last of them passed 
close to him he pressed the hand of Athos. 
What is the matter with you, my friend?asked the latter. 
I have -- doubtless I am dreaming; tell me, sir,he said 
to the sergeantdo you know those three gentlemen who are 
just gone out?
Only by their passports; they are three Frondists, who are 
gone to rejoin the Duc de Longueville.
'Tis strange,said Aramisalmost involuntarily; "I 
fancied that I recognized Mazarin himself." 
The sergeant burst into a fit of laughter. 
He!he cried; "he venture himself amongst usto be hung! 
Not so foolish as all that." 
Ah!muttered AthosI may be mistaken, I haven't the 
unerring eye of D'Artagnan.
Who is speaking of Monsieur D'Artagnan?asked an officer 
who appeared at that moment upon the threshold of the room. 
What!cried Aramis and Athoswhat! Planchet!
Planchet,added Grimaud; "Planchetwith a gorget
indeed!" 
Ah, gentlemen!cried Planchetso you are back again in 
Paris. Oh, how happy you make us! no doubt you come to join 
the princes!
As thou seest, Planchet,said Aramiswhilst Athos smiled 
on seeing what important rank was held in the city militia 
by the former comrade of MusquetonBazin and Grimaud. 
And Monsieur d'Artagnan, of whom you spoke just now, 
Monsieur d'Herblay; may I ask if you have any news of him?
We parted from him four days ago and we have reason to 
believe that he has reached Paris before us.
No, sir; I am sure he hasn't yet arrived. But then he may 
have stopped at Saint Germain.
I don't think so; we appointed to meet at La Chevrette.
I was there this very day.
And had the pretty Madeleine no news?asked Aramis
smiling. 
No, sir, and it must be admitted that she seemed very 
anxious.
In fact,said Aramisthere is no time lost and we made 
our journey quickly. Permit me, then, my dear Athos, without 
inquiring further about our friend, to pay my respects to M. 
Planchet.
Ah, monsieur le chevalier,said Planchetbowing. 
Lieutenant?asked Aramis. 
Lieutenant, with a promise of becoming captain.
'Tis capital; and pray, how did you acquire all these 
honors?
In the first place, gentlemen, you know that I was the 
means of Monsieur de Rochefort's escape; well, I was very 
near being hung by Mazarin and that made me more popular 
than ever.
So, owing to your popularity ---- 
No; thanks to something better. You know, gentlemen, that I 
served the Piedmont regiment and had the honor of being a 
sergeant?
Yes.
Well, one day when no one could drill a mob of citizens, 
who began to march, some with the right foot, others with 
the left, I succeeded, I did, in making them all begin with 
the same foot, and I was made lieutenant on the spot.
So I presume,said Athosthat you have a large number of 
the nobles with you?
Certainly. There are the Prince de Conti, the Duc de 
Longueville, the Duc de Beaufort, the Duc de Bouillon, the 
Marechal de la Mothe, the Marquis de Sevigne, and I don't 
know who, for my part.
And the Vicomte Raoul de Bragelonne?inquired Athosin a 
tremulous voice. "D'Artagnan told me that he had recommended 
him to your carein parting." 
Yes, count; nor have I lost sight of him for a single 
instant since.
Then,said Athos in a tone of delighthe is well? no 
accident has happened to him?
None, sir.
And he lives?
Still at the Hotel of the Great Charlemagne.
And passes his time?
Sometimes with the queen of England, sometimes with Madame 
de Chevreuse. He and the Count de Guiche are like each 
other's shadows.
Thanks, Planchet, thanks!cried Athosextending his hand 
to the lieutenant. 
Oh, sir!Planchet only touched the tips of the count's 
fingers. 
Well, what are you doing, count -- to a former lackey? 
My friend said Athos, he has given me news of Raoul." 
And now, gentlemen,said Planchetwho had not heard what 
they were sayingwhat do you intend to do?
Re-enter Paris, if you will let us, my good Planchet.
Let you. sir? Now, as ever, I am nothing but your servant.
Then turning to his men: 
Allow these gentlemen to pass,he said; "they are friends 
of the Duc de Beaufort." 
Long live the Duc de Beaufort!cried the sentinels. 
The sergeant drew near to Planchet. 
What! without passports?he murmured. 
Without passports,said Planchet. 
Take notice, captain,he continuedgiving Planchet his 
expected titletake notice that one of the three men who 
just now went out from here told me privately to distrust 
these gentlemen.
And I,said Planchetwith dignityI know them and I 
answer for them.
As he said thishe pressed Grimaud's handwho seemed 
honored by the distinction. 
Farewell till we meet again,said Aramisas they took 
leave of Planchet; "if anything happens to us we shall blame 
you for it." 
Sir,said PlanchetI am in all things at your service.
That fellow is no fool,said Aramisas he got on his 
horse. 
How should he be?replied Athoswhilst mounting also
seeing he was used so long to brush your hats.
The Ambassadors. 
The two friends rode rapidly down the declivity of the 
Faubourgbut on arriving at the bottom were surprised to 
find that the streets of Paris had become riversand the 
open places lakes; after the great rains which fell in 
January the Seine had overflowed its banks and the river 
inundated half the capital. The two gentlemen were obliged
thereforeto get off their horses and take a boat; and in 
that strange manner they approached the Louvre. 
Night had closed inand Parisseen thusby the light of 
lanterns flickering on the pools of watercrowded with 
ferry-boats of every kindincluding those that glittered 
with the armed patrolswith the watchwordpassing from 
post to post -- Paris presented such an aspect as to 
strongly seize the senses of Aramisa man most susceptible 
to warlike impressions. 
They reached the queen's apartmentsbut were compelled to 
stop in the ante-chambersince her majesty was at that 
moment giving audience to gentlemen bringing her news from 
England. 
We? too?said Athosto the footman who had given him that 
answernot only bring news from England, but have just 
come from there.
What? then, are your names, gentlemen?
The Comte de la Fere and the Chevalier d'Herblay,said 
Aramis. 
Ah! in that case, gentlemen,said the footmanon hearing 
the names which the queen had so often pronounced with hope
in that case it is another thing, and I think her majesty 
will pardon me for not keeping you here a moment. Please 
follow me,and he went on beforefollowed by Athos and 
Aramis. 
On arriving at the door of the room where the queen was 
receiving he made a sign for them to wait and opening the 
door: 
Madame,he saidI hope your majesty will forgive me for 
disobeying your orders, when you learn that the gentlemen I 
have come to announce are the Comte de la Fere and the 
Chevalier d'Herblay.
On hearing those two names the queen uttered a cry of joy
which the two gentlemen heard. 
Poor queen!murmured Athos. 
Oh, let them come in! let them come in,cried the young 
princessbounding to the door. 
The poor child was constant in her attendance on her mother 
and sought by her filial attentions to make her forget the 
absence of her two sons and her other daughter. 
Come in, gentlemen,repeated the princessopening the 
door herself. 
The queen was seated on a fauteuil and before her were 
standing two or three gentlemenand among them the Duc de 
Chatillonthe brother of the nobleman killed eight or nine 
years previously in a duel on account of Madame de 
Longuevilleon the Place Royale. All these gentlemen had 
been noticed by Athos and Aramis in the guardhouseand when 
the two friends were announced they started and exchanged 
some words in a low tone. "Wellsirs!" cried the queenon 
perceiving the two friendsyou have come, faithful 
friends! But the royal couriers have been more expeditious 
than you, and here are Monsieur de Flamarens and Monsieur de 
Chatillon, who bring me from Her Majesty the Queen Anne of 
Austria, the very latest intelligence.
Aramis and Athos were astounded by the calmnesseven the 
gayety of the queen's manner. 
Go on with your recital, sirs,said the queenturning to 
the Duc de Chatillon. "You said that His MajestyKing 
Charlesmy august consorthad been condemned to death by a 
majority of his subjects!" 
Yes, madame,Chatillon stammered out. 
Athos and Aramis were more and more astonished. 
And that being conducted to the scaffold,resumed the 
queen -- "ohmy lord! ohmy king! -- and that being led to 
the scaffold he had been saved by an indignant people." 
Just so madame,replied Chatillonin so low a voice that 
though the two friends were listening eagerly they could 
hardly hear this affirmation. 
The queen clasped her hands in enthusiastic gratitude
whilst her daughter threw her arms around her mother's neck 
and kissed her -- her own eyes streaming with tears. 
Now, madame, nothing remains to me except to proffer my 
respectful homage,said Chatillonwho felt confused and 
ashamed beneath the stern gaze of Athos. 
One moment, yes,answered the queen. "One moment -- I beg 
-- for here are the Chevalier d'Herblay and the Comte de la 
Ferejust arrived from Londonand they can give youas 
eye-witnessessuch details as you can convey to the queen
my royal sister. Speakgentlemenspeak -- I am listening; 
conceal nothinggloss over nothing. Since his majesty still 
livessince the honor of the throne is safeeverything 
else is a matter of indifference to me." 
Athos turned pale and laid his hand on his heart. 
Well!exclaimed the queenwho remarked this movement and 
his paleness. "Speaksir! I beg you to do so." 
I beg you to excuse me, madame; I wish to add nothing to 
the recital of these gentlemen until they perceive 
themselves that they have perhaps been mistaken.
Mistaken!cried the queenalmost suffocated by emotion; 
mistaken! what has happened, then?
Sir,interposed Monsieur de Flamarens to Athosif we are 
mistaken the error has originated with the queen. I do not 
suppose you will have the presumption to set it to rights -that 
would be to accuse Her Majesty, Queen Anne, of 
falsehood.
With the queen, sir?replied Athosin his calmvibrating 
voice. 
Yes,murmured Flamarenslowering his eyes. 
Athos sighed deeply. 
Or rather, sir,said Aramiswith his peculiar irritating 
politenessthe error of the person who was with you when 
we met you in the guardroom; for if the Comte de la Fere and 
I are not mistaken, we saw you in the company of a third 
gentleman.
Chatillon and Flamarens started. 
Explain yourself, count!cried the queenwhose anxiety 
grew greater every moment. "On your brow I read despair -your 
lips falter ere you announce some terrible tidings -your 
hands tremble. Ohmy God! my God! what has happened?" 
Lord!ejaculated the young princessfalling on her knees
have mercy on us!
Sir,said Chatillonif you bring bad tidings it will be 
cruel in you to announce them to the queen.
Aramis went so close to Chatillon as almost to touch him. 
Sir,said hewith compressed lips and flashing eyesyou 
have not the presumption to instruct the Comte de la Fere 
and myself what we ought to say here?
During this brief altercation Athoswith his hands on his 
hearthis head bent lowapproached the queen and in a 
voice of deepest sorrow said: 
Madame, princes -- who by nature are above other men -receive 
from Heaven courage to support greater misfortunes 
than those of lower rank, for their hearts are elevated as 
their fortunes. We ought not, therefore, I think, to act 
toward a queen so illustrious as your majesty as we should 
act toward a woman of our lowlier condition. Queen, destined 
as you are to endure every sorrow on this earth, hear the 
result of our unhappy mission.
Athoskneeling down before the queentrembling and very 
colddrew from his bosominclosed in the same casethe 
order set in diamonds which the queen had given to Lord de 
Winter and the wedding ring which Charles I. before his 
death had placed in the hands of Aramis. Since the moment he 
had first received these two mementoes Athos had never 
parted with them. 
He opened the case and offered them to the queen with deep 
and silent anguish. 
The queen stretched out her handseized the ringpressed 
it convulsively to her lips -- and without being able to 
breathe a sighto give vent to a sobshe extended her 
armsbecame deadly paleand fell senseless in the arms of 
her attendants and her daughter. 
Athos kissed the hem of the robe of the widowed queen and 
risingwith a dignity that made a deep impression on those 
around: 
I, the Comte de la Fere, a gentleman who has never deceived 
any human being, swear before God and before this unhappy 
queen, that all that was possible to save the king of 
England was done whilst we were on English ground. Now, 
chevalier,he addedturning to Aramislet us go. Our 
duty is fulfilled.
Not yet.said Aramis; "we have still a word to say to 
these gentlemen." 
And turning to Chatillon: "Sirbe so good as not to go away 
without giving me an opportunity to tell you something I 
cannot say before the queen." 
Chatillon bowed in token of assent and they all went out
stopping at the window of a gallery on the ground floor. 
Sir,said Aramisyou allowed yourself just now to treat 
us in a most extraordinary manner. That would not be 
endurable in any case, and is still less so on the part of 
those who came to bring the queen the message of a liar.
Sir!cried De Chatillon. 
What have you done with Monsieur de Bruy? Has he by any 
possibility gone to change his face which was too like that 
of Monsieur de Mazarin? There is an abundance of Italian 
masks at the Palais Royal, from harlequin even to 
pantaloon.
Chevalier! chevalier!said Athos. 
Leave me alone,said Aramis impatiently. "You know well 
that I don't like to leave things half finished." 
Conclude, then, sir,answered De Chatillonwith as much 
hauteur as Aramis. 
Gentlemen,resumed Aramisany one but the Comte de la 
Fere and myself would have had you arrested -- for we have 
friends in Paris -- but we are contented with another 
course. Come and converse with us for just five minutes, 
sword in hand, upon this deserted terrace.
One moment, gentlemen,cried Flamarens. "I know well that 
the proposition is temptingbut at present it is impossible 
to accept it." 
And why not?said Aramisin his tone of raillery. "Is it 
Mazarin's proximity that makes you so prudent?" 
Oh, you hear that, Flamarens!said Chatillon. "Not to 
reply would be a blot on my name and my honor." 
That is my opinion,said Aramis. 
You will not reply, however, and these gentlemen, I am 
sure, will presently be of my opinion.
Aramis shook his head with a motion of indescribable 
insolence. 
Chatillon saw the motion and put his hand to his sword. 
Willingly,replied De Chatillon. 
Duke,said Flamarensyou forget that to-morrow you are 
to command an expedition of the greatest importance, 
projected by the prince, assented to by the queen. Until 
to-morrow evening you are not at your own disposal.
Let it be then the day after to-morrow,said Aramis. 
To-morrow, rather,said De Chatillonif you will take 
the trouble of coming so far as the gates of Charenton.
How can you doubt it, sir? For the pleasure of a meeting 
with you I would go to the end of the world.
Very well, to-morrow, sir.
I shall rely on it. Are you going to rejoin your cardinal? 
Swear first, on your honor, not to inform him of our 
return.
Conditions?
Why not?
Because it is for victors to make conditions, and you are 
not yet victors, gentlemen.
Then let us draw on the spot. It is all one to us -- to us 
who do not command to-morrow's expedition.
Chatillon and Flamarens looked at each other. There was such 
irony in the words and in the bearing of Aramis that the 
duke had great difficulty in bridling his angerbut at a 
word from Flamarens he restrained himself and contented 
himself with saying: 
You promise, sir -- that's agreed -- that I shall find you 
to-morrow at Charenton?
Oh, don't be afraid, sir,replied Aramis; and the two 
gentlemen shortly afterward left the Louvre. 
For what reason is all this fume and fury?asked Athos. 
What have they done to you?
They -- did you not see what they did?
No.
They laughed when we swore that we had done our duty in 
England. Now, if they believed us, they laughed in order to 
insult us; if they did not believe it they insulted us all 
the more. However, I'm glad not to fight them until 
to-morrow. I hope we shall have something better to do 
to-night than to draw the sword.
What have we to do?
Egad! to take Mazarin.
Athos curled his lip with disdain. 
These undertakings do not suit me, as you know, Aramis.
Why?
Because it is taking people unawares.
Really, Athos, you would make a singular general. You would 
fight only by broad daylight, warn your foe before an 
attack, and never attempt anything by night lest you should 
be accused of taking advantage of the darkness.
Athos smiled. 
You know one cannot change his nature,he said. "Besides
do you know what is our situationand whether Mazarin's 
arrest wouldn't be rather an encumbrance than an advantage?" 
Say at once you disapprove of my proposal.
I think you ought to do nothing, since you exacted a 
promise from these gentlemen not to let Mazarin know that we 
were in France.
I have entered into no engagement and consider myself quite 
free. Come, come.
Where?
Either to seek the Duc de Beaufort or the Duc de Bouillon, 
and to tell them about this.
Yes, but on one condition -- that we begin by the 
coadjutor. He is a priest, learned in cases of conscience, 
and we will tell him ours.
It was then agreed that they were to go first to Monsieur de 
Bouillonas his house came first; but first of all Athos 
begged that he might go to the Hotel du Grand Charlemagne
to see Raoul. 
They re-entered the boat which had brought them to the 
Louvre and thence proceeded to the Halles; and taking up 
Grimaud and Blaisoisthey went on foot to the Rue 
Guenegaud. 
But Raoul was not at the Hotel du Grand Charlemagne. He had 
received a message from the princeto whom he had hastened 
with Olivain the instant he had received it. 
The three Lieutenants of the Generalissimo. 
The night was darkbut still the town resounded with those 
noises that disclose a city in a state of siege. Athos and 
Aramis did not proceed a hundred steps without being stopped 
by sentinels placed before the barricadeswho demanded the 
watchword; and on their saying that they were going to 
Monsieur de Bouillon on a mission of importance a guide was 
given them under pretext of conducting thembut in fact as 
a spy over their movements. 
On arriving at the Hotel de Bouillon they came across a 
little troop of three cavalierswho seemed to know every 
possible password; for they walked without either guide or 
escortand on arriving at the barricades had nothing to do 
but to speak to those who guarded themwho instantly let 
them pass with evident deferencedue probably to their high 
birth. 
On seeing them Athos and Aramis stood still. 
Oh!cried Aramisdo you see, count?
Yes,said Athos. 
Who do these three cavaliers appear to you to be?
What do you think, Aramis?
Why, they are our men.
You are not mistaken; I recognize Monsieur de Flamarens.
And I, Monsieur de Chatillon.
As to the cavalier in the brown cloak ---- 
It is the cardinal.
In person.
How the devil do they venture so near the Hotel de 
Bouillon?
Athos smiledbut did not reply. Five minutes afterward they 
knocked at the prince's door. 
This door was guarded by a sentinel and there was also a 
guard placed in the courtyardready to obey the orders of 
the Prince de Conti's lieutenant. 
Monsieur de Bouillon had the goutbut notwithstanding his 
illnesswhich had prevented his mounting on horseback for 
the last month ---that issince Paris had been besieged -he 
was ready to receive the Comte de la Fere and the 
Chevalier d'Herblay. 
He was in bedbut surrounded with all the paraphernalia of 
war. Everywhere were swordspistolscuirassesand 
arquebusesand it was plain that as soon as his gout was 
better Monsieur de Bouillon would give a pretty tangle to 
the enemies of the parliament to unravel. Meanwhileto his 
great regretas he saidhe was obliged to keep his bed. 
Ah, gentlemen,he criedas the two friends enteredyou 
are very happy! you can ride, you can go and come and fight 
for the cause of the people. But I, as you see, am nailed to 
my bed -- ah! this demon, gout -- this demon, gout!
My lord,said Athoswe are just arrived from England and 
our first concern is to inquire after your health.
Thanks, gentlemen, thanks! As you see, my health is but 
indifferent. But you come from England. And King Charles is 
well, as I have just heard?
He is dead, my lord!said Aramis. 
Pooh!said the duketoo much astonished to believe it 
true. 
Dead on the scaffold; condemned by parliament.
Impossible!
And executed in our presence.
What, then, has Monsieur de Flamarens been telling me?
Monsieur de Flamarens?
Yes, he has just gone out.
Athos smiled. "With two companions?" he said. 
With two companions, yes,replied the duke. Then he added 
with a certain uneasinessDid you meet them?
Why, yes, I think so -- in the street,said Athos; and he 
looked smilingly at Aramiswho looked at him with an 
expression of surprise. 
The devil take this gout!cried Monsieur de Bouillon
evidently ill at ease. 
My lord,said Athoswe admire your devotion to the cause 
you have espoused, in remaining at the head of the army 
whilst so ill, in so much pain.
One must,replied Monsieur de Bouillonsacrifice one's 
comfort to the public good; but I confess to you I am now 
almost exhausted. My spirit is willing, my head is clear, 
but this demon, the gout, o'ercrows me. I confess, if the 
court would do justice to my claims and give the head of my 
house the title of prince, and if my brother De Turenne were 
reinstated in his command I would return to my estates and 
leave the court and parliament to settle things between 
themselves as they might.
You are perfectly right, my lord.
You think so? At this very moment the court is making 
overtures to me; hitherto I have repulsed them; but since 
such men as you assure me that I am wrong in doing so, I've 
a good mind to follow your advice and to accept a 
proposition made to me by the Duc de Chatillon just now.
Accept it, my lord, accept it,said Aramis. 
Faith! yes. I am even sorry that this evening I almost 
repulsed -- but there will be a conference to-morrow and we 
shall see.
The two friends saluted the duke. 
Go, gentlemen,he said; "you must be much fatigued after 
your voyage. Poor King Charles! Butafter allhe was 
somewhat to blame in all that business and we may console 
ourselves with the reflection that France has no cause of 
reproach in the matter and did all she could to serve him." 
Oh! as to that,said Aramiswe are witnesses. Mazarin 
especially ---- 
Yes, do you know, I am very glad to hear you give that 
testimony; the cardinal has some good in him, and if he were 
not a foreigner -- well, he would be more justly estimated. 
Oh! the devil take this gout!
Athos and Aramis took their leavebut even in the 
ante-chamber they could still hear the duke's cries; he was 
evidently suffering the tortures of the damned. 
When they reached the streetAramis said: 
Well, Athos, what do you think?
Of whom?
Pardieu! of Monsieur de Bouillon.
My friend, I think that he is much troubled with gout.
You noticed that I didn't breathe a word as to the purpose 
of our visit?
You did well; you would have caused him an access of his 
disease. Let us go to Monsieur de Beaufort.
The two friends went to the Hotel de Vendome. It was ten 
o'clock when they arrived. The Hotel de Vendome was not less 
guarded than the Hotel de Bouillonand presented as warlike 
an appearance. There were sentinelsa guard in the court
stacks of armsand horses saddled. Two horsemen going out 
as Athos and Aramis entered were obliged to give place to 
them. 
Ah! ah! gentlemen,said Aramisdecidedly it is a night 
for meetings. We shall be very unfortunate if, after meeting 
so often this evening, we should not succeed in meeting 
to-morrow.
Oh, as to that, sir,replied Chatillon (for it was he who
with Flamarenswas leaving the Duc de Beaufort)you may 
be assured; for if we meet by night without seeking each 
other, much more shall we meet by day when wishing it.
I hope that is true,said Aramis. 
As for me, I am sure of it,said the duke. 
De Flamarens and De Chatillon continued on their way and 
Athos and Aramis dismounted. 
Hardly had they given the bridles of their horses to their 
lackeys and rid themselves of their cloaks when a man 
approached themand after looking at them for an instant by 
the doubtful light of the lantern hung in the centre of the 
courtyard he uttered an exclamation of joy and ran to 
embrace them. 
Comte de la Fere!the man cried out; "Chevalier d'Herblay! 
How does it happen that you are in Paris?" 
Rochefort!cried the two friends. 
Yes! we arrived four or five days ago from the Vendomois, 
as you know, and we are going to give Mazarin something to 
do. You are still with us, I presume?
More than ever. And the duke?
Furious against the cardinal. You know his success -- our 
dear duke? He is really king of Paris; he can't go out 
without being mobbed by his admirers.
Ah! so much the better! Can we have the honor of seeing his 
highness?
I shall be proud to present you,and Rochefort walked on. 
Every door was opened to him. Monsieur de Beaufort was at 
supperbut he rose quickly on hearing the two friends 
announced. 
Ah!he criedby Jove! you're welcome, sirs. You are 
coming to sup with me, are you not? Boisgoli, tell Noirmont 
that I have two guests. You know Noirmont, do you not? The 
successor of Father Marteau who makes the excellent pies you 
know of. Boisgoli, let him send one of his best, but not 
such a one as he made for La Ramee. Thank God! we don't want 
either rope ladders or gag-pears now.
My lord,said Athosdo not let us disturb you. We came 
merely to inquire after your health and to take your 
orders.
As to my health, since it has stood five years of prison, 
with Monsieur de Chavigny to boot, 'tis excellent! As to my 
orders, since every one gives his own commands in our party, 
I shall end, if this goes on, by giving none at all.
In short, my lord,said Athosglancing at Aramisyour 
highness is discontented with your party?
Discontented, sir! say my highness is furious! To such a 
degree, I assure you, though I would not say so to others, 
that if the queen, acknowledging the injuries she has done 
me, would recall my mother and give me the reversion of the 
admiralty, which belonged to my father and was promised me 
at his death, well! it would not be long before I should be 
training dogs to say that there were greater traitors in 
France than the Cardinal Mazarin!
At this Athos and Aramis could not help exchanging not only 
a look but a smile; and had they not known it for a fact
this would have told them that De Chatillon and De Flamarens 
had been there. 
My lord,said Athoswe are satisfied; we came here only 
to express our loyalty and to say that we are at your 
lordship's service and his most faithful servants.
My most faithful friends, gentlemen, my most faithful 
friends; you have proved it. And if ever I am reconciled 
with the court I shall prove to you, I hope, that I remain 
your friend, as well as that of -- what the devil are their 
names -- D'Artagnan and Porthos?
D'Artagnan and Porthos.
Ah, yes. You understand, then, Comte de la Fere, you 
understand, Chevalier d'Herblay, that I am altogether and 
always at your service.
Athos and Aramis bowed and went out. 
My dear Athos,cried AramisI think you consented to 
accompany me only to give me a lesson -- God forgive me!
Wait a little, Aramis; it will be time for you to perceive 
my motive when we have paid our visit to the coadjutor.
Let us then go to the archiepiscopal palace,said Aramis. 
They directed their horses to the city. On arriving at the 
cradle from which Paris sprang they found it inundated with 
waterand it was again necessary to take a boat. The palace 
rose from the bosom of the waterand to see the number of 
boats around it one would have fancied one's self not in 
Parisbut in Venice. Some of these boats were dark and 
mysteriousothers noisy and lighted up with torches. The 
friends slid in through this congestion of embarkation and 
landed in their turn. The palace was surrounded with water
but a kind of staircase had been fixed to the lower walls; 
and the only difference wasthat instead of entering by the 
doorspeople entered by the windows. 
Thus did Athos and Aramis make their appearance in the 
ante-chamberwhere about a dozen noblemen were collected in 
waiting. 
Good heavens!said Aramis to Athosdoes the coadjutor 
intend to indulge himself in the pleasure of making us cool 
our hearts off in his ante-chamber?
My dear friend, we must take people as we find them. The 
coadjutor is at this moment one of the seven kings of Paris, 
and has a court. Let us send in our names, and if he does 
not send us a suitable message we will leave him to his own 
affairs or those of France. Let us call one of these 
lackeys, with a demi-pistole in the left hand.
Exactly so,cried Aramis. "Ah! if I'm not mistaken here's 
Bazin. Come herefellow." 
Bazinwho was crossing the ante-chamber majestically in his 
clerical dressturned around to see who the impertinent 
gentleman was who thus addressed him; but seeing his friends 
he went up to them quickly and expressed delight at seeing 
them. 
A truce to compliments,said Aramis; "we want to see the 
coadjutorand instantlyas we are in haste." 
Certainly, sir -- it is not such lords as you are who are 
allowed to wait in the ante-chamber, only just now he has a 
secret conference with Monsieur de Bruy.
De Bruy!cried the friends'tis then useless our seeing 
monsieur the coadjutor this evening,said Aramisso we 
give it up.
And they hastened to quit the palacefollowed by Bazinwho 
was lavish of bows and compliments. 
Well,said Athoswhen Aramis and he were in the boat 
againare you beginning to be convinced that we should 
have done a bad turn to all these people in arresting 
Mazarin?
You are wisdom incarnate, Athos,Aramis replied. 
What had especially been observed by the two friends was the 
little interest taken by the court of France in the terrible 
events which had occurred in Englandwhich they thought 
should have arrested the attention of all Europe. 
In factaside from a poor widow and a royal orphan who wept 
in the corner of the Louvreno one appeared to be aware 
that Charles I. had ever lived and that he had perished on 
the scaffold. 
The two friends made an appointment for ten o'clock on the 
following day; for though the night was well advanced when 
they reached the door of the hotelAramis said that he had 
certain important visits to make and left Athos to enter 
alone. 
At ten o'clock the next day they met again. Athos had been 
out since six o'clock. 
Well, have you any news?Athos asked. 
Nothing. No one has seen D'Artagnan and Porthos has, not 
appeared. Have you anything?
Nothing.
The devil!said Aramis. 
In fact,said Athosthis delay is not natural; they took 
the shortest route and should have arrived before we did.
Add to that D'Artagnan's rapidity in action and that he is 
not the man to lose an hour, knowing that we were expecting 
him.
He expected, you will remember, to be here on the fifth.
And here we are at the ninth. This evening the margin of 
possible delay expires.
What do you think should be done,asked Athos. "if we have 
no news of them to-night?" 
Pardieu! we must go and look for them.
All right,said Athos. 
But Raoul?said Aramis. 
A light cloud passed over the count's face. 
Raoul gives me much uneasiness,he said. "He received 
yesterday a message from the Prince de Conde; he went to 
meet him at Saint Cloud and has not returned." 
Have you seen Madame de Chevreuse?
She was not at home. And you, Aramis, you were going, I 
think, to visit Madame de Longueville.
I did go there.
Well?
She was no longer there, but she had left her new address.
Where was she?
Guess; I give you a thousand chances.
How should I know where the most beautiful and active of 
the Frondists was at midnight? for I presume it was when you 
left me that you went to visit her.
At the Hotel de Ville, my dear fellow.
What! at the Hotel de Ville? Has she, then, been appointed 
provost of merchants?
No; but she has become queen of Paris, ad interim, and 
since she could not venture at once to establish herself in 
the Palais Royal or the Tuileries, she is installed at the 
Hotel de Ville, where she is on the point of giving an heir 
or an heiress to that dear duke.
You didn't tell me of that, Aramis.
Really? It was my forgetfulness then; pardon me.
Now,asked Athoswhat are we to do with ourselves till 
evening? Here we are without occupation, it seems to me.
You forget, my friend, that we have work cut out for us in 
the direction of Charenton; I hope to see Monsieur de 
Chatillon, whom I've hated for a long time, there.
Why have you hated him?
Because he is the brother of Coligny.
Ah, true! he who presumed to be a rival of yours, for which 
he was severely punished; that ought to satisfy you.
'Yes, but it does not; I am rancorous -- the only stigma 
that proves me to be a churchman. Do you understand? You 
understand that you are in no way obliged to go with me.
Come, now,said Athosyou are joking.
In that case, my dear friend, if you are resolved to 
accompany me there is no time to lose; the drum beats; I 
observed cannon on the road; I saw the citizens in order of 
battle on the Place of the Hotel de Ville; certainly the 
fight will be in the direction of Charenton, as the Duc de 
Chatillon said.
I supposed,said Athosthat last night's conferences 
would modify those warlike arrangements.
No doubt; but they will fight, none the less, if only to 
mask the conferences.
Poor creatures!said Athoswho are going to be killed, 
in order that Monsieur de Bouillon may have his estate at 
Sedan restored to him, that the reversion of the admiralty 
may be given to the Duc de Beaufort, and that the coadjutor 
may be made a cardinal.
Come, come, dear Athos, confess that you would not be so 
philosophical if your Raoul were to be involved in this 
affair.
Perhaps you speak the truth, Aramis.
Well, let us go, then, where the fighting is, for that is 
the most likely place to meet with D'Artagnan, Porthos, and 
possibly even Raoul. Stop, there are a fine body of citizens 
passing; quite attractive, by Jupiter! and their captain -see! 
he has the true military style.
What, ho!said Grimaud. 
What?asked Athos. 
Planchet, sir.
Lieutenant yesterday,said Aramiscaptain to-day, 
colonel, doubtless, to-morrow; in a fortnight the fellow 
will be marshal of France.
Question him about the fight,said Athos. 
Planchetprouder than ever of his new dutiesdeigned to 
explain to the two gentlemen that he was ordered to take up 
his position on the Place Royale with two hundred men
forming the rear of the army of Parisand to march on 
Charenton when necessary. 
This day will be a warm one,said Planchetin a warlike 
tone. 
No doubt,said Aramisbut it is far from here to the 
enemy.
Sir, the distance will be diminished,said a subordinate. 
Aramis salutedthen turning toward Athos: 
I don't care to camp on the Place Royale with all these 
people,he said. "Shall we go forward? We shall see better 
what is going on." 
And then Monsieur de Chatillon will not come to the Place 
Royale to look for you. Come, then, my friend, we will go 
forward.
Haven't you something to say to Monsieur de Flamarens on 
your own account?
My friend,said AthosI have made a resolution never to 
draw my sword save when it is absolutely necessary.
And how long ago was that?
When I last drew my poniard.
Ah! Good! another souvenir of Monsieur Mordaunt. Well, my 
friend, nothing now is lacking except that you should feel 
remorse for having killed that fellow.
Hush!said Athosputting a finger on his lipswith the 
sad smile peculiar to him; "let us talk no more of Mordaunt 
-- it will bring bad luck." And Athos set forward toward 
Charentonfollowed closely by Aramis. 
The Battle of Charenton. 
As Athos and Aramis proceededand passed different 
companies on the roadthey became aware that they were 
arriving near the field of battle. 
Ah! my friend!cried Athossuddenlywhere have you 
brought us? I fancy I perceive around us faces of different 
officers in the royal army; is not that the Duc de Chatillon 
himself coming toward us with his brigadiers?
Good-day, sirs,said the dukeadvancing; "you are puzzled 
by what you see herebut one word will explain everything. 
There is now a truce and a conference. The princeMonsieur 
de Retzthe Duc de Beaufortthe Duc de Bouillonare 
talking over public affairs. Now one of two things must 
happen: either matters will not be arrangedor they will be 
arrangedin which last case I shall be relieved of my 
command and we shall still meet again." 
Sir,said Aramisyou speak to the point. Allow me to ask 
you a question: Where are the plenipotentiaries?
At Charenton, in the second house on the right on entering 
from the direction of Paris.
And was this conference arranged beforehand?
No, gentlemen, it seems to be the result of certain 
propositions which Mazarin made last night to the 
Parisians.
Athos and Aramis exchanged smiles; for they well knew what 
those propositions wereto whom they had been made and who 
had made them. 
And that house in which the plenipotentiaries are,asked 
Athosbelongs to ---- 
To Monsieur de Chanleu, who commands your troops at 
Charenton. I say your troops, for I presume that you 
gentlemen are Frondeurs?
Yes, almost,said Aramis. 
We are for the king and the princes,added Athos. 
We must understand each other,said the duke. "The king is 
with us and his generals are the Duke of Orleans and the 
Prince de Condealthough I must add 'tis almost impossible 
now to know to which party any one belongs." 
Yes,answered Athosbut his right place is in our ranks, 
with the Prince de Conti, De Beaufort, D'Elbeuf, and De 
Bouillon; but, sir, supposing that the conference is broken 
off -- are you going to try to take Charenton?
Such are my orders.
Sir, since you command the cavalry ---- 
Pardon me, I am commander-in-chief.
So much the better. You must know all your officers -- I 
mean those more distinguished.
Why, yes, very nearly.
Will you then kindly tell me if you have in your command 
the Chevalier d'Artagnan, lieutenant in the musketeers?
No, sir, he is not with us; he left Paris more than six 
weeks ago and is believed to have gone on a mission to 
England.
I knew that, but I supposed he had returned.
No, sir; no one has seen him. I can answer positively on 
that point, for the musketeers belong to our forces and 
Monsieur de Cambon, the substitute for Monsieur d'Artagnan, 
still holds his place.
The two friends looked at each other. 
You see,said Athos. 
It is strange,said Aramis. 
It is absolutely certain that some misfortune has happened 
to them on the way.
If we have no news of them this evening, to-morrow we must 
start.
Athos nodded affirmativelythen turning: 
And Monsieur de Bragelonne, a young man fifteen years of 
age, attached to the Prince de Conde -- has he the honor of 
being known to you?diffident in allowing the sarcastic 
Aramis to perceive how strong were his paternal feelings. 
Yes, surely, he came with the prince; a charming young man; 
he is one of your friends then, monsieur le comte?
Yes, sir,answered Athosagitated; "so much so that I 
wish to see him if possible." 
Quite possible, sir; do me the favor to accompany me and I 
will conduct you to headquarters.
Halloo, there!cried Aramisturning around; "what a noise 
behind us!" 
A body of cavaliers is coming toward us,said Chatillon. 
I recognize the coadjutor by his Frondist hat.
And I the Duc de Beaufort by his white plume of ostrich 
feathers.
They are coming, full gallop; the prince is with them -
ah! he is leaving them!
They are beating the rappel!cried Chatillon; "we must 
discover what is going on." 
In factthey saw the soldiers running to their arms; the 
trumpets sounded; the drums beat; the Duc de Beaufort drew 
his sword. On his side the prince sounded a rappel and all 
the officers of the royalist armymingling momentarily with 
the Parisian troopsran to him. 
Gentlemen,cried Chatillonthe truce is broken, that is 
evident; they are going to fight; go, then, into Charenton, 
for I shall begin in a short time -- there's a signal from 
the prince!
The cornet of a troop had in fact just raised the standard 
of the prince. 
Farewell, till the next time we meet,cried Chatillonand 
he set offfull gallop. 
Athos and Aramis turned also and went to salute the 
coadjutor and the Duc de Beaufort. As to the Duc de 
Bouillonhe had such a fit of gout as obliged him to return 
to Paris in a litter; but his place was well filled by the 
Duc d'Elbeuf and his four sonsranged around him like a 
staff. Meantimebetween Charenton and the royal army was 
left a space which looked ready to serve as a last resting 
place for the dead. 
Gentlemen,cried the coadjutortightening his sashwhich 
he woreafter the fashion of the ancient military prelates
over his archiepiscopal simarthere's the enemy 
approaching. Let us save them half of their journey.
And without caring whether he were followed or not he set 
off; his regimentwhich bore the name of the regiment of 
Corinthfrom the name of his archbishopricdarted after 
him and began the fight. Monsieur de Beaufort sent his 
cavalrytoward Etampes and Monsieur de Chanleuwho 
defended the placewas ready to resist an assaultor if 
the enemy were repulsedto attempt a sortie. 
The battle soon became general and the coadjutor performed 
miracles of valor. His proper vocation had always been the 
sword and he was delighted whenever he could draw it from 
the scabbardno matter for whom or against whom. 
Chanleuwhose fire at one time repulsed the royal regiment
thought that the moment was come to pursue it; but it was 
reformed and led again to the charge by the Duc de Chatillon 
in person. This charge was so fierceso skillfully 
conductedthat Chanleu was almost surrounded. He commanded 
a retreatwhich beganstep by stepfoot by foot; 
unhappilyin an instant he fellmortally wounded. De 
Chatillon saw him fall and announced it in a loud voice to 
his menwhich raised their spirits and completely 
disheartened their enemiesso that every man thought only 
of his own safety and tried to gain the trencheswhere the 
coadjutor was trying to reform his disorganized regiment. 
Suddenly a squadron of cavalry galloped up to encounter the 
royal troopswho were enteringpele-melethe 
intrenchments with the fugitives. Athos and Aramis charged 
at the head of their squadrons; Aramis with sword and pistol 
in his handsAthos with his sword in his scabbardhis 
pistol in his saddle-bags; calm and cool as if on the 
paradeexcept that his noble and beautiful countenance 
became sad as he saw slaughtered so many men who were 
sacrificed on the one side to the obstinacy of royalty and 
on the other to the personal rancor of the princes. Aramis
on the contrarystruck right and left and was almost 
delirious with excitement. His bright eyes kindledand his 
mouthso finely formedassumed a wicked smile; every blow 
he aimed was sureand his pistol finished the deed -annihilated 
the wounded wretch who tried to rise again. 
On the opposite side two cavaliersone covered with a gilt 
cuirassthe other wearing simply a buff doubletfrom which 
fell the sleeves of a vest of blue velvetcharged in front. 
The cavalier in the gilt cuirass fell upon Aramis and struck 
a blow that Aramis parried with his wonted skill. 
Ah! 'tis you, Monsieur de Chatillon,cried the chevalier; 
welcome to you -- I expected you.
I hope I have not made you wait too long, sir,said the 
duke; "at all eventshere I am." 
Monsieur de Chatillon,cried Aramistaking from his 
saddle-bags a second pistolI think if your pistols have 
been discharged you are a dead man.
Thank God, sir, they are not!
And the dukepointing his pistol at Aramisfired. But 
Aramis bent his head the instant he saw the duke's finger 
press the trigger and the ball passed without touching him. 
Oh! you've missed me,cried Aramisbut I swear to 
Heaven! I will not miss you.
If I give you time!cried the dukespurring on his horse 
and rushing upon him with his drawn sword. 
Aramis awaited him with that terrible smile which was 
peculiar to him on such occasionsand Athoswho saw the 
duke advancing toward Aramis with the rapidity of lightning
was just going to cry outFire! fire, then!when the shot 
was fired. De Chatillon opened his arms and fell back on the 
crupper of his horse. 
The ball had entered his breast through a notch in the 
cuirass. 
I am a dead man,he saidand fell from his horse to the 
ground. 
I told you this, I am now grieved I have kept my word. Can 
I be of any use to you?
Chatillon made a sign with his hand and Aramis was about to 
dismount when he received a violent shock; 'twas a thrust 
from a swordbut his cuirass turned aside the blow. 
He turned around and seized his new antagonist by the wrist
when he started backexclaimingRaoul!
Raoul?cried Athos. 
The young man recognized at the same instant the voices of 
his father and the Chevalier d'Herblay; two officers in the 
Parisian forces rushed at that instant on Raoulbut Aramis 
protected him with his sword. 
My prisoner!he cried. 
Athos took his son's horse by the bridle and led him forth 
out of the melee. 
At this crisis of the battlethe princewho had been 
seconding De Chatillon in the second lineappeared in the 
midst of the fight; his eagle eye made him known and his 
blows proclaimed the hero. 
On seeing himthe regiment of Corinthwhich the coadjutor 
had not been able to reorganize in spite of all his efforts
threw itself into the midst of the Parisian forcesput them 
into confusion and re-entered Charenton flying. The 
coadjutordragged along with his fugitive forcespassed 
near the group formed by AthosRaoul and Aramis. Aramis 
could not in his jealousy avoid being pleased at the 
coadjutor's misfortuneand was about to utter some bon mot 
more witty than correctwhen Athos stopped him. 
On, on!he criedthis is no moment for compliments; or 
rather, back, for the battle seems to be lost by the 
Frondeurs.
It is a matter of indifference to me,said Aramis; "I came 
here only to meet De Chatillon; I have met himI am 
contented; 'tis something to have met De Chatillon in a 
duel!" 
And besides, we have a prisoner,said Athospointing to 
Raoul. 
The three cavaliers continued their road on full gallop. 
What were you doing in the battle, my friend?inquired 
Athos of the youth; "'twas not your right placeI thinkas 
you were not equipped for an engagement!" 
I had no intention of fighting to-day, sir; I was charged, 
indeed, with a mission to the cardinal and had set out for 
Rueil, when, seeing Monsieur de Chatillon charge, an 
invincible desire possessed me to charge at his side. It was 
then that he told me two cavaliers of the Parisian army were 
seeking me and named the Comte de la Fere.
What! you knew we were there and yet wished to kill your 
friend the chevalier?
I did not recognize the chevalier in armor, sir!said 
Raoulblushing; "though I might have known him by his skill 
and coolness in danger." 
Thank you for the compliment, my young friend,replied 
Aramiswe can see from whom you learned courtesy. Then you 
were going to Rueil?
Yes! I have a despatch from the prince to his eminence.
You must still deliver it,said Athos. 
No false generosity, count! the fate of our friends, to say 
nothing of our own, is perhaps in that very despatch.
This young man must not, however, fail in his duty,said 
Athos. 
In the first place, count, this youth is our prisoner; you 
seem to forget that. What I propose to do is fair in war; 
the vanquished must not be dainty in the choice of means. 
Give me the despatch, Raoul.
The young man hesitated and looked at Athos as if seeking to 
read in his eyes a rule of conduct. 
Give him the despatch, Raoul! you are the chevalier's 
prisoner.
Raoul gave it up reluctantly; Aramis instantly seized and 
read it. 
You,he saidyou, who are so trusting, read and reflect 
that there is something in this letter important for us to 
see.
Athos took the letterfrowningbut an idea that he should 
find something in this letter about D'Artagnan conquered his 
unwillingness to read it. 
My lord, I shall send this evening to your eminence in 
order to reinforce the troop of Monsieur de Comminges, the 
ten men you demand. They are good soldiers, fit to confront 
the two violent adversaries whose address and resolution 
your eminence is fearful of.
Oh!cried Athos. 
Well,said Aramiswhat think you about these two enemies 
whom it requires, besides Comminges's troop, ten good 
soldiers to confront; are they not as like as two drops of 
water to D'Artagnan and Porthos?
We'll search Paris all day long,said Athosand if we 
have no news this evening we will return to the road to 
Picardy; and I feel no doubt that, thanks to D'Artagnan's 
ready invention, we shall then find some clew which will 
solve our doubts.
Yes, let us search Paris and especially inquire of Planchet 
if he has yet heard from his former master.
That poor Planchet! You speak of him very much at your 
ease, Aramis; he has probably been killed. All those 
fighting citizens went out to battle and they have been 
massacred.
It wasthenwith a sentiment of uneasiness whether 
Planchetwho alone could give them informationwas alive 
or deadthat the friends returned to the Place Royale; to 
their great surprise they found the citizens still encamped 
theredrinking and bantering each otheralthough
doubtlessmourned by their familieswho thought they were 
at Charenton in the thickest of the fighting. 
Athos and Aramis again questioned Planchetbut he had seen 
nothing of D'Artagnan; they wished to take Planchet with 
thembut he could not leave his troopwho at five o'clock 
returned homesaying that they were returning from the 
battlewhereas they had never lost sight of the bronze 
equestrian statue of Louis XIII. 
The Road to Picardy. 
On leaving ParisAthos and Aramis well knew that they would 
be encountering great danger; but we know that for men like 
these there could be no question of danger. Besidesthey 
felt that the denouement of this second Odyssey was at hand 
and that there remained but a single effort to make. 
Besidesthere was no tranquillity in Paris itself. 
Provisions began to failand whenever one of the Prince de 
Conti's generals wished to gain more influence he got up a 
little popular tumultwhich he put down againand thus for 
the moment gained a superiority over his colleagues. 
In one of these risings. the Duc de Beaufort pillaged the 
house and library of Mazarinin order to give the populace
as he put itsomething to gnaw at. Athos and Aramis left 
Paris after this coup-d'etatwhich took place on the very 
evening of the day in which the Parisians had been beaten at 
Charenton. 
They quitted Parisbeholding it abandoned to extreme want
bordering on famine; agitated by feartorn by faction. 
Parisians and Frondeurs as they werethe two friends 
expected to find the same miserythe same fearsthe same 
intrigue in the enemy's camp; but what was their surprise
after passing Saint Denisto hear that at Saint Germain 
people were singing and laughingand leading generally 
cheerful lives. The two gentlemen traveled by byways in 
order not to encounter the Mazarinists scattered about the 
Isle of Franceand also to escape the Frondeurswho were 
in possession of Normandy and who never failed to conduct 
captives to the Duc de Longuevillein order that he might 
ascertain whether they were friends or foes. Having escaped 
these dangersthey returned by the main road to Boulogne
at Abbevilleand followed it step by stepexamining every 
track. 
Neverthelessthey were still in a state of uncertainty. 
Several inns were visited by themseveral innkeepers 
questionedwithout a single clew being given to guide their 
inquirieswhen at Montreuil Athos felt upon the table that 
something rough was touching his delicate fingers. He turned 
up the cloth and found these hieroglyphics carved upon the 
wood with a knife: 
Port .... D'Art .... 2d February.
This is capital!said Athos to Aramiswe were to have 
slept here, but we cannot -- we must push on.They rode 
forward and reached Abbeville. There the great number of 
inns puzzled them; they could not go to all; how could they 
guess in which those whom they were seeking had stayed? 
Trust me,said Aramisdo not expect to find anything in 
Abbeville. If we had only been looking for Porthos, Porthos 
would have stationed himself in one of the finest hotels and 
we could easily have traced him. But D'Artagnan is devoid of 
such weaknesses. Porthos would have found it very difficult 
even to make him see that he was dying of hunger; he has 
gone on his road as inexorable as fate and we must seek him 
somewhere else.
They continued their route. It had now become a weary and 
almost hopeless taskand had it not been for the threefold 
motives of honorfriendship and gratitudeimplanted in 
their heartsour two travelers would have given up many a 
time their rides over the sandtheir interrogatories of the 
peasantry and their close inspection of faces. 
They proceeded thus to Peronne. 
Athos began to despair. His noble nature felt that their 
ignorance was a sort of reflection upon them. They had not 
looked carefully enough for their lost friends. They had not 
shown sufficient pertinacity in their inquiries. They were 
willing and ready to retrace their stepswhenin crossing 
the suburb which leads to the gates of the townupon a 
white wall which was at the corner of a street turning 
around the rampartAthos cast his eyes upon a drawing in 
black chalkwhich representedwith the awkwardness of a 
first attempttwo cavaliers riding furiously; one of them 
carried a roll of paper on which were written these words: 
They are following us.
Oh!exclaimed Athoshere it is, as clear as day; pursued 
as he was, D'Artagnan would not have tarried here five 
minutes had he been pressed very closely, which gives us 
hopes that he may have succeeded in escaping.
Aramis shook his head. 
Had he escaped we should either have seen him or have heard 
him spoken of.
You are right, Aramis, let us travel on.
To describe the impatience and anxiety of these two friends 
would be impossible. Uneasiness took possession of the 
tenderconstant heart of Athosand fearful forecasts were 
the torment of the impulsive Aramis. They galloped on for 
two or three hours as furiously as the cavaliers on the 
wall. All at oncein a narrow passthey perceived that the 
road was partially barricaded by an enormous stone. It had 
evidently been rolled across the pass by some arm of giant 
strength. 
Aramis stopped. 
Oh!he saidlooking at the stonethis is the work of 
either Hercules or Porthos. Let us get down, count, and 
examine this rock.
They both alighted. The stone had been brought with the 
evident intention of barricading the roadbut some one 
having perceived the obstacle had partially turned it aside. 
With the assistance of Blaisois and Grimaud the friends 
succeeded in turning the stone over. Upon the side next the 
ground were scratched the following words: 
Eight of the light dragoons are pursuing us. If we reach 
Compiegne we shall stop at the Peacock. It is kept by a 
friend of ours.
At last we have something definite,said Athos; "let us go 
to the Peacock." 
Yes,answered Aramisbut if we are to get there we must 
rest our horses, for they are almost broken-winded.
Aramis was right; they stopped at the first tavern and made 
each horse swallow a double quantity of corn steeped in 
wine; they gave them three hours' rest and then set off 
again. The men themselves were almost dead with fatiguebut 
hope supported them. 
In six hours they reached Compiegne and alighted at the 
Peacock. The host proved to be a worthy manas bald as a 
Chinaman. They asked him if some time ago he had not 
received in his house two gentlemen who were pursued by 
dragoons; without answering he went out and brought in the 
blade of a rapier. 
Do you know that?he asked. 
Athos merely glanced at it. 
'Tis D'Artagnan's sword,he said. 
Does it belong to the smaller or to the larger of the two?
asked the host. 
To the smaller.
I see that you are the friends of these gentlemen.
Well, what has happened to them?
They were pursued by eight of the light dragoons, who rode 
into the courtyard before they had time to close the gate.
Eight!said Aramis; "it surprises me that two such heroes 
as Porthos and D'Artagnan should have allowed themselves to 
be arrested by eight men." 
The eight men would doubtless have failed had they not been 
assisted by twenty soldiers of the regiment of Italians in 
the king's service, who are in garrison in this town so that 
your friends were overpowered by numbers.
Arrested, were they?inquired Athos; "is it known why?" 
No, sir, they were carried off instantly, and had not even 
time to tell me why; but as soon as they were gone I found 
this broken sword-blade, as I was helping to raise two dead 
men and five or six wounded ones.
'Tis still a consolation that they were not wounded,said 
Aramis. 
Where were they taken?asked Athos. 
Toward the town of Louvres,was the reply. 
The two friends having agreed to leave Blaisois and Grimaud 
at Compiegne with the horsesresolved to take post horses; 
and having snatched a hasty dinner they continued their 
journey to Louvres. Here they found only one innin which 
was consumed a liqueur which preserves its reputation to our 
time and which is still made in that town. 
Let us alight here,said Athos. "D'Artagnan will not have 
let slip an opportunity of drinking a glass of this liqueur
and at the same time leaving some trace of himself." 
They went into the town and asked for two glasses of 
liqueurat the counter -- as their friends must have done 
before them. The counter was covered with a plate of pewter; 
upon this plate was written with the point of a large pin: 
Rueil . . . D . .
They went to Rueil,cried Aramis. 
Let us go to Rueil,said Athos. 
It is to throw ourselves into the wolf's jaws,said 
Aramis. 
Had I been as great a friend of Jonah as I am of D'Artagnan 
I should have followed him even into the inside of the whale 
itself; and you would have done the same, Aramis.
Certainly -- but you make me out better than I am, dear 
count. Had I been alone I should scarcely have gone to Rueil 
without great caution. But where you go, I go.
They then set off for Rueil. Here the deputies of the 
parliament had just arrivedin order to enter upon those 
famous conferences which were to last three weeksand 
produced eventually that shameful peaceat the conclusion 
of which the prince was arrested. Rueil was crowded with 
advocatespresidents and councillorswho came from the 
Parisiansandon the side of the courtwith officers and 
guards; it was therefore easyin the midst of this 
confusionto remain as unobserved as any one might wish; 
besidesthe conferences implied a truceand to arrest two 
gentlemeneven Frondeursat this timewould have been an 
attack on the rights of the people. 
The two friends mingled with the crowd and fancied that 
every one was occupied with the same thought that tormented 
them. They expected to hear some mention made of D'Artagnan 
or of Porthosbut every one was engrossed by articles and 
reforms. It was the advice of Athos to go straight to the 
minister. 
My friend,said Aramistake care; our safety lies in our 
obscurity. If we were to make ourselves known we should be 
sent to rejoin our friends in some deep ditch, from which 
the devil himself could not take us out. Let us try not to 
find them out by accident, but from our notions. Arrested at 
Compiegne, they have been carried to Rueil; at Rueil they 
have been questioned by the cardinal, who has either kept 
them near him or sent them to Saint Germain. As to the 
Bastile, they are not there, though the Bastile is 
especially for the Frondeurs. They are not dead, for the 
death of D'Artagnan would make a sensation. As for Porthos, 
I believe him to be eternal, like God, although less 
patient. Do not let us despond, but wait at Rueil, for my 
conviction is that they are at Rueil. But what ails you? You 
are pale.
It is this,answered Athoswith a trembling voice. 
I remember that at the Castle of Rueil the Cardinal 
Richelieu had some horrible `oubliettes' constructed.
Oh! never fear,said Aramis. "Richelieu was a gentleman
our equal in birthour superior in position. He couldlike 
the kingtouch the greatest of us on the headand touching 
them make such heads shake on their shoulders. But Mazarin 
is a low-born roguewho can at the most take us by the 
collarlike an archer. Be calm -- for I am sure that 
D'Artagnan and Porthos are at Rueilalive and well." 
But,resumed AthosI recur to my first proposal. I know 
no better means than to act with candor. I shall seek, not 
Mazarin, but the queen, and say to her, `Madame, restore to 
us your two servants and our two friends.'
Aramis shook his head. 
'Tis a last resource, but let us not employ it till it is 
imperatively called for; let us rather persevere in our 
researches.
They continued their inquiries and at last met with a light 
dragoon who had formed one of the guard which had escorted 
D'Artagnan to Rueil. 
Athoshoweverperpetually recurred to his proposed 
interview with the queen. 
In order to see the queen,said Aramiswe must first see 
the cardinal; and when we have seen the cardinal -- remember 
what I tell you, Athos -- we shall be reunited to our 
friends, but not in the way you wish. Now, that way of 
joining them is not very attractive to me, I confess. Let us 
act in freedom, that we may act well and quickly.
I shall go,he saidto the queen.
Well, then,answered Aramispray tell me a day or two 
beforehand, that I may take that opportunity of going to 
Paris.
To whom?
Zounds! how do I know? perhaps to Madame de Longueville. 
She is all-powerful yonder; she will help me. But send me 
word should you be arrested, for then I will return 
directly.
Why do you not take your chance and be arrested with me?
No, I thank you.
Should we, by being arrested, be all four together again, 
we should not, I am not sure, be twenty-four hours in prison 
without getting free.
My friend, since I killed Chatillon, adored of the ladies 
of Saint Germain, I am too great a celebrity not to fear a 
prison doubly. The queen is likely to follow Mazarin's 
counsels and to have me tried.
Do you think she loves this Italian so much as they say she 
does?
Did she not love an Englishman?
My friend, she is a woman.
No, no, you are deceived -- she is a queen.
Dear friend, I shall sacrifice myself and go and see Anne 
of Austria.
Adieu, Athos, I am going to raise an army.
For what purpose?
To come back and besiege Rueil.
Where shall we meet again?
At the foot of the cardinal's gallows.
The two friends departed -- Aramis to return to ParisAthos 
to take measures preparatory to an interview with the queen. 
The Gratitude of Anne of Austria. 
Athos found much less difficulty than he had expected in 
obtaining an audience of Anne of Austria. It was granted
and was to take place after her morning's "levee at which, 
in accordance with his rights of birth, he was entitled to 
be present. A vast crowd filled the apartments of Saint 
Germain. Anne had never at the Louvre had so large a court; 
but this crowd represented chiefly the second class of 
nobility, while the Prince de Conti, the Duc de Beaufort and 
the coadjutor assembled around them the first nobility of 
France. 
The greatest possible gayety prevailed at court. The 
particular characteristic of this was that more songs were 
made than cannons fired during its continuance. The court 
made songs on the Parisians and the Parisians on the court; 
and the casualties, though not mortal, were painful, as are 
all wounds inflicted by the weapon of ridicule. 
In the midst of this seeming hilarity, nevertheless, 
people's minds were uneasy. Was Mazarin to remain the 
favorite and minister of the queen? Was he to be carried 
back by the wind which had blown him there? Every one hoped 
so, so that the minister felt that all around him, beneath 
the homage of the courtiers, lay a fund of hatred, ill 
disguised by fear and interest. He felt ill at ease and at a 
loss what to do. 
Conde himself, whilst fighting for him, lost no opportunity 
of ridiculing, of humbling him. The queen, on whom he threw 
himself as sole support, seemed to him now not much to be 
relied upon. 
When the hour appointed for the audience arrived Athos was 
obliged to stay until the queen, who was waited upon by a 
new deputation from Paris, had consulted with her minister 
as to the propriety and manner of receiving them. All were 
fully engrossed with the affairs of the day; Athos could not 
therefore have chosen a more inauspicious moment to speak of 
his friends -- poor atoms, lost in that raging whirlwind. 
But Athos was a man of inflexible determination; he firmly 
adhered to a purpose once formed, when it seemed to him to 
spring from conscience and to be prompted by a sense of 
duty. He insisted on being introduced, saying that although 
he was not a deputy from Monsieur de Conti, or Monsieur de 
Beaufort, or Monsieur de Bouillon, or Monsieur d'Elbeuf, or 
the coadjutor, or Madame de Longueville, or Broussel, or the 
Parliament, and although he had come on his own private 
account, he nevertheless had things to say to her majesty of 
the utmost importance. 
The conference being finished, the queen summoned him to her 
cabinet. 
Athos was introduced and announced by name. It was a name 
that too often resounded in her majesty's ears and too often 
vibrated in her heart for Anne of Austria not to recognize 
it; yet she remained impassive, looking at him with that 
fixed stare which is tolerated only in women who are queens, 
either by the power of beauty or by the right of birth. 
It is then a service which you propose to render us
count?" asked Anne of Austriaafter a moment's silence. 
Yes, madame, another service,said Athosshocked that the 
queen did not seem to recognize him. 
Athos had a noble heartand madethereforebut a poor 
courtier. 
Anne frowned. Mazarinwho was sitting at a table folding up 
papersas if he had only been a secretary of statelooked 
up. 
Speak,said the queen. 
Mazarin turned again to his papers. 
Madame,resumed Athostwo of my friends, named 
D'Artagnan and Monsieur du Vallon, sent to England by the 
cardinal, suddenly disappeared when they set foot on the 
shores of France; no one knows what has become of them.
Well?said the queen. 
I address myself, therefore, first to the benevolence of 
your majesty, that I may know what has become of my friends, 
reserving to myself, if necessary, the right of appealing 
hereafter to your justice.
Sir,replied Annewith a degree of haughtiness which to 
certain persons became impertinencethis is the reason 
that you trouble me in the midst of so many absorbing 
concerns! an affair for the police! Well, sir, you ought to 
know that we no longer have a police, since we are no longer 
at Paris.
I think your majesty will have no need to apply to the 
police to know where my friends are, but that if you will 
deign to interrogate the cardinal he can reply without any 
further inquiry than into his own recollections.
But, God forgive me!cried Annewith that disdainful curl 
of the lips peculiar to herI believe that you are 
yourself interrogating.
Yes, madame, here I have a right to do so, for it concerns 
Monsieur d'Artagnan ---d'Artagnan,he repeatedin such a 
manner as to bow the regal brow with recollections of the 
weak and erring woman. 
The cardinal saw that it was now high time to come to the 
assistance of Anne. 
Sir,he saidI can tell you what is at present unknown 
to her majesty. These individuals are under arrest. They 
disobeyed orders.
I beg of your majesty, then,said Athoscalmly and not 
replying to Mazarinto quash these arrests of Messieurs 
d'Artagnan and du Vallon.
What you ask is merely an affair of discipline and does not 
concern me,said the queen. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan never made such an answer as that when 
the service of your majesty was concerned,said Athos
bowing with great dignity. He was going toward the door when 
Mazarin stopped him. 
You, too, have been in England, sir?he saidmaking a 
sign to the queenwho was evidently going to issue a severe 
order. 
I was a witness of the last hours of Charles I. Poor king! 
culpable, at the most, of weakness, how cruelly punished by 
his subjects! Thrones are at this time shaken and it is to 
little purpose for devoted hearts to serve the interests of 
princes. This is the second time that Monsieur d'Artagnan 
has been in England. He went the first time to save the 
honor of a great queen; the second, to avert the death of a 
great king.
Sir,said Anne to Mazarinwith an accent from which daily 
habits of dissimulation could not entirely chase the real 
expressionsee if we can do something for these 
gentlemen.
I wish to do, madame, all that your majesty pleases.
Do what Monsieur de la Fere requests; that is your name, is 
it not, sir?
I have another name, madame -- I am called Athos.
Madame,said Mazarinwith a smileyou may rest easy; 
your wishes shall be fulfilled.
You hear, sir?said the queen. 
Yes, madame, I expected nothing less from the justice of 
your majesty. May I not go and see my friends?
Yes, sir, you shall see them. But, apropos, you belong to 
the Fronde, do you not?
Madame, I serve the king.
Yes, in your own way.
My way is the way of all gentlemen, and I know only one 
way,answered Athoshaughtily. 
Go, sir, then,said the queen; "you have obtained what you 
wish and we know all we desire to know." 
Scarcelyhoweverhad the tapestry closed behind Athos when 
she said to Mazarin: 
Cardinal, desire them to arrest that insolent fellow before 
he leaves the court.
Your majesty,answered Mazarindesires me to do only 
what I was going to ask you to let me do. These bravoes who 
resuscitate in our epoch the traditions of another reign are 
troublesome; since there are two of them already there, let 
us add a third.
Athos was not altogether the queen's dupebut he was not a 
man to run away on suspicion -- above allwhen distinctly 
told that he should see his friends again. He waitedthen
in the ante-chamber with impatiencetill he should be 
conducted to them. 
He walked to the window and looked into the court. He saw 
the deputation from the Parisians enter it; they were coming 
to assign the definitive place for the conference and to 
make their bow to the queen. A very imposing escort awaited 
them without the gates. 
Athos was looking on attentivelywhen some one touched him 
softly on the shoulder. 
Ah! Monsieur de Comminges,he said. 
Yes, count, and charged with a commission for which I beg 
of you to accept my excuses.
What is it?
Be so good as to give me up your sword, count.
Athos smiled and opened the window. 
Aramis!he cried. 
A gentleman turned around. Athos fancied he had seen him 
among the crowd. It was Aramis. He bowed with great 
friendship to the count. 
Aramis,cried AthosI am arrested.
Good,replied Aramiscalmly. 
Sir,said Athosturning to Comminges and giving him 
politely his sword by the hilthere is my sword; have the 
kindness to keep it safely for me until I quit my prison. I 
prize it -- it was given to my ancestor by King Francis I. 
In his time they armed gentlemen, not disarmed them. Now, 
whither do you conduct me?
Into my room first,replied Comminges; "the queen will 
ultimately decide your place of domicile." 
Athos followed Comminges without saying a single word. 
Cardinal Mazarin as King. 
The arrest produced no sensationindeed was almost unknown
and scarcely interrupted the course of events. To the 
deputation it was formally announced that the queen would 
receive it. 
Accordinglyit was admitted to the presence of Annewho
silent and lofty as everlistened to the speeches and 
complaints of the deputies; but when they had finished their 
harangues not one of them could sayso calm remained her 
facewhether or no she had heard them. 
On the other handMazarinpresent at that audienceheard 
very well what those deputies demanded. It was purely and 
simply his removalin terms clear and precise. 
The discourse being finishedthe queen remained silent. 
Gentlemen,said MazarinI join with you in supplicating 
the queen to put an end to the miseries of her subjects. I 
have done all in my power to ameliorate them and yet the 
belief of the public, you say, is that they proceed from me, 
an unhappy foreigner, who has been unable to please the 
French. Alas! I have never been understood, and no wonder. I 
succeeded a man of the most sublime genius that ever upheld 
the sceptre of France. The memory of Richelieu annihilates 
me. In vain -- were I an ambitious man -- should I struggle 
against such remembrances as he has left; but that I am not 
ambitious I am going to prove to you. I own myself 
conquered. I shall obey the wishes of the people. If Paris 
has injuries to complain of, who has not some wrongs to be 
redressed? Paris has been sufficiently punished; enough 
blood has flowed, enough misery has humbled a town deprived 
of its king and of justice. 'Tis not for me, a private 
individual, to disunite a queen from her kingdom. Since you 
demand my resignation, I retire.
Then,said Aramisin his neighbor's earthe conferences 
are over. There is nothing to do but to send Monsieur 
Mazarin to the most distant frontier and to take care that 
he does not return even by that, nor any other entrance into 
France.
One instant, sir,said the man in a gownwhom he 
addressed; "a plague on't! how fast you go! one may soon see 
that you're a soldier. There's the article of remunerations 
and indemnifications to be discussed and set to rights." 
Chancellor,said the queenturning to Seguierour old 
acquaintanceyou will open the conferences. They can take 
place at Rueil. The cardinal has said several things which 
have agitated me, therefore I will not speak more fully now. 
As to his going or staying, I feel too much gratitude to the 
cardinal not to leave him free in all his actions; he shall 
do what he wishes to do.
A transient pallor overspread the speaking countenance of 
the prime minister; he looked at the queen with anxiety. Her 
face was so passionlessthat heas every one else present
was incapable of reading her thoughts. 
But,added the queenin awaiting the cardinal's decision 
let there be, if you please, a reference to the king only.
The deputies bowed and left the room. 
What!exclaimed the queenwhen the last of them had 
quitted the apartmentyou would yield to these limbs of 
the law -- these advocates?
To promote your majesty's welfare, madame,replied 
Mazarinfixing his penetrating eyes on the queenthere is 
no sacrifice that I would not make.
Anne dropped her head and fell into one of those reveries so 
habitual with her. A recollection of Athos came into her 
mind. His fearless deportmenthis wordsso firmyet 
dignifiedthe shades which by one word he had evoked
recalled to her the past in all its intoxication of poetry 
and romanceyouthbeautythe eclat of love at twenty 
years of agethe bloody death of Buckinghamthe only man 
whom she had ever really lovedand the heroism of those 
obscure champions who had saved her from the double hatred 
of Richelieu and the king. 
Mazarin looked at herand whilst she deemed herself alone 
and freed from the world of enemies who sought to spy into 
her secret thoughtshe read her thoughts in her 
countenanceas one sees in a transparent lake clouds pass 
-- reflectionslike thoughtsof the heavens. 
Must we, then,asked Anne of Austriayield to the storm, 
buy peace, and patiently and piously await better times?
Mazarin smiled sarcastically at this speechwhich showed 
that she had taken the minister's proposal seriously. 
Anne's head was bent down -- she had not seen the Italian's 
smile; but finding that her question elicited no reply she 
looked up. 
Well, you do not answer, cardinal, what do you think about 
it?
I am thinking, madame, of the allusion made by that 
insolent gentleman, whom you have caused to be arrested, to 
the Duke of Buckingham -- to him whom you allowed to be 
assassinated -- to the Duchess de Chevreuse, whom you 
suffered to be exiled -- to the Duc de Beaufort, whom you 
imprisoned; but if he made allusion to me it was because he 
is ignorant of the relation in which I stand to you.
Anne drew upas she always didwhen anything touched her 
pride. She blushedand that she might not answerclasped 
her beautiful hands till her sharp nails almost pierced 
them. 
That man has sagacity, honor and wit, not to mention 
likewise that he is a man of undoubted resolution. You know 
something about him, do you not, madame? I shall tell him, 
therefore, and in doing so I shall confer a personal favor 
on him, how he is mistaken in regard to me. What is proposed 
to me would be, in fact, almost an abdication, and an 
abdication requires reflection.
An abdication?repeated Anne; "I thoughtsirthat it was 
kings alone who abdicated!" 
Well,replied Mazarinand am I not almost a king -king, 
indeed, of France? Thrown over the foot of the royal 
bed, my simar, madame, looks not unlike the mantle worn by 
kings.
This was one of the humiliations which Mazarin made Anne 
undergo more frequently than any otherand one that bowed 
her head with shame. Queen Elizabeth and Catherine II. of 
Russia are the only two monarchs of their set on record who 
were at once sovereigns and lovers. Anne of Austria looked 
with a sort of terror at the threatening aspect of the 
cardinal -- his physiognomy in such moments was not 
destitute of a certain grandeur. 
Sir,she replieddid I not say, and did you not hear me 
say to those people, that you should do as you pleased?
In that case,said MazarinI think it must please me 
best to remain; not only on account of my own interest, but 
for your safety.
Remain, then, sir; nothing can be more agreeable to me; 
only do not allow me to be insulted.
You are referring to the demands of the rebels and to the 
tone in which they stated them? Patience! They have selected 
a field of battle on which I am an abler general than they 
-- that of a conference. No, we shall beat them by merely 
temporizing. They want food already. They will be ten times 
worse off in a week.
Ah, yes! Good heavens! I know it will end in that way; but 
it is not they who taunt me with the most wounding 
reproaches, but ---- 
I understand; you mean to allude to the recollections 
perpetually revived by these three gentlemen. However, we 
have them safe in prison, and they are just sufficiently 
culpable for us to keep them in prison as long as we find it 
convenient. One only is still not in our power and braves 
us. But, devil take him! we shall soon succeed in sending 
him to join his boon companions. We have accomplished more 
difficult things than that. In the first place I have as a 
precaution shut up at Rueil, near me, under my own eyes, 
within reach of my hand, the two most intractable ones. 
To-day the third will be there also.
As long as they are in prison all will be well,said Anne
but one of these days they will get out.
Yes, if your majesty releases them.
Ah!exclaimed Annefollowing the train of her own 
thoughts on such occasionsone regrets Paris!
Why so?
On account of the Bastile, sir, which is so strong and so 
secure.
Madame, these conferences will bring us peace; when we have 
peace we shall regain Paris; with Paris, the Bastile, and 
our four bullies shall rot therein.
Anne frowned slightly when Mazarinin taking leavekissed 
her hand. 
Mazarinafter this half humblehalf gallant attention
went away. Anne followed him with her eyesand as he 
withdrewat every step he tooka disdainful smile was seen 
playingthen gradually burst upon her lips. 
I once,she saiddespised the love of a cardinal who 
never said `I shall do,' but, `I have done so and so.' That 
man knew of retreats more secure than Rueil, darker and more 
silent even than the Bastile. Degenerate world!
Precaution's. 
After quitting AnneMazarin took the road to Rueilwhere 
he usually resided; in those times of disturbance he went 
about with numerous followers and often disguised himself. 
In military dress he wasindeedas we have stateda very 
handsome man. 
In the court of the old Chateau of Saint Germain he entered 
his coachand reached the Seine at Chatou. The prince had 
supplied him with fifty light horsenot so much by way of 
guard as to show the deputies how readily the queen's 
generals dispersed their troops and to prove that they might 
be safely scattered at pleasure. Athoson horseback
without his sword and kept in sight by Commingesfollowed 
the cardinal in silence. Grimaudfinding that his master 
had been arrestedfell back into the ranks near Aramis
without saying a word and as if nothing had happened. 
Grimaud hadindeedduring twenty-two years of service
seen his master extricate himself from so many difficulties 
that nothing less than Athos's imminent death was likely to 
make him uneasy. 
At the branching off of the road toward ParisAramiswho 
had followed in the cardinal's suiteturned back. Mazarin 
went to the right hand and Aramis could see the prisoner 
disappear at the turning of the avenue. Athosat the same 
momentmoved by a similar impulselooked back also. The 
two friends exchanged a simple inclination of the head and 
Aramis put his finger to his hatas if to bowAthos alone 
comprehending by that signal that he had some project in his 
head. 
Ten minutes afterward Mazarin entered the court of that 
chateau which his predecessor had built for him at Rueil; as 
he alightedComminges approached him. 
My lord,he askedwhere does your eminence wish Monsieur 
Comte de la Fere to be lodged?
In the pavilion of the orangery, of course, in front of the 
pavilion where the guard is. I wish every respect to be 
shown the count, although he is the prisoner of her majesty 
the queen.
My lord,answered Commingeshe begs to be taken to the 
place where Monsieur d'Artagnan is confined -- that is, in 
the hunting lodge, opposite the orangery. 
Mazarin thought for an instant. 
Comminges saw that he was undecided. 
'Tis a very strong post he resumed, and we have forty 
good mentried soldiershaving no connection with 
Frondeurs nor any interest in the Fronde." 
If we put these three men together, Monsieur Comminges,
said Mazarinwe must double the guard, and we are not rich 
enough in fighting men to commit such acts of prodigality.
Comminges smiled; Mazarin read and construed that smile. 
You do not know these men, Monsieur Comminges, but I know 
them, first personally, also by hearsay. I sent them to 
carry aid to King Charles and they performed prodigies to 
save him; had it not been for an adverse destiny, that 
beloved monarch would this day have been among us.
But since they served your eminence so well, why are they, 
my lord cardinal, in prison?
In prison?said Mazarinand when has Rueil been a 
prison?
Ever since there were prisoners in it,answered Comminges. 
These gentlemen, Comminges, are not prisoners,returned 
Mazarinwith his ironical smileonly guests; but guests 
so precious that I have put a grating before each of their 
windows and bolts to their doors, that they may not refuse 
to continue my visitors. So much do I esteem them that I am 
going to make the Comte de la Fere a visit, that I may 
converse with him tete-a-tete, and that we may not be 
disturbed at our interview you must conduct him, as I said 
before, to the pavilion of the orangery; that, you know, is 
my daily promenade. Well, while taking my walk I will call 
on him and we will talk. Although he professes to be my 
enemy I have sympathy for him, and if he is reasonable 
perhaps we shall arrange matters.
Comminges bowedand returned to Athoswho was awaiting 
with apparent calmnessbut with real anxietythe result of 
the interview. 
Well?he said to the lieutenant. 
Sir,replied Commingesit seems that it is impossible.
Monsieur de Comminges,said AthosI have been a soldier 
all my life and I know the force of orders; but outside your 
orders there is a service you can render me.
I will do it with all my heart,said Comminges; "for I 
know who you are and what service you once performed for her 
majesty; I knowtoohow dear to you is the young man who 
came so valiantly to my aid when that old rogue of a 
Broussel was arrested. I am entirely at your serviceexcept 
only for my orders." 
Thank you, sir; what I am about to ask will not compromise 
you in any degree.
If it should even compromise me a little,said Monsieur de 
Commingeswith a smilestill make your demand. I don't 
like Mazarin any better than you do. I serve the queen and 
that draws me naturally into the service of the cardinal; 
but I serve the one with joy and the other against my will. 
Speak, then, I beg of you; I wait and listen.
Since there is no harm,said Athosin my knowing that 
D'Artagnan is here, I presume there will be none in his 
knowing that I am here.
I have received no orders on that point.
Well, then, do me the kindness to give him my regards and 
tell him that I am his neighbor. Tell him also what you have 
just told me -- that Mazarin has placed me in the pavilion 
of the orangery in order to make me a visit, and assure him 
that I shall take advantage of this honor he proposes to 
accord to me to obtain from him some amelioration of our 
captivity.
Which cannot last,interrupted Comminges; "the cardinal 
said so; there is no prison here." 
But there are oubliettes!replied Athossmiling. 
Oh! that's a different thing; yes, I know there are 
traditions of that sort,said Comminges. "It was in the 
time of the other cardinalwho was a great nobleman; but 
our Mazarin -- impossible! an Italian adventurer would not 
dare to go such lengths with such men as ourselves. 
Oubliettes are employed as a means of kingly vengeanceand 
a low-born fellow such as he is would not have recourse to 
them. Your arrest is knownthat of your friends will soon 
be known; and all the nobility of France would demand an 
explanation of your disappearance. Nonobe easy on that 
score. I willhoweverinform Monsieur d'Artagnan of your 
arrival here." 
Comminges then led the count to a room on the ground floor 
of a pavilionat the end of the orangery. They passed 
through a courtyard as they wentfull of soldiers and 
courtiers. In the centre of this courtin the form of a 
horseshoewere the buildings occupied by Mazarinand at 
each wing the pavilion (or smaller building)where 
D'Artagnan was confinedand thatlevel with the orangery
where Athos was to be. From the ends of these two wings 
extended the park. 
Athoswhen he reached his appointed roomobserved through 
the gratings of his windowwalls and roofs; and was told
on inquiryby Commingesthat he was looking on the back of 
the pavilion where D'Artagnan was confined. 
Yes, 'tis too true,said Comminges'tis almost a prison; 
but what a singular fancy this is of yours, count -- you, 
who are the very flower of our nobility -- to squander your 
valor and loyalty amongst these upstarts, the Frondists! 
Really, count, if ever I thought that I had a friend in the 
ranks of the royal army, it was you. A Frondeur! you, the 
Comte de la Fere, on the side of Broussel, Blancmesnil and 
Viole! For shame! you, a Frondeur!
On my word of honor,said Athosone must be either a 
Mazarinist or a Frondeur. For a long time I had these words 
whispered in my ears, and I chose the latter; at any rate, 
it is a French word. And now, I am a Frondeur -- not of 
Broussel's party, nor of Blancmesnil's, nor am I with Viole; 
but with the Duc de Beaufort, the Ducs de Bouillon and 
d'Elbeuf; with princes, not with presidents, councillors and 
low-born lawyers. Besides, what a charming outlook it would 
have been to serve the cardinal! Look at that wall -without 
a single window -- which tells you fine things about 
Mazarin's gratitude!
Yes,replied De Commingesmore especially if it could 
reveal how Monsieur d'Artagnan for this last week has been 
anathematizing him.
Poor D'Artagnan'said Athoswith the charming melancholy 
that was one of the traits of his characterso brave, so 
good, so terrible to the enemies of those he loves. You have 
two unruly prisoners there, sir.
Unruly,Comminges smiled; "you wish to terrify meI 
suppose. When he came hereMonsieur D'Artagnan provoked and 
braved the soldiers and inferior officersin orderI 
supposeto have his sword back. That mood lasted some time; 
but now he's as gentle as a lamb and sings Gascon songs
which make one die of laughing." 
And Du Vallon?asked Athos. 
Ah, he's quite another sort of person -- a formidable 
gentleman, indeed. The first day he broke all the doors in 
with a single push of his shoulder; and I expected to see 
him leave Rueil in the same way as Samson left Gaza. But his 
temper cooled down, like his friend's; he not only gets used 
to his captivity, but jokes about it.
So much the better,said Athos. 
Do you think anything else was to be expected of them?
asked Commingeswhoputting together what Mazarin had said 
of his prisoners and what the Comte de la Fere had said
began to feel a degree of uneasiness. 
Athoson the other handreflected that this recent 
gentleness of his friends most certainly arose from some 
plan formed by D'Artagnan. Unwilling to injure them by 
praising them too highlyhe replied: "They? They are two 
hotheads -- the one a Gasconthe other from Picardy; both 
are easily excitedbut they quiet down immediately. You 
have had a proof of that in what you have just related to 
me." 
Thistoowas the opinion of Commingeswho withdrew 
somewhat reassured. Athos remained alone in the vast 
chamberwhereaccording to the cardinal's directionshe 
was treated with all the courtesy due to a nobleman. He 
awaited Mazarin's promised visit to get some light on his 
present situation. 
Strength and Sagacity. 
Now let us pass the orangery to the hunting lodge. At the 
extremity of the courtyardwhereclose to a portico formed 
of Ionic columnswere the dog kennelsrose an oblong 
buildingthe pavilion of the orangerya half circle
inclosing the court of honor. It was in this pavilionon 
the ground floorthat D'Artagnan and Porthos were confined
suffering interminable hours of imprisonment in a manner 
suitable to each different temperament. 
D'Artagnan was pacing to and fro like a caged tiger; with 
dilated eyesgrowling as he paced along by the bars of a 
window looking upon the yard of servant's offices. 
Porthos was ruminating over an excellent dinner he had just 
demolished. 
The one seemed to be deprived of reasonyet he was 
meditating. The other seemed to meditateyet he was more 
than half asleep. But his sleep was a nightmarewhich might 
be guessed by the incoherent manner in which he sometimes 
snored and sometimes snorted. 
Look,said D'Artagnanday is declining. It must be 
nearly four o'clock. We have been in this place nearly 
eighty-three hours.
Hem!muttered Porthoswith a kind of pretense of 
answering. 
Did you hear, eternal sleeper?cried D'Artagnanirritated 
that any one could doze during the daywhen he had the 
greatest difficulty in sleeping during the night. 
What?said Porthos. 
I say we have been here eighty-three hours.
'Tis your fault,answered Porthos. 
How, my fault?
Yes, I offered you escape.
By pulling out a bar and pushing down a door?
Certainly.
Porthos, men like us can't go out from here purely and 
simply.
Faith!said Porthosas for me, I could go out with that 
purity and that simplicity which it seems to me you despise 
too much.
D'Artagnan shrugged his shoulders. 
And besides,he saidgoing out of this chamber isn't 
all.
Dear friend,said Porthosyou appear to be in a somewhat 
better humor to-day than you were yesterday. Explain to me 
why going out of this chamber isn't everything.
Because, having neither arms nor password, we shouldn't 
take fifty steps in the court without knocking against a 
sentinel.
Very well said Porthos, we will kill the sentinel and we 
shall have his arms." 
Yes, but before we can kill him -- and he will be hard to 
kill, that Swiss -- he will shriek out and the whole picket 
will come, and we shall be taken like foxes, we, who are 
lions, and thrown into some dungeon, where we shall not even 
have the consolation of seeing this frightful gray sky of 
Rueil, which no more resembles the sky of Tarbes than the 
moon is like the sun. Lack-a-day! if we only had some one to 
instruct us about the physical and moral topography of this 
castle. Ah! when one thinks that for twenty years, during 
which time I did not know what to do with myself, it never 
occurred to me to come to study Rueil.
What difference does that make?said Porthos. "We shall go 
out all the same." 
Do you know, my dear fellow, why master pastrycooks never 
work with their hands?
No,said Porthosbut I should be glad to be informed.
It is because in the presence of their pupils they fear 
that some of their tarts or creams may turn out badly 
cooked.
What then?
Why, then they would be laughed at, and a master pastrycook 
must never be laughed at.
And what have master pastrycooks to do with us?
We ought, in our adventures, never to be defeated or give 
any one a chance to laugh at us. In England, lately, we 
failed, we were beaten, and that is a blemish on our 
reputation.
By whom, then, were we beaten?asked Porthos. 
By Mordaunt.
Yes, but we have drowned Monsieur Mordaunt.
That is true, and that will redeem us a little in the eyes 
of posterity, if posterity ever looks at us. But listen, 
Porthos: though Monsieur Mordaunt was a man not to be 
despised, Mazarin is not less strong than he, and we shall 
not easily succeed in drowning him. We must, therefore, 
watch and play a close game; for,he added with a sighwe 
two are equal, perhaps, to eight others; but we are not 
equal to the four that you know of.
That is true,said Porthosechoing D'Artagnan's sigh. 
Well, Porthos, follow my examples; walk back and forth till 
some news of our friends reaches us or till we are visited 
by a good idea. But don't sleep as you do all the time; 
nothing dulls the intellect like sleep. As to what may lie 
before us, it is perhaps less serious than we at first 
thought. I don't believe that Monsieur de Mazarin thinks of 
cutting off our heads, for heads are not taken off without 
previous trial; a trial would make a noise, and a noise 
would get the attention of our friends, who would check the 
operations of Monsieur de Mazarin.
How well you reason!said Porthosadmiringly. 
Well, yes, pretty well,replied D'Artagnan; "and besides
you seeif they put us on trialif they cut off our heads
they must meanwhile either keep us here or transfer us 
elsewhere." 
Yes, that is inevitable,said Porthos. 
Well, it is impossible but that Master Aramis, that 
keen-scented bloodhound, and Athos, that wise and prudent 
nobleman, will discover our retreat. Then, believe me, it 
will be time to act.
Yes, we will wait. We can wait the more contentedly, that 
it is not absolutely bad here, but for one thing, at least.
What is that?
Did you observe, D'Artagnan, that three days running they 
have brought us braised mutton?
No; but if it occurs a fourth time I shall complain of it, 
so never mind.
And then I feel the loss of my house, 'tis a long time 
since I visited my castles.
Forget them for a time; we shall return to them, unless 
Mazarin razes them to the ground.
Do you think that likely?
No, the other cardinal would have done so, but this one is 
too mean a fellow to risk it.
You reconcile me, D'Artagnan.
Well, then, assume a cheerful manner, as I do; we must joke 
with the guards, we must gain the good-will of the soldiers, 
since we can't corrupt them. Try, Porthos, to please them 
more than you are wont to do when they are under our 
windows. Thus far you have done nothing but show them your 
fist; and the more respectable your fist is, Porthos, the 
less attractive it is. Ah, I would give much to have five 
hundred louis, only.
So would I,said Porthosunwilling to be behind 
D'Artagnan in generosity; "I would give as much as a hundred 
pistoles." 
The two prisoners were at this point of their conversation 
when Comminges enteredpreceded by a sergeant and two men
who brought supper in a basket with two handlesfilled with 
basins and plates. 
What!exclaimed Porthosmutton again?
My dear Monsieur de Comminges,said D'Artagnanyou will 
find that my friend, Monsieur du Vallon, will go to the most 
fatal lengths if Cardinal Mazarin continues to provide us 
with this sort of meat; mutton every day.
I declare,said PorthosI shall eat nothing if they do 
not take it away.
Remove the mutton,cried Comminges; "I wish Monsieur du 
Vallon to sup wellmore especially as I have news to give 
him that will improve his appetite." 
Is Mazarin dead?asked Porthos. 
No; I am sorry to tell you he is perfectly well.
So much the worse,said Porthos. 
What is that news?asked D'Artagnan. "News in prison is a 
fruit so rare that I trustMonsieur de Commingesyou will 
excuse my impatience -- the more eager since you have given 
us to understand that the news is good." 
Should you be glad to hear that the Comte de la Fere is 
well?asked De Comminges. 
D'Artagnan's penetrating gray eyes were opened to the 
utmost. 
Glad!he cried; "I should be more than glad! Happy -beyond 
measure!" 
Well, I am desired by him to give you his compliments and 
to say that he is in good health.
D'Artagnan almost leaped with joy. A quick glance conveyed 
his thought to Porthos: "If Athos knows where we areif he 
opens communication with usbefore long Athos will act." 
Porthos was not very quick to understand the language of 
glancesbut now since the name of Athos had suggested to 
him the same ideahe understood. 
Do you say,asked the Gascontimidlythat the Comte de 
la Fere has commissioned you to give his compliments to 
Monsieur du Vallon and myself?
Yes, sir.
Then you have seen him?
Certainly I have.
Where? if I may ask without indiscretion.
Near here,replied De Commingessmiling; "so near that if 
the windows which look on the orangery were not stopped up 
you could see him from where you are." 
He is wandering about the environs of the castle,thought 
D'Artagnan. Then he said aloud: 
You met him, I dare say, in the park -- hunting, perhaps?
No; nearer, nearer still. Look, behind this wall,said De 
Commingesknocking against the wall. 
Behind this wall? What is there, then, behind this wall? I 
was brought here by night, so devil take me if I know where 
I am.
Well,said Commingessuppose one thing.
I will suppose anything you please.
Suppose there were a window in this wall.
Well?
From that window you would see Monsieur de la Fere at his.
The count, then, is in the chateau?
Yes.
For what reason?
The same as yourself.
Athos -- a prisoner?
You know well,replied De Commingesthat there are no 
prisoners at Rueil, because there is no prison.
Don't let us play upon words, sir. Athos has been 
arrested.
Yesterday, at Saint Germain, as he came out from the 
presence of the queen.
The arms of D'Artagnan fell powerless by his side. One might 
have supposed him thunderstruck; a paleness ran like a cloud 
over his dark skinbut disappeared immediately. 
A prisoner?he reiterated. 
A prisoner,repeated Porthosquite dejected. 
Suddenly D'Artagnan looked up and in his eyes there was a 
gleam which scarcely even Porthos observed; but it died away 
and he appeared more sorrowful than before. 
Come, come,said Commingeswhosince D'Artagnanon the 
day of Broussel's arresthad saved him from the hands of 
the Parisianshad entertained a real affection for him
don't be unhappy; I never thought of bringing you bad news. 
Laugh at the chance which has brought your friend near to 
you and Monsieur du Vallon, instead of being in the depths 
of despair about it.
But D'Artagnan was still in a desponding mood. 
And how did he look?asked Porthoswhoperceiving that 
D'Artagnan had allowed the conversation to dropprofited by 
it to put in a word or two. 
Very well, indeed, sir,replied Comminges; "at firstlike 
youhe seemed distressed; but when he heard that the 
cardinal was going to pay him a visit this very evening ---" 
Ah!cried D'Artagnanthe cardinal is about to visit the 
Comte de la Fere?
Yes; and the count desired me to tell you that he should 
take advantage of this visit to plead for you and for 
himself.
Ah! our dear count!said D'Artagnan. 
A fine thing, indeed!grunted Porthos. "A great favor! 
Zounds! Monsieur the Comte de la Ferewhose family is 
allied to the Montmorency and the Rohanis easily the equal 
of Monsieur de Mazarin." 
No matter,said D'Artagnanin his most wheedling tone. 
On reflection, my dear Du Vallon, it is a great honor for 
the Comte de la Fere, and gives good reason to hope. In 
fact, it seems to me so great an honor for a prisoner that I 
think Monsieur de Comminges must be mistaken.
What? I am mistaken?
Monsieur de Mazarin will not come to visit the Comte de la 
Fere, but the Comte de la Fere will be sent for to visit 
him.
No, no, no,said Commingeswho made a point of having the 
facts appear exactly as they wereI clearly understood 
what the cardinal said to me. He will come and visit the 
Comte de la Fere.
D'Artagnan tried to gather from the expression of his eyes 
whether Porthos understood the importance of that visitbut 
Porthos did not even look toward him. 
It is, then, the cardinal's custom to walk in his 
orangery?asked D'Artagnan. 
Every evening he shuts himself in there. That, it seems, is 
where he meditates on state affairs.
In that case,said D'ArtagnanI begin to believe that 
Monsieur de la Fere will receive the visit of his eminence; 
he will, of course, have an escort.
Yes -- two soldiers.
And will he talk thus of affairs in presence of two 
strangers?
The soldiers are Swiss, who understand only German. 
Besides, according to all probability they will wait at the 
door.
D'Artagnan made a violent effort over himself to keep his 
face from being too expressive. 
Let the cardinal take care of going alone to visit the 
Comte de la Fere,said D'Artagnan; "for the count must be 
furious." 
Comminges began to laugh. "Ohoh! whyreallyone would 
say that you four were anthropaphagi! The count is an 
affable man; besidesbe is unarmed; at the first word from 
his eminence the two soldiers about him would run to his 
assistance." 
Two soldiers,said D'Artagnanseeming to remember 
somethingtwo soldiers, yes; that, then, is why I hear two 
men called every evening and see them walking sometimes for 
half an hour, under my window.
That is it; they are waiting for the cardinal, or rather 
for Bernouin, who comes to call them when the cardinal goes 
out.
Fine-looking men, upon my word!said D'Artagnan. 
They belong to the regiment that was at Lens, which the 
prince assigned to the cardinal.
Ah, monsieur,said D'Artagnanas if to sum up in a word 
all that conversationif only his eminence would relent 
and grant to Monsieur de la Fere our liberty.
I wish it with all my heart,said Comminges. 
Then, if he should forget that visit, you would find no 
inconvenience in reminding him of it?
Not at all.
Ah, that gives me more confidence.
This skillful turn of the conversation would have seemed a 
sublime manoeuvre to any one who could have read the 
Gascon's soul. 
Now,said D'ArtagnanI've one last favor to ask of you, 
Monsieur de Comminges.
At your service, sir.
You will see the count again?
To-morrow morning.
Will you remember us to him and ask him to solicit for me 
the same favor that he will have obtained?
You want the cardinal to come here?
No; I know my place and am not so presumptuous. Let his 
eminence do me the honor to give me a hearing; that is all I 
want.
Oh!muttered Porthosshaking his headnever should I 
have thought this of him! How misfortune humbles a man!
I promise you it shall be done,answered De Comminges. 
Tell the count that I am well; that you found me sad, but 
resigned.
I am pleased, sir, to hear that.
And the same, also, for Monsieur du Vallon ---- 
Not for me ,cried Porthos; "I am not by any means 
resigned." 
But you will be resigned, my friend.
Never!
He will become so, monsieur; I know him better than he 
knows himself. Be silent, dear Du Vallon, and resign 
yourself.
Adieu, gentlemen,said De Comminges; "sleep well!" 
We will try.
De Comminges went awayD'Artagnan remaining apparently in 
the same attitude of humble resignation; but scarcely had he 
departed when he turned and clasped Porthos in his arms with 
an expression not to be doubted. 
Oh!cried Porthos; "what's the matter now? Have you gone 
madmy dear friend?" 
What is the matter?returned D'Artagnan; "we are saved!" 
I don't see that at all,answered Porthos. "I think we are 
all taken prisonersexcept Aramisand that our chances of 
getting out are lessened since one more of us is caught in 
Mazarin's mousetrap." 
Which is far too strong for two of us, but not strong 
enough for three of us,returned D'Artagnan. 
I don't understand,said Porthos. 
Never mind; let's sit down to table and take something to 
strengthen us for the night.
What are we to do, then, to-night?
To travel -- perhaps.
But ---- 
Sit down, dear friend, to table. When one is eating, ideas 
flow easily. After supper, when they are perfected, I will 
communicate my plans to you.
So Porthos sat down to table without another word and ate 
with an appetite that did honor to the confidence that was 
ever inspired in him by D'Artagnan's inventive imagination. 
Strength and Sagacity -- Continued. 
Supper was eaten in silencebut not in sadness; for from 
time to time one of those sweet smiles which were habitual 
to him in moments of good-humor illumined the face of 
D'Artagnan. Not a scintilla of these was lost on Porthos; 
and at every one he uttered an exclamation which betrayed to 
his friend that he had not lost sight of the idea which 
possessed his brain. 
At dessert D'Artagnan reposed in his chaircrossed one leg 
over the other and lounged about like a man perfectly at his 
ease. 
Porthos rested his chin on his handsplaced his elbows on 
the table and looked at D'Artagnan with an expression of 
confidence which imparted to that colossus an admirable 
appearance of good-fellowship. 
Well?said D'Artagnanat last. 
Well!repeated Porthos. 
You were saying, my dear friend ---- 
No; I said nothing.
Yes; you were saying you wished to leave this place.
Ah, indeed! the will was never wanting.
To get away you would not mind, you added, knocking down a 
door or a wall.
'Tis true -- I said so, and I say it again.
And I answered you, Porthos, that it was not a good plan; 
that we couldn't go a hundred steps without being 
recaptured, because we were without clothes to disguise 
ourselves and arms to defend ourselves.
That is true; we should need clothes and arms.
Well,said D'Artagnanrisingwe have them, friend 
Porthos, and even something better.
Bah!said Porthoslooking around. 
Useless to look; everything will come to us when wanted. At 
about what time did we see the two Swiss guards walking 
yesterday?
An hour after sunset.
If they go out to-day as they did yesterday we shall have 
the honor, then, of seeing them in half an hour?
In a quarter of an hour at most.
Your arm is still strong enough, is it not, Porthos?
Porthos unbuttoned his sleeveraised his shirt and looked 
complacently on his strong armas large as the leg of any 
ordinary man. 
Yes, indeed,said heI believe so.
So that you could without trouble convert these tongs into 
a hoop and yonder shovel into a corkscrew?
Certainly.And the giant took up these two articlesand 
without any apparent effort produced in them the 
metamorphoses suggested by his companion. 
There!he cried. 
Capital!exclaimed the Gascon. "ReallyPorthosyou are a 
gifted individual!" 
I have heard speak,said Porthosof a certain Milo of 
Crotona, who performed wonderful feats, such as binding his 
forehead with a cord and bursting it -- of killing an ox 
with a blow of his fist and carrying it home on his 
shoulders, et cetera. I used to learn all these feat by 
heart yonder, down at Pierrefonds, and I have done all that 
he did except breaking a cord by the corrugation of my 
temples.
Because your strength is not in your head, Porthos,said 
his friend. 
No; it is in my arms and shoulders,answered Porthos with 
gratified naivete. 
Well, my dear friend, let us approach the window and there 
you can match your strength against that of an iron bar.
Porthos went to the windowtook a bar in his handsclung 
to it and bent it like a bow; so that the two ends came out 
of the sockets of stone in which for thirty years they had 
been fixed. 
Well! friend, the cardinal, although such a genius, could 
never have done that.
Shall I take out any more of them?asked Porthos. 
No; that is sufficient; a man can pass through that.
Porthos triedand passed the upper portion of his body
through.
Yes,he said.
Now pass your arm through this opening.
Why?
You will know presently -- pass it.
Porthos obeyed with military promptness and passed his arm 
through the opening. 
Admirable!said D'Artagnan.
The scheme goes forward, it seems.
On wheels, dear friend.
Good! What shall I do now?
Nothing.
It is finished, then?
No, not yet.
I should like to understand,said Porthos.
Listen, my dear friend; in two words you will know all. The 
door of the guardhouse opens, as you see.
Yes, I see.
They are about to send into our court, which Monsieur de 
Mazarin crosses on his way to the orangery, the two guards 
who attend him.
There they are, coming out.
If only they close the guardhouse door! Good! They close 
it.
What, then?
Silence! They may hear us.
I don't understand it at all.
As you execute you will understand.
And yet I should have preferred ---- 
You will have the pleasure of the surprise.
Ah, that is true.
Hush!
Porthos remained silent and motionless. 
In factthe two soldiers advanced on the side where the 
window wasrubbing their handsfor it was coldit being 
the month of February. 
At this moment the door of the guardhouse was opened and one 
of the soldiers was summoned away. 
Now,said D'ArtagnanI am going to call this soldier and 
talk to him. Don't lose a word of what I'm going to say to 
you, Porthos. Everything lies in the execution.
Good, the execution of plots is my forte.
I know it well. I depend on you. Look, I shall turn to the 
left, so that the soldier will be at your right, as soon as 
he mounts on the bench to talk to us.
But supposing he doesn't mount?
He will; rely upon it. As soon as you see him get up, 
stretch out your arm and seize him by the neck. Then, 
raising him up as Tobit raised the fish by the gills, you 
must pull him into the room, taking care to squeeze him so 
tight that he can't cry out.
Oh!said Porthos. "Suppose I happen to strangle him?" 
To be sure there would only be a Swiss the less in the 
world; but you will not do so, I hope. Lay him down here; 
we'll gag him and tie him -- no matter where -- somewhere. 
So we shall get from him one uniform and a sword.
Marvelous!exclaimed Porthoslooking at the Gascon with 
the most profound admiration. 
Pooh!replied D'Artagnan. 
Yes,said Porthosrecollecting himselfbut one uniform 
and one sword will not suffice for two.
Well; but there's his comrade.
True,said Porthos. 
Therefore, when I cough, stretch out your arm.
Good!
The two friends then placed themselves as they had agreed
Porthos being completely hidden in an angle of the window. 
Good-evening, comrade,said D'Artagnan in his most 
fascinating voice and manner. 
Good-evening, sir,answered the soldierin a strong 
provincial accent. 
'Tis not too warm to walk,resumed D'Artagnan. 
No, sir.
And I think a glass of wine will not be disagreeable to 
you?
A glass of wine will be extremely welcome.
The fish bites -- the fish bites!whispered the Gascon to 
Porthos. 
I understand,said Porthos. 
A bottle, perhaps?
A whole bottle? Yes, sir.
A whole bottle, if you will drink my health.
Willingly,answered the soldier. 
Come, then, and take it, friend,said the Gascon. 
With all my heart. How convenient that there's a bench 
here. Egad! one would think it had been placed here on 
purpose.
Get on it; that's it, friend.
And D'Artagnan coughed. 
That instant the arm of Porthos fell. His hand of iron 
graspedquick as lightningfirm as a pair of blacksmith's 
pincersthe soldier's throat. He raised himalmost 
stifling him as he drew him through the apertureat the 
risk of flaying him in the passage. He then laid him down on 
the floorwhere D'Artagnanafter giving him just time 
enough to draw his breathgagged him with his long scarf; 
and the moment he had done so began to undress him with the 
promptitude and dexterity of a man who had learned his 
business on the field of battle. Then the soldiergagged 
and boundwas placed upon the hearththe fire of which had 
been previously extinguished by the two friends. 
Here's a sword and a dress,said Porthos. 
I take them,said D'Artagnanfor myself. If you want 
another uniform and sword you must play the same trick over 
again. Stop! I see the other soldier issue from the 
guardroom and come toward us.
I think,replied Porthosit would be imprudent to 
attempt the same manoeuvre again; it is said that no man can 
succeed twice in the same way, and a failure would be 
ruinous. No; I will go down, seize the man unawares and 
bring him to you ready gagged.
That is better,said the Gascon. 
Be ready,said Porthosas he slipped through the opening. 
He did as he said. Porthos seized his opportunitycaught 
the next soldier by his neckgagged him and pushed him like 
a mummy through the bars into the roomand entered after 
him. Then they undressed him as they had done the first
laid him on their bed and bound him with the straps which 
composed the bed -- the bedstead being of oak. This 
operation proved as great a success as the first. 
There,said D'Artagnanthis is capital! Now let me try 
on the dress of yonder chap. Porthos, I doubt if you can 
wear it; but should it be too tight, never mind, you can 
wear the breastplate and the hat with the red feathers.
It happenedhoweverthat the second soldier was a Swiss of 
gigantic proportionssosave that some few of the seams 
splithis uniform fitted Porthos perfectly. 
They then dressed themselves. 
'Tis done!they both exclaimed at once. "As to you
comrades they said to the men, nothing will happen to you 
if you are discreet; but if you stir you are dead men." 
The soldiers were complaisant; they had found the grasp of 
Porthos pretty powerful and that it was no joke to fight 
against it. 
Now,said D'Artagnanyou wouldn't be sorry to understand 
the plot, would you, Porthos?
Well, no, not very.
Well, then, we shall go down into the court.
Yes.
We shall take the place of those two fellows.
Well?
We will walk back and forth.
That's a good idea, for it isn't warm.
In a moment the valet-de-chambre will call the guard, as he 
did yesterday and the day before.
And we shall answer?
No, on the contrary, we shall not answer.
As you please; I don't insist on answering.
We will not answer, then; we will simply settle our hats on 
our heads and we will escort his eminence.
Where shall we escort him?
Where he is going -- to visit Athos. Do you think Athos 
will be sorry to see us?
Oh!cried Porthosoh! I understand.
Wait a little, Porthos, before crying out; for, on my word, 
you haven't reached the end,said the Gasconin a jesting 
tone. 
What is to happen?said Porthos. 
Follow me,replied D'Artagnan. "The man who lives to see 
shall see." 
And slipping through the aperturehe alighted in the court. 
Porthos followed him by the same roadbut with more 
difficulty and less diligence. They could hear the two 
soldiers shivering with fearas they lay bound in the 
chamber. 
Scarcely had the two Frenchmen touched the ground when a 
door opened and the voice of the valet-de-chambre called 
out: 
Make ready!
At the same moment the guardhouse was opened and a voice 
called out: 
La Bruyere and Du Barthois! March!
It seems that I am named La Bruyere remarked D'Artagnan. 
And IDu Barthois added Porthos. 
Where are you?" asked the valet-de-chambrewhose eyes
dazzled by the lightcould not clearly distinguish our 
heroes in the gloom. 
Here we are,said the Gascon. 
What say you to that, Monsieur du Vallon?he added in a 
low tone to Porthos. 
If it but lasts, most capital,responded Porthos. 
These two newly enlisted soldiers marched gravely after the 
valet-de-chambrewho opened the door of the vestibulethen 
another which seemed to be that of a waiting-roomand 
showing them two stools: 
Your orders are very simple,he said; "don't allow 
anybodyexcept one personto enter here. Do you hear -not 
a single creature! Obey that person implicitly. On your 
return you cannot make a mistake. You have only to wait here 
till I release you." 
D'Artagnan was known to this valet-de-chambrewho was no 
other than Bernouinand he had during the last six or eight 
months introduced the Gascon a dozen times to the cardinal. 
The Gasconthereforeinstead of answeringgrowled out 
Ja! Ja!in the most German and the least Gascon accent 
possible. 
As for Porthoson whom D'Artagnan had impressed the 
necessity of absolute silence and who did not even now begin 
to comprehend the scheme of his friendwhich was to follow 
Mazarin in his visit to Athoshe was simply mute. All that 
he was allowed to sayin case of emergencieswas the 
proverbial Der Teufel! 
Bernouin shut the door and went away. When Porthos heard the 
key turn in the lock he began to be alarmedlest they 
should only have exchanged one prison for another. 
Porthos, my friend,said D'Artagnandon't distrust 
Providence! Let me meditate and consider.
Meditate and consider as much as you like,replied 
Porthoswho was now quite out of humor at seeing things 
take this turn. 
We have walked eight paces,whispered D'Artagnanand 
gone up six steps, so hereabouts is the pavilion called the 
pavilion of the orangery. The Comte de la Fere cannot be far 
off, only the doors are locked.
That is a slight difficulty,said Porthosand a good 
push with the shoulders ---- 
For God's sake, Porthos my friend, reserve your feats of 
strength, or they will not have, when needed the honor they 
deserve. Have you not heard that some one is coming here?
Yes.
Well, that some one will open the doors.
But, my dear fellow, if that some one recognizes us, if 
that some one cries out, we are lost; for you don't propose, 
I imagine, that I shall kill that man of the church. That 
might do if we were dealing with Englishmen or Germans.
Oh, may God keep me from it, and you, too!said 
D'Artagnan. "The young king wouldperhapsshow us some 
gratitude; but the queen would never forgive usand it is 
she whom we have to consider. And thenbesidesthe useless 
blood! never! nonever! I have my plan; let me carry it out 
and we shall laugh." 
So much the better,said Porthos; "I feel some need of 
it." 
Hush!said D'Artagnan; "the some one is coming." 
The sound of a light step was heard in the vestibule. The 
hinges of the door creaked and a man appeared in the dress 
of a cavalierwrapped in a brown cloakwith a lantern in 
one hand and a large beaver hat pulled down over his eyes. 
Porthos effaced himself against the wallbut he could not 
render himself invisible; and the man in the cloak said to 
himgiving him his lantern: 
Light the lamp which hangs from the ceiling.
Then addressing D'Artagnan: 
You know the watchword?he said. 
Ja!replied the Gascondetermined to confine himself to 
this specimen of the German tongue. 
Tedesco!answered the cavalier; "va bene." 
And advancing toward the door opposite to that by which he 
came inhe opened it and disappeared behind itshutting it 
as he went. 
Now,asked Porthoswhat are we to do?
Now we shall make use of your shoulder, friend Porthos, if 
this door proves to be locked. Everything in its proper 
time, and all comes right to those who know how to wait 
patiently. But first barricade the first door well; then we 
will follow yonder cavalier.
The two friends set to work and crowded the space before the 
door with all the furniture in the roomas not only to make 
the passage impassablebut so to block the door that by no 
means could it open inward. 
There!said D'Artagnanwe can't be overtaken. Come! 
forward!
The Oubliettes of Cardinal Mazarin. 
At firston arriving at the door through which Mazarin had 
passedD'Artagnan tried in vain to open itbut on the 
powerful shoulder of Porthos being applied to one of the 
panelswhich gave wayD'Artagnan introduced the point of 
his sword between the bolt and the staple of the lock. The 
bolt gave way and the door opened. 
As I told you, everything can be attained, Porthos women 
and doors, by proceeding with gentleness.
You're a great moralist, and that's the fact,said 
Porthos. 
They entered; behind a glass windowby the light of the 
cardinal's lanternwhich had been placed on the floor in 
the midst of the gallerythey saw the orange and 
pomegranate trees of the Castle of Rueilin long lines
forming one great alley and two smaller side alleys. 
No cardinal!said D'Artagnanbut only his lantern; where 
the devil, then, is he?
Exploringhoweverone of the side wings of the gallery
after making a sign to Porthos to explore the otherhe saw
all at onceat his lefta tub containing an orange tree
which had been pushed out of its place and in its place an 
open aperture. 
Ten men would have found difficulty in moving that tubbut 
by some mechanical contrivance it had turned with the 
flagstone on which it rested. 
D'Artagnanas we have saidperceived a hole in that place 
and in this hole the steps of a winding staircase. 
He called Porthos to look at it. 
Were our object money only,he saidwe should be rich 
directly.
How's that?
Don't you understand, Porthos? At the bottom of that 
staircase lies, probably, the cardinal's treasury of which 
folk tell such wonders, and we should only have to descend, 
empty a chest, shut the cardinal up in it, double lock it, 
go away, carrying off as much gold as we could, put back 
this orange-tree over the place, and no one in the world 
would ever ask us where our fortune came from -- not even 
the cardinal.
It would be a happy hit for clowns to make, but as it seems 
to be unworthy of two gentlemen ---- said Porthos. 
So I think; and therefore I said, `Were our object money 
only;' but we want something else,replied the Gascon. 
At the same momentwhilst D'Artagnan was leaning over the 
aperture to listena metallic soundas if some one was 
moving a bag of goldstruck on his ear; he started; 
instantly afterward a door opened and a light played upon 
the staircase. 
Mazarin had left his lamp in the gallery to make people 
believe that he was walking aboutbut he had with him a 
waxlightto help him to explore his mysterious strong box. 
Faith,he saidin Italianas he was reascending the 
steps and looking at a bag of realsfaith, there's enough 
to pay five councillors of parliament, and two generals in 
Paris. I am a great captain -- that I am! but I make war in 
my own way.
The two friends were crouching downmeantimebehind a tub 
in the side alley. 
Mazarin came within three steps of D'Artagnan and pushed a 
spring in the wall; the slab turned and the orange tree 
resumed its place. 
Then the cardinal put out the waxlightslipped it into his 
pocketand taking up the lantern: "Now he said, for 
Monsieur de la Fere." 
Very good,thought D'Artagnan'tis our road likewise; we 
will go together.
All three set off on their walkMazarin taking the middle 
alley and the friends the side ones. 
The cardinal reached a second door without perceiving he was 
being followed; the sand with which the alleys were covered 
deadened the sound of footsteps. 
He then turned to the leftdown a corridor which had 
escaped the attention of the two friendsbut as he opened 
the door he pausedas if in thought. 
Ah! Diavolo!he exclaimedI forgot the recommendation of 
De Comminges, who advised me to take a guard and place it at 
this door, in order not to put myself at the mercy of that 
four-headed combination of devils.And with a movement of 
impatience he turned to retrace his steps. 
Do not give yourself the trouble, my lord,said 
D'Artagnanwith his right foot forwardhis beaver in his 
handa smile on his facewe have followed your eminence 
step by step and here we are.
Yes -- here we are,said Porthos. 
And he made the same friendly salute as D'Artagnan. 
Mazarin gazed at each of them with an affrighted stare
recognized themand let drop his lanternuttering a cry of 
terror. 
D'Artagnan picked it up; by good luck it had not been 
extinguished. 
Oh, what imprudence, my lord,said D'Artagnan; "'tis not 
good to be about just here without a light. Your eminence 
might knock against somethingor fall into a hole." 
Monsieur d'Artagnan!muttered Mazarinunable to recover 
from his astonishment. 
Yes, my lord, it is I. I have the honor to present to you 
Monsieur du Vallon, that excellent friend of mine, in whom 
your eminence had the kindness to interest yourself 
formerly.
And D'Artagnan held the lamp before the merry face of 
Porthoswho now began to comprehend the affair and be very 
proud of the whole undertaking. 
You were going to visit Monsieur de la Fere?said 
D'Artagnan. "Don't let us disarrange your eminence. Be so 
good as to show us the way and we will follow you. 
Mazarin was by degrees recovering his senses. 
Have you been long in the orangery?he asked in a 
trembling voiceremembering the visits he had been paying 
to his treasury. 
Porthos opened his mouth to reply; D'Artagnan made him a 
signand his mouthremaining silentgradually closed. 
This moment come, my lord,said D'Artagnan. 
Mazarin breathed again. His fears were now no longer for his 
hoardbut for himself. A sort of smile played on his lips. 
Come,he saidyou have me in a snare, gentlemen. I 
confess myself conquered. You wish to ask for liberty, and 
-- I give it you.
Oh, my lord!answered D'Artagnanyou are too good; as to 
our liberty, we have that; we want to ask something else of 
you.
You have your liberty?repeated Mazarinin terror. 
Certainly; and on the other hand, my lord, you have lost 
it, and now, in accordance with the law of war, sir, you 
must buy it back again.
Mazarin felt a shiver run through him -- a chill even to his 
heart's core. His piercing look was fixed in vain on the 
satirical face of the Gascon and the unchanging countenance 
of Porthos. Both were in shadow and the Sybil of Cuma 
herself could not have read them. 
To purchase back my liberty?said the cardinal. 
Yes, my lord.
And how much will that cost me, Monsieur d'Artagnan?
Zounds, my lord, I don't know yet. We must ask the Comte de 
la Fere the question. Will your eminence deign to open the 
door which leads to the count's room, and in ten minutes all 
will be settled.
Mazarin started. 
My lord,said D'Artagnanyour eminence sees that we wish 
to act with all formality and due respect; but I must warn 
you that we have no time to lose; open the door then, my 
lord, and be so good as to remember, once for all, that on 
the slightest attempt to escape or the faintest cry for 
help, our position being very critical indeed, you must not 
be angry with us if we go to extremities.
Be assured,answered Mazarinthat I shall attempt 
nothing; I give you my word of honor.
D'Artagnan made a sign to Porthos to redouble his 
watchfulness; then turning to Mazarin: 
Now, my lord, let us enter, if you please.
Conferences. 
Mazarin turned the lock of a double dooron the threshold 
of which they found Athos ready to receive his illustrious 
guests according to the notice Comminges had given him. 
On perceiving Mazarin he bowed. 
Your eminence,he saidmight have dispensed with your 
attendants; the honor bestowed on me is too great for me to 
be unmindful of it.
And so, my dear count,said D'Artagnanhis eminence 
didn't actually insist on our attending him; it is Du Vallon 
and I who have insisted, and even in a manner somewhat 
impolite, perhaps, so great was our longing to see you.
At that voicethat mocking toneand that familiar gesture
accenting voice and toneAthos made a bound of surprise. 
D'Artagnan! Porthos!he exclaimed. 
My very self, dear friend.
Me, also!repeated Porthos. 
What means this?asked the count. 
It means,replied Mazarintrying to smile and biting his 
lips in the attemptthat our parts are changed, and that 
instead of these gentlemen being my prisoners I am theirs; 
but, gentlemen, I warn you, unless you kill me, your victory 
will be of very short duration; people will come to the 
rescue.
Ah! my lord!cried the Gascondon't threaten! 'tis a bad 
example. We are so good and gentle to your eminence. Come, 
let us put aside all rancor and talk pleasantly.
There's nothing I wish more,replied Mazarin. "But don't 
think yourselves in a better position than you are. In 
ensnaring me you have fallen into the trap yourselves. How 
are you to get away from here? remember the soldiers and 
sentinels who guard these doors. NowI am going to show you 
how sincere I am." 
Good,thought D'Artagnan; "we must look about us; he's 
going to play us a trick." 
I offered you your liberty,continued the minister; "will 
you take it? Before an hour has passed you will be 
discoveredarrestedobliged to kill mewhich would be a 
crime unworthy of loyal gentlemen like you." 
He is right,thought Athos. 
Andlike every other reflection passing in a mind that 
entertained none but noble thoughtsthis feeling was 
expressed in his eyes. 
And therefore,said D'Artagnanto clip the hope which 
Athos's tacit adhesion had imparted to Mazarinwe shall 
not proceed to that violence save in the last extremity.
If on the contrary,resumed Mazarinyou accept your 
liberty ---- 
Why you, my lord, might take it away from us in less than 
five minutes afterward; and from my knowledge of you I 
believe you will so take it away from us.
No -- on the faith of a cardinal. You do not believe me?
My lord, I never believe cardinals who are not priests.
Well, on the faith of a minister.
You are no longer a minister, my lord; you are a prisoner.
Then, on the honor of a Mazarin, as I am and ever shall be, 
I hope,said the cardinal. 
Hem,replied D'Artagnan. "I have heard speak of a Mazarin 
who had not much religion when his oaths were in question. I 
fear he may have been an ancestor of your eminence." 
Monsieur d'Artagnan, you are a great wit and I am really 
sorry to be on bad terms with you.
My lord, let us come to terms; I ask nothing better.
Very well,said Mazarinif I place you in security, in a 
manner evident, palpable ---- 
Ah! that is another thing,said Porthos. 
Let us see,said Athos. 
Let us see,said D'Artagnan. 
In the first place, do you accept?asked the cardinal. 
Unfold your plan, my lord, and we will see.
Take notice that you are shut up -- captured.
You well know, my lord, that there always remains to us a 
last resource.
What?
That of dying together.
Mazarin shuddered. 
Listen,he said; "at the end of yonder corridor is a door
of which I have the keyit leads into the park. Goand 
take this key with you; you are activevigorousand you 
have arms. At a hundred stepson turning to the leftyou 
will find the wall of the park; get over itand in three 
leaps you will be on the road and free." 
Ah! by Jove, my lord,said D'Artagnanyou have well 
said, but these are only words. Where is the key you speak 
of?
Here it is.
Ah, my lord! You will conduct us yourself, then, to that 
door?
Very willingly, if it be necessary to reassure you,
answered the ministerand Mazarinwho was delighted to get 
off so cheaplyled the wayin high spiritsto the 
corridor and opened the door. 
It led into the parkas the three fugitives perceived by 
the night breeze which rushed into the corridor and blew the 
wind into their faces. 
The devil!exclaimed the Gascon'tis a dreadful night, 
my lord. We don't know the locality, and shall never find 
the wall. Since your eminence has come so far, come a few 
steps further; conduct us, my lord, to the wall.
Be it so,replied the cardinal; and walking in a straight 
line he went to the wallat the foot of which they all four 
arrived at the same instant. 
Are you satisfied, gentlemen?asked Mazarin. 
I think so, indeed; we should be hard to please if we were 
not. Deuce take it! three poor gentlemen escorted by a 
prince of the church! Ah! apropos, my lord! you remarked 
that we were all active, vigorous and armed.
Yes.
You are mistaken. Monsieur du Vallon and I are the only two 
who are armed. The count is not; and should we meet with one 
of your patrol we must defend ourselves.
'Tis true.
Where can we find another sword?asked Porthos. 
My lord,said D'Artagnanwill lend his, which is of no 
use to him, to the Comte de la Fere.
Willingly,said the cardinal; "I will even ask the count 
to keep it for my sake." 
I promise you, my lord, never to part with it,replied 
Athos. 
Well, well,cried D'Artagnanthis reconciliation is 
truly touching; have you not tears in your eyes, Porthos?
Yes,said Porthos; "but I do not know if it is feeling or 
the wind that makes me weep; I think it is the wind." 
Now climb up, Athos, quickly,said D'Artagnan. Athos
assisted by Porthoswho lifted him up like a feather
arrived at the top. 
Now, jump down, Athos.
Athos jumped and disappeared on the other side of the wall. 
Are you on the ground?asked D'Artagnan. 
Yes.
Without accident?
Perfectly safe and sound.
Porthos, whilst I get up, watch the cardinal. No, I don't 
want your help, watch the cardinal.
I am watching,said Porthos. "Well?" 
You are right; it is more difficult than I thought. Lend me 
your back -- but don't let the cardinal go.
Porthos lent him his back and D'Artagnan was soon on the 
summit of the wallwhere he seated himself. 
Mazarin pretended to laugh. 
Are you there?asked Porthos. 
Yes, my friend; and now ---- 
Now, what?asked Porthos. 
Now give me the cardinal up here; if he makes any noise 
stifle him.
Mazarin wished to call outbut Porthos held him tight and 
passed him to D'Artagnanwho seized him by the neck and 
made him sit down by him; then in a menacing tonehe said: 
Sir! jump directly down, close to Monsieur de la Fere, or, 
on the honor of a gentleman, I'll kill you!
Monsieur, monsieur,cried Mazarinyou are breaking your 
word to me!
I -- did I promise you anything, my lord?
Mazarin groaned. 
You are free,he saidthrough me; your liberty was my 
ransom.
Agreed; but the ransom of that immense treasure buried 
under the gallery, to which one descends on pushing a spring 
hidden in the wall, which causes a tub to turn, revealing a 
staircase -- must not one speak of that a little, my lord?
Diavolo!cried Mazarinalmost chokedand clasping his 
hands; "I am a lost and ruined man!" 
But without listening to his protestations of alarm
D'Artagnan slipped him gently down into the arms of Athos
who stood immovable at the bottom of the wall. 
Porthos next made an effort which shook the solid walland 
by the aid of his friend's hand gained the summit. 
I didn't understand it all,he saidbut I understand 
now; how droll it is!
You think so? so much the better; but that it may prove 
laughter-worthy even to the end, let us not lose time.And 
he jumped off the wall. 
Porthos did the same. 
Attend to monsieur le cardinal, gentlemen,said 
D'Artagnan; "for myselfI will reconnoitre." 
The Gascon then drew his sword and marched as avant guard. 
My lord,he saidwhich way do we go? Think well of your 
reply, for should your eminence be mistaken, there might 
ensue most grave results for all of us.
Along the wall, sir,said Mazarinthere will be no 
danger of losing yourselves.
The three friends hastened onbut in a short time were 
obliged to slacken the pace. The cardinal could not keep up 
with themthough with every wish to do so. 
Suddenly D'Artagnan touched something warmwhich moved. 
Stop! a horse!he cried; "I have found a horse!" 
And I, likewise,said Athos. 
I, too,said Porthoswhofaithful to the instructions
still held the cardinal's arm. 
There's luck, my lord! just as you were complaining of 
being tired and obliged to walk.
But as he spoke the barrel of a pistol was presented at his 
breast and these words were pronounced: 
Touch it not!
Grimaud!he cried; "Grimaud! what art thou about? Why
thou art posted here by Heaven!" 
No, sir,said the honest servantit was Monsieur Aramis 
who posted me here to take care of the horses.
Is Aramis here?
Yes, sir; he has been here since yesterday.
What are you doing?
On the watch ---- 
What! Aramis here?cried Athos.
At the lesser gate of the castle; he's posted there.
Are you a large party?
Sixty.
Let him know.
This moment, sir.
And believing that no one could execute the commission 
better than himselfGrimaud set off at full speed; whilst
enchanted at being all together againthe friends awaited 
his return. 
There was no one in the whole group in a bad humor except 
Cardinal Mazarin. 
In which we begin to think that Porthos will be at last a 
Baronand D'Artagnan a Captain. 
At the expiration of ten minutes Aramis arrivedaccompanied 
by Grimaud and eight or ten followers. He was excessively 
delighted and threw himself into his friends' arms. 
You are free, my brothers! free without my aid! and I shall 
have succeeded in doing nothing for you in spite of all my 
efforts.
Do not be unhappy, dear friend, on that account; if you 
have done nothing as yet, you will do something soon,
replied Athos. 
I had well concerted my plans,pursued Aramis; "the 
coadjutor gave me sixty men; twenty guard the walls of the 
parktwenty the road from Rueil to Saint Germaintwenty 
are dispersed in the woods. Thus I was ablethanks to the 
strategic disposition of my forcesto intercept two 
couriers from Mazarin to the queen." 
Mazarin listened intently. 
But,said D'ArtagnanI trust that you honorably sent 
them back to monsieur le cardinal!
Ah, yes!said Aramistoward him I should be very likely 
to practice such delicacy of sentiment! In one of the 
despatches the cardinal declares to the queen that the 
treasury is empty and that her majesty has no more money. In 
the other he announces that he is about to transport his 
prisoners to Melun, since Rueil seemed to him not 
sufficiently secure. You can understand, dear friend, with 
what hope I was inspired by that last letter. I placed 
myself in ambuscade with my sixty men; I encircled the 
castle; the riding horses I entrusted to Grimaud and I 
awaited your coming out, which I did not expect till 
to-morrow, and I didn't hope to free you without a skirmish. 
You are free to-night, without fighting; so much the better! 
How did you manage to escape that scoundrel Mazarin? You 
must have much reason to complain of him.
Not very much,said D'Artagnan. 
Really!
I might even say that we have some reason to praise him.
Impossible!
Yes, really; it is owing to him that we are free.
Owing to him?
Yes, he had us conducted into the orangery by Monsieur 
Bernouin, his valet-de-chambre, and from there we followed 
him to visit the Comte de la Fere. Then he offered us our 
liberty and we accepted it. He even went so far as to show 
us the way out; he led us to the park wall, which we climbed 
over without accident, and then we fell in with Grimaud.
Well!exclaimed Aramisthis will reconcile me to him; 
but I wish he were here that I might tell him that I did not 
believe him capable of so noble an act.
My lord,said D'Artagnanno longer able to contain 
himselfallow me to introduce to you the Chevalier 
d'Herblay, who wishes -- as you may have heard -- to offer 
his congratulations to your eminence.
And he retireddiscovering Mazarinwho was in great 
confusionto the astonished gaze of Aramis. 
Ho! ho!exclaimed the latterthe cardinal! a glorious 
prize! Halloo! halloo! friends! to horse! to horse!
Several horsemen ran quickly to him. 
Zounds!cried AramisI may have done some good; so, my 
lord, deign to receive my most respectful homage! I will lay 
a wager that 'twas that Saint Christopher, Porthos, who 
performed this feat! Apropos! I forgot ---- and he gave 
some orders in a low voice to one of the horsemen. 
I think it will be wise to set off,said D'Artagnan. 
Yes; but I am expecting some one, a friend of Athos.
A friend!exclaimed the count. 
And here he comes, by Jupiter! galloping through the 
bushes.
The count! the count!cried a young voice that made Athos 
start. 
Raoul! Raoul!he ejaculated. 
For one moment the young man forgot his habitual respect -he 
threw himself on his father's neck. 
Look, my lord cardinal,said Aramiswould it not have 
been a pity to have separated men who love each other as we 
love? Gentlemen,he continuedaddressing the cavaliers
who became more and more numerous every instant; "gentlemen
encircle his eminencethat you may show him the greater 
honor. He willindeed give us the favor of his company; you 
willI hopebe grateful for it; Porthosdo not lose sight 
of his eminence." 
Aramis then joined Athos and D'Artagnanwho were consulting 
together. 
Come,said D'Artagnanafter a conference of five minutes' 
durationlet us begin our journey.
Where are we to go?asked Porthos. 
To your house, dear Porthos, at Pierrefonds; your fine 
chateau is worthy of affording its princely hospitality to 
his eminence; it is, likewise, well situated -- neither too 
near Paris, nor too far from it; we can establish a 
communication between it and the capital with great 
facility. Come, my lord, you shall be treated like a prince, 
as you are.
A fallen prince!exclaimed Mazarinpiteously. 
The chances of war,said Athosare many, but be assured 
we shall take no improper advantage of them.
No, but we shall make use of them,said D'Artagnan. 
The rest of the night was employed by these cavaliers in 
traveling with the wonderful rapidity of former days. 
Mazarinstill sombre and pensivepermitted himself to be 
dragged along in this way; it looked a race of phantoms. At 
dawn twelve leagues had been passed without drawing rein; 
half the escort were exhausted and several horses fell down. 
Horses, nowadays, are not what they were formerly,
observed Porthos; "everything degenerates." 
I have sent Grimaud to Dammartin,said Aramis. "He is to 
bring us five fresh horses -- one for his eminencefour for 
us. Weat leastmust keep close to monseigneur; the rest 
of the start will rejoin us later. Once beyond Saint Denis 
we shall have nothing to fear." 
Grimaudin factbrought back five horses. The nobleman to 
whom he appliedbeing a friend of Porthoswas very ready
not to sell themas was proposedbut to lend them. Ten 
minutes later the escort stopped at Ermenonvillebut the 
four friends went on with well sustained ardorguarding 
Mazarin carefully. At noon they rode into the avenue of 
Pierrefonds. 
Ah!said Musquetonwho had ridden by the side of 
D'Artagnan without speaking a word on the journeyyou may 
think what you will, sir, but I can breathe now for the 
first time since my departure from Pierrefonds;and he put 
his horse to a gallop to announce to the other servants the 
arrival of Monsieur du Vallon and his friends. 
We are four of us,said D'Artagnan; "we must relieve each 
other in mounting guard over my lord and each of us must 
watch three hours at a time. Athos is going to examine the 
castlewhich it will be necessary to render impregnable in 
case of siege; Porthos will see to the provisions and Aramis 
to the troops of the garrison. That is to sayAthos will be 
chief engineerPorthos purveyor-in-generaland Aramis 
governor of the fortress." 
Meanwhilethey gave up to Mazarin the handsomest room in 
the chateau. 
Gentlemen,he saidwhen he was in his roomyou do not 
expect, I presume, to keep me here a long time incognito?
No, my lord,replied the Gascon; "on the contrarywe 
think of announcing very soon that we have you here." 
Then you will be besieged.
We expect it.
And what shall you do?
Defend ourselves. Were the late Cardinal Richelieu alive he 
would tell you a certain story of the Bastion Saint Gervais, 
which we four, with our four lackeys and twelve dead men, 
held out against a whole army.
Such feats, sir, are done once -- and never repeated.
However, nowadays there's no need of so much heroism. 
To-morrow the army of Paris will be summoned, the day after 
it will be here! The field of battle, instead, therefore, of 
being at Saint Denis or at Charenton, will be near Compiegne 
or Villars-Cotterets.
The prince will vanquish you, as he has always done.
'Tis possible; my lord; but before an engagement ensues we 
shall move your eminence to another castle belonging to our 
friend Du Vallon, who has three. We will not expose your 
eminence to the chances of war.
Come,answered MazarinI see it will be necessary for me 
to capitulate.
Before a siege?
Yes; the conditions will be better than afterward.
Ah, my lord! as to conditions, you would soon see how 
moderate and reasonable we are!
Come, now, what are your conditions?
Rest yourself first, my lord, and we -- we will reflect.
I do not need rest, gentlemen; I need to know whether I am 
among enemies or friends.
Friends, my lord! friends!
Well, then, tell me at once what you want, that I may see 
if any arrangement be possible. Speak, Comte de la Fere!
My lord,replied Athosfor myself I have nothing to 
demand. For France, were I to specify my wishes, I should 
have too much. I beg you to excuse me and propose to the 
chevalier.
And Athosbowingretired and remained leaning against the 
mantelpiecea spectator of the scene. 
Speak, then, chevalier!said the cardinal. "What do you 
want? Nothing ambiguousif you please. Be clearshort and 
precise." 
As for me,replied AramisI have in my pocket the very 
programme of the conditions which the deputation -- of which 
I formed one -- went yesterday to Saint Germain to impose on 
you. Let us consider first the ancient rights. The demands 
in that programme must be granted.
We were almost agreed on those,replied Mazarin; "let us 
pass on to private and personal stipulations." 
You suppose, then, that there are some?said Aramis
smiling. 
I do not suppose that you will all be quite so 
disinterested as Monsieur de la Fere,replied the cardinal
bowing to Athos. 
My lord, you are right, and I am glad to see that you do 
justice to the count at last. The count has a mind above 
vulgar desires and earthly passions. He is a proud soul -he 
is a man by himself! You are right -- he is worth us all, 
and we avow it to you!
Aramis,said Athosare you jesting?
No, no, dear friend; I state only what we all know. You are 
right; it is not you alone this matter concerns, but my lord 
and his unworthy servant, myself.
Well, then, what do you require besides the general 
conditions before recited?
I require, my lord, that Normandy should be given to Madame 
de Longueville, with five hundred thousand francs and full 
absolution. I require that his majesty should deign to be 
godfather to the child she has just borne; and that my lord, 
after having been present at the christening, should go to 
proffer his homage to our Holy Father the Pope.
That is, you wish me to lay aside my ministerial functions, 
to quit France and be an exile.
I wish his eminence to become pope on the first 
opportunity, allowing me then the right of demanding full 
indulgences for myself and my friends.
Mazarin made a grimace which was quite indescribableand 
then turned to D'Artagnan. 
And you, sir?he said. 
I, my lord,answered the GasconI differ from Monsieur 
d'Herblay entirely as to the last point, though I agree with 
him on the first. Far from wishing my lord to quit Paris, I 
hope he will stay there and continue to be prime minister, 
as he is a great statesman. I shall try also to help him to 
down the Fronde, but on one condition -- that he sometimes 
remembers the king's faithful servants and gives the first 
vacant company of musketeers to a man that I could name. And 
you, Monsieur du Vallon ---- 
Yes, you, sir! Speak, if you please,said Mazarin. 
As for me,answered PorthosI wish my lord cardinal, in 
order to do honor to my house, which gives him an asylum, 
would in remembrance of this adventure erect my estate into 
a barony, with a promise to confer that order on one of my 
particular friends, whenever his majesty next creates 
peers.
You know, sir, that before receiving the order one must 
submit proofs.
My friends will submit them. Besides, should it be 
necessary, monseigneur will show him how that formality may 
be avoided.
Mazarin bit his lips; the blow was direct and he replied 
rather dryly: 
All this appears to me to be ill conceived, disjointed, 
gentlemen; for if I satisfy some I shall displease others. 
If I stay in Paris I cannot go to Rome; if I became pope I 
could not continue to be prime minister; and it is only by 
continuing prime minister that I can make Monsieur 
d'Artagnan a captain and Monsieur du Vallon a baron.
True said Aramis, soas I am in a minorityI withdraw 
my propositionso far as it relates to the voyage to Rome 
and monseigneur's resignation." 
I am to remain minister, then?said Mazarin. 
You remain minister; that is understood,said D'Artagnan; 
France needs you.
And I desist from my pretensions,said Aramis. "His 
eminence will continue to be prime minister and her 
majesty's favoriteif he will grant to me and my friends 
what we demand for France and for ourselves." 
Occupy yourselves with your own affairs, gentlemen, and let 
France settle matters as she will with me,resumed Mazarin. 
Ho! ho!replied Aramis. "The Frondeurs will have a treaty 
and your eminence must sign it before uspromising at the 
same time to obtain the queen's consent to it." 
I can answer only for myself,said Mazarin. "I cannot 
answer for the queen. Suppose her majesty refuses?" 
Oh!said D'Artagnanmonseigneur knows very well that her 
majesty refuses him nothing.
Here, monseigneur,said Aramisis the treaty proposed by 
the deputation of Frondeurs. Will your eminence please read 
and examine?
I am acquainted with it.
Sign it, then.
Reflect, gentlemen, that a signature given under 
circumstances like the present might be regarded as extorted 
by violence.
Monseigneur will be at hand to testify that it was freely 
given.
Suppose I refuse?
Then,said D'Artagnanyour eminence must expect the 
consequences of a refusal.
Would you dare to touch a cardinal?
You have dared, my lord, to imprison her majesty's 
musketeers.
The queen will revenge me, gentlemen.
I do not think so, although inclination might lead her to 
do so, but we shall take your eminence to Paris, and the 
Parisians will defend us.
How uneasy they must be at this moment at Rueil and Saint 
Germain,said Aramis. "How they must be asking`Where is 
the cardinal?' `What has become of the minister?' `Where has 
the favorite gone?' How they must be looking for monseigneur 
in all corners! What comments must be made; and if the 
Fronde knows that monseigneur has disappearedhow the 
Fronde must triumph!" 
It is frightful,murmured Mazarin. 
Sign the treaty, then, monseigneur,said Aramis. 
Suppose the queen should refuse to ratify it?
Ah! nonsense!cried D'ArtagnanI can manage so that her 
majesty will receive me well; I know an excellent method.
What?
I shall take her majesty the letter in which you tell her 
that the finances are exhausted.
And then?asked Mazarinturning pale. 
When I see her majesty embarrassed, I shall conduct her to 
Rueil, make her enter the orangery and show her a certain 
spring which turns a box.
Enough, sir,muttered the cardinalyou have said enough; 
where is the treaty?
Here it is,replied Aramis. "Signmy lord and he gave 
him a pen. 
Mazarin arose, walked some moments, thoughtful, but not 
dejected. 
And when I have signed he said, what is to be my 
guarantee?" 
My word of honor, sir,said Athos. 
Mazarin startedturned toward the Comte de la Fereand 
looking for an instant at that grand and honest countenance
took the pen. 
It is sufficient, count,he saidand signed the treaty. 
And now, Monsieur d'Artagnan,he saidprepare to set off 
for Saint Germain and take a letter from me to the queen.
Shows how with Threat and Pen more is effected than by the 
Sword. 
D'Artagnan knew his part well; he was aware that opportunity 
has a forelock only for him who will take it and he was not 
a man to let it go by him without seizing it. He soon 
arranged a prompt and certain manner of travelingby 
sending relays of horses to Chantillyso that he might be 
in Paris in five or six hours. But before setting out he 
reflected that for a lad of intelligence and experience he 
was in a singular predicamentsince he was proceeding 
toward uncertainty and leaving certainty behind him. 
In fact,he saidas he was about to mount and start on 
his dangerous missionAthos, for generosity, is a hero of 
romance; Porthos has an excellent disposition, but is easily 
influenced; Aramis has a hieroglyphic countenance, always 
illegible. What will come out of those three elements when I 
am no longer present to combine them? The deliverance of the 
cardinal, perhaps. Now, the deliverance of the cardinal 
would be the ruin of our hopes; and our hopes are thus far 
the only recompense we have for labors in comparison with 
which those of Hercules were pygmean.
He went to find Aramis. 
You, my dear Chevalier d'Herblay,he saidare the Fronde 
incarnate. Mistrust Athos, therefore, who will not prosecute 
the affairs of any one, even his own. Mistrust Porthos, 
especially, who, to please the count whom he regards as God 
on earth, will assist him in contriving Mazarin's escape, if 
Mazarin has the wit to weep or play the chivalric.
Aramis smiled; his smile was at once cunning and resolute. 
Fear nothing,he said; "I have my conditions to impose. My 
private ambition tends only to the profit of him who has 
justice on his side." 
Good!thought D'Artagnan: "in this direction I am 
satisfied." He pressed Aramis's hand and went in search of 
Porthos. 
Friend,he saidyou have worked so hard with me toward 
building up our fortune, that, at the moment when we are 
about to reap the fruits of our labours, it would be a 
ridiculous piece of silliness in you to allow yourself to be 
controlled by Aramis, whose cunning you know -- a cunning 
which, we may say between ourselves, is not always without 
egotism; or by Athos, a noble and disinterested man, but 
blase, who, desiring nothing further for himself, doesn't 
sympathize with the desires of others. What should you say 
if either of these two friends proposed to you to let 
Mazarin go?
Why, I should say that we had too much trouble in taking 
him to let him off so easily.
Bravo, Porthos! and you would be right, my friend; for in 
losing him you would lose your barony, which you have in 
your grasp, to say nothing of the fact that, were he once 
out of this, Mazarin would have you hanged.
Do you think so?
I am sure of it.
Then I would kill him rather than let him go.
And you would act rightly. There is no question, you 
understand, provided we secure our own interests, of 
securing those of the Frondeurs; who, besides, don't 
understand political matters as we old soldiers do.
Never fear, dear friend,said Porthos. "I shall see you 
through the window as you mount your horse; I shall follow 
you with my eyes as long as you are in sight; then I shall 
place myself at the cardinal's door -- a door with glass 
windows. I shall see everythingand at the least suspicious 
sign I shall begin to exterminate." 
Bravo!thought D'Artagnan; "on this side I think the 
cardinal will be well guarded." He pressed the hand of the 
lord of Pierrefonds and went in search of Athos. 
My dear Athos,he saidI am going away. I have only one 
thing to say to you. You know Anne of Austria; the captivity 
of Mazarin alone guarantees my life; if you let him go I am 
a dead man.
I needed nothing less than that consideration, my dear 
D'Artagnan, to persuade myself to adopt the role of jailer. 
I give you my word that you will find the cardinal where you 
leave him.
This reassures me more than all the royal signatures,
thought D'Artagnan. "Now that I have the word of Athos I can 
set out." 
D'Artagnan started alone on his journeywithout other 
escort than his swordand with a simple passport from 
Mazarin to secure his admission to the queen's presence. Six 
hours after he left Pierrefonds he was at Saint Germain. 
The disappearance of Mazarin was not as yet generally known. 
Anne of Austria was informed of it and concealed her 
uneasiness from every one. In the chamber of D'Artagnan and 
Porthos the two soldiers had been found bound and gagged. On 
recovering the use of their limbs and tongues they couldof 
coursetell nothing but what they knew -- that they had 
been seizedstripped and bound. But as to what had been 
done by Porthos and D'Artagnan afterward they were as 
ignorant as all the inhabitants of the chateau. 
Bernouin alone knew a little more than the others. Bernouin
seeing that his master did not return and hearing the stroke 
of midnighthad made an examination of the orangery. The 
first doorbarricaded with furniturehad aroused in him 
certain suspicionsbut without communicating his suspicions 
to any one he had patiently worked his way into the midst of 
all that confusion. Then he came to the corridorall the 
doors of which he found open; sotoowas the door of 
Athos's chamber and that of the park. From the latter point 
it was easy to follow tracks on the snow. He saw that these 
tracks tended toward the wall; on the other side he found 
similar tracksthen footprints of horses and then signs of 
a troop of cavalry which had moved away in the direction of 
Enghien. He could no longer cherish any doubt that the 
cardinal had been carried off by the three prisonerssince 
the prisoners had disappeared at the same time; and he had 
hastened to Saint Germain to warn the queen of that 
disappearance. 
Anne had enforced the utmost secrecy and had disclosed the 
event to no one except the Prince de Condewho had sent 
five or six hundred horsemen into the environs of Saint 
Germain with orders to bring in any suspicious person who 
was going away from Rueilin whatsoever direction it might 
be. 
Nowsince D'Artagnan did not constitute a body of horsemen
since he was alonesince he was not going away from Rueil 
and was going to Saint Germainno one paid any attention to 
him and his journey was not obstructed in any way. 
On entering the courtyard of the old chateau the first 
person seen by our ambassador was Maitre Bernouin in person
whostanding on the thresholdawaited news of his vanished 
master. 
At the sight of D'Artagnanwho entered the courtyard on 
horsebackBernouin rubbed his eyes and thought he must be 
mistaken. But D'Artagnan made a friendly sign to him with 
his headdismountedand throwing his bridle to a lackey 
who was passinghe approached the valet-de-chambre with a 
smile on his lips. 
Monsieur d'Artagnan!cried the latterlike a man who has 
the nightmare and talks in his sleepMonsieur d'Artagnan!
Himself, Monsieur Bernouin.
And why have you come here?
To bring news of Monsieur de Mazarin -- the freshest news 
there is.
What has become of him, then?
He is as well as you and I.
Nothing bad has happened to him, then?
Absolutely nothing. He felt the need of making a trip in 
the Ile de France, and begged us -- the Comte de la Fere and 
Monsieur du Vallon -- to accompany him. We were too devoted 
servants to refuse him a request of that sort. We set out 
last evening and here we are.
Here you are.
His eminence had something to communicate to her majesty, 
something secret and private -- a mission that could be 
confided only to a sure man -- and so has sent me to Saint 
Germain. And therefore, my dear Monsieur Bernouin, if you 
wish to do what will be pleasing to your master, announce to 
her majesty that I have come, and tell her with what 
purpose.
Whether he spoke seriously or in jestsince it was evident 
that under existing circumstances D'Artagnan was the only 
man who could relieve the queen's uneasinessBernouin went 
without hesitation to announce to her this strange embassy; 
and as he had foreseenthe queen gave orders to introduce 
Monsieur d'Artagnan at once. 
D'Artagnan approached the sovereign with every mark of 
profound respectand having fallen on his knees presented 
to her the cardinal's letter 
It washowevermerely a letter of introduction. The queen 
read itrecognized the writingandsince there were no 
details in it of what had occurredasked for particulars. 
D'Artagnan related everything with that simple and ingenuous 
air which he knew how to assume on occasions. The queenas 
he went onlooked at him with increasing astonishment. She 
could not comprehend how a man could conceive such an 
enterprise and still less how he could have the audacity to 
disclose it to her whose interest and almost duty it was to 
punish him. 
How, sir!she criedas D'Artagnan finishedyou dare to 
tell me the details of your crime -- to give me an account 
of your treason!
Pardon, madame, but I think that either I have expressed 
myself badly or your majesty has imperfectly understood me. 
There is here no question of crime or treason. Monsieur de 
Mazarin held us in prison, Monsieur du Vallon and myself, 
because we could not believe that he had sent us to England 
to quietly look on while they cut off the head of Charles 
I., brother-in-law of the late king, your husband, the 
consort of Madame Henrietta, your sister and your guest, and 
because we did all that we could do to save the life of the 
royal martyr. We were then convinced, my friend and I, that 
there was some error of which we were the victims, and that 
an explanation was called for between his eminence and 
ourselves. Now, that an explanation may bear fruit, it is 
necessary that it should be quietly conducted, far from 
noise and interruption. We have therefore taken away 
monsieur le cardinal to my friend's chateau and there we 
have come to an understanding. Well, madame, it proved to be 
as we had supposed; there was a mistake. Monsieur de Mazarin 
had thought that we had rendered service to General 
Cromwell, instead of King Charles, which would have been a 
disgrace, rebounding from us to him, and from him to your 
majesty -- a dishonor which would have tainted the royalty 
of your illustrious son. We were able to prove the contrary, 
and that proof we are ready to give to your majesty, calling 
in support of it the august widow weeping in the Louvre, 
where your royal munificence has provided for her a home. 
That proof satisfied him so completely that, as a sign of 
satisfaction, he has sent me, as your majesty may see, to 
consider with you what reparation should be made to 
gentlemen unjustly treated and wrongfully persecuted.
I listen to you, and I wonder at you, sir,said the queen. 
In fact, I have rarely seen such excess of impudence.
Your majesty, on your side,said D'Artagnanis as much 
mistaken as to our intentions as the Cardinal Mazarin has 
always been.
You are in error, sir,answered the queen. "I am so little 
mistaken that in ten minutes you shall be arrestedand in 
an hour I shall set off at the head of my army to release my 
minister." 
I am sure your majesty will not commit such an act of 
imprudence, first, because it would be useless and would 
produce the most disastrous results. Before he could be 
possibly set free the cardinal would be dead; and indeed, so 
convinced is he of this, that he entreated me, should I find 
your majesty disposed to act in this way, to do all I could 
to induce you to change your resolution.
Well, then, I will content myself with arresting you!
Madame, the possibility of my arrest has been foreseen, and 
should I not have returned by to-morrow, at a certain hour 
the next day the cardinal will be brought to Paris and 
delivered to the parliament.
It is evident, sir, that your position has kept you out of 
relation to men and affairs; otherwise you would know that 
since we left Paris monsieur le cardinal has returned 
thither five or six times; that he has there met De 
Beaufort, De Bouillon, the coadjutor and D'Elbeuf and that 
not one of them had any desire to arrest him.
Your pardon, madame, I know all that. And therefore my 
friends will conduct monsieur le cardinal neither to De 
Beaufort, nor to De Bouillon, nor to the coadjutor, nor to 
D'Elbeuf. These gentlemen wage war on private account, and 
in buying them up, by granting them what they wished, 
monsieur le cardinal has made a good bargain. He will be 
delivered to the parliament, members of which can, of 
course, be bought, but even Monsieur de Mazarin is not rich 
enough to buy the whole body.
I think,returned Anne of Austriafixing upon him a 
glancewhich in any woman's face would have expressed 
disdainbut in a queen'sspread terror to those she looked 
uponnay, I perceive you dare to threaten the mother of 
your sovereign.
Madame,replied D'ArtagnanI threaten simply and solely 
because I am obliged to do so. Believe me, madame, as true a 
thing as it is that a heart beats in this bosom -- a heart 
devoted to you -- believe that you have been the idol of our 
lives; that we have, as you well know -- good Heaven! -risked 
our lives twenty times for your majesty. Have you, 
then, madame, no compassion for your servants who for twenty 
years have vegetated in obscurity, without betraying in a 
single sigh the solemn and sacred secrets they have had the 
honor to share with you? Look at me, madame -- at me, whom 
you accuse of speaking loud and threateningly. What am I? A 
poor officer, without fortune, without protection, without a 
future, unless the eye of my queen, which I have sought so 
long, rests on me for a moment. Look at the Comte de la 
Fere, a type of nobility, a flower of chivalry. He has taken 
part against his queen, or rather, against her minister. He 
has not been unreasonably exacting, it seems to me. Look at 
Monsieur du Vallon, that faithful soul, that arm of steel, 
who for twenty years has awaited the word from your lips 
which will make him in rank what he is in sentiment and in 
courage. Consider, in short, your people who love you and 
who yet are famished, who have no other wish than to bless 
you, and who, nevertheless -- no, I am wrong, your subjects, 
madame, will never curse you; say one word to them and all 
will be ended -- peace succeed war, joy tears, and happiness 
to misfortune!
Anne of Austria looked with wonderment on the warlike 
countenance of D'Artagnanwhich betrayed a singular 
expression of deep feeling. 
Why did you not say all this before you took action, sir?
she said. 
Because, madame, it was necessary to prove to your majesty 
one thing of which you doubted ---that is, that we still 
possess amongst us some valor and are worthy of some 
consideration at your hands.
And that valor would shrink from no undertaking, according 
to what I see.
It has hesitated at nothing in the past; why, then, should 
it be less daring in the future?
Then, in case of my refusal, this valor, should a struggle 
occur, will even go the length of carrying me off in the 
midst of my court, to deliver me into the hands of the 
Fronde, as you propose to deliver my minister?
We have not thought about it yet, madame,answered 
D'Artagnanwith that Gascon effrontery which had in him the 
appearance of naivete; but if we four had resolved upon it 
we should do it most certainly." 
I ought,muttered Anne to herselfby this time to 
remember that these men are giants.
Alas, madame!exclaimed D'Artagnanthis proves to me 
that not till to-day has your majesty had a just idea of 
us.
Perhaps,said Anne; "but that ideaif at last I have it 
---- " 
Your majesty will do us justice. In doing us justice you 
will no longer treat us as men of vulgar stamp. You will see 
in me an ambassador worthy of the high interests he is 
authorized to discuss with his sovereign.
Where is the treaty?
Here it is.
Anne of Austria cast her eyes upon the treaty that 
D'Artagnan presented to her. 
I do not see here,she saidanything but general 
conditions; the interests of the Prince de Conti or of the 
Ducs de Beaufort, de Bouillon and d'Elbeuf and of the 
coadjutor, are herein consulted; but with regard to yours?
We do ourselves justice, madame, even in assuming the high 
position that we have. We do not think ourselves worthy to 
stand near such great names.
But you, I presume, have decided to assert your pretensions 
viva voce?
I believe you, madame, to be a great and powerful queen, 
and that it will be unworthy of your power and greatness if 
you do not recompense the arms which will bring back his 
eminence to Saint Germain.
It is my intention so to do; come, let us hear you. Speak.
He who has negotiated these matters (forgive me if I begin 
by speaking of myself, but I must claim that importance 
which has been given to me, not assumed by me) he who has 
arranged matters for the return of the cardinal, ought, it 
appears to me, in order that his reward may not be unworthy 
of your majesty, to be made commandant of the guards -- an 
appointment something like that of captain of the 
musketeers.
'Tis the appointment Monsieur de Treville held, you ask of 
me.
The place, madame, is vacant, and although 'tis a year 
since Monsieur de Treville has left it, it has not been 
filled.
But it is one of the principal military appointments in the 
king's household.
Monsieur de Treville was but a younger son of a simple 
Gascon family, like me, madame; he occupied that post for 
twenty years.
You have an answer ready for everything,replied the 
queenand she took from her bureau a documentwhich she 
filled up and signed. 
Undoubtedly, madame,said D'Artagnantaking the document 
and bowingthis is a noble reward; but everything in the 
world is unstable, and the man who happened to fall into 
disgrace with your majesty might lose this office 
to-morrow.
What more do you want?asked the queencoloringas she 
found that she had to deal with a mind as subtle as her own. 
A hundred thousand francs for this poor captain of 
musketeers, to be paid whenever his services shall no longer 
be acceptable to your majesty.
Anne hesitated. 
To think of the Parisians,soliloquized D'Artagnan
offering only the other day, by an edict of the parliament, 
six hundred thousand francs to any man soever who would 
deliver up the cardinal to them, dead or alive -- if alive, 
in order to hang him; if dead, to deny him the rites of 
Christian burial!
Come,said Anne'tis reasonable, since you only ask from 
a queen the sixth of what the parliament has proposed;and 
she signed an order for a hundred thousand francs. 
Now, then,she saidwhat next?
Madame, my friend Du Vallon is rich and has therefore 
nothing in the way of fortune to desire; but I think I 
remember that there was a question between him and Monsieur 
Mazarin as to making his estate a barony. Nay, it must have 
been a promise.
A country clown,said Anne of Austriapeople will 
laugh.
Let them,answered D'Artagnan. "But I am sure of one thing 
-- that those who laugh at him in his presence will never 
laugh a second time." 
Here goes the barony.said the queen; she signed a patent. 
Now there remains the chevalier, or the Abbe d'Herblay, as 
your majesty pleases.
Does he wish to be a bishop?
No, madame, something easier to grant.
What?
It is that the king should deign to stand godfather to the 
son of Madame de Longueville.
The queen smiled. 
Monsieur de Longueville is of royal blood, madame,said 
D'Artagnan. 
Yes,said the queen; "but his son?" 
His son, madame, must be, since the husband of the son's 
mother is.
And your friend has nothing more to ask for Madame de 
Longueville?
No, madame, for I presume that the king, standing godfather 
to him, could do no less than present him with five hundred 
thousand francs, giving his father, also, the government of 
Normandy.
As to the government of Normandy,replied the queenI 
think I can promise; but with regard to the present, the 
cardinal is always telling me there is no more money in the 
royal coffers.
We shall search for some, madame, and I think we can find a 
little, and if your majesty approves, we will seek for some 
together.
What next?
What next, madame?
Yes.
That is all.
Haven't you, then, a fourth companion?
Yes, madame, the Comte de la Fere.
What does he ask?
Nothing.
There is in the world, then, one man who, having the power 
to ask, asks -- nothing!
There is the Comte de la Fere, madame. The Comte de la Fere 
is not a man.
What is he, then?
The Comte de la Fere is a demi-god.
Has he not a son, a young man, a relative, a nephew, of 
whom Comminges spoke to me as being a brave boy, and who, 
with Monsieur de Chatillon, brought the standards from 
Lens?
He has, as your majesty has said, a ward, who is called the 
Vicomte de Bragelonne.
If that young man should be appointed to a regiment what 
would his guardian say?
Perhaps he would accept.
Perhaps?
Yes, if your majesty herself should beg him to accept.
He must be indeed a strange man. Well, we will reflect and 
perhaps we will beg him. Are you satisfied, sir?
There is one thing the queen has not signed -- her assent 
to the treaty.
Of what use to-day? I will sign it to-morrow.
I can assure her majesty that if she does not sign to-day 
she will not have time to sign to-morrow. Consent, then, I 
beg you, madame, to write at the bottom of this schedule, 
which has been drawn up by Mazarin, as you see: 
`I consent to ratify the treaty proposed by the 
Parisians.'" 
Anne was caughtshe could not draw back -- she signed; but 
scarcely had she done so when pride burst forth and she 
began to weep. 
D'Artagnan started on seeing these tears. Since that period 
of history queens have shed tearslike other women. 
The Gascon shook his headthese tears from royalty melted 
his heart. 
Madame,he saidkneelinglook upon the unhappy man at 
your feet. He begs you to believe that at a gesture of your 
majesty everything will be possible to him. He has faith in 
himself; he has faith in his friends; he wishes also to have 
faith in his queen. And in proof that he fears nothing, that 
he counts on nothing, he will restore Monsieur de Mazarin to 
your majesty without conditions. Behold, madame! here are 
the august signatures of your majesty's hand; if you think 
you are right in giving them to me, you shall do so, but 
from this very moment you are free from any obligation to 
keep them.
And D'Artagnanfull of splendid pride and manly 
intrepidityplaced in Anne's handsin a bundlethe papers 
that he had one by one won from her with so much difficulty. 
There are moments -- for if everything is not good
everything in this world is not bad -- in which the most 
rigid and the coldest soul is softened by the tears of 
strong emotionheart-arraigning sentiment: one of these 
momentary impulses actuated Anne. D'Artagnanwhen he gave 
way to his own feelings -- which were in accordance with 
those of the queen -- had accomplished more than the most 
astute diplomacy could have attempted. He was therefore 
instantly recompensedeither for his address or for his 
sensibilitywhichever it might be termed. 
You were right, sir,said Anne. "I misunderstood you. 
There are the acts signed; I deliver them to you without 
compulsion. Go and bring me back the cardinal as soon as 
possible." 
Madame,faltered D'Artagnan'tis twenty years ago -- I 
have a good memory -- since I had the honor behind a piece 
of tapestry in the Hotel de Ville, of kissing one of those 
lovely hands.
There is the other,replied the queen; "and that the left 
hand should not be less liberal than the right she drew 
from her finger a diamond similar to the one formerly given 
to him, take and keep this ring in remembrance of me. 
Madame,said D'ArtagnanrisingI have only one thing 
more to wish, which is, that the next thing you ask from me, 
shall be -- my life.
And with this conclusion -- a way peculiar to himself -- he 
rose and left the room. 
I never rightly understood those men,said the queenas 
she watched him retiring from her presence; "and it is now 
too latefor in a year the king will be of age." 
In twenty-four hours D'Artagnan and Porthos conducted 
Mazarin to the queen; and the one received his commission
the other his patent of nobility. 
On the same day the Treaty of Paris was signedand it was 
everywhere announced that the cardinal had shut himself up 
for three days in order to draw it up with the greatest 
care. 
Here is what each of the parties concerned gained by that 
treaty: 
Monsieur de Conti received Damvilliersand having made his 
proofs as generalhe succeeded in remaining a soldier
instead of being made cardinal. Moreoversomething had been 
said of a marriage with Mazarin's niece. The idea was 
welcomed by the princeto whom it was of little importance 
whom he marriedso long as he married some one. 
The Duc de Beaufort made his entrance at courtreceiving 
ample reparation for the wrongs he had sufferedand all the 
honor due to his rank. Full pardon was accorded to those who 
had aided in his escape. He received also the office of 
admiralwhich had been held by his fatherthe Duc de 
Vendome and an indemnity for his houses and castles
demolished by the Parliament of Bretagne. 
The Duc de Bouillon received domains of a value equal to 
that of his principality of Sedanand the title of prince
granted to him and to those belonging to his house. 
The Duc de Longueville gained the government of 
Pont-de-l'Archefive hundred thousand francs for his wife 
and the honor of seeing her son held at the baptismal font 
by the young king and Henrietta of England. 
Aramis stipulated that Bazin should officiate at that 
ceremony and that Planchet should furnish the christening 
sugar plums. 
The Duc d'Elbeuf obtained payment of certain sums due to his 
wifeone hundred thousand francs for his eldest son and 
twenty-five thousand for each of the three others. 
The coadjutor alone obtained nothing. They promisedindeed
to negotiate with the pope for a cardinal's hat for him; but 
he knew how little reliance should be placed on such 
promisesmade by the queen and Mazarin. Quite contrary to 
the lot of Monsieur de Contiunable to be cardinalhe was 
obliged to remain a soldier. 
And thereforewhen all Paris was rejoicing in the expected 
return of the kingappointed for the next dayGondy alone
in the midst of the general happinesswas dissatisfied; he 
sent for the two men whom he was wont to summon when in 
especially bad humor. Those two men were the Count de 
Rochefort and the mendicant of Saint Eustache. They came 
with their usual promptnessand the coadjutor spent with 
them a part of the night. 
In which it is shown that it is sometimes more difficult for 
Kings to return to the Capitals of their Kingdomsthan to 
make an Exit. 
Whilst D'Artagnan and Porthos were engaged in conducting the 
cardinal to Saint GermainAthos and Aramis returned to 
Paris. 
Each had his own particular visit to make. 
Aramis rushed to the Hotel de Villewhere Madame de 
Longueville was sojourning. The duchess loudly lamented the 
announcement of peace. War had made her a queen; peace 
brought her abdication. She declared that she would never 
assent to the treaty and that she wished eternal war. 
But when Aramis had presented that peace to her in a true 
light -- that is to saywith all its advantages; when he 
had pointed out to herin exchange for the precarious and 
contested royalty of Paristhe viceroyalty of 
Font-de-l'Archein other wordsof all Normandy; when he 
had rung in her ears the five hundred thousand francs 
promised by the cardinal; when he had dazzled her eyes with 
the honor bestowed on her by the king in holding her child 
at the baptismal fontMadame de Longueville contended no 
longerexcept as is the custom with pretty women to 
contendand defended herself only to surrender at last. 
Aramis made a presence of believing in the reality of her 
opposition and was unwilling to deprive himself in his own 
view of the credit of her conversion. 
Madame,he saidyou have wished to conquer the prince 
your brother -- that is to say, the greatest captain of the 
age; and when women of genius wish anything they always 
succeed in attaining it. You have succeeded; the prince is 
beaten, since he can no longer fight. Now attach him to our 
party. Withdraw him gently from the queen, whom he does not 
like, from Mazarin, whom he despises. The Fronde is a 
comedy, of which the first act only is played. Let us wait 
for a denouement -- for the day when the prince, thanks to 
you, shall have turned against the court.
Madame de Longueville was persuaded. This Frondist duchess 
trusted so confidently to the power of her fine eyesthat 
she could not doubt their influence even over Monsieur de 
Conde; and the chronicles of the time aver that her 
confidence was justified. 
Athoson quitting Aramiswent to Madame de Chevreuse. Here 
was another frondeuse to persuadeand she was even less 
open to conviction than her younger rival. There had been no 
stipulation in her favor. Monsieur de Chevreuse had not been 
appointed governor of a provinceand if the queen should 
consent to be godmother it could be only of her grandson or 
granddaughter. At the first announcement of peace Madame de 
Chevreuse frownedand in spite of all the logic of Athos to 
show her that a prolonged war would have been impracticable
contended in favor of hostilities. 
My fair friend,said Athosallow me to tell you that 
everybody is tired of war. You will get yourself exiled, as 
you did in the time of Louis XIII. Believe me, we have 
passed the time of success in intrigue, and your fine eyes 
are not destined to be eclipsed by regretting Paris, where 
there will always be two queens as long as you are there.
Oh,cried the duchessI cannot make war alone, but I can 
avenge myself on that ungrateful queen and most ambitious 
favorite-on the honor of a duchess, I will avenge myself.
Madame,replied Athosdo not injure the Vicomte de 
Bragelonne -- do not ruin his prospects. Alas! excuse my 
weakness! There are moments when a man grows young again in 
his children.
The duchess smiledhalf tenderlyhalf ironically. 
Count,she saidyou are, I fear, gained over to the 
court. I suppose you have a blue ribbon in your pocket?
Yes, madame; I have that of the Garter, which King Charles 
I. gave me some days before he died.
Come, I am growing an old woman!said the duchess
pensively. 
Athos took her hand and kissed it. She sighedas she looked 
at him. 
Count,she saidBragelonne must be a charming place. You 
are a man of taste. You have water -- woods -- flowers 
there?
She sighed again and leaned her charming headgracefully 
reclinedon her handstill beautiful in form and color. 
Madame!exclaimed Athoswhat were you saying just now 
about growing old? Never have I seen you look so young, so 
beautiful!
The duchess shook her head. 
Does Monsieur de Bragelonne remain in Paris?she inquired. 
What think you of it?inquired Athos. 
Leave him with me,replied the duchess. 
No, madame; if you have forgotten the history of Oedipus, 
I, at least, remember it.
Really, sir, you are delightful, and I should like to spend 
a month at Bragelonne.
Are you not afraid of making people envious of me, 
duchess?replied Athos. 
No, I shall go incognito, count, under the name of Marie 
Michon.
You are adorable, madame.
But do not keep Raoul with you.
Why not?
Because he is in love.
He! he is quite a child!
And 'tis a child he loves.
Athos became thoughtful. 
You are right, duchess. This singular passion for a child 
of seven may some day make him very unhappy. There is to be 
war in Flanders. He shall go thither.
And at his return you will send him to me. I will arm him 
against love.
Alas, madame!exclaimed Athosto-day love is like war -the 
breastplate is becoming useless.
Raoul entered at this moment; he came to announce that the 
solemn entrance of the kingqueenand her ministers was to 
take place on the ensuing day. 
The next dayin factat daybreakthe court made 
preparations to quit Saint Germain. 
Meanwhilethe queen every hour had been sending for 
D'Artagnan. 
I hear,she saidthat Paris is not quiet. I am afraid 
for the king's safety; place yourself close to the coach 
door on the right.
Reassure yourself, madame, I will answer for the king's 
safety.
As he left the queen's presence Bernouin summoned him to the 
cardinal. 
Sir,said Mazarin to him "an emeute is spoken of in Paris. 
I shall be on the king's left and as I am the chief person 
threatenedremain at the coach door to the left." 
Your eminence may be perfectly easy,replied D'Artagnan; 
they will not touch a hair of your head.
Deuce take it!he thought to himselfhow can I take care 
of both? Ah! plague on't, I will guard the king and Porthos 
shall guard the cardinal.
This arrangement pleased every one. The queen had confidence 
in the courage of D'Artagnanwhich she knewand the 
cardinal in the strength of Porthoswhich he had 
experienced. 
The royal procession set out for Paris. Guitant and 
Commingesat the head of the guardsmarched first; then 
came the royal carriagewith D'Artagnan on one side
Porthos on the other; then the musketeersfor two and 
twenty years staunch friends of D'Artagnan. During twenty he 
had been lieutenanttheir captain since the night before. 
The cortege proceeded to Notre Damewhere a Te Deum was 
chanted. All Paris were in the streets. The Swiss were drawn 
up along the roadbut as the road was longthey were 
placed at six or eight feet distant from each other and one 
deep only. This force was therefore wholly insufficientand 
from time to time the line was broken through by the people 
and was formed again with difficulty. Whenever this 
occurredalthough it proceeded only from goodwill and a 
desire to see the king and queenAnne looked at D'Artagnan 
anxiously. 
Mazarinwho had dispensed a thousand louis to make the 
people cry "Long live Mazarin and who had accordingly no 
confidence in acclamations bought at twenty pistoles each, 
kept one eye on Porthos; but that gigantic body-guard 
replied to the look with his great bass voice, Be tranquil
my lord and Mazarin became more and more composed. 
At the Palais Royal, the crowd, which had flowed in from the 
adjacent street was still greater; like an impetuous mob, a 
wave of human beings came to meet the carriage and rolled 
tumultuously into the Rue Saint Honore. 
When the procession reached the palace, loud cries of Long 
live their majesties!" resounded. Mazarin leaned out of the 
window. One or two shouts of "Long live the cardinal" 
saluted his shadow; but instantly hisses and yells stifled 
them remorselessly. Mazarin turned pale and shrank back in 
the coach. 
Low-born fellows!ejaculated Porthos. 
D'Artagnan said nothingbut twirled his mustache with a 
peculiar gesture which showed that his fine Gascon humor was 
awake. 
Anne of Austria bent down and whispered in the young king's 
ear: 
Say something gracious to Monsieur d'Artagnan, my son.
The young king leaned toward the door. 
I have not said good-morning to you, Monsieur d'Artagnan,
he said; "neverthelessI have remarked you. It was you who 
were behind my bed-curtains that night the Parisians wished 
to see me asleep." 
And if the king permits me,returned the GasconI shall 
be near him always when there is danger to be encountered.
Sir,said Mazarin to Porthoswhat would you do if the 
crowd fell upon us?
Kill as many as I could, my lord.
Hem! brave as you are and strong as you are, you could not 
kill them all.
'Tis true,answered Porthosrising on his saddlein 
order that he might appraise the immense crowdthere are a 
lot of them.
I think I should like the other fellow better than this 
one,said Mazarin to himselfand he threw himself back in 
his carriage. 
The queen and her ministermore especially the latterhad 
reason to feel anxious. The crowdwhilst preserving an 
appearance of respect and even of affection for the king and 
queen regentbegan to be tumultuous. Reports were whispered 
aboutlike certain sounds which announceas they whistle 
from wave to wavethe coming storm -- and when they pass 
athwart a multitudepresage an emeute. 
D'Artagnan turned toward the musketeers and made a sign 
imperceptible to the crowdbut very easily understood by 
that chosen regimentthe flower of the army. 
The ranks closed firmly in and a kind of majestic tremor ran 
from man to man. 
At the Barriere des Sergents the procession was obliged to 
stop. Comminges left the head of the escort and went to the 
queen's carriage. Anne questioned D'Artagnan by a look. He 
answered in the same language. 
Proceed,she said. 
Comminges returned to his post. An effort was made and the 
living barrier was violently broken through. 
Some complaints arose from the crowd and were addressed this 
time to the king as well as the minister. 
Onward!cried D'Artagnanin a loud voice. 
Onward!cried Porthos. 
But as if the multitude had waited only for this 
demonstration to burst outall the sentiments of hostility 
that possessed it exploded simultaneously. Cries of "Down 
with Mazarin!" "Death to the cardinal!" resounded on all 
sides. 
At the same time through the streets of GrenelleSaint 
Honoreand Du Coqa double stream of people broke the 
feeble hedge of Swiss guards and came like a whirlwind even 
to the very legs of Porthos's horse and that of D'Artagnan. 
This new eruption was more dangerous than the othersbeing 
composed of armed men. It was plain that it was not the 
chance combination of those who had collected a number of 
the malcontents at the same spotbut a concerted organized 
attack. 
Each of these mobs was led by a chiefone of whom appeared 
to belongnot to the peoplebut to the honorable 
corporation of mendicantsand the othernotwithstanding 
his affected imitation of the peoplemight easily be 
discerned to be a gentleman. Both were evidently stimulated 
by the same impulse. 
There was a shock which was perceived even in the royal 
carriage. Myriads of hoarse criesforming one vast uproar
were heardmingled with guns firing. 
Ho! Musketeers!cried D'Artagnan. 
The escort divided into two files. One of them passed around 
to the right of the carriagethe other to the left. One 
went to support D'Artagnanthe other Porthos. Then came a 
skirmishthe more terrible because it had no definite 
object; the more melancholybecause those engaged in it 
knew not for whom they were fighting. Like all popular 
movementsthe shock given by the rush of this mob was 
formidable. The musketeersfew in numbernot being able
in the midst of this crowdto make their horses wheel 
aroundbegan to give way. D'Artagnan offered to lower the 
blinds of the royal carriagebut the young king stretched 
out his armsaying: 
No, sir! I wish to see everything.
If your majesty wishes to look out -- well, then, look!
replied D'Artagnan. And turning with that fury which made 
him so formidablehe rushed toward the chief of the 
insurgentsa man whowith a huge sword in his handwas 
trying to hew a passage to the coach door through the 
musketeers. 
Make room!cried D'Artagnan. "Zounds! give way!" 
At these words the man with a pistol and sword raised his 
headbut it was too late. The blow was sped by D'Artagnan; 
the rapier had pierced his bosom. 
Ah! confound it!cried the Gascontrying in vaintoo 
lateto retract the thrust. "What the devil are you doing 
herecount?" 
Accomplishing my destiny,replied Rochefortfalling on 
one knee. "I have already got up again after three stabs 
from youI shall never rise after this fourth." 
Count!said D'Artagnanwith some degree of emotionI 
struck without knowing that it was you. I am sorry, if you 
die, that you should die with sentiments of hatred toward 
me.
Rochefort extended his hand to D'Artagnanwho took it. The 
count wished to speakbut a gush of blood stifled him. He 
stiffened in the last convulsions of death and expired. 
Back, people!cried D'Artagnanyour leader is dead; you 
have no longer any business here.
Indeedas if De Rochefort had been the very soul of the 
attackthe crowd who had followed and obeyed him took to 
flight on seeing him fall. D'Artagnan chargedwith a party 
of musketeersup the Rue du Coqand the portion of the mob 
he assailed disappeared like smokedispersing near the 
Place Saint Germain-l'Auxerrois and taking the direction of 
the quays. 
D'Artagnan returned to help Porthosif Porthos needed help; 
but Porthosfor his parthad done his work as 
conscientiously as D'Artagnan. The left of the carriage was 
as well cleared as the rightand they drew up the blind of 
the window which Mazarinless heroic than the kinghad 
taken the precaution to lower. 
Porthos looked very melancholy. 
What a devil of a face you have, Porthos! and what a 
strange air for a victor!
But you,answered Porthosseem to me agitated.
There's a reason! Zounds! I have just killed an old 
friend.
Indeed!replied Porthoswho?
That poor Count de Rochefort.
Well! exactly like me! I have just killed a man whose face 
is not unknown to me. Unluckily, I hit him on the head and 
immediately his face was covered with blood.
And he said nothing as he died?
Yes; he exclaimed, `Oh!'
I suppose,answered D'Artagnanlaughingif he only said 
that, it did not enlighten you much.
Well, sir!cried the queen. 
Madame, the passage is quite clear and your majesty can 
continue your road.
In factthe procession arrivedin safety at Notre Dameat 
the front gate of which all the clergywith the coadjutor 
at their headawaited the kingthe queen and the minister
for whose happy return they chanted a Te Deum. 
As the service was drawing to a close a boy entered the 
church in great excitementran to the sacristydressed 
himself quickly in the choir robesand cleavingthanks to 
that uniformthe crowd that filled the templeapproached 
Bazinwhoclad in his blue robewas standing gravely in 
his place at the entrance to the choir. 
Bazin felt some one pulling his sleeve. He lowered to earth 
his eyesbeatifically raised to Heavenand recognized 
Friquet. 
Well, you rascal, what is it? How do you dare to disturb me 
in the exercise of my functions?asked the beadle. 
Monsieur Bazin,said FriquetMonsieur Maillard -- you 
know who he is, he gives holy water at Saint Eustache ---- 
Well, go on.
Well, he received in the scrimmage a sword stroke on the 
head. That great giant who was there gave it to him.
In that case,said Bazinhe must be pretty sick.
So sick that he is dying, and he wants to confess to the 
coadjutor, who, they say, has power to remit great sins.
And does he imagine that the coadjutor will put himself out 
for him?
To be sure; the coadjutor has promised.
Who told you that?
Monsieur Maillard himself.
You have seen him, then?
Certainly; I was there when he fell.
What were you doing there?
I was shouting, `Down with Mazarin!' `Death to the 
cardinal!' `The Italian to the gallows!' Isn't that what you 
would have me shout?
Be quiet, you rascal!said Bazinlooking uneasily around. 
So that he told me, that poor Monsieur Maillard, `Go find 
the coadjutor, Friquet, and if you bring him to me you shall 
be my heir.' Say, then, Father Bazin -- the heir of Monsieur 
Maillard, the giver of holy water at Saint Eustache! Hey! I 
shall have nothing to do but to fold my arms! All the same, 
I should like to do him that service -- what do you say to 
it?
I will tell the coadjutor,said Bazin. 
In facthe slowly and respectfully approached the prelate 
and spoke to him privately a few wordsto which the latter 
responded by an affirmative sign. He then returned with the 
same slow step and said: 
Go and tell the dying man that he must be patient. 
Monseigneur will be with him in an hour.
Good!said Friquetmy fortune is made.
By the way,said Bazinwhere was he carried?
To the tower Saint Jacques la Boucherie;and delighted 
with the success of his embassyFriquet started off at the 
top of his speed. 
When the Te Deum was overthe coadjutorwithout stopping 
to change his priestly dresstook his way toward that old 
tower which he knew so well. He arrived in time. Though 
sinking from moment to momentthe wounded man was not yet 
dead. The door was opened to the coadjutor of the room in 
which the mendicant was suffering. 
A moment later Friquet went outcarrying in his hand a 
large leather bag; he opened it as soon as he was outside 
the chamber and to his great astonishment found it full of 
gold. The mendicant had kept his word and made Friquet his 
heir. 
Ah! Mother Nanette!cried Friquetsuffocating; "ah! 
Mother Nanette!" 
He could say no more; but though he hadn't strength to speak 
he had enough for action. He rushed headlong to the street
and like the Greek from Marathon who fell in the square at 
Athenswith his laurel in his handFriquet reached 
Councillor Broussel's thresholdand then fell exhausted
scattering on the floor the louis disgorged by his leather 
bag. 
Mother Nanette began by picking up the louis; then she 
picked up Friquet. 
In the meantime the cortege returned to the Palais Royal. 
That Monsieur d'Artagnan is a very brave man, mother,said 
the young king. 
Yes, my son; and he rendered very important services to 
your father. Treat him kindly, therefore, in the future.
Captain,said the young king to D'Artagnanon descending 
from the carriagethe queen has charged me to invite you 
to dinner to-day -- you and your friend the Baron du 
Vallon.
That was a great honor for D'Artagnan and for Porthos. 
Porthos was delighted; and yet during the entire repast he 
seemed to be preoccupied. 
What was the matter with you, baron?D'Artagnan said to 
him as they descended the staircase of the Palais Royal. 
You seemed at dinner to be anxious about something.
I was trying,said Porthosto recall where I had seen 
that mendicant whom I must have killed.
And you couldn't remember?
No.
Well, search, my friend, search; and when you have found, 
you will tell me, will you not?
Pardieu!said Porthos. 
Conclusion. 
On going homethe two friends found a letter from Athos
who desired them to meet him at the Grand Charlemagne on the 
following day. 
The friends went to bed earlybut neither of them slept. 
When we arrive at the summit of our wishessuccess has 
usually the power to drive away sleep on the first night 
after the fulfilment of long cherished hopes. 
The next day at the appointed hour they went to see Athos 
and found him and Aramis in traveling costume. 
What!cried Porthosare we all going away, then? I, so, 
have made my preparations this morning.
Oh, heavens! yes,said Aramis. "There's nothing to do in 
Paris now there's no Fronde. The Duchess de Longueville has 
invited me to pass a few days in Normandyand has deputed 
mewhile her son is being baptizedto go and prepare her 
residence at Rouen; after whichif nothing new occursI 
shall go and bury myself in my convent at Noisy-le-Sec." 
And I,said Athosam returning to Bragelonne. You know, 
dear D'Artagnan, I am nothing more than a good honest 
country gentleman. Raoul has no fortune other than I 
possess, poor child! and I must take care of it for him, 
since I only lend him my name.
And Raoul -- what shall you do with him?
I leave him with you, my friend. War has broken out in 
Flanders. You shall take him with you there. I am afraid 
that remaining at Blois would be dangerous to his youthful 
mind. Take him and teach him to be as brave and loyal as you 
are yourself.
Then,replied D'Artagnanthough I shall not have you, 
Athos, at all events I shall have that dear fair-haired head 
by me; and though he's but a boy, yet, since your soul lives 
again in him, dear Athos, I shall always fancy that you are 
near me, sustaining and encouraging me.
The four friends embraced with tears in their eyes. 
Then they departedwithout knowing whether they would ever 
see each other again. 
D'Artagnan returned to the Rue Tiquetonne with Porthos
still possessed by the wish to find out who the man was that 
he had killed. On arriving at the Hotel de la Chevrette they 
found the baron's equipage all really and Musqueton on his 
saddle. 
Come, D'Artagnan,said Porthosbid adieu to your sword 
and go with me to Pierrefonds, to Bracieux, or to Du Vallon. 
We will grow old together and talk of our companions.
No!replied D'Artagnandeuce take it, the campaign is 
going to begin; I wish to be there, I expect to get 
something by it.
What do you expect to get?
Why, I expect to be made Marechal of France!
Ha! ha!cried Porthoswho was not completely taken in by 
D'Artagnan's Gasconades. 
Come my brother, go with me,added D'Artagnanand I will 
see that you are made a duke!
No,answered PorthosMouston has no desire to fight; 
besides, they have erected a triumphal arch for me to enter 
my barony, which will kill my neighbors with envy.
To that I can say nothing,returned D'Artagnanwho knew 
the vanity of the new baron. "Thenhere's to our next merry 
meeting!" 
Adieu, dear captain,said PorthosI shall always be 
happy to welcome you to my barony.
Yes, yes, when the campaign is over,replied the Gascon. 
His honor's equipage is waiting,said Musqueton. 
The two friendsafter a cordial pressure of the hands
separated. D'Artagnan was standing at the door looking after 
Porthos with a mournful gazewhen the baronafter walking 
scarcely more than twenty pacesreturned -- stood still -struck 
his forehead with his finger and exclaimed: 
I recollect!
What?inquired D'Artagnan. 
Who the beggar was that I killed.
Ah! indeed! and who was he?
'Twas that low fellow, Bonancieux.
And Porthosenchanted at having relieved his mindrejoined 
Musqueton and they disappeared around an angle of the 
street. D'Artagnan stood for an instantmutepensive and 
motionless; thenas he went inhe saw the fair Madeleine
his hostessstanding on the threshold. 
Madeleine,said the Gascongive me your apartment on the 
first floor; now that I am a captain in the royal musketeers 
I must make an appearance; nevertheless, reserve my old room 
on the fifth story for me; one never knows what may happen.